XenocideXENOCIDE


by Orson Scott Card


 1991 Orson Scott Card 
v1.1 (5-Apr-2000) 
If you find and correct errors in the text, please update the version number by 
0.1 and redistribute.



Table of Contents
Chapter 1 -- A Parting
Chapter 2 -- A Meeting
Chapter 3 -- Clean Hands
Chapter 4 -- Jane
Chapter 5 -- The Lusitania Fleet
Chapter 6 -- Varelse
Chapter 7 -- Secret Maid
Chapter 8 -- Miracles
Chapter 9 -- Pinehead
Chapter 10 -- Martyr
Chapter 11 -- The Jade of Master Ho
Chapter 12 -- Grego's War
Chapter 13 -- Free Will
Chapter 14 -- Virus Makers
Chapter 15 -- Life and Death
Chapter 16 -- Voyage
Chapter 17 -- Ender's Children
Chapter 18 -- The God of Path




Chapter 1 -- A Parting
<Today one of the brothers asked me: Is it a terrible prison, not to be able to 
move from the place where you're standing?> 
<You answered ...> 
<I told him that I am now more free than he is. The inability to move frees me 
from the obligation to act.> 
<You who speak languages, you are such liars.> 
  
  
Han Fei-tzu sat in lotus position on the bare wooden floor beside his wife's 
sickbed. Until a moment ago he might have been sleeping; he wasn't sure. But now 
he was aware of the slight change in her breathing, a change as subtle as the 
wind from a butterfly's passing. 
Jiang-qing, for her part, must also have detected some change in him, for she 
had not spoken before and now she did speak. Her voice was very soft. But Han 
Fei-tzu could hear her clearly, for the house was silent. He had asked his 
friends and servants for stillness during the dusk of Jiang-qing's life. Time 
enough for careless noise during the long night that was to come, when there 
would be no hushed words from her lips. 
"Still not dead," she said. She had greeted him with these words each time she 
woke during the past few days. At first the words had seemed whimsical or ironic 
to him, but now he knew that she spoke with disappointment. She longed for death 
now, not because she hadn't loved life, but because death was now unavoidable, 
and what cannot be shunned must be embraced. That was the Path. Jiang-qing had 
never taken a step away from the Path in her life. 
"Then the gods are kind to me," said Han Fei-tzu. 
"To you," she breathed. "What do we contemplate?" 
It was her way of asking him to share his private thoughts with her. When others 
asked his private thoughts, he felt spied upon. But Jiang-qing asked only so 
that she could also think the same thought; it was part of their having become a 
single soul. 
"We are contemplating the nature of desire," said Han Fei-tzu. 
"Whose desire?" she asked. "And for what?" 
My desire for your bones to heal and become strong, so that they don't snap at 
the slightest pressure. So that you could stand again, or even raise an arm 
without your own muscles tearing away chunks of bone or causing the bone to 
break under the tension. So that I wouldn't have to watch you wither away until 
now you weigh only eighteen kilograms. I never knew how perfectly happy we were 
until I learned that we could not stay together. 
"My desire," he answered. "For you." 
"'You only covet what you do not have.' Who said that?" 
"You did," said Han Fei-tzu. "Some say, 'what you cannot have.' Others say, 
'what you should not have.' I say, 'You can truly covet only what you will 
always hunger for.'" 
"You have me forever." 
"I will lose you tonight. Or tomorrow. Or next week." 
"Let us contemplate the nature of desire," said Jiang-qing. As before, she was 
using philosophy to pull him out of his brooding melancholy. 
He resisted her, but only playfully. "You are a harsh ruler," said Han Feitzu. 
"Like your ancestor-of-the-heart, you make no allowance for other people's 
frailty." Jiang-qing was named for a revolutionary leader of the ancient past, 
who had tried to lead the people onto a new Path but was overthrown by 
weak-hearted cowards. It was not right, thought Han Fei-tzu, for his wife to die 
before him: her ancestor-of-the-heart had outlived her husband. Besides, wives 
should live longer than husbands. Women were more complete inside themselves. 
They were also better at living in their children. They were never as solitary 
as a man alone. 
Jiang-qing refused to let him return to brooding. "When a man's wife is dead, 
what does he long for?" 
Rebelliously, Han Fei-tzu gave her the most false answer to her question. "To 
lie with her," he said. 
"The desire of the body," said Jiang-qing. 
Since she was determined to have this conversation, Han Fei-tzu took up the 
catalogue for her. "The desire of the body is to act. It includes all touches, 
casual and intimate, and all customary movements. Thus he sees a movement out of 
the corner of his eye, and thinks he has seen his dead wife moving across the 
doorway, and he cannot be content until he has walked to the door and seen that 
it was not his wife. Thus he wakes up from a dream in which he heard her voice, 
and finds himself speaking his answer aloud as if she could hear him." 
"What else?" asked Jiang-qing. 
"I'm tired of philosophy," said Han Fei-tzu. "Maybe the Greeks found comfort in 
it, but not me." 
"The desire of the spirit," said Jiang-qing, insisting. 
"Because the spirit is of the earth, it is that part which makes new things out 
of old ones. The husband longs for all the unfinished things that he and his 
wife were making when she died, and all the unstarted dreams of what they would 
have made if she had lived. Thus a man grows angry at his children for being too 
much like him and not enough like his dead wife. Thus a man hates the house they 
lived in together, because either he does not change it, so that it is as dead 
as his wife, or because he does change it, so that it is no longer half of her 
making." 
"You don't have to be angry at our little Qing-jao," said Jiang-qing. 
"Why?" asked Han Fei-tzu. "Will you stay, then, and help me teach her to be a 
woman? All I can teach her is to be what I am-- cold and hard, sharp and strong, 
like obsidian. If she grows like that, while she looks so much like you, how can 
I help but be angry?" 
"Because you can teach her everything that I am, too," said Jiang-qing. 
"If I had any part of you in me," said Han Fei-tzu, "I would not have needed to 
marry you to become a complete person." Now he teased her by using philosophy to 
turn the conversation away from pain. "That is the desire of the soul. Because 
the soul is made of light and dwells in air, it is that part which conceives and 
keeps ideas, especially the idea of the self. The husband longs for his whole 
self, which was made of the husband and wife together. Thus he never believes 
any of his own thoughts, because there is always a question in his mind to which 
his wife's thoughts were the only possible answer. Thus the whole world seems 
dead to him because he cannot trust anything to keep its meaning before the 
onslaught of this unanswerable question." 
"Very deep," said Jiang-qing. 
"If I were Japanese I would commit seppuku, spilling my bowel into the jar of 
your ashes." 
"Very wet and messy," she said. 
He smiled. "Then I should be an ancient Hindu, and burn myself on your pyre." 
But she was through with joking. "Qing-jao," she whispered. She was reminding 
him he could do nothing so flamboyant as to die with her. There was little 
Qing-jao to care for. 
So Han Fei-tzu answered her seriously. "How can I teach her to be what you are?" 

"All that is good in me," said Jiang-qing, "comes from the Path. If you teach 
her to obey the gods, honor the ancestors, love the people, and serve the 
rulers, I will be in her as much as you are." 
"I would teach her the Path as part of myself," said Han Fei-tzu. 
"Not so," said Jiang-qing. "The Path is not a natural part of you, my husband. 
Even with the gods speaking to you every day, you insist on believing in a world 
where everything can be explained by natural causes." 
"I obey the gods." He thought, bitterly, that he had no choice; that even to 
delay obedience was torture. 
"But you don't know them. You don't love their works." 
"The Path is to love the people. The gods we only obey." How can I love gods who 
humiliate me and torment me at every opportunity? 
"We love the people because they are creatures of the gods." 
"Don't preach to me." 
She sighed. 
Her sadness stung him like a spider. "I wish you would preach to me forever," 
said Han Fei-tzu. 
"You married me because you knew I loved the gods, and that love for them was 
completely missing from yourself. That was how I completed you." 
How could he argue with her, when he knew that even now he hated the gods for 
everything they had ever done to him, everything they had ever made him do, 
everything they had stolen from him in his life. 
"Promise me," said Jiang-qing. 
He knew what these words meant. She felt death upon her; she was laying the 
burden of her life upon him. A burden he would gladly bear. It was losing her 
company on the Path that he had dreaded for so long. 
"Promise that you will teach Qing-jao to love the gods and walk always on the 
Path. Promise that you will make her as much my daughter as yours." 
"Even if she never hears the voice of the gods?" 
"The Path is for everyone, not just the godspoken." 
Perhaps, thought Han Fei-tzu, but it was much easier for the godspoken to follow 
the Path, because to them the price for straying from it was so terrible. The 
common people were free; they could leave the Path and not feel the pain of it 
for years. The godspoken couldn't leave the Path for an hour. 
"Promise me." 
I will. I promise. 
But he couldn't say the words out loud. He did not know why, but his reluctance 
was deep. 
In the silence, as she waited for his vow, they heard the sound of running feet 
on the gravel outside the front door of the house. It could only be Qing-jao, 
home from the garden of Sun Cao-pi. Only Qing-jao was allowed to run and make 
noise during this time of hush, They waited, knowing that she would come 
straight to her mother's room. 
The door slid open almost noiselessly. Even Qing-jao had caught enough of the 
hush to walk softly when she was actually in the presence of her mother. Though 
she walked on tiptoe, she could hardly keep from dancing, almost galloping 
across the floor. But she did not fling her arms around her mother's neck; she 
remembered that lesson even though the terrible bruise had faded from 
Jiang-qing's face, where Qing-jao's eager embrace had broken her jaw three 
months ago. 
"I counted twenty-three white carp in the garden stream," said Qing-jao. 
"So many," said Jiang-qing. 
"I think they were showing themselves to me," said Qing-jao. "So I could count 
them. None of them wanted to be left out." 
"Love you," whispered Jiang-qing. 
Han Fei-tzu heard a new sound in her breathy voice-- a popping sound, like 
bubbles bursting with her words. 
"Do you think that seeing so many carp means that I will be godspoken?" asked 
Qing-jao. 
"I will ask the gods to speak to you," said Jiang-qing. 
Suddenly Jiang-qing's breathing became quick and harsh. Han Fei-tzu immediately 
knelt and looked at his wife. Her eyes were wide and frightened. The moment had 
come. 
Her lips moved. Promise me, she said, though her breath could make no sound but 
gasping. 
"I promise," said Han Fei-tzu. 
Then her breathing stopped. 
"What do the gods say when they talk to you?" asked Qing-jao. 
"Your mother is very tired," said Han Fei-tzu. "You should go out now." 
"But she didn't answer me. What do the gods say?" 
"They tell secrets," said Han Fei-tzu. "No one who hears will repeat them." 
Qing-jao nodded wisely. She took a step back, as if to leave, but stopped. "May 
I kiss you, Mama?" 
"Lightly on the cheek," said Han Fei-tzu. 
Qing-jao, being small for a four-year-old, did not have to bend very far at all 
to kiss her mother's cheek. "I love you, Mama." 
"You'd better leave now, Qing-jao," said Han Fei-tzu. 
"But Mama didn't say she loved me too." 
"She did. She said it before. Remember? But she's very tired and weak. Go now." 
He put just enough sternness in his voice that Qing-jao left without further 
questions. Only when she was gone did Han Fei-tzu let himself feel anything but 
care for her. He knelt over Jiang-qing's body and tried to imagine what was 
happening to her now. Her soul had flown and was now already in heaven. Her 
spirit would linger much longer; perhaps her spirit would dwell in this house, 
if it had truly been a place of happiness for her. Superstitious people believed 
that all spirits of the dead were dangerous, and put up signs and wards to fend 
them off. But those who followed the Path knew that the spirit of a good person 
was never harmful or destructive, for their goodness in life had come from the 
spirit's love of making things. Jiang-qing's spirit would be a blessing in the 
house for many years to come, if she chose to stay. 
Yet even as he tried to imagine her soul and spirit, according to the teachings 
of the Path, there was a cold place in his heart that was certain that all that 
was left of Jiang-qing was this brittle, dried-up body. Tonight it would burn as 
quickly as paper, and then she would be gone except for the memories in his 
heart. 
Jiang-qing was right. Without her to complete his soul, he was already doubting 
the gods. And the gods had noticed-- they always did. At once he felt the 
unbearable pressure to do the ritual of cleansing, until he was rid of his 
unworthy thoughts. Even now they could not leave him unpunished. Even now, with 
his wife lying dead before him, the gods insisted that he do obeisance to them 
before he could shed a single tear of grief for her. 
At first he meant to delay, to put off obedience. He had schooled himself to be 
able to postpone the ritual for as long as a whole day, while hiding all outward 
signs of his inner torment. He could do that now-- but only by keeping his heart 
utterly cold. There was no point in that. Proper grief could come only when he 
had satisfied the gods. So, kneeling there, he began the ritual. 
He was still twisting and gyrating with the ritual when a servant peered in. 
Though the servant said nothing, Han Fei-tzu heard the faint sliding of the door 
and knew what the servant would assume: Jiang-qing was dead, and Han Fei-tzu was 
so righteous that he was communing with the gods even before he announced her 
death to the household. No doubt some would even suppose that the gods had come 
to take Jiang-qing, since she was known for her extraordinary holiness. No one 
would guess that even as Han Fei-tzu worshiped, his heart was full of bitterness 
that the gods would dare demand this of him even now. 
O Gods, he thought, if I knew that by cutting off an arm or cutting out my liver 
I could be rid of you forever, I would seize the knife and relish the pain and 
loss, all for the sake of freedom. 
That thought, too, was unworthy, and required even more cleansing. It was hours 
before the gods at last released him, and by then he was too tired, too sick at 
heart to grieve. He got up and fetched the women to prepare Jiang-qing's body 
for the burning. 
At midnight he was the last to come to the pyre, carrying a sleepy Qing-jao in 
his arms. She clutched in her hands the three papers she had written for her 
mother in her childish scrawl. "Fish," she had written, and "book" and 
"secrets." These were the things that Qing-jao was giving to her mother to carry 
with her into heaven. Han Fei-tzu had tried to guess at the thoughts in 
Qing-jao's mind as she wrote those words. Fish because of the carp in the garden 
stream today, no doubt. And book-- that was easy enough to understand, because 
reading aloud was one of the last things Jiang-qing could do with her daughter. 
But why secrets? What secrets did Qing-jao have for her mother? He could not 
ask. One did not discuss the paper offerings to the dead. 
Han Fei-tzu set Qing-jao on her feet; she had not been deeply asleep, and so she 
woke at once and stood there, blinking slowly. Han Fei-tzu whispered to her and 
she rolled her papers and tucked them into her mother's sleeve. She didn't seem 
to mind touching her mother's cold flesh-- she was too young to have learned to 
shudder at the touch of death. 
Nor did Han Fei-tzu mind the touch of his wife's flesh as he tucked his own 
three papers into her other sleeve. What was there to fear from death now, when 
it had already done its worst? 
No one knew what was written on his papers, or they would have been horrified, 
for he had written, "My body," "My spirit," and "My soul." Thus it was that he 
burned himself on Jiang-qing's funeral pyre, and sent himself with her wherever 
it was she was going. 
Then Jiang-qing's secret maid, Mu-pao, laid the torch onto the sacred wood and 
the pyre burst into flames. The heat of the fire was painful, and Qing-jao hid 
herself behind her father, only peeking around him now and then to watch her 
mother leave on her endless journey. Han Fei-tzu, though, welcomed the dry heat 
that seared his skin and made brittle the silk of his robe. Her body had not 
been as dry as it seemed; long after the papers had crisped into ash and blown 
upward into the smoke of the fire, her body still sizzled, and the heavy incense 
burning all around the fire could not conceal from him the smell of burning 
flesh. That is what we're burning here: meat, fish, carrion, nothing. Not my 
Jiang-qing. Only the costume she wore into this life. That which made that body 
into the woman that I loved is still alive, must still live. And for a moment he 
thought he could see, or hear, or somehow feel the passage of Jiang-qing. 
Into the air, into the earth, into the fire. I am with you. 
Table of Contents



Chapter 2 -- A Meeting
<The strangest thing about humans is the way they pair up, males and females. 
Constantly at war with each other, never content to leave each other alone. They 
never seem to grasp the idea that males and females are separate species with 
completely different needs and desires, forced to come together only to 
reproduce.> 
<Of course you feel that way. Your mates are nothing but mindless drones, 
extensions of yourself, without their own identity.> 
<We know our lovers with perfect understanding. Humans invent an imaginary lover 
and put that mask over the face of the body in their bed.> 
<That is the tragedy of language, my friend. Those who know each other only 
through symbolic representations are forced to imagine each other. And because 
their imagination is imperfect, they are often wrong.> 
<That is the source of their misery.> 
<And some of their strength, I think. Your people and mine, each for our own 
evolutionary reasons, mate with vastly unequal partners. Our mates are always, 
hopelessly, our intellectual inferiors. Humans mate with beings who challenge 
their supremacy. They have conflict between mates, not because their 
communication is inferior to ours, but because they commune with each other at 
all.> 
  
  
Valentine Wiggin read over her essay, making a few corrections here and there. 
When she was done, the words stood in the air over her computer terminal. She 
was feeling pleased with herself for having written such a deft ironic 
dismemberment of the personal character of Rymus Ojman, the chairman of the 
cabinet of Starways Congress. 
"Have we finished another attack on the masters of the Hundred Worlds?" 
Valentine did not turn to face her husband; she knew from his voice exactly what 
expression would be on his face, and so she smiled back at him without turning 
around. After twenty-five years of marriage, they could see each other clearly 
without having to look. "We have made Rymus Ojman look ridiculous." 
Jakt leaned into her tiny office, his face so close to hers that she could hear 
his soft breathing as he read the opening paragraphs. He wasn't young anymore; 
the exertion of leaning into her office, bracing his hands on the doorframe, was 
making him breathe more rapidly than she liked to hear. 
Then he spoke, but with his face so close to hers that she felt his lips brush 
her cheek, tickling her with every word. "From now on even his mother will laugh 
behind her hand whenever she sees the poor bastard." 
"It was hard to make it funny," said Valentine. "I caught myself denouncing him 
again and again." 
"This is better." 
"Oh, I know. If I had let my outrage show, if I had accused him of all his 
crimes, it would have made him seem more formidable and frightening and the 
Rule-of-law Faction would have loved him all the more, while the cowards on 
every world would have bowed to him even lower." 
"If they bow any lower they'll have to buy thinner carpets," said Jakt. 
She laughed, but it was as much because the tickling of his lips on her cheek 
was becoming unbearable. It was also beginning, just a little, to tantalize her 
with desires that simply could not be satisfied on this voyage. The starship was 
too small and cramped, with all their family aboard, for any real privacy. 
"Jakt, we're almost at the midpoint. We've abstained longer than this during the 
mishmish run every year of our lives." 
"We could put a do-not-enter sign on the door." 
"Then you might just as well put out a sign that says, 'naked elderly couple 
reliving old memories inside.'" 
"I'm not elderly." 
"You're over sixty." 
"If the old soldier can still stand up and salute, I say let him march in the 
parade." 
"No parades till the voyage is over. It's only a couple of weeks more. We only 
have to complete this rendezvous with Ender's stepson and then we're back on 
course to Lusitania." 
Jakt drew away from her, pulled himself out of her doorway and stood upright in 
the corridor-- one of the few places on the starship where he could actually do 
that. He groaned as he did it, though. 
"You creak like an old rusty door," said Valentine. 
"I've heard you make the same sounds when you get up from your desk here. I'm 
not the only senile, decrepit, miserable old coot in our family." 
"Go away and let me transmit this." 
"I'm used to having work to do on a voyage," said Jakt. "The computers do 
everything here, and this ship never rolls or pitches in the sea." 
"Read a book." 
"I worry about you. All work and no play makes Val a mean-tempered old hag." 
"Every minute that we talk here is eight and a half hours in real time." 
"Our time here on this starship is just as real as their time out there," said 
Jakt. "Sometimes I wish Ender's friends hadn't figured out a way for our 
starship to keep up a landside link." 
"It takes up a huge amount of computer time," said Val. "Until now, only the 
military could communicate with starships during near-lightspeed flight. If 
Ender's friends can achieve it, then I owe it to them to use it." 
"You're not doing all this because you owe it to somebody." 
That was true enough. "If I write an essay every hour, Jakt, it means that to 
the rest of humanity Demosthenes is publishing something only once every three 
weeks." 
"You can't possibly write an essay every hour. You sleep, you eat." 
"You talk, I listen. Go away, Jakt." 
"If I'd known that saving a planet from destruction would mean my returning to a 
state of virginity, I'd never have agreed to it." 
He was only half teasing. Leaving Trondheim was a hard decision for all her 
family-- even for her, even knowing that she was going to see Ender again. The 
children were all adults now, or nearly so; they saw this voyage as a great 
adventure. Their visions of the future were not so tied to a particular place. 
None of them had become a sailor, like their father; all of them were becoming 
scholars or scientists, living the life of public discourse and private 
contemplation, like their mother. They could live their lives, substantially 
unchanged, anywhere, on any world. Jakt was proud of them, but disappointed that 
the chain of family reaching back for seven generations on the seas of Trondheim 
would end with him. And now, for her sake, he had given up the sea himself. 
Giving up Trondheim was the hardest thing she could ever have asked of Jakt, and 
he had said yes without hesitation. 
Perhaps he would go back someday, and, if he did, the oceans, the ice, the 
storms, the fish, the desperately sweet green meadows of summer would still be 
there. But his crews would be gone, were already gone. The men he had known 
better than his own children, better than his wife-- those men were already 
fifteen years older, and when he returned, if he returned, another forty years 
would have passed. Their grandsons would be working the boats then. They 
wouldn't know the name of Jakt. He'd be a foreign shipowner, come from the sky, 
not a sailor, not a man with the stink and yellowy blood of skrika on his hands. 
He would not be one of them. 
So when he complained that she was ignoring him, when he teased about their lack 
of intimacy during the voyage, there was more to it than an aging husband's 
playful desire. Whether he knew he was saying it or not, she understood the true 
meaning of his overtures: After what I've given up for you, have you nothing to 
give to me? 
And he was right-- she was pushing herself harder than she needed to. She was 
making more sacrifices than needed to be made-- requiring overmuch from him as 
well. It wasn't the sheer number of subversive essays that Demosthenes published 
during this voyage that would make the difference. What mattered was how many 
people read and believed what she wrote, and how many then thought and spoke and 
acted as enemies of Starways Congress. Perhaps more important was the hope that 
some within the bureaucracy of Congress itself would be moved to feel a higher 
allegiance to humanity and break their maddening institutional solidarity. Some 
would surely be changed by what she wrote. Not many, but maybe enough. And maybe 
it would happen in time to stop them from destroying the planet Lusitania. 
If not, she and Jakt and those who had given up so much to come with them on 
this voyage from Trondheim would reach Lusitania just in time to turn around and 
flee-- or be destroyed along with all the others of that world. It was not 
unreasonable for Jakt to be tense, to want to spend more time with her. It was 
unreasonable for her to be so single-minded, to use every waking moment writing 
propaganda. 
"You make the sign for the door, and I'll make sure you aren't alone in the 
room." 
"Woman, you make my heart go flip-flop like a dying flounder," said Jakt. 
"You are so romantic when you talk like a fisherman," said Valentine. "The 
children will have a good laugh, knowing you couldn't keep your hands off me 
even for the three weeks of this voyage." 
"They have our genes. They should be rooting for us to stay randy till we're 
well into our second century." 
"I'm well into my fourth millennium." 
"When oh when can I expect you in my stateroom, Ancient One?" 
"When I've transmitted this essay." 
"And how long will that be?" 
"Sometime after you go away and leave me alone." 
With a deep sigh that was more theatre than genuine misery, he padded off down 
the carpeted corridor. After a moment there came a clanging sound and she heard 
him yelp in pain. In mock pain, of course; he had accidentally hit the metal 
beam with his head on the first day of the voyage, but ever since then his 
collisions had been deliberate, for comic effect. No one ever laughed out loud, 
of course-- that was a family tradition, not to laugh when Jakt pulled one of 
his physical gags-- but then Jakt was not the sort of man who needed overt 
encouragement from others. He was his own best audience; a man couldn't be a 
sailor and a leader of men all his life without being quite self-contained. As 
far as Valentine knew, she and the children were the only people he had ever 
allowed himself to need. 
Even then, he had not needed them so much that he couldn't go on with his life 
as a sailor and fisherman, away from home for days, often weeks, sometimes 
months at a time. Valentine went with him sometimes at first, when they were 
still so hungry for each other that they could never be satisfied. But within a 
few years their hunger had given way to patience and trust; when he was away, 
she did her research and wrote her books, and then gave her entire attention to 
him and the children when he returned. 
The children used to complain, "I wish Father would get home, so Mother would 
come out of her room and talk to us again." I was not a very good mother, 
Valentine thought. It's pure luck that the children turned out so well. 
The essay remained in the air over the terminal. Only a final touch remained to 
be given. At the bottom, she centered the cursor and typed the name under which 
all her writings were published: 
DEMOSTHENES 
It was a name given to her by her older brother, Peter, when they were children 
together fifty-- no, three thousand years ago. 
The mere thought of Peter still had the power to upset her, to make her go hot 
and cold inside. Peter, the cruel one, the violent one, the one whose mind was 
so subtle and dangerous that he was manipulating her by the age of two and the 
world by the age of twenty. When they were still children on Earth in the 
twenty-second century, he studied the political writings of great men and women, 
living and dead, not to learn their ideas-- those he grasped instantly-- but to 
learn how they said them. To learn, in practical terms, how to sound like an 
adult. When he had mastered it, he taught Valentine, and forced her to write low 
political demagoguery under the name Demosthenes while he wrote elevated 
statesmanlike essays under the name Locke. Then they submitted them to the 
computer networks and within a few years were at the heart of the greatest 
political issues of the day. 
What galled Valentine then-- and still stung a bit today, since it had never 
been resolved before Peter died-- was that he, consumed by the lust for power, 
had forced her to write the sort of thing that expressed his character, while he 
got to write the peace-loving, elevated sentiments that were hers by nature. In 
those days the name "Demosthenes" had felt like a terrible burden to her. 
Everything she wrote under that name was a lie; and not even her lie-- Peter's 
lie. A lie within a lie. 
Not now. Not for three thousand years. I've made the name my own. I've written 
histories and biographies that have shaped the thinking of millions of scholars 
on the Hundred Worlds and helped to shape the identities of dozens of nations. 
So much for you, Peter. So much for what you tried to make of me. 
Except that now, looking at the essay she had just written, she realized that 
even though she had freed herself from Peter's suzerainty, she was still his 
pupil. All she knew of rhetoric, polemic-- yes, of demagoguery-- she had learned 
from him or because of his insistence. And now, though she was using it in a 
noble cause, she was nevertheless doing exactly the sort of political 
manipulation that Peter had loved so much. 
Peter had gone on to become Hegemon, ruler of all humanity for sixty years at 
the beginning of the Great Expansion. He was the one who united all the 
quarreling communities of man for the vast effort that flung starships out to 
every world where the buggers had once dwelt, and then on to discover more 
habitable worlds until, by the time he died, all the Hundred Worlds had either 
been settled or had colony ships on the way. It was almost a thousand years 
after that, of course, before Starways Congress once again united all of 
humankind under one government-- but the memory of the first true Hegemon-- 
*the* Hegemon-- was at the heart of the story that made human unity possible. 
Out of a moral wasteland like Peter's soul came harmony and unity and peace. 
While Ender's legacy, as far as humanity remembered, was murder, slaughter, 
xenocide. 
Ender, Valentine's younger brother, the man she and her family were voyaging to 
see-- he was the tender one, the brother she loved and, in the earliest years, 
tried to protect. He was the good one. Oh, yes, he had a streak of ruthlessness 
that rivaled Peter's, but he had the decency to be appalled by his own 
brutality. She had loved him as fervently as she had loathed Peter; and when 
Peter exiled his younger brother from the Earth that Peter was determined to 
rule, Valentine went with Ender-- her final repudiation of Peter's personal 
hegemony over her. 
And here I am again, thought Valentine, back in the business of politics. 
She spoke sharply, in the clipped voice that told her terminal that she was 
giving it a command. "Transmit," she said. 
The word transmitting appeared in the air above her essay. Ordinarily, back when 
she was writing scholarly works, she would have had to specify a destination-- 
submit the essay to a publisher through some roundabout pathway so that it could 
not readily be traced to Valentine Wiggin. Now, though, a subversive friend of 
Ender's, working under the obvious code name of "Jane," was taking care of all 
that for her-- managing the tricky business of translating an ansible message 
from a ship going at near-light speed to a message readable by a planetbound 
ansible for which time was passing more than five hundred times faster. 
Since communicating with a starship ate up huge amounts of planetside ansible 
time, it was usually done only to convey navigational information and 
instructions. The only people permitted to send extended text messages were high 
officials in the government or the military. Valentine could not begin to 
understand how "Jane" managed to get so much ansible time for these text 
transmissions-- and at the same time keep anyone from discovering where these 
subversive documents were coming from. Furthermore, "Jane" used even more 
ansible time transmitting back to her the published responses to her writings, 
reporting to her on all the arguments and strategies the government was using to 
counter Valentine's propaganda. Whoever "Jane" was-- and Valentine suspected 
that "Jane" was simply the name for a clandestine organization that had 
penetrated the highest reaches of government-- she was extraordinarily good. And 
extraordinarily foolhardy. Still, if Jane was willing to expose herself-- 
themselves-- to such risks, Valentine owed it to her-- them-- to produce as many 
tracts as she could, and as powerful and dangerous as she could make them. 
If words can be lethal weapons, I must provide them with an arsenal. 
But she was still a woman; even revolutionaries are allowed to have a life, 
aren't they? Moments of joy-- or pleasure, or perhaps only relief-- stolen here 
and there. She got up from her seat, ignoring the pain that came from moving 
after sitting so long, and twisted her way out of the door of her tiny office-- 
a storage bin, really, before they converted the starship to their own use. She 
was a little ashamed of how eager she was to get to the room where Jakt would be 
waiting. Most of the great revolutionary propagandists in history would have 
been able to endure at least three weeks of physical abstinence. Or would they? 
She wondered if anyone had done a study of that particular question. 
She was still imagining how a researcher would go about writing a grant proposal 
for such a project when she got to the four-bunk compartment they shared with 
Syfte and her husband, Lars, who had proposed to her only a few days before they 
left, as soon as he realized that Syfte really meant to leave Trondheim. It was 
hard to share a cabin with newlyweds-- Valentine always felt like such an 
intruder, using the same room. But there was no choice. Though this starship was 
a luxury yacht, with all the amenities they could hope for, it simply hadn't 
been meant to hold so many bodies. It had been the only starship near Trondheim 
that was remotely suitable, so it had to do. 
Their twenty-year-old daughter, Ro, and Varsam, their sixteen-year-old son, 
shared another compartment with Plikt, who had been their lifelong tutor and 
dearest family friend. The members of the yacht's staff and crew who had chosen 
to make this voyage with them-- it would have been wrong to dismiss them all and 
strand them on Trondheim-- used the other two. 
The bridge, the dining room, the galley, the salon, the sleeping compartments-- 
all were filled with people doing their best not to let their annoyance at the 
close quarters get out of hand. 
None of them were in the corridor now, however, and Jakt had already taped a 
sign to their door: 
STAY OUT OR DIE. 
It was signed, "The proprietor." Valentine opened the door. Jakt was leaning 
against the wall so close to the door that she was startled and gave a little 
gasp. 
"Nice to know that the sight of me can make you cry out in pleasure." 
"In shock." 
"Come in, my sweet seditionist." 
"Technically, you know, I'm the proprietor of this starship." 
"What's yours is mine. I married you for your property." 
She was inside the compartment now. He closed the door and sealed it. 
"That's all I am to you?" she asked. "Real estate?" 
"A little plot of ground where I can plow and plant and harvest, all in their 
proper season." He reached out to her; she stepped into his arms. His hands slid 
lightly up her back, cradled her shoulders. She felt contained in his embrace, 
never confined. 
"It's late in the autumn," she said. "Getting on toward winter." 
"Time to harrow, perhaps," said Jakt. "Or perhaps it's already time to kindle up 
the fire and keep the old hut warm before the snow comes." 
He kissed her and it felt like the first time. 
"If you asked me to marry you all over again today, I'd say yes," said 
Valentine. 
"And if I had only met you for the first time today, I'd ask." 
They had said the same words many, many times before. Yet they still smiled to 
hear them, because they were still true. 



The two starships had almost completed their vast ballet, dancing through space 
in great leaps and delicate turns until at last they could meet and touch. Miro 
Ribeira had watched the whole process from the bridge of his starship, his 
shoulders hunched, his head leaned back on the headrest of the seat. To others 
this posture always looked awkward. Back on Lusitania, whenever Mother caught 
him sitting that way she would come and fuss over him, insist on bringing him a 
pillow so he could be comfortable. She never seemed to grasp the idea that it 
was only in that hunched, awkward-seeming posture that his head would remain 
upright without any conscious effort on his part. 
He would endure her ministrations because it wasn't worth the effort to argue 
with her. Mother was always moving and thinking so quickly, it was almost 
impossible for her to slow down enough to listen to him. Since the brain damage 
he had suffered passing through the disruptor field that separated the human 
colony and the piggies' forest, his speech had been unbearably slow, painful to 
produce and difficult to understand. Miro's brother Quim, the religious one, had 
told him that he should be grateful to God that he was able to speak at all-- 
the first few days he had been incapable of communicating except through 
alphabetic scanning, spelling out messages letter by letter. In some ways, 
though, spelling things out had been better. At least then Miro had been silent; 
he hadn't had to listen to his own voice. The thick, awkward sound, the 
agonizing slowness of it. Who in his family had the patience to listen to him? 
Even the ones who tried-- his next-younger sister, Ela; his friend and 
stepfather, Andrew Wiggin, the Speaker for the Dead; and Quim, of course-- he 
could feel their impatience. They tended to finish his sentences for him. They 
needed to hurry things. So even though they said they wanted to talk with him, 
even though they actually sat and listened as he spoke, he still couldn't speak 
freely to them. He couldn't talk about ideas; he couldn't speak in long, 
involved sentences, because by the time he got to the end his listeners would 
have lost track of the beginning. 
The human brain, Miro had concluded, just like a computer, can only receive data 
at certain speeds. If you get too slow, the listener's attention wanders and the 
information is lost. 
Not just the listeners, either. Miro had to be fair-- he was as impatient with 
himself as they were. When he thought of the sheer effort involved in explaining 
a complicated idea, when he anticipated trying to form the words with lips and 
tongue and jaws that wouldn't obey him, when he thought of how long it would all 
take, he usually felt too weary to speak. His mind raced on and on, as fast as 
ever, thinking so many thoughts that at times Miro wanted his brain to shut 
down, to be silent and give him peace. But his thoughts remained his own, 
unshared. 
Except with Jane. He could speak to Jane. She had come to him first on his 
terminal at home, her face taking form on the screen. "I'm a friend of the 
Speaker for the Dead," she had told him. "I think we can get this computer to be 
a little more responsive." From then on, Miro had found that Jane was the only 
person he could talk to easily. For one thing, she was infinitely patient. She 
never finished his sentences. She could wait for him to finish them himself, so 
that he never felt rushed, never felt that he was boring her. 
Perhaps even more important, he didn't have to form his words as fully for her 
as he did for human listeners. Andrew had given him a personal terminal-- a 
computer transceiver encased in a jewel like the one Andrew wore in his own ear. 
From that vantage point, using the jewel's sensors, Jane could detect every 
sound he made, every motion of the muscles in his head. He didn't have to 
complete each sound, he had only to begin it and she would understand. So he 
could be lazy. He could speak more quickly and be understood. 
And he could also speak silently. He could subvocalize-- he didn't have to use 
that awkward, barking, yowling voice that was all his throat could produce now. 
So that when he was talking to Jane, he could speak quickly, naturally, without 
any reminder that he was crippled. With Jane he could feel like himself. 
Now he sat on the bridge of the cargo ship that had brought the Speaker for the 
Dead to Lusitania only a few months ago. He dreaded the rendezvous with 
Valentine's ship. If he could have thought of somewhere else to go, he might 
have gone there-- he had no desire to meet Andrew's sister Valentine or anybody 
else. If he could have stayed alone in the starship forever, speaking only to 
Jane, he would have been content. 
No he wouldn't. He would never be content again. 
At least this Valentine and her family would be somebody new. On Lusitania he 
knew everybody, or at least everybody that he valued-- all the scientific 
community there, the people of education and understanding. He knew them all so 
well that he could not help but see their pity, their grief, their frustration 
at what had become of him. When they looked at him all they could see was the 
difference between what he was before and what he was now. All they could see 
was loss. 
There was a chance that new people-- Valentine and her family-- would be able to 
look at him and see something else. 
Even that was unlikely, though. Strangers would look at him and see less, not 
more, than those who had known him before he was crippled. At least Mother and 
Andrew and Ela and Ouanda and all the others knew that he had a mind, knew that 
he was capable of understanding ideas. What will new people think when they see 
me? They'll see a body that's already atrophying, hunched over; they'll see me 
walk with a shuffling gait; they'll watch me use my hands like paws, clutching a 
spoon like a three-year-old; they'll hear my thick, half-intelligible speech; 
and they'll assume, they'll know, that such a person cannot possibly understand 
anything complicated or difficult. 
Why did I come? 
I didn't come. I went. I wasn't coming here, to meet these people. I was leaving 
there. Getting away. Only I tricked myself. I thought of leaving on a 
thirty-year voyage, which is only how it will seem to them. To me I've been gone 
only a week and a half. No time at all. And already my time of solitude is over. 
My time of being alone with Jane, who listens to me as if I were still a human 
being, is done. 
Almost. Almost he said the words that would have aborted the rendezvous. He 
could have stolen Andrew's starship and taken off on a voyage that would last 
forever without having to face another living soul. 
But such a nihilistic act was not in him, not yet. He had not yet despaired, he 
decided. There might yet be something he could do that might justify his 
continuing to live in this body. And perhaps it would begin with meeting 
Andrew's sister. 
The ships were now joining, the umbilicals snaking outward and searching, 
groping till they met each other. Miro watched on the monitors and listened to 
the computer reports of each successful linkage. The ships were joining in every 
possible way so that they could make the rest of the voyage to Lusitania in 
perfect tandem. All resources would be shared. Since Miro's ship was a cargo 
vessel, it couldn't take on more than a handful of people, but it could take 
some of the other ship's life-support supplies; together, the two ship's 
computers were figuring out a perfect balance. 
Once they had calculated the load, they worked out exactly how fast each ship 
should accelerate as they made the park shift to get them both back to 
near-lightspeed at exactly the same pace. It was an extremely delicate and 
complicated negotiation between two computers that had to know almost perfectly 
what their ships carried and how they could perform. It was finished before the 
passage tube between the ships was fully connected. 
Miro heard the footsteps scuffing along the corridor from the tube. He turned 
his chair-- slowly, because he did everything slowly-- and saw her coming toward 
him. Stooped over, but not very much, because she wasn't that tall to begin 
with. Hair mostly white, with a few strands of mousy brown. When she stood he 
looked at her face and judged her. Old but not elderly. If she was nervous about 
this meeting it didn't show. But then, from what Andrew and Jane had told him 
about her, she had met a lot of people who were a good deal more fearsome than a 
twenty-year-old cripple. 
"Miro?" she asked. 
"Who else?" he said. 
It took a moment, just a heartbeat, for her to process the strange sounds that 
came out of his mouth and recognize the words. He was used to that pause now, 
but he still hated it. 
"I'm Valentine," she said. 
"I know," he answered. He wasn't making this any easier, with his laconic 
replies, but what else was there to say? This wasn't exactly a meeting between 
heads of state with a list of vital decisions to make. But he had to make some 
effort, if only not to seem hostile. 
"Your name, Miro-- it means 'I look,' doesn't it?" 
"'I look closely.' Maybe 'I pay attention.'" 
"It's really not that hard to understand you," said Valentine. 
He was startled that she addressed the matter so openly. 
"I think I'm having more problems with your Portuguese accent than with the 
brain damage." 
For a moment it felt like a hammer in his heart-- she was speaking more frankly 
about his situation than anyone except Andrew. But then she was Andrew's sister, 
wasn't she? He should have expected her to be plainspoken. 
"Or do you prefer that we pretend that it isn't a barrier between you and other 
people?" 
Apparently she had sensed his shock. But that was over, and now it occurred to 
him that he probably shouldn't be annoyed, that he should probably be glad that 
they wouldn't have to sidestep the issue. Yet he was annoyed, and it took him a 
moment to think why. Then he knew. 
"My brain damage isn't your problem," he said. 
"If it makes it hard for me to understand you, then it's a problem I have to 
deal with. Don't get prickly with me already, young man. I have only begun to 
bother you, and you have only begun to bother me. So don't get steamed up 
because I happened to mention your brain damage as being somehow my problem. I 
have no intention of watching every word I say for fear I'll offend an 
oversensitive young man who thinks the whole world revolves around his 
disappointments." 
Miro was furious that she had judged him already, and so harshly. It was 
unfair-- not at all what the author of Demosthenes' hierarchy ought to be like. 
"I don't think the whole world revolves around my disappointments! But don't you 
think you can come in here and run things on my ship!" That's what annoyed him, 
not her words. She was right-- her words were nothing. It was her attitude, her 
complete self-confidence. He wasn't used to people looking at him without shock 
or pity. 
She sat down in the seat next to him. He swiveled to face her. She, for her 
part, did not look away. Indeed, she pointedly scanned his body, head to toe, 
looking him over with an air of cool appraisal. "He said you were tough. He said 
you had been twisted but not broken." 
"Are you supposed to be my therapist?" 
"Are you supposed to be my enemy?" 
"Should I be?" asked Miro. 
"No more than I should be your therapist. Andrew didn't have us meet so I could 
heal you. He had us meet so you could help me. If you're not going to, fine. If 
you are, fine. Just let me make a few things clear. I'm spending every waking 
moment writing subversive propaganda to try to arouse public sentiment on the 
Hundred Worlds and in the colonies. I'm trying to turn the people against the 
fleet that Starways Congress has sent to subdue Lusitania. Your world, not mine, 
I might add." 
"Your brother's there." He was not about to let her claim complete altruism. 
"Yes, we both have family there. And we both are concerned about keeping the 
pequeninos from destruction. And we both know that Ender has restored the hive 
queen on your world, so that there are two alien species that will be destroyed 
if Starways Congress gets its way. There's a great deal at stake, and I am 
already doing all that I can possibly do to try to stop that fleet. Now, if 
spending a few hours with you can help me do it better, it's worth taking time 
away from my writing in order to talk with you. But I have no intention of 
wasting my time worrying about whether I'm going to offend you or not. So if 
you're going to be my adversary, you can sit up here all by yourself and I'll 
get back to my work." 
"Andrew said you were the best person he ever knew." 
"He reached that conclusion before he saw me raise three barbarian children to 
adulthood. I understand your mother has six." 
"Right." 
"And you're the oldest." 
"Yes." 
"That's too bad. Parents always make their worst mistakes with the oldest 
children. That's when parents know the least and care the most, so they're more 
likely to be wrong and also more likely to insist that they're right." 
Miro didn't like hearing this woman leap to conclusions about his mother. "She's 
nothing like you." 
"Of course not." She leaned forward in her seat. "Well, have you decided?" 
"Decided what?" 
"Are we working together or did you just unplug yourself from thirty years of 
human history for nothing?" 
"What do you want from me?" 
"Stories, of course. Facts I can get from the computer." 
"Stories about what?" 
"You. The piggies. You and the piggies. This whole business with the Lusitania 
Fleet began with you and the piggies, after all. It was because you interfered 
with them that--" 
"We helped them!" 
"Oh, did I use the wrong word again?" 
Miro glared at her. But even as he did, he knew that she was right-- he was 
being oversensitive. The word interfered, when used in a scientific context, was 
almost value-neutral. It merely meant that he had introduced change into the 
culture he was studying. And if it did have a negative connotation, it was that 
he had lost his scientific perspective-- he had stopped studying the pequeninos 
and started treating them as friends. Of that he was surely guilty. No, not 
guilty-- he was proud of having made that transition. "Go on," he said. 
"All this began because you broke the law and piggies started growing amaranth." 

"Not anymore." 
"Yes, that's ironic, isn't it? The descolada virus has gotten in and killed 
every strain of amaranth that your sister developed for them. So your 
interference was in vain." 
"No it wasn't," said Miro. "They're learning." 
"Yes, I know. More to the point, they're choosing. What to learn, what to do. 
You brought them freedom. I approve wholeheartedly of what you decided to do. 
But my job is to write about you to the people out there in the Hundred Worlds 
and the colonies, and they won't necessarily see things that way. So what I need 
from you is the story of how and why you broke the law and interfered with the 
piggies, and why the government and people of Lusitania rebelled against 
Congress rather than send you off to be tried and punished for your crimes." 
"Andrew already told you that story." 
"And I've already written about it, in larger terms. Now I need the personal 
things. I want to be able to let other people know these so-called piggies as 
people. And you, too. I have to let them know you as a person. If it's possible, 
it would be nice if I could bring them to like you. Then the Lusitania Fleet 
will look like what it is-- a monstrous overreaction to a threat that never 
existed." 
"The fleet is xenocide." 
"So I've said in my propaganda," said Valentine. 
He couldn't bear her self-certainty. He couldn't bear her unshakable faith in 
herself. So he had to contradict her, and the only way he could was to blurt out 
ideas that he had not yet thought out completely. Ideas that were still only 
half-formed doubts in his mind. "The fleet is also self-defense." 
It had the desired effect-- it stopped her lecture and even made her raise her 
eyebrows, questioning him. The trouble was, now he had to explain what he meant. 

"The descolada," he said. "It's the most dangerous form of life anywhere." 
"The answer to that is quarantine. Not sending a fleet armed with the M.D. 
Device, so they have the capacity to turn Lusitania and everybody on it into 
microscopic interstellar dust." 
"You're so sure you're right?" 
"I'm sure that it's wrong for Starways Congress even to contemplate obliterating 
another sentient species." 
"The piggies can't live without the descolada," said Miro, "and if the descolada 
ever spreads to another planet, it will destroy all life there. It will." 
It was a pleasure to see that Valentine was capable of looking puzzled. "But I 
thought the virus was contained. It was your grandparents who found a way to 
stop it, to make it dormant in human beings." 
"The descolada adapts," said Miro. "Jane told me that it's already changed 
itself a couple of times. My mother and my sister Ela are working on it-- trying 
to stay ahead of the descolada. Sometimes it even looks like the descolada is 
doing it deliberately. Intelligently. Finding strategies to get around the 
chemicals we use to contain it and stop it from killing people. It's getting 
into the Earthborn crops that humans need in order to survive on Lusitania. They 
have to spray them now. What if the descolada finds a way to get around all our 
barriers?" 
Valentine was silent. No glib answer now. She hadn't faced this question 
squarely-- no one had, except Miro. 
"I haven't even told this to Jane," said Miro. "But what if the fleet is right? 
What if the only way to save humanity from the descolada is to destroy Lusitania 
now?" 
"No," said Valentine. "This has nothing to do with the purposes for which 
Starways Congress sent out the fleet. Their reasons all have to do with 
interplanetary politics, with showing the colonies who's boss. It has to do with 
a bureaucracy out of control and a military that--" 
"Listen to me!" said Miro. "You said you wanted to hear my stories, listen to 
this one: It doesn't matter what their reasons are. It doesn't matter if they're 
a bunch of murderous beasts. I don't care. What matters is-- should they blow up 
Lusitania?" 
"What kind of person are you?" asked Valentine. He could hear both awe and 
loathing in her voice. 
"You're the moral philosopher," said Miro. "You tell me. Are we supposed to love 
the pequeninos so much that we allow the virus they carry to destroy all of 
humanity?" 
"Of course not. We simply have to find a way to neutralize the descolada." 
"And if we can't?" 
"Then we quarantine Lusitania. Even if all the human beings on the planet die-- 
your family and mine-- we still don't destroy the pequeninos." 
"Really?" asked Miro. "What about the hive queen?" 
"Ender told me that she was reestablishing herself, but--" 
"She contains within herself a complete industrialized society. She's going to 
build starships and get off the planet." 
"She wouldn't take the descolada with her!" 
"She has no choice. The descolada is in her already. It's in me." 
That was when he really got to her. He could see it in her eyes-- the fear. 
"It'll be in you, too. Even if you run back to your ship and seal me off and 
keep yourself from infection, once you land on Lusitania the descolada will get 
into you and your husband and your children. They'll have to ingest the 
chemicals with their food and water, every day of their lives. And they can 
never go away from Lusitania again or they'll carry death and destruction with 
them." 
"I suppose we knew that was a possibility," said Valentine. 
"When you left, it was only a possibility. We thought that the descolada would 
soon be controlled. Now they aren't sure if it can ever be controlled. And that 
means that you can never leave Lusitania once you go there." 
"I hope we like the weather." 
Miro studied her face, the way she was processing the information he had given 
her. The initial fear was gone. She was herself again-- thinking. "Here's what I 
think," said Miro. "I think that no matter how terrible Congress is, no matter 
how evil their plans might be, that fleet might be the salvation of humanity." 
Valentine answered thoughtfully, searching for words. Miro was glad to see 
that-- she was a person who didn't shoot back without thinking. She was able to 
learn. "I can see that if events move down one possible path, there might be a 
time when-- but it's very improbable. First of all, knowing all this, the hive 
queen is quite unlikely to build any starships that would carry the descolada 
away from Lusitania." 
"Do you know the hive queen?" demanded Miro. "Do you understand her?" 
"Even if she would do such a thing," said Valentine, "your mother and sister are 
working on this, aren't they? By the time we reach Lusitania-- by the time the 
fleet reaches Lusitania-- they might have found a way to control the descolada 
once and for all." 
"And if they do," said Miro, "should they use it?" 
"Why shouldn't they?" 
"How could they kill all the descolada virus? The virus is an integral part of 
the pequenino life cycle. When the pequenino body-form dies, it's the descolada 
virus that enables the transformation into the tree-state, what the piggies call 
the third life-- and it's only in the third life, as trees, that the pequenino 
males can fertilize the females. If the virus is gone, there can be no more 
passage into the third life, and this generation of piggies is the last." 
"That doesn't make it impossible, it only makes it harder. Your mother and 
sister have to find a way to neutralize the descolada in human beings and the 
crops we need to eat, without destroying its ability to enable the pequeninos to 
pass into adulthood." 
"And they have less than fifteen years to do it," said Miro. "Not likely." 
"But not impossible." 
"Yes. There's a chance. And on the strength of that chance, you want to get rid 
of the fleet?" 
"The fleet is being sent to destroy Lusitania whether we control the descolada 
virus or not." 
"And I say it again-- the motive of the senders is irrelevant. No matter what 
the reason, the destruction of Lusitania may be the only sure protection for all 
the rest of humanity." 
"And I say you're wrong." 
"You're Demosthenes, aren't you? Andrew said you were." 
"Yes." 
"So you thought up the Hierarchy of Foreignness. Utlannings are strangers from 
our own world. Framlings are strangers of our own species, but from another 
world. Ramen are strangers of another species, but capable of communication with 
us, capable of co-existence with humanity. Last are varelse-- and what are 
they?" 
"The pequeninos are not varelse. Neither is the hive queen." 
"But the descolada is. Varelse. An alien life form that's capable of destroying 
all of humanity ..." 
"Unless we can tame it..." 
"... Yet which we cannot possibly communicate with, an alien species that we 
cannot live with. You're the one who said that in that case war is unavoidable. 
If an alien species seems bent on destroying us and we can't communicate with 
them, can't understand them, if there's no possibility of turning them away from 
their course peacefully, then we are justified in any action necessary to save 
ourselves, including the complete destruction of the other species." 
"Yes," said Valentine. 
"But what if we must destroy the descolada, and yet we can't destroy the 
descolada without also destroying every living pequenino, the hive queen, and 
every human being on Lusitania?" 
To Miro's surprise, Valentine's eyes were awash with tears. "So this is what you 
have become." 
Miro was confused. "When did this conversation become a discussion of me?" 
"You've done all this thinking, you've seen all the possibilities for the 
future-- good ones and bad ones alike-- and yet the only one that you're willing 
to believe in, the imagined future that you seize upon as the foundation for all 
your moral judgments, is the only future in which everyone that you and I have 
ever loved and everything we've ever hoped for must be obliterated." 
"I didn't say I liked that future--" 
"I didn't say you liked it either," said Valentine. "I said that's the future 
you choose to prepare for. But I don't. I choose to live in a universe that has 
some hope in it. I choose to live in a universe where your mother and sister 
will find a way to contain the descolada, a universe in which Starways Congress 
can be reformed or replaced, a universe in which there is neither the power nor 
the will to destroy an entire species." 
"What if you're wrong?" 
"Then I'll still have plenty of time to despair before I die. But you-- do you 
seek out every opportunity to despair? I can understand the impulse that might 
lead to that. Andrew tells me you were a handsome man-- you still are, you 
know-- and that losing the full use of your body has hurt you deeply. But other 
people have lost more than you have without getting such a black-hearted vision 
of the world." 
"This is your analysis of me?" asked Miro. "We've known each other half an hour, 
and now you understand everything about me?" 
"I know that this is the most depressing conversation I've ever had in my life." 

"And so you assume that it's because I am crippled. Well, let me tell you 
something, Valentine Wiggin. I hope the same things you hope. I even hope that 
someday I'll get more of my body back again. If I didn't have hope I'd be dead. 
The things I told you just now aren't because I despair. I said all that because 
these things are possible. And because they're possible we have to think of them 
so they don't surprise us later. We have to think of them so that if the worst 
does come, we'll already know how to live in that universe." 
Valentine seemed to be studying his face; he felt her gaze on him as an almost 
palpable thing, like a faint tickling under the skin, inside his brain. "Yes," 
she said. 
"Yes what?" 
"Yes, my husband and I will move over here and live on your ship." She got up 
from her seat and started toward the corridor leading back to the tube. 
"Why did you decide that?" 
"Because it's too crowded on our ship. And because you are definitely worth 
talking to. And not just to get material for the essays I have to write." 
"Oh, so I passed your test?" 
"Yes, you did," she said. "Did I pass yours?" 
"I wasn't testing you." 
"Like hell," she said. "But in case you didn't notice, I'll tell you-- I did 
pass. Or you wouldn't have said to me all the things you said." 
She was gone. He could hear her shuffling down the corridor, and then the 
computer reported that she was passing through the tube between ships. 
He already missed her. 
Because she was right. She had passed his test. She had listened to him the way 
no one else did-- without impatience, without finishing his sentences, without 
letting her gaze waver from his face. He had spoken to her, not with careful 
precision, but with great emotion. Much of the time his words must surely have 
been almost unintelligible. Yet she had listened so carefully and well that she 
had understood all his arguments and never once asked him to repeat something. 
He could talk to this woman as naturally as he ever talked to anyone before his 
brain was injured. Yes, she was opinionated, headstrong, bossy, and quick to 
reach conclusions. But she could also listen to an opposing view, change her 
mind when she needed to. She could listen, and so he could speak. Perhaps with 
her he could still be Miro. 
Table of Contents



Chapter 3 -- CLEAN HANDS
<The most unpleasant thing about human beings is that they don't metamorphose. 
Your people and mine are born as grubs, but we transform ourselves into a higher 
form before we reproduce. Human beings remain grubs all their lives.> 
<Human beings do metamorphose. They change their identity constantly. However, 
each new identity thrives on the delusion that it was always in possession of 
the body it has just conquered.> 
<Such changes are superficial. The nature of the organism remains the same. 
Humans are very proud of their changes, but every imagined transformation turns 
out to be a new set of excuses for behaving exactly as the individual has always 
behaved.> 
<You are too different from humans ever to understand them.> 
<You are too similar to humans for you ever to be able to see them clearly.> 
  
  
  
The gods first spoke to Han Qing-jao when she was seven years old. She didn't 
realize for a while that she was hearing the voice of a god. All she knew was 
that her hands were filthy, covered with some loathsome invisible slime, and she 
had to purify them. 
The first few times, a simple washing was enough, and she felt better for days. 
But as time passed, the feeling of filthiness returned sooner each time, and it 
took more and more scrubbing to remove the dirt, until she was washing several 
times a day, using a hard-bristled brush to stab at her hands until they bled. 
Only when the pain was unbearable did she feel clean, and then only for a few 
hours at a time. 
She told no one; she kriew instinctively that the filthiness of her hands had to 
be kept secret. Everyone knew that handwashing was one of the first signs that 
the gods were speaking to a child, and most parents in the whole world of Path 
watched their children hopefully for signs of excessive concern with 
cleanliness. But what these people did not understand was the terrible 
self-knowledge that led to the washing: The first message from the gods was of 
the unspeakable filthiness of the one they spoke to. Qing-jao hid her 
handwashing, not because she was ashamed that the gods spoke to her, but because 
she was sure that if anyone knew how vile she was, they would despise her. 
The gods conspired with her in concealment. They allowed her to confine her 
savage scrubbing to the palms of her hands. This meant that when her hands were 
badly hurt, she could clench them into fists, or tuck them into the folds of her 
skirt as she walked, or lay them in her lap very meekly when she sat, and no one 
would notice them. They saw only a very well-behaved little girl. 
If her mother had been alive, Qing-jao's secret would have been discovered much 
sooner. As it was, it took months for a servant to notice. Fat old Mu-pao 
happened to notice a bloody stain on the small tablecloth from Qing-jao's 
breakfast table. Mu-pao knew at once what it meant-- weren't bloody hands well 
known to be an early sign of the gods' attention? That was why many an ambitious 
mother and father forced a particularly promising child to wash and wash. 
Throughout the world of Path, ostentatious handwashing was called "inviting the 
gods." 
Mu-pao went at once to Qing-jao's father, the noble Han Fei-tzu, rumored to be 
the greatest of the godspoken, one of the few so powerful in the eyes of the 
gods that he could meet with framlings-- offworlders-- and never betray a hint 
of the voices of the gods within him, thus preserving the divine secret of the 
world of Path. He would be grateful to hear the news, and Mu-pao would be 
honored for having been the first to see the gods in Qing-jao. 
Within an hour, Han Fei-tzu had gathered up his beloved little Qing-jao and 
together they rode in a sedan chair to the temple at Rockfall. Qing-jao didn't 
like riding in such chairs-- she felt bad for the men who had to carry their 
weight. "They don't suffer," Father told her the first time she mentioned this 
idea. "They feel greatly honored. It's one of the ways the people show honor to 
the gods-- when one of the godspoken goes to a temple, he does it on the 
shoulders of the people of Path. " 
"But I'm getting bigger every day," Qing-jao answered. 
"When you're too big, either you'll walk on your own feet or you'll ride in your 
own chair," said Father. He did not need to explain that she would have her own 
chair only if she grew up to be godspoken herself. "And we try to show our 
humility by remaining very thin and light so we aren't a heavy burden to the 
people." This was a joke, of course, since Father's belly, while not immense, 
was copious. But the lesson behind the joke was true: The godspoken must never 
be a burden to the common people of Path. The people must always be grateful, 
never resentful, that the gods had chosen their world of all worlds to hear 
their voices. 
Now, though, Qing-jao was more concerned with the ordeal that lay before her. 
She knew that she was being taken for testing. "Many children are taught to 
pretend that the gods speak to them," Father explained. "We must find out if the 
gods have truly chosen you." 
"I want them to stop choosing me," said Qing-jao. 
"And you will want it even more during the test," said Father. His voice was 
filled with pity. It made Qing-jao even more afraid. "The folk see only our 
powers and privileges, and envy us. They don't know the great suffering of those 
who hear the voices of the gods. If the gods truly speak to you, my Qing-jao, 
you will learn to bear the suffering the way jade bears the carver's knife, the 
polisher's rough cloth. It will make you shine. Why else do you think I named 
you Qing-jao?" 
Qing-jao-- Gloriously Bright was what the name meant. It was also the name of a 
great poet from ancient times in Old China. A woman poet in an age when only men 
were given respect, and yet she was honored as the greatest of poets in her day. 
"Thin fog and thick cloud, gloom all day." It was the opening of Li Qing-jao's 
song "The Double Ninth." That was how Qing-jao felt now. 
And how did the poem end? "Now my curtain's lifted only by the western wind. 
I've grown thinner than this golden blossom." Would this be her ending also? Was 
her ancestor-of-the-heart telling her in this poem that the darkness failing 
over her now would be lifted only when the gods came out of the west to lift her 
thin, light, golden soul out of her body? It was too terrible, to think of death 
now, when she was only seven years old; and yet the thought came to her: If I 
die soon, then soon I'll see Mother, and even the great Li Qing-jao herself. 
But the test had nothing to do with death, or at least it was not supposed to. 
It was quite simple, really. Father led her into a large room where three old 
men knelt. Or they seemed like men-- they could have been women. They were so 
old that all distinctions had disappeared. They had only the tiniest wisps of 
white hair and no beards at all, and they dressed in shapeless sacks. Later 
Qing-jao would learn that these were temple eunuchs, survivors of the old days 
before Starways Congress intervened and forbade even voluntary self-mutilation 
in the service of a religion. Now, though, they were mysterious ghostly old 
creatures whose hands touched her, exploring her clothing. 
What were they searching for? They found her ebony chopsticks and took them 
away. They took the sash from around her waist. They took her slippers. Later 
she would learn that these things were taken because other children had become 
so desperate during their testing that they had killed themselves. One of them 
had inserted her chopsticks into her nostrils and then flung herself to the 
floor, jamming the sticks into her brain. Another had hanged herself with her 
sash. Another had forced her slippers into her mouth and down her throat, 
choking herself to death. Successful suicide attempts were rare, but they seemed 
to happen with the brightest of the children, and most commonly with girls. So 
they took away from Qing-jao all the known ways of committing suicide. 
The old ones left. Father knelt beside Qing-jao and spoke to her face to face. 
"You must understand, Qing-jao, that we are not really testing you. Nothing that 
you do of your own free will can make the slightest difference in what happens 
here. We are really testing the gods, to see if they are determined to speak to 
you. If they are, they'll find a way, and we'll see it, and you'll come out of 
this room as one of the godspoken. If they aren't, then you'll come out of here 
free of their voices for all time. I can't tell you which outcome I pray for, 
since I don't know myself." 
"Father," said Qing-jao, "what if you're ashamed of me?" The very thought made 
her feel a tingling in her hands, as if there were dirt on them, as if she 
needed to wash them. 
"I will not be ashamed of you either way." 
Then he clapped his hands. One of the old ones came back in, bearing a heavy 
basin. He set it down before Qing-jao. 
"Thrust in your hands," said Father. 
The basin was filled with thick black grease. Qing-jao shuddered. "I can't put 
my hands in there." 
Father reached out, took her by the forearms, and forced her hands down into the 
muck. Qing-jao cried out-- her father had never used force with her before. And 
when he let go of her arms, her hands were covered with clammy slime. She gasped 
at the filthiness of her hands; it was hard to breathe, looking at them like 
that, smelling them. 
The old one picked up the basin and carried it out. 
"Where can I wash, Father?" Qing-jao whimpered. 
"You can't wash," said Father. "You can never wash again." 
And because Qing-jao was a child, she believed him, not guessing that his words 
were part of the test. She watched Father leave the room. She heard the door 
latch behind him. She was alone. 
At first she simply held her hands out in front of her, making sure they didn't 
touch any part of her clothing. She searched desperately for somewhere to wash, 
but there was no water, nor even a cloth. The room was far from bare-- there 
were chairs, tables, statues, large stone jars-- but all the surfaces were hard 
and well-polished and so clean that she couldn't bear to touch them. Yet the 
filthiness of her hands was unendurable. She had to get them clean. 
"Father!" she called out. "Come and wash my hands!" Surely he could hear her. 
Surely he was somewhere near, waiting for the outcome of her test. He must hear 
her-- but he didn't come. 
The only cloth in the room was the gown she was wearing. She could wipe on that, 
only then she would be wearing the grease; it might get on other parts of her 
body. The solution, of course, was to take it off-- but how could she do that 
without touching her filthy hands to some other part of herself? 
She tried. First she carefully scraped off as much of the grease as she could on 
the smooth arms of a statue. Forgive me, she said to the statue, in case it 
belonged to a god. I will come and clean you after; I'll clean you with my own 
gown. 
Then she reached back over her shoulders and gathered the cloth on her back, 
pulling up on the gown to draw it over her head. Her greasy fingers slipped on 
the silk; she could feel the slime cold on her bare back as it penetrated the 
silk. I'll clean it after, she thought. 
At last she got a firm enough grasp of the fabric that she could pull off the 
gown. It slid over her head, but even before it was completely off, she knew 
that things were worse than ever, for some of the grease was in her long hair, 
and that hair had fallen onto her face, and now she had filth not just on her 
hands but also on her back, in her hair, on her face. 
Still she tried. She got the gown the rest of the way off, then carefully wiped 
her hands on one small part of the fabric. Then she wiped her face on another. 
But it was no good. Some of the grease clung to her no matter what she did. Her 
face felt as if the silk of her gown had only smeared the grease around instead 
of lifting it away. She had never been so hopelessly grimy in her life. It was 
unbearable, and yet she couldn't get rid of it. 
"Father! Come take me away! I don't want to be godspoken!" He didn't come. She 
began to cry. 
The trouble with crying was that it didn't work. The more she cried, the 
filthier she felt. The desperate need to be clean overpowered even her weeping. 
So with tears streaming down her face, she began to search desperately for some 
way to get the grease off her hands. Again she tried the silk of her gown, but 
within a little while she was wiping her hands on the walls, sidling around the 
room, smearing them with grease. She rubbed her palms on the wall so rapidly 
that heat built up and the grease melted. She did it again and again until her 
hands were red, until some of the softened scabs on her palms had worn away or 
been torn off by invisible snags in the wooden walls. 
When her palms and fingers hurt badly enough that she couldn't feel the slime on 
them, she wiped her face with them, gouged at her face with her fingernails to 
scrape away the grease there. Then, hands dirty again, she once more rubbed them 
on the walls. 
Finally, exhausted, she fell to the floor and wept at the pain in her hands, at 
her helplessness to get clean. Her eyes were shut with weeping. Tears streaked 
down her cheeks. She rubbed at her eyes, at her cheeks-- and felt how slimy the 
tears made her skin, how filthy she was. She knew what this surely meant: The 
gods had judged her and found her unclean. She wasn't worthy to live. If she 
couldn't get clean, she had to blot herself out. That would satisfy them. That 
would ease the agony of it. All she had to do was find a way to die. To stop 
breathing. Father would be sorry he didn't come when she called to him, but she 
couldn't help that. She was under the power of the gods now, and they had judged 
her unworthy to be among the living. After all, what right did she have to 
breathe when the gate of Mother's lips had stopped letting the air pass through, 
in or out, for all these many years? 
She first thought of using her gown, thought of stuffing it into her mouth to 
block her breath, or tying it around her throat to choke herself-- but it was 
too filthy to handle, too covered with grease. She would have to find another 
way. 
Qing-jao walked to the wall, pressed against it. Sturdy wood. She leaned back 
and flung her head against the wood. Pain flashed through her head when it 
struck; stunned, she dropped to a sitting position on the floor. Her head ached 
inside. The room swung slowly around and around her. For a moment she forgot the 
filthiness of her hands. 
But the relief didn't last long. She could see on the wall a slightly duller 
place where the grease from her forehead broke up the shiny polished surface. 
The gods spoke inside her, insisted she was as filthy as ever. A little pain 
wouldn't make up for her unworthiness. 
Again she struck her head against the wall. This time, however, there was 
nowhere near as much pain. Again, again-- and now she realized that against her 
will, her body was recoiling from the blow, refusing to inflict so much pain on 
herself. This helped her understand why the gods found her so unworthy-- she was 
too weak to make her body obey. Well, she wasn't helpless. She could fool her 
body into submission. 
She selected the tallest of the statues, which stood perhaps three meters high. 
It was a bronze casting of a man in mid-stride, holding a sword above his head. 
There were enough angles and bends and projections that she could climb. Her 
hands kept slipping, but she persevered until she balanced on the statue's 
shoulders, holding onto its headdress with one hand and the sword with the 
other. 
For a moment, touching the sword, she thought of trying to cut her throat on 
it-- that would stop her breath, wouldn't it? But the blade was only a pretend 
blade. It wasn't sharp, and she couldn't get her neck to it at the right angle. 
So she went back to her original plan. 
She took several deep breaths, then clasped her hands behind her back and 
toppled forward. She would land on her head; that would end her filthiness. 
As the floor rushed upward, however, she lost control of herself. She screamed; 
she felt her hands tear free of each other behind her back and rush forward to 
try to break her fall. Too late, she thought with grim satisfaction, and then 
her head struck the floor and everything went black. 



Qing-jao awoke with a dull ache in her arm and a sharp pain in her head whenever 
she moved-- but she was alive. When she could bear to open her eyes she saw that 
the room was darker. Was it night outside? How long had she slept? She couldn't 
bear to move her left arm, the one with the pain; she could see an ugly red 
bruise at the elbow and she thought she must have broken it inside when she 
fell. 
She also saw that her hands were still smeared with grease, and felt her 
unbearable dirtiness: the gods' judgment against her. She shouldn't have tried 
to kill herself after all. The gods wouldn't allow her to escape their judgment 
so easily. 
What can I do? she pleaded. How can I be clean before you, O Gods? Li Qing-jao, 
my ancestor-of-the-heart, show me how to make myself worthy to receive the kind 
judgment of the gods! 
What came at once to her mind was Li Qing-jao's love song "Separation." It was 
one of the first that Father had given her to memorize when she was only three 
years old, only a short time before he and Mother told her that Mother was going 
to die. It was exactly appropriate now, too, for wasn't she separated from the 
goodwill of the gods? Didn't she need to be reconciled with them so they could 
receive her as one of the truly godspoken ones? 
someone's sent a loving note in lines of returning geese and as the moon fills 
my western chamber as petals dance over the flowing stream again I think of you 
the two of us living a sadness apart a hurt that can't be removed yet when my 
gaze comes down my heart stays up 
The moon filling the western chamber told her that it was really a god, not an 
ordinary man-lover who was being pined for in this poem-- references to the west 
always meant that the gods were involved. Li Qing-Jao had answered the prayer of 
little Han Qing-jao, and sent this poem to tell her how to cure the hurt that 
couldn't be removed-- the filthiness of her flesh. 
What is the loving note? thought Qing-jao. Lines of returning geese-- but there 
are no geese in this room. Petals dancing over a flowing stream-- but there are 
no petals, there is no stream here. 
"Yet when my gaze comes down, my heart stays up." That was the clue, that was 
the answer, she knew it. Slowly, carefully Qing-jao rolled over onto her belly. 
Once when she tried to put weight on her left hand, her elbow buckled and an 
exquisite pain almost made her lose consciousness again. At last she knelt, her 
head bowed, leaning on her right hand. Gazing down. The poem promised that this 
would let her heart stay up. 
She felt no better-- still filthy, still in pain. Looking down showed her 
nothing but the polished boards of the floor, the grain of the wood making 
rippling lines reaching from between her knees outward to the very edge of the 
room. 
Lines. Lines of woodgrain, lines of geese. And couldn't the woodgrain also be 
seen as a flowing stream? She must follow these lines like the geese; she must 
dance over these flowing streams like a petal. That was what the promise meant: 
When her gaze came down, her heart would stay up. 
She found one particular line in the woodgrain, a line of darkness like a river 
rippling through the lighter wood around it, and knew at once that this was the 
stream she was supposed to follow. She dared not touch it with her finger-- 
filthy, unworthy finger. It had to be followed lightly, the way a goose touched 
the air, the way a petal touched the stream. Only her eyes could follow the 
line. 
So she began to trace the line, follow it carefully to the wall. A couple of 
times she moved so quickly that she lost the line, forgot which one it was; but 
soon she found it again, or thought she did, and followed it to the wall. Was it 
good enough? Were the gods satisfied? 
Almost, but not quite-- she couldn't be sure that when her gaze slipped from the 
line she had returned to the right one. Petals didn't skip from stream to 
stream. She had to follow the right one, along its entire length. This time she 
started at the wall and bowed very low, so her eyes wouldn't be distracted even 
by the movement of her own right hand. She inched her way along, never letting 
herself so much as blink, even when her eyes burned. She knew that if she lost 
the grain she was following she'd have to go back and start over. It had to be 
done perfectly or it would lose all its power to cleanse her. 
It took forever. She did blink, but not haphazardly, by accident. When her eyes 
burned too much, she would bow down until her left eye was directly over the 
grain. Then she would close the other eye for a moment. Her right eye relieved, 
she would open it, then put that eye directly over the line in the wood and 
close the left. This way she was able to make it halfway across the room until 
the board ended, butting up against another. 
She wasn't sure whether that was good enough, whether it was enough to finish 
the board or if she needed to find another woodgrain line to follow. She made as 
if to get up, testing the gods, to see if they were satisfied. She half-rose, 
felt nothing; she stood, and still she was at ease. 
Ah! They were satisfied, they were pleased with her. Now the grease on her skin 
felt like nothing more than a little oil. There was no need for washing, not at 
this moment, for she had found another way to cleanse herself, another way for 
the gods to discipline her. Slowly she lay back on the floor, smiling, weeping 
softly in joy. Li Qing-jao, my ancestor-of-the-heart, thank you for showing me 
the way. Now I have been joined to the gods; the separation is over. Mother, I 
am again connected to you, clean and worthy. White Tiger of the West, I am now 
pure enough to touch your fur and leave no mark of filthiness. 
Then hands touched her-- Father's hands, picking her up. Drops of water fell 
onto her face, the bare skin of her body-- Father's tears. "You're alive," he 
said. "My godspoken one, my beloved, my daughter, my life, Gloriously Bright, 
you shine on." 
Later she would learn that Father had had to be tied and gagged during her test, 
that when she climbed the statue and made as if to press her throat against the 
sword, he flung himself forward with such force that his chair fell and his head 
struck the floor. This was regarded as a great mercy, since it meant he didn't 
see her terrible fall from the statue. He wept for her all the time she lay 
unconscious. And then, when she rose to her knees and began to trace the 
woodgrains on the floor, he was the one who realized what it meant. "Look," he 
whispered. "The gods have given her a task. The gods are speaking to her." 
The others were slow to recognize it, because they had never seen anyone trace 
woodgrain lines before. It wasn't in the Catalogue of Voices of the Gods: 
Door-Waiting, Counting-to-Multiples-of-Five, Object-Counting, 
Checking-for-Accidental-Murders, Fingernail-Tearing, Skin-Scraping, 
Pulling-Out-of-Hair, Gnawing-at-Stone, Bugging-Out-of-Eyes-- all these were 
known to be penances that the gods demanded, rituals of obedience that cleansed 
the soul of the godspoken so that the gods could fill their minds with wisdom. 
No one had ever seen Woodgrain-Tracing. Yet Father saw what she was doing, named 
the ritual, and added it to the Catalogue of Voices. It would forever bear her 
name, Han Qing-jao, as the first to be commanded by the gods to perform this 
rite. It made her very special. 
So did her unusual resourcefulness in trying to find ways to cleanse her hands 
and, later, kill herself. Many had tried scraping their hands on walls, of 
course, and most attempted to wipe on clothes. But rubbing her hands to build up 
the heat of friction, that was regarded as rare and clever. And while 
head-beating was common, climbing a statue and jumping off and landing on her 
head was very rare. And none who had done it before had been strong enough to 
keep their hands behind their back so long. The temple was all abuzz with it, 
and word soon spread to all the temples in Path. 
It was a great honor to Han Fei-tzu, of course, that his daughter was so 
powerfully possessed by the gods. And the story of his near-madness when she was 
trying to destroy herself spread just as quickly and touched many hearts. "He 
may be the greatest of the godspoken," they said of him, "but he loves his 
daughter more than life." This made them love him as much as they already 
revered him. 
It was then that people began whispering about the possible godhood of Han 
Fei-tzu. "He is great and strong enough that the gods will listen to him," said 
the people who favored him. "Yet he is so affectionate that he will always love 
the people of the planet Path, and try to do good for us. Isn't this what the 
god of a world ought to be?" Of course it was impossible to decide now-- a man 
could not be chosen to be god of a village, let alone of a whole world, until he 
died. How could you judge what sort of god he'd be, until his whole life, from 
beginning to end, was known? 
These whispers came to Qing-jao's ears many times as she grew older, and the 
knowledge that her father might well be chosen god of Path became one of the 
beacons of her life. But at the time, and forever in her memory, she remembered 
that his hands were the ones that carried her bruised and twisted body to the 
bed of healing, his eyes were the ones that dropped warm tears on to her cold 
skin, his voice was the one that whispered in the beautiful passionate tones of 
the old language, "My beloved, my Gloriously Bright, never take your light from 
my life. Whatever happens, never harm yourself or I will surely die." 
Table of Contents



Chapter 4 -- Jane
<So many of your people are becoming Christians. Believing in the god these 
humans brought with them.> 
<You don't believe in God?> 
<The question never come up. We have always remembered how we began.> 
<You evolved. We were created.> 
<By a virus.> 
<By a virus that God created in order to create us.> 
<So you, too, are a believer.> 
<I understand belief.> 
<No-- you desire belief.> 
<I desire it enough to act as if I believed. Maybe that's what faith is.> 
<Or deliberate insanity> 
  
  
  
It turned out not to be just Valentine and Jakt who came over to Miro's ship. 
Plikt also came, without invitation, and installed herself in a miserable little 
cubicle where there wasn't even room to stretch out completely. She was the 
anomaly on the voyage-- not family, not crew, but a friend. Plikt had been a 
student of Ender's when he was on Trondheim as a speaker for the dead. She had 
figured out, quite independently, that Andrew Wiggin was the Speaker for the 
Dead and that he was also the Ender Wiggin. 
Why this brilliant young woman should have become so fixed on Ender Wiggin, 
Valentine could not really understand. At times she thought, Perhaps this is how 
some religions start. The founder doesn't ask for disciples; they come and force 
themselves upon him. 
In any event, Plikt had stayed with Valentine and her family for all the years 
since Ender left Trondheim, tutoring the children and helping in Valentine's 
research, always waiting for the day that the family journeyed to be with 
Ender-- a day that only Plikt had known would come. 
So during the last half of the voyage to Lusitania, it was the four of them who 
traveled in Miro's ship: Valentine, Miro, Jakt, and Plikt. Or so Valentine 
thought at first. It was on the third day since the rendezvous that she learned 
of the fifth traveler who had been with them all along. 
That day, as always, the four of them were gathered on the bridge. There was 
nowhere else to go. This was a cargo ship-- besides the bridge and the sleeping 
quarters, there was only a tiny galley and the toilet. All the other space was 
designed to hold cargo, not people-- not in any kind of reasonable comfort. 
Valentine didn't mind the loss of privacy, though. She was slacking off now on 
her output of subversive essays; it was more important, she felt, to get to know 
Miro-- and, through him, Lusitania. The people there, the pequeninos, and, most 
particularly, Miro's family-- for Ender had married Novinha, Mira's mother. 
Valentine did glean much of that kind of information, of course-- she couldn't 
have been a historian and biographer for all these years without learning how to 
extrapolate much from scant bits of evidence. 
The real prize for her had turned out to be Miro himself. He was bitter, angry, 
frustrated, and filled with loathing for his crippled body, but all that was 
understandable-- his loss had happened only a few months before, and he was 
still trying to redefine himself. Valentine didn't worry about his future-- she 
could see that he was very strong-willed, the kind of man who didn't easily fall 
apart. He would adapt and thrive. 
What interested her most was his thought. It was as if the confinement of his 
body had freed his mind. When he had first been injured his paralysis was almost 
total. He had had nothing to do but lie in one place and think. Of course, much 
of his time had been spent brooding about his losses, his mistakes, the future 
he couldn't have. But he had also spent many hours thinking about the issues 
that busy people almost never think about. And on that third day together, 
that's what Valentine was trying to draw out of him. 
"Most people don't think about it, not seriously, and you have," said Valentine. 

"Just because I think about it doesn't mean I know anything," said Miro. She 
really was used to his voice now, though sometimes his speech was maddeningly 
slow. It took a real effort of will at times to keep from showing any sign of 
inattention. 
"The nature of the universe," said Jakt. 
"The sources of life," said Valentine. "You said you had thought about what it 
means to be alive, and I want to know what you thought." 
"How the universe works and why we all are in it." Miro laughed. "It's pretty 
crazy stuff." 
"I've been trapped alone in an ice floe in a fishing boat for two weeks in a 
blizzard with no heat," said Jakt. "I doubt you've come up with anything that'll 
sound crazy to me." 
Valentine smiled. Jakt was no scholar, and his philosophy was generally confined 
to holding his crew together and catching a lot of fish. But he knew that 
Valentine wanted to draw Miro out, and so he helped put the young man at ease, 
helped him know that he'd be taken seriously. 
And it was important for Jakt to be the one who did that-- because Valentine had 
seen, and so had Jakt, how Miro watched him. Jakt might be old, but his arms and 
legs and back were still those of a fisherman, and every movement revealed the 
suppleness of his body. Miro even commented on it once, obliquely, admiringly: 
"You've got the build of a twenty-year-old." Valentine heard the ironic 
corollary that must have been in Miro's mind: While I, who am young, have the 
body of an arthritic ninety-year-old. So Jakt meant something to Miro-- he 
represented the future that Miro could never have. Admiration and resentment; it 
would have been hard for Miro to speak openly in front of Jakt, if Jakt had not 
taken care to make sure Miro heard nothing but respect and interest from him. 
Plikt, of course, sat in her place, silent, withdrawn, effectively invisible. 
"All right," said Miro. "Speculations on the nature of reality and the soul." 
"Theology or metaphysics?" asked Valentine. 
"Metaphysics, mostly," said Miro. "And physics. Neither one is my specialty. And 
this isn't the kind of story you said you needed me for." 
"I don't always know exactly what I'll need." 
"All right," said Miro. He took a couple of breaths, as if he were trying to 
decide where to begin. "You know about philotic twining." 
"I know what everybody knows," said Valentine. "And I know that it hasn't led 
anywhere in the last twenty-five hundred years because it can't really be 
experimented with." It was an old discovery, from the days when scientists were 
struggling to catch up with technology. Teenage physics students memorized a few 
wise sayings: "Philotes are the fundamental building blocks of all matter and 
energy. Philotes have neither mass nor inertia. Philotes have only location, 
duration, and connection." And everybody knew that it was philotic connections-- 
the twining of philotic rays-- that made ansibles work, allowing instantaneous 
communication between worlds and starships many light-years apart. But no one 
knew why it worked, and because philotes could not be "handled," it was almost 
impossible to experiment with them. They could only be observed, and then only 
through their connections. 
"Philotics," said Jakt. "Ansibles?" 
"A by-product," said Miro. 
"What does it have to do with the soul?" asked Valentine. 
Miro was about to answer, but he grew frustrated, apparently at the thought of 
trying to give a long speech through his sluggish, resisting mouth. His jaw was 
working, his lips moving slightly. Then he said aloud, "I can't do it." 
"We'll listen," said Valentine. She understood his reluctance to try extended 
discourse with the limitations of his speech, but she also knew he had to do it 
anyway. 
"No," said Miro. 
Valentine would have tried further persuasion, but she saw his lips were still 
moving, though little sound came out. Was he muttering? Cursing? 
No-- she knew it wasn't that at all. 
It took a moment for her to realize why she was so sure. It was because she had 
seen Ender do exactly the same thing, moving his lips and jaw, when he was 
issuing subvocalized commands to the computer terminal built into the jewel he 
wore in his ear. Of course: Miro has the same computer hookup Ender has, so 
he'll speak to it the same way. 
In a moment it became clear what command Miro had given to his jewel. It must 
have been tied in to the ship's computer, because immediately afterward one of 
the display screens cleared and then showed Miro's face. Only there was none of 
the slackness that marred his face in person. Valentine realized: It was Miro's 
face as it used to be. And when the computer image spoke, the sound coming from 
the speakers was surely Miro's voice as it used to be-- clear. Forceful. 
Intelligent. Quick. 
"You know that when philotes combine to make a durable structure-- a meson, a 
neutron, an atom, a molecule, an organism, a planet-- they twine up." 
"What is this?" demanded Jakt. He hadn't yet figured out why the computer was 
doing the talking. 
The computer image of Miro froze on the screen and fell silent. Miro himself 
answered. "I've been playing with this," he said. "I tell it things, and it 
remembers and speaks for me." 
Valentine tried to imagine Miro experimenting until the computer program got his 
face and voice just right. How exhilarating it must have been, to re-create 
himself as he ought to be. And also how agonizing, to see what he could have 
been and know that it could never be real. "What a clever idea," said Valentine. 
"Sort of a prosthesis for the personality." 
Miro laughed-- a single "Ha!" 
"Go ahead," said Valentine. "Whether you speak for yourself or the computer 
speaks for you, we'll listen." 
The computer image came back to life, and spoke again in Miro's strong, 
imaginary voice. "Philotes are the smallest building blocks of matter and 
energy. They have no mass or dimension. Each philote connects itself to the rest 
of the universe along a single ray, a one-dimensional line that connects it to 
all the other philotes in its smallest immediate structure-- a meson. All those 
strands from the philotes in that structure are twined into a single philotic 
thread that connects the meson to the next larger structure-- a neutron, for 
instance. The threads in the neutron twine into a yarn connecting it to all the 
other particles of the atom, and then the yarns of the atom twine into the rope 
of the molecule. This has nothing to do with nuclear forces or gravity, nothing 
to do with chemical bonds. As far as we can tell, the philotic connections don't 
do anything. They're just there." 
"But the individual rays are always there, present in the twines," said 
Valentine. 
"Yes, each ray goes on forever," answered the screen. 
It surprised her-- and Jakt, too, judging from the way his eyes widened-- that 
the computer was able to respond immediately to what Valentine said. It wasn't 
just a preset lecture. This had to be a sophisticated program anyway, to 
simulate Miro's face and voice so well; but now to have it responding as if it 
were simulating Miro's personality ... 
Or had Miro given some cue to the program? Had he subvocalized the response? 
Valentine didn't know-- she had been watching the screen. She would stop doing 
that now-- she would watch Miro himself. 
"We don't know if the ray is infinite," said Valentine. "We only know that we 
haven't found where the ray ends." 
"They twine together, a whole planetful, and each planet's philotic twine 
reaches to its star, and each star to the center of the galaxy--" 
"And where does the galactic twine go?" said Jakt. It was an old question-- 
schoolchildren asked it when they first got into philotics in high school. Like 
the old speculation that maybe galaxies were really neutrons or mesons inside a 
far vaster universe, or the old question, If the universe isn't infinite, what 
is beyond the edge? 
"Yes, yes," said Miro. This time, though, he spoke from his own mouth. "But 
that's not where I'm going. I want to talk about life." 
The computerized voice-- the voice of the brilliant young man-- took over. "The 
philotic twines from substances like rock or sand all connect directly from each 
molecule to the center of the planet. But when a molecule is incorporated into a 
living organism, its ray shifts. Instead of reaching to the planet, it gets 
twined in with the individual cell, and the rays from the cells are all twined 
together so that each organism sends a single fiber of philotic connections to 
twine up with the central philotic rope of the planet." 
"Which shows that individual lives have some meaning at the level of physics," 
said Valentine. She had written an essay about it once, trying to dispel some of 
the mysticism that had grown up about philotics while at the same time using it 
to suggest a view of community formation. "But there's no practical effect from 
it, Miro. Nothing you can do with it. The philotic twining of living organisms 
simply is. Every philote is connected to something, and through that to 
something else, and through that to something else-- living cells and organisms 
are simply two of the leels where those connections can be made." 
"Yes," said Miro. "That which lives, twines." 
Valentine shrugged, nodded. It probably couldn't be proven, but if Miro wanted 
that as a premise in his speculations, that was fine. 
The computer-Miro took over again. "What I've been thinking about is the 
endurance of the twining. When a twined structure is broken-- as when a molecule 
breaks apart-- the old philotic twining remains for a time. Fragments that are 
no longer physically joined remain philotically connected for a while. And the 
smaller the particle, the longer that connection lasts after the breakup of the 
original structure, and the more slowly the fragments shift to new twinings." 
Jakt: frowned. "I thought the smaller things were, the faster things happened." 
"It is counterintuitive," said Valentine. 
"After nuclear fission it takes hours for the philotic rays to sort themselves 
back out again," said the computer-Miro. "Split a smaller particle than an atom, 
and the philotic connection between the fragments will last much longer than 
that." 
"Which is how the ansible works," said Miro. 
Valentine looked at him closely. Why was he talking sometimes in his own voice, 
sometimes through the computer? Was the program under his control or wasn't it? 
"The principle of the ansible is that if you suspend a meson in a powerful 
magnetic field," said computer-Miro, "split it, and carry the two parts as far 
away as you want, the philotic twining will still connect them. And the 
connection is instantaneous. If one fragment spins or vibrates, the ray between 
them spins and vibrates, and the movement is detectable at the other end at 
exactly the same moment. It takes no time whatsoever for the movement to be 
transmitted along the entire length of the ray, even if the two fragments are 
carried light-years away from each other. Nobody knows why it works, but we're 
glad it does. Without the ansible, there'd be no possibility of meaningful 
communication between human worlds." 
"Hell, there's no meaningful communication now," said Jakt. "And if it wasn't 
for the ansibles, there'd be no warfleet heading for Lusitania right now." 
Valentine wasn't listening to Jakt, though. She was watching Miro. This time 
Valentine saw when he moved his lips and jaw, slightly, silently. Sure enough, 
after he subvocalized, the computer image of Miro spoke again. He was giving 
commands. It had been absurd for her to think otherwise-- who else could be 
controlling the computer? 
"It's a hierarchy," said the image. "The more complex the structure, the faster 
the response to change. It's as if the smaller the particle is, the stupider it 
is, so it's slower to pick up on the fact that it's now part of a different 
structure." 
"Now you're anthropomorphizing," said Valentine. 
"Maybe," said Miro. "Maybe not." 
"Human beings are organisms," said the image. "But human philotic twinings go 
way beyond those of any other life form." 
"Now you're talking about that stuff that came from Ganges a thousand years 
ago," said Valentine. "Nobody's been able to get consistent results from those 
experiments." The researchers-- Hindus all, and devout ones-- claimed that they 
had shown that human philotic twinings, unlike those of other organisms, did not 
always reach directly down into the planet's core to twine with all other life 
and matter. Rather, they claimed, the philotic rays from human beings often 
twined with those of other human beings, most often with families, but sometimes 
between teachers and students, and sometimes between close co-workers-- 
including the researchers themselves. The Gangeans had concluded that this 
distinction between humans and other plant and animal life proved that the souls 
of some humans were literally lifted to a higher plane, nearer to perfection. 
They believed that the Perfecting Ones had become one with each other the way 
that all of life was one with the world. "It's all very pleasingly mystical, but 
nobody except Gangean Hindus takes it seriously anymore." 
"I do," said Miro. 
"To each his own," said Jakt. 
"Not as a religion," said Miro. "As science." 
"You mean metaphysics, don't you?" said Valentine. 
It was the Miro-image that answered. "The philotic connections between people 
change fastest of all, and what the Gangeans proved is that they respond to 
human will. If you have strong feelings binding you to your family, then your 
philotic rays will twine and you will be one, in exactly the same way that the 
different atoms in a molecule are one." 
It was a sweet idea-- she had thought so when she first heard it, perhaps two 
thousand years ago, when Ender was speaking for a murdered revolutionary on 
Mindanao. She and Ender had speculated then on whether the Gangean tests would 
show that they were twined, as brother and sister. They wondered whether there 
had been such a connection between them as children, and if it had persisted 
when Ender was taken off to Battle School and they were separated for six years. 
Ender had liked that idea very much, and so had Valentine, but after that one 
conversation the subject never came up again. The notion of philotic connections 
between people had remained in the pretty-idea category in her memory. "It's 
nice to think that the metaphor of human unity might have a physical analogue," 
said Valentine. 
  
"Listen!" said Miro. Apparently he didn't want her to dismiss the idea as 
"nice." 
Again his image spoke for him. "If the Gangeans are right, then when a human 
being chooses to bond with another person, when he makes a commitment to a 
community, it is not just a social phenomenon. It's a physical event as well. 
The philote, the smallest conceivable physical particle-- if we can call 
something with no mass or inertia physical at all-- responds to an act of the 
human will." 
"That's why it's so hard for anyone to take the Gangean experiments seriously." 
"The Gangean experiments were careful and honest." 
"But no one else ever got the same results." 
"No one else ever took them seriously enough to perform the same experiments. 
Does that surprise you?" 
"Yes," said Valentine. But then she remembered how the idea had been ridiculed 
in the scientific press, while it was immediately picked up by the lunatic 
fringe and incorporated into dozens of fringe religions. Once that happened, how 
could a scientist hope to get funding for such a project? How could a scientist 
expect to have a career if others came to think of him as a proponent of a 
metaphysical religion? "No, I suppose it doesn't." 
The Miro-image nodded. "If the philotic ray twines in response to the human 
will, why couldn't we suppose that all philotic twining is willed? Every 
particle, all of matter and energy, why couldn't every observable phenomenon in 
the universe be the willing behavior of individuals?" 
"Now we're beyond Gangean Hinduism," said Valentine. "How seriously am I 
supposed to take this? What you're talking about is Animism. The most primitive 
kind of religion. Everything's alive. Stones and oceans and--" 
"No," said Miro. "Life is life." 
"Life is life," said the computer program. "Life is when a single philote has 
the strength of will to bind together the molecules of a single cell, to entwine 
their rays into one. A stronger philote can bind together many cells into a 
single organism. The strongest of all are the intelligent beings. We can bestow 
our philotic connections where we will. The philotic basis of intelligent life 
is even clearer in the other known sentient species. When a pequenino dies and 
passes into the third life, it's his strong-willed philote that preserves his 
identity and passes it from the mammaloid corpse to the living tree." 
"Reincarnation," said Jakt. "The philote is the soul." 
"It happens with the piggies, anyway," said Miro. 
"The hive queen as well," said the Miro-image. "The reason we discovered 
philotic connections in the first place was because we saw how the buggers 
communicated with each other faster than light-- that's what showed us it was 
possible. The individual buggers are all part of the hive queen; they're like 
her hands and feet, and she's their mind, one vast organism with thousands or 
millions of bodies. And the only connection between them is the twining of their 
philotic rays." 
It was a picture of the universe that Valentine had never conceived of before. 
Of course, as a historian and biographer she usually conceived of things in 
terms of peoples and societies; while she wasn't ignorant of physics, neither 
was she deeply trained in it. Perhaps a physicist would know at once why this 
whole idea was absurd. But then, perhaps a physicist would be so locked into the 
consensus of his scientific community that it would be harder for him to accept 
an idea that transformed the meaning of everything he knew. Even if it were 
true. 
And she liked the idea well enough to wish it were true. Of the trillion lovers 
who had whispered to each other, We are one, could it be that some of them 
really were? Of the billions of families who had bonded together so closely they 
felt like a single soul, wouldn't it be lovely to think that at the most basic 
level of reality it was so? 
Jakt, however, was not so caught up in the idea. "I thought we weren't supposed 
to talk about the existence of the hive queen," he said. "I thought that was 
Ender's secret." 
"It's all right," said Valentine. "Everyone in this room knows." 
Jakt gave her his impatient look. "I thought we were coming to Lusitania to help 
in the struggle against Starways Congress. What does any of this have to do with 
the real world?" 
"Maybe nothing," said Valentine. "Maybe everything." 
Jakt buried his face in his hands for a moment, then looked back up at her with 
a smile that wasn't really a smile. "I haven't heard you say anything so 
transcendental since your brother left Trondheim." 
That stung her, particularly because she knew it was meant to. After all these 
years, was Jakt still jealous of her connection with Ender? Did he still resent 
the fact that she could care about things that meant nothing to him? "When he 
went," said Valentine, "I stayed." She was really saying, I passed the only test 
that mattered. Why should you doubt me now? 
Jakt was abashed. It was one of the best things about him, that when he realized 
he was wrong he backed down at once. "And when you went," said Jakt, "I came 
with you." Which she took to mean, I'm with you, I'm really not jealous of Ender 
anymore, and I'm sorry for sniping at you. Later, when they were alone, they'd 
say these things again openly. It wouldn't do to reach Lusitania with suspicions 
and jealousy on either's part. 
Miro, of course, was oblivious to the fact that Jakt and Valentine had already 
declared a truce. He was only aware of the tension between them, and thought he 
was the cause of it. "I'm sorry," said Miro. "I didn't mean to..." 
"It's all right," said Jakt. "I was out of line." 
"There is no line," said Valentine, with a smile at her husband. Jakt smiled 
back. 
That was what Miro needed to see; he visibly relaxed. 
"Go on," said Valentine. 
"Take all that as a given," said the Miro-image. 
Valentine couldn't help it-- she laughed out loud. Partly she laughed because 
this mystical Gangean philote-as-soul business was such an absurdly large 
premise to swallow. Partly she laughed to release the tension between her and 
Jakt. "I'm sorry," she said. "That's an awfully big 'given.' If that's the 
preamble, I can't wait to hear the conclusion." 
Miro, understanding her laughter now, smiled back. "I've had a lot of time to 
think," he said. "That really was my speculation on what life is. That 
everything in the universe is behavior. But there's something else we want to 
tell you about. And ask you about, too, I guess." He turned to Jakt. "And it has 
a lot to do with stopping the Lusitania Fleet." 
Jakt smiled and nodded. "I appreciate being tossed a bone now and then." 
Valentine smiled her most charming smile. "So-- later you'll be glad when I 
break a few bones." 
Jakt laughed again. 
"Go on, Miro," said Valentine. 
It was the image-Miro that responded. "If all of reality is the behavior of 
philotes, then obviously most philotes are only smart enough or strong enough to 
act as a meson or hold together a neutron. A very few of them have the strength 
of will to be alive-- to govern an organism. And a tiny, tiny fraction of them 
are powerful enough to control-- no, to be-- a sentient organism. But still, the 
most complex and intelligent being-- the hive queen, for instance-- is, at core, 
just a philote, like all the others. It gains its identity and life from the 
particular role it happens to fulfill, but what it is is a philote." 
"My self-- my will-- is a subatomic particle?" asked Valentine. 
Jakt smiled, nodded. "A fun idea," he said. "My shoe and I are brothers." 
Miro smiled wanly. The Miro-image, however, answered. "If a star and a hydrogen 
atom are brothers, then yes, there is a kinship between you and the philotes 
that make up common objects like your shoe." 
Valentine noticed that Miro had not subvocalized anything just before the 
Miro-image answered. How had the software producing the Miro-image come up with 
the analogy with stars and hydrogen atoms, if Miro didn't provide it on the 
spot? Valentine had never heard of a computer program capable of producing such 
involved yet appropriate conversation on its own. 
"And maybe there are other kinships in the universe that you know nothing of 
till now," said the Miro-image. "Maybe there's a kind of life you haven't met." 
Valentine, watching Miro, saw that he seemed worried. Agitated. As if he didn't 
like what the Miro-image was doing now. 
"What kind of life are you talking about?" asked Jakt. 
"There's a physical phenomenon in the universe, a very common one, that is 
completely unexplained, and yet everyone takes it for granted and no one has 
seriously investigated why and how it happens. This is it: None of the ansible 
connections has ever broken." 
"Nonsense," said Jakt. "One of the ansibles on Trondheim was out of service for 
six months last year-- it doesn't happen often, but it happens." 
Again Miro's lips and jaw were motionless; again the image answered immediately. 
Clearly he was not controlling it now. "I didn't say that the ansibles never 
break down. I said that the connections-- the philotic twining between the parts 
of a split meson-- have never broken. The machinery of the ansible can break 
down, the software can get corrupted, but never has a meson fragment within an 
ansible made the shift to allow its philotic ray to entwine with another local 
meson or even with the nearby planet." 
"The magnetic field suspends the fragment, of course," said Jakt. 
"Split mesons don't endure long enough in nature for us to know how they 
naturally act," said Valentine. 
"I know all the standard answers," said the image. "All nonsense. All the kind 
of answers parents give their children when they don't know the truth and don't 
want to bother finding out. People still treat the ansibles like magic. 
Everybody's glad enough that the ansibles keep on working; if they tried to 
figure out why, the magic might go out of it and then the ansibles would stop." 
"Nobody feels that way," said Valentine. 
"They all do," said the image. "Even if it took hundreds of years, or a thousand 
years, or three thousand years, one of those connections should have broken by 
now. One of those meson fragments should have shifted its philotic ray-- but 
they never have." 
"Why?" asked Miro. 
Valentine assumed at first that Miro was asking a rhetorical question. But no-- 
he was looking at the image just like the rest of them, asking it to tell him 
why. 
"I thought this program was reporting your speculations," said Valentine. 
"It was," said Miro. "But not now." 
"What if there's a being who lives among the philotic connections between 
ansibles?" asked the image. 
"Are you sure you want to do this?" asked Miro. Again he was speaking to the 
image on the screen. 
And the image on the screen changed, to the face of a young woman, one that 
Valentine had never seen before. 
"What if there's a being who dwells in the web of philotic rays connecting the 
ansibles on every world and every starship in the human universe? What if she is 
composed of those philotic connections? What if her thoughts take place in the 
spin and vibration of the split pairs? What if her memories are stored in the 
computers of every world and every ship?" 
"Who are you?" asked Valentine, speaking directly to the image. 
"Maybe I'm the one who keeps all those philotic connections alive, ansible to 
ansible. Maybe I'm a new kind of organism, one that doesn't twine rays together, 
but instead keeps them twined to each other so that they never break apart. And 
if that's true, then if those connections ever broke, if the ansibles ever 
stopped moving-- if the ansibles ever fell silent, then I would die." 
"Who are you?" asked Valentine again. 
"Valentine, I'd like you to meet Jane," said Miro. "Ender's friend. And mine." 
"Jane." 
So Jane wasn't the code name of a subversive group within the Starways Congress 
bureaucracy. Jane was a computer program, a piece of software. 
No. If what she had just suggested was true, then Jane was more than a program. 
She was a being who dwelt in the web of philotic rays, who stored her memories 
in the computers of every world. If she was right, then the philotic web-- the 
network of crisscrossing philotic rays that connected ansible to ansible on 
every world-- was her body, her substance. And the philotic links continued 
working with never a breakdown because she willed it so. 
"So now I ask the great Demosthenes," said Jane. "Am I raman or varelse? Am I 
alive at all? I need your answer, because I think I can stop the Lusitania 
Fleet. But before I do it, I have to know: Is it a cause worth dying for?" 
Jane's words cut Miro to the heart. She could stop the fleet-- he could see that 
at once. Congress had sent the M.D. Device with several ships of the fleet, but 
they had not yet sent the order to use it. They couldn't send the order without 
Jane knowing it beforehand, and with her complete penetration of all the ansible 
communications, she could intercept the order before it was sent. 
The trouble was that she couldn't do it without Congress realizing that she 
existed-- or at least that something was wrong. If the fleet didn't confirm the 
order, it would simply be sent again, and again, and again. The more she blocked 
the messages, the clearer it would be to Congress that someone had an impossible 
degree of control over the ansible computers. 
She might avoid this by sending a counterfeit confirmation, but then she would 
have to monitor all the communications between the ships of the fleet, and 
between the fleet and all planetside stations, in order to keep up the pretense 
that the fleet knew something about the kill order. Despite Jane's enormous 
abilities, this would soon be beyond her-- she could pay some degree of 
attention to hundreds, even thousands of things at a time, but it didn't take 
Miro long to realize that there was no way she could handle all the monitoring 
and alterations this would take, even if she did nothing else. 
One way or another, the secret would be out. And as Jane explained her plan, 
Miro knew that she was right-- her best option, the one with the least chance of 
revealing her existence, was simply to cut off all ansible communications 
between the fleet and the planetside stations, and between the ships of the 
fleet. Let each ship remain isolated, the crew wondering what had happened, and 
they would have no choice but to abort their mission or continue to obey their 
original orders. Either they would go away or they would arrive at Lusitania 
without the authority to use the Little Doctor. 
In the meantime, however, Congress would know that something had happened. It 
was possible that with Congress's normal bureaucratic inefficiency, no one would 
ever figure out what happened. But eventually somebody would realize that there 
was no natural or human explanation of what happened. Someone would realize that 
Jane-- or something like her-- must exist, and that cutting off ansible 
communications would destroy her. Once they knew this, she would surely die. 
"Maybe not," Miro insisted. "Maybe you can keep them from acting. Interfere with 
interplanetary communications, so they can't give the order to shut down 
communications." 
No one answered. He knew why: she couldn't interfere with ansible communications 
forever. Eventually the government on each planet would reach the conclusion on 
its own. She might live on in constant warfare for years, decades, generations. 
But the more power she used, the more humankind would hate and fear her. 
Eventually she would be killed. 
"A book, then," said Miro. "Like the Hive Queen and the Hegemon. Like the Life 
of Human. The Speaker for the Dead could write it. To persuade them not to do 
it." 
"Maybe," said Valentine. 
"She can't die," said Miro. 
"I know that we can't ask her to take that chance," said Valentine. "But if it's 
the only way to save the hive queen and the pequeninos--" 
Miro was furious. "You can talk about her dying! What is Jane to you? A program, 
a piece of software. But she's not, she's real, she's as real as the hive queen, 
she's as real as any of the piggies--" 
"More real to you, I think," said Valentine. 
"As real," said Miro. "You forget-- I know the piggies like my own brothers--" 
"But you're able to contemplate the possibility that destroying them may be 
morally necessary." 
"Don't twist my words." 
"I'm untwisting them," said Valentine. "You can contemplate losing them, because 
they're already lost to you. Losing Jane, though--" 
"Because she's my friend, does that mean I can't plead for her? Can 
life-and-death decisions only be made by strangers?" 
Jakt's voice, quiet and deep, interrupted the argument. "Calm down, both of you. 
It isn't your decision. It's Jane's. She has the right to determine the value of 
her own life. I'm no philosopher, but I know that." 
"Well said," Valentine answered. 
Miro knew that Jakt was right, that it was Jane's choice. But he couldn't bear 
that, because he also knew what she would decide. Leaving the choice up to Jane 
was identical to asking her to do it. And yet, in the end, the choice would be 
up to her anyway. He didn't even have to ask her what she would decide. Time 
passed so quickly for her, especially since they were already traveling at 
near-lightspeed, that she had probably decided already. It was too much to bear. 
To lose Jane now would be unbearable; just thinking of it threatened Miro's 
composure. He didn't want to show such weakness in front of these people. Good 
people, they were good people, but he didn't want them to see him lose control 
of himself. So Miro leaned forward, found his balance, and precariously lifted 
himself from his seat. It was hard, since only a few of his muscles responded to 
his will, and it took all his concentration just to walk from the bridge to his 
compartment. No one followed him or even spoke to him. He was glad of that. 
Alone in his room, he lay down on his bunk and called to her. But not aloud. He 
subvocalized, because that was his custom when he talked to her. Even though the 
others on this ship now knew of her existence, he had no intention of losing the 
habits that had kept her concealed till now. 
"Jane," he said silently. 
"Yes," said the voice in his ear. He imagined, as always, that her soft voice 
came from a woman just out of sight, but close, very close. He shut his eyes, so 
he could imagine her better. Her breath on his cheek. Her hair dangling over his 
face as she spoke to him softly, as he answered in silence. 
"Talk to Ender before you decide," he said. 
"I already did. Just now, while you were thinking about this." 
"What did he say?" 
"To do nothing. To decide nothing, until the order is actually sent." 
"That's right. Maybe they won't do it." 
"Maybe. Maybe a new group with different policies will come into power. Maybe 
this group will change its mind. Maybe Valentine's propaganda will succeed. 
Maybe there'll be a mutiny on the fleet." 
This last was so unlikely that Miro realized Jane absolutely believed that the 
order would be sent. 
"How soon?" asked Miro. 
"The fleet should arrive in about fifteen years. A year or less after these two 
ships get there. That's how I timed your voyage. The order will be sent sometime 
before. Maybe six months before arrival-- which would be aboul eight hours 
ship's time before the fleet drops out of lightspeed and staggerss down to 
normal speeds." 
"Don't do it," said Miro. 
"I haven't decided." 
"Yes you have. You've decided to do it." 
She said nothing. 
"Don't leave me," he said. 
"I don't leave my friends if I don't have to," she said. "Some people do, but I 
don't." 
"Just don't," he said again. He was crying. Could she see that, sense it somehow 
through the jewel in his ear? 
"I'll try." 
"Find another way. Find another way to stop them. Find some way to put yourself 
outside the philotic net so they can't kill you." 
"That's what Ender said." 
"Then do it!" 
"I can search for such a way, but who knows if it exists?" 
"It has to." 
"This is why I wonder sometimes whether I'm alive or not. You living creatures, 
you think that because you want something very much, it has to happen. That 
wishing something with all your heart will make it so." 
"How can you search for something if you don't believe that it exists?" 
"Either I search or I don't," said Jane. "I don't get distracted or bored like 
humans do. I'll try to think of something else." 
"Think of this, too," said Miro. "Think of who you are. Of how your mind works. 
You can't possibly find a way of saving your life until you understand how you 
came to life in the first place. And once you understand yourself--" 
"Then maybe I can make a copy and store it somewhere." 
"Maybe." 
"Maybe," she echoed. 
But he knew she didn't believe it, and neither did he. She existed in the 
philotic network of the ansibles; she could store her memories in the network of 
computers on every world and every ship in space, but there was nowhere that she 
could put her self, not if it required a network of philotic links. 
Unless. 
"What about the fathertrees on Lusitania? They communicate philotically, don't 
they?" 
"It's not the same thing," said Jane. "It isn't digital. It isn't coded the way 
the ansibles are." 
"It may not be digital, but the information gets transferred somehow, it works 
philotically. And the hive queen, too-- she communicates with the buggers that 
way." 
"No chance of that," said Jane. "The structure's too simple. Her communication 
with them isn't a network. They're all connected only to her." 
"How do you know it won't work, when you don't even know for sure how you 
function?" 
"All right. I'll think about it." 
"Think hard," he said. 
"I only know one way to think," said Jane. 
"I mean, pay attention to it." 
She could follow many trains of thought at once, but her thoughts were 
prioritized, with many different levels of attention. Miro didn't want her 
relegating her self-investigation to some low order of attention. 
"I'll pay attention," she said. 
"Then you'll think of something," he said. "You will." 
She didn't answer for a while. He thought this meant that the conversation was 
over. His thoughts began to wander. To try to imagine what life would be like, 
still in this body, only without Jane. It could happen before he even arrived on 
Lusitania. And if it did, this voyage would have been the most terrible mistake 
of his life. By traveling at lightspeed, he was skipping thirty years of 
realtime. Thirty years that might have been spent with Jane. He might be able to 
deal with losing her then. But losing her now, only a few weeks into knowing 
her-- he knew that his tears arose from self-pity, but he shed them all the 
same. 
"Miro," she said. 
"What?" he asked. 
"How can I think of something that's never been thought of before?" 
For a moment he didn't understand. 
"Miro, how can I figure out something that isn't just the logical conclusion of 
things that human beings have already figured out and written somewhere?" 
"You think of things all the time," said Miro. 
"I'm trying to conceive of something inconceivable. I'm trying to find answers 
to questions that human beings have never even tried to ask." 
"Can't you do that?" 
"If I can't think original thoughts, does that mean that I'm nothing but a 
computer program that got out of hand?" 
"Hell, Jane, most people never have an original thought in their lives." He 
laughed softly. "Does that mean they're just ground-dwelling apes that got out 
of hand?" 
"You were crying," she said. 
"Yes." 
"You don't think I can think of a way out of this. You think I'm going to die." 
"I believe you can think of a way. I really do. But that doesn't stop me from 
being afraid." 
"Afraid that I'll die." 
"Afraid that I'll lose you." 
"Would that be so terrible? To lose me?" 
"Oh God," he whispered. 
"Would you miss me for an hour?" she insisted. "For a day? For a year?" 
What did she want from him? Assurance that when she was gone she'd be 
remembered? That someone would yearn for her? Why would she doubt that? Didn't 
she know him yet? 
Maybe she was human enough that she simply needed reassurance of things she 
already knew. 
"Forever," he said. 
It was her turn to laugh. Playfully. "You won't live that long," she said. 
"Now you tell me," he said. 
This time when she fell silent, she didn't come back, and Miro was left alone 
with his thoughts. 
Valentine, Jakt, and Plikt had remained together on the bridge, talking through 
the things they had learned, trying to decide what they might mean, what might 
happen. The only conclusion they reached was that while the future couldn't be 
known, it would probably be a good deal better than their worst fears and 
nowhere near as good as their best hopes. Wasn't that how the world always 
worked? 
"Yes," said Plikt. "Except for the exceptions." 
That was Plikt's way. Except when she was teaching, she said little, but when 
she did speak, it had a way of ending the conversation. Plikt got up to leave 
the bridge, headed for her miserably uncomfortable bed; as usual, Valentine 
tried to persuade her to go back to the other starship. 
"Varsam and Ro don't want me in their room," said Plikt. 
"They don't mind a bit." 
"Valentine," said Jakt, "Plikt doesn't want to go back to the other ship because 
she doesn't want to miss anything." 
"Oh," said Valentine. 
Plikt grinned. "Good night." 
Soon after, Jakt also left the bridge. His hand rested on Valentine's shoulder 
for a moment as he left. "I'll be there soon," she said. And she meant it at the 
moment, meant to follow him almost at once. Instead she remained on the bridge, 
thinking, brooding, trying to make sense of a universe that would put all the 
nonhuman species ever known to man at risk of extinction, all at once. The hive 
queen, the pequeninos, and now Jane, the only one of her kind, perhaps the only 
one that ever could exist. A veritable profusion of intelligent life, and yet 
known only to a few. And all of them in line to be snuffed out. 
At least Ender will realize at last that this is the natural order of things, 
that he might not be as responsible for the destruction of the buggers three 
thousand years ago as he had always thought. Xenocide must be built into the 
universe. No mercy, not even for the greatest players in the game. 
How could she have ever thought otherwise? Why should intelligent species be 
immune to the threat of extinction that looms over every species that ever came 
to be? 
It must have been an hour after Jakt left the bridge before Valentine finally 
turned off her terminal and stood up to go to bed. On a whim, though, she paused 
before leaving and spoke into the air. "Jane?" she said. "Jane?" 
No answer. 
There was no reason for her to expect one. It was Miro who wore the jewel in his 
ear. Miro and Ender both. How many people did she think Jane could monitor at 
one time? Maybe two was the most she could handle. 
Or maybe two thousand. Or two million. What did Valentine know of the 
limitations of a being who existed as a phantom in the philotic web? Even if 
Jane heard her, Valentine had no right to expect that she would answer her call. 

Valentine stopped in the corridor, directly between Miro's door and the door to 
the room she shared with Jakt. The doors were not soundproof. She could hear 
Jakt's soft snoring inside their compartment. She also heard another sound. 
Miro's breath. He wasn't sleeping. He might be crying. She hadn't raised three 
children without being able to recognize that ragged, heavy breathing. 
He's not my child. I shouldn't meddle. 
She pushed open the door; it was noiseless, but it cast a shaft of light across 
the bed. Miro's crying stopped immediately, but he looked at her through swollen 
eyes. 
"What do you want?" he said. 
She stepped into the room and sat on the floor beside his bunk, so their faces 
were only a few inches apart. "You've never cried for yourself, have you?" she 
said. 
"A few times." 
"But tonight you're crying for her." 
"Myself as much as her." 
  
Valentine leaned closer, put her arm around him, pulled his head onto her 
shoulder. 
"No," he said. But he didn't pull away. And after a few moments, his arm swung 
awkwardly around to embrace her. He didn't cry anymore, but he did let her hold 
him for a minute or two. Maybe it helped. Valentine had no way of knowing. 
Then he was done. He pulled away, rolled onto his back. "I'm sorry," he said. 
"You're welcome," she said. She believed in answering what people meant, not 
what they said. 
"Don't tell Jakt," he whispered. 
"Nothing to tell," she said. "We had a good talk." 
She got up and left, closing his door behind her. He was a good boy. She liked 
the fact that he could admit caring what Jakt thought about him. And what did it 
matter if his tears tonight had self-pity in them? She had shed a few like that 
herself. Grief, she reminded herself, is almost always for the mourner's loss. 
Table of Contents



Chapter 5 -- The Lusitania Fleet
<Ender says that when the war fleet from Starways Congress reaches us, they plan 
to destroy this world.> 
<Interesting.> 
<You don't fear death?> 
<We don't intend to be here when they arrive.> 
  
  
  
Qing-jao was no longer the little girl whose hands had bled in secret. Her life 
had been transformed from the moment she was proved to be godspoken, and in the 
ten years since that day she had come to accept the voice of the gods in her 
life and the role this gave her in society. She learned to accept the privileges 
and honors given to her as gifts actually meant for the gods; as her father 
taught her, she did not take on airs, but instead grew more humble as the gods 
and the people laid ever-heavier burdens on her. 
She took her duties seriously, and found joy in them. For the past ten years she 
had passed through a rigorous, exhilarating course of studies. Her body was 
shaped and trained in the company of other children-- running, swimming, riding, 
combat-with-swords, combat-with-sticks, combat-with-bones. Along with other 
children, her memory was filled with languages-- Stark, the common speech of the 
stars, which was typed into computers; Old Chinese, which was sung in the throat 
and drawn in beautiful ideograms on rice paper or in fine sand; and New Chinese, 
which was merely spoken at the mouth and jotted down with a common alphabet on 
ordinary paper or in dirt. No one was surprised except Qing-jao herself that she 
learned all these languages much more quickly and easily and thoroughly than any 
of the other children. 
Other teachers came to her alone. This was how she learned sciences and history, 
mathematics and music. And every week she would go to her father and spend half 
a day with him, showing him all that she had learned and listening to what he 
said in response. His praise made her dance all the way back to her room; his 
mildest rebuke made her spend hours tracing woodgrain lines in her schoolroom, 
until she felt worthy to return to studying. 
Another part of her schooling was utterly private. She had seen for herself how 
Father was so strong that he could postpone his obedience to the gods. She knew 
that when the gods demanded a ritual of purification, the hunger, the need to 
obey them was so exquisite it could not be denied. And yet Father somehow denied 
it-- long enough, at least, that his rituals were always in private. Qing-jao 
longed for such strength herself, and so she began to discipline herself to 
delay. When the gods made her feel her oppressive unworthiness, and her eyes 
began to search for woodgrain lines or her hands began to feel unbearably 
filthy, she would wait, trying to concentrate on what was happening at the 
moment and put off obedience as long as she could. 
At first it was a triumph if she managed to postpone her purification for a full 
minute-- and when her resistance broke, the gods punished her for it by making 
the ritual more onerous and difficult than usual. But she refused to give up. 
She was Han Fei-tzu's daughter, wasn't she? And in time, over the years, she 
learned what her father had learned: that one could live with the hunger, 
contain it, often for hours, like a bright fire encased in a box of translucent 
jade, a dangerous, terrible fire from the gods, burning within her heart. 
Then, when she was alone, she could open that box and let the fire out, not in a 
single, terrible eruption, but slowly, gradually, filling her with light as she 
bowed her head and traced the lines on the floor, or bent over the sacred laver 
of her holy washings, quietly and methodically rubbing her hands with pumice, 
lye, and aloe. 
Thus she converted the raging voice of the gods into a private, disciplined 
worship. Only at rare moments of sudden distress did she lose control and fling 
herself to the floor in front of a teacher or visitor. She accepted these 
humiliations as the gods' way of reminding her that their power over her was 
absolute, that her usual self-control was only permitted for their amusement. 
She was content with this imperfect discipline. After all, it would be 
presumptuous of her to equal her father's perfect self-control. His 
extraordinary nobility came because the gods honored him, and so did not require 
his public humiliation; she had done nothing to earn such honor. 
Last of all, her schooling included one day each week helping with the righteous 
labor of the common people. Righteous labor, of course, was not the work the 
common people did every day in their offices and factories. Righteous labor 
meant the backbreaking work of the rice paddies. Every man and woman and child 
on Path had to perform this labor, bending and stooping in shin-deep water to 
plant and harvest the rice-- or forfeit citizenship. "This is how we honor our 
ancestors," Father explained to her when she was little. "We show them that none 
of us will ever rise above doing their labor." The rice that was grown by 
righteous labor was considered holy; it was offered in the temples and eaten on 
holy days; it was placed in small bowls as offerings to the household gods. 
Once, when Qing-jao was twelve, the day was terribly hot and she was eager to 
finish her work on a research project. "Don't make me go to the rice paddies 
today," she said to her teacher. "What I'm doing here is so much more 
important." 
The teacher bowed and went away, but soon Father came into her room. He carried 
a heavy sword, and she screamed in terror when he raised it over his head. Did 
he mean to kill her for having spoken so sacrilegiously? But he did not hurt 
her-- how could she have imagined that he might? Instead the sword came down on 
her computer terminal. The metal parts twisted; the plastic shattered and flew. 
The machine was destroyed. 
Father did not raise his voice. It was in the faintest whisper that he said, 
"First the gods. Second the ancestors. Third the people. Fourth the rulers. Last 
the self." 
It was the clearest expression of the Path. It was the reason this world was 
settled in the first place. She had forgotten: If she was too busy to perform 
righteous labor, she was not on the Path. 
She would never forget again. And, in time, she learned to love the sun beating 
down on her back, the water cool and murky around her legs and hands, the stalks 
of the rice plants like fingers reaching up from the mud to intertwine with her 
fingers. Covered with muck in the rice paddies, she never felt unclean, because 
she knew that she was filthy in the service of the gods. 
Finally, at the age of sixteen, her schooling was finished. She had only to 
prove herself in a grown woman's task-- one that was difficult and important 
enough that it could be entrusted only to one who was godspoken. 
She came before the great Han Fei-tzu in his room. Like hers, it was a large 
open space; like hers, the sleeping accommodation was simple, a mat on the 
floor; like hers, the room was dominated by a table with a computer terminal on 
it. She had never entered her father's room without seeing something floating in 
the display above the terminal-- diagrams, threedimensional models, realtime 
simulations, words. Most commonly words. Letters or ideographs floating in the 
air on simulated pages, moving back and forward, side to side as Father needed 
to compare them. 
In Qing-jao's room, all the rest of the space was empty. Since Father did not 
trace woodgrain lines, he had no need for that much austerity. Even so, his 
tastes were simple. One rug-- only rarely one that had much decoration to it. 
One low table, with one sculpture standing on it. Walls bare except for one 
painting. And because the room was so large, each one of these things seemed 
almost lost, like the faint voice of someone crying out from very far away. 
The message of this room to visitors was clear: Han Fei-tzu chose simplicity. 
One of each thing was enough for a pure soul. 
The message to Qing-jao, however, was quite different. For she knew what no one 
outside the household realized: The rug, the table, the sculpture, and the 
painting were changed every day. And never in her life had she recognized any 
one of them. So the lesson she learned was this: A pure soul must never grow 
attached to any one thing. A pure soul must expose himself to new things every 
day. 
Because this was a formal occasion, she did not come and stand behind him as he 
worked, studying what appeared in his display, trying to guess what he was 
doing. This time she came to the middle of the room and knelt on the plain rug, 
which was today the color of a robin's egg, with a small stain in one corner. 
She kept her eyes down, not even studying the stain, until Father got up from 
his chair and came to stand before her. 
"Han Qing-jao," he said. "Let me see the sunrise of my daughter's face." 
She lifted her head, looked at him, and smiled. 
He smiled back. "What I will set before you is not an easy task, even for an 
experienced adult," said Father. 
Qing-jao bowed her head. She had expected that Father would set a hard challenge 
for her, and she was ready to do his will. 
"Look at me, my Qing-jao," said Father. 
She lifted her head, looked into his eyes. 
"This is not going to be a school assignment. This is a task from the real 
world. A task that Starways Congress has given me, on which the fate of nations 
and peoples and worlds may rest." 
Qing-jao had been tense already, but now Father was frightening her. "Then you 
must give this task to someone who can be trusted with it, not to an untried 
child." 
"You haven't been a child in years, Qing-jao. Are you ready to hear your task?" 
"Yes, Father." 
"What do you know about the Lusitania Fleet?" 
"Do you want me to tell you everything I know about it?" 
"I want you to tell me all that you think matters." 
So-- this was a kind of test, to see how well she could distill the important 
from the unimportant in her knowledge about a particular subject. 
"The fleet was sent to subdue a rebellious colony on Lusitania, where laws 
concerning noninterference in the only known alien species had been defiantly 
broken." 
Was that enough? No-- Father was still waiting. 
"There was controversy, right from the start," she said. "Essays attributed to a 
person called Demosthenes stirred up trouble." 
"What trouble, in particular?" 
"To colony worlds, Demosthenes gave warning that the Lusitania Fleet was a 
dangerous precedent-- it would be only a matter of time before Starways Congress 
used force to compel their obedience, too. To Catholic worlds and Catholic 
minorities everywhere, Demosthenes charged that Congress was trying to punish 
the Bishop of Lusitania for sending missionaries to the pequeninos to save their 
souls from hell. To scientists, Demosthenes sent warning that the principle of 
independent research was at stake-- a whole world was under military attack 
because it dared to prefer the judgment of the scientists on the scene to the 
judgment of bureaucrats many light-years away. And to everyone, Demosthenes made 
claims that the Lusitania Fleet carried the Molecular Disruption Device. Of 
course that is an obvious lie, but some believed it." 
"How effective were these essays?" asked Father. 
"I don't know." 
"They were very effective," said Father. "Fifteen years ago, the earliest essays 
to the colonies were so effective that they almost caused revolution." 
A near-rebellion in the colonies? Fifteen years ago? Qing-jao knew of only one 
such event, but she had never realized it had anything to do with Demosthenes' 
essays. She blushed. "That was the time of the Colony Charter-- your first great 
treaty." 
"The treaty was not mine," said Han Fei-tzu. "The treaty belonged equally to 
Congress and the colonies. Because of it a terrible conflict was avoided. And 
the Lusitania Fleet continues on its great mission." 
"You wrote every word of the treaty, Father." 
"In doing so I only found expression for the wishes and desires already in the 
hearts of the people on both sides of the issue. I was a clerk." 
Qing-jao bowed her head. She knew the truth, and so did everyone else. It had 
been the beginning of Han Fei-tzu's greatness, for he not only wrote the treaty 
but also persuaded both sides to accept it almost without revision. Ever after 
that, Han Fei-tzu had been one of the most trusted advisers to Congress; 
messages arrived daily from the greatest men and women of every world. If he 
chose to call himself a clerk in that great undertaking, that was only because 
he was a man of great modesty. Qing-jao also knew that Mother was already dying 
as he accomplished all this work. That was the kind of man her father was, for 
he neglected neither his wife nor his duty. He could not save Mother's life, but 
he could save the lives that might have been lost in war. 
"Qing-jao, why do you say that it is an obvious lie that the fleet is carrying 
the M.D. Device?" 
"Because-- because that would be monstrous. It would be like Ender the Xenocide, 
destroying an entire world. So much power has no right or reason to exist in the 
universe." 
"Who taught you this?" 
"Decency taught me this," said Qing-jao. "The gods made the stars and all the 
planets-- who is man to unmake them?" 
"But the gods also made the laws of nature that make it possible to destroy 
them-- who is man to refuse to receive what the gods have given?" 
Qing-jao was stunned to silence. She had never heard Father speak in apparent 
defense of any aspect of war-- he loathed war in any form. 
"I ask you again-- who taught you that so much power has no right or reason to 
exist in the universe?" 
"It's my own idea." 
"But that sentence is an exact quotation." 
"Yes. From Demosthenes. But if I believe an idea, it becomes my own. You taught 
me that." 
"You must be careful that you understand all the consequences of an idea before 
you believe it." 
"The Little Doctor must never be used on Lusitania, and therefore it should not 
have been sent." 
Han Fei-tzu nodded gravely. "How do you know it must never be used?" 
"Because it would destroy the pequeninos, a young and beautiful people who are 
eager to fulfill their potential as a sentient species." 
"Another quotation." 
"Father, have you read the Life of Human?" 
"I have." 
"Then how can you doubt that the pequeninos must be preserved?" 
"I said I had read the Life of Human. I didn't say that I believed it." 
"You don't believe it?" 
"I neither believe it nor disbelieve it. The book first appeared after the 
ansible on Lusitania had been destroyed. Therefore it is probable that the book 
did not originate there, and if it didn't originate there then it's fiction. 
That seems particularly likely because it's signed 'Speaker for the Dead,' which 
is the same name signed to the Hive Queen and the Hegemon, which are thousands 
of years old. Someone was obviously trying to capitalize on the reverence people 
feel toward those ancient works." 
"I believe the Life of Human is true." 
"That's your privilege, Qing-jao. But why do you believe it?" 
Because it sounded true when she read it. Could she say that to Father? Yes, she 
could say anything. "Because when I read it I felt that it must be true." 
"I see." 
"Now you know that I'm foolish." 
"On the contrary. I know that you are wise. When you hear a true story, there is 
a part of you that responds to it regardless of art, regardless of evidence. Let 
it be clumsily told and you will still love the tale, if you love truth. Let it 
be the most obvious fabrication and you will still believe whatever truth is in 
it, because you cannot deny truth no matter how shabbily it is dressed." 
"Then how is it that you don't believe the Life of Human?" 
"I spoke unclearly. We are using two different meanings of the words truth and 
belief. You believe that the story is true, because you responded to it from 
that sense of truth deep within you. But that sense of truth does not respond to 
a story's factuality-- to whether it literally depicts a real event in the real 
world. Your inner sense of truth responds to a story's causality-- to whether it 
faithfully shows the way the universe functions, the way the gods work their 
will among human beings." 
Qing-jao thought for only a moment, then nodded her understanding. "So the Life 
of Human may be universally true, but specifically false." 
"Yes," said Han Fei-tzu. "You can read the book and gain great wisdom from it, 
because it is true. But is that book an accurate representation of the 
pequeninos themselves? One can hardly believe that-- a mammaloid species that 
turns into a tree when it dies? Beautiful as poetry. Ludicrous as science." 
"But can you know that, either, Father?" 
"I can't be sure, no. Nature has done many strange things, and there is a chance 
that the Life of Human is genuine and true. Thus I neither believe it nor 
disbelieve it. I hold it in abeyance. I wait. Yet while I'm waiting, I don't 
expect Congress to treat Lusitania as if it were populated by the fanciful 
creatures from the Life of Human. For all we know, the pequeninos may be deadly 
dangerous to us. They are aliens." 
"Ramen." 
"In the story. But raman or varelse, we do not know what they are. The fleet 
carries the Little Doctor because it might be necessary to save mankind from 
unspeakable peril. It is not up to us to decide whether or not it should be 
used-- Congress will decide. It is not up to us to decide whether it should have 
been sent-- Congress has sent it. And it is certainly not up to us to decide 
whether it should exist-- the gods have decreed that such a thing is possible 
and can exist." 
"So Demosthenes was right. The M.D. Device is with the fleet." 
"Yes." 
"And the government files that Demosthenes published-- they were genuine." 
"Yes.: 
"But Father-- you joined many others in claiming that they were forgeries." 
"Just as the gods speak only to a chosen few, so the secrets of the rulers must 
be known only to those who will use the knowledge properly. Demosthenes was 
giving powerful secrets to people who were not fit to use them wisely, and so 
for the good of the people those secrets had to be withdrawn. The only way to 
retrieve a secret, once it is known, is to replace it with a lie; then the 
knowledge of the truth is once again your secret." 
"You're telling me that Demosthenes is not a liar, and Congress is." 
"I'm telling you that Demosthenes is the enemy of the gods. A wise ruler would 
never have sent the Lusitania Fleet without giving it the possibility of 
responding to any circumstance. But Demosthenes has used his knowledge that the 
Little Doctor is with the fleet in order to try to force Congress to withdraw 
the fleet. Thus he wishes to take power out of the hands of those whom the gods 
have ordained to rule humankind. What would happen to the people if they 
rejected the rulers given them by the gods?" 
"Chaos and suffering," said Qing-jao. History was full of times of chaos and 
suffering, until the gods sent strong rulers and institutions to keep order. 
"So Demosthenes told the truth about the Little Doctor. Did you think the 
enemies of the gods could never speak the truth? I wish it were so. It would 
make them much easier to identify." 
"If we can lie in the service of the gods, what other crimes can we commit?" 
"What is a crime?" 
"An act that's against the law." 
"What law?" 
"I see-- Congress makes the law, so the law is whatever Congress says. But 
Congress is composed of men and women, who may do good and evil." 
"Now you're nearer the truth. We can't do crimes in the service of Congress, 
because Congress makes the laws. But if Congress ever became evil, then in 
obeying them we might also be doing evil. That is a matter of conscience. 
However, if that happened, Congress would surely lose the mandate of heaven. And 
we, the godspoken, don't have to wait and wonder about the mandate of heaven, as 
others do. If Congress ever loses the mandate of the gods, we will know at 
once." 
"So you lied for Congress because Congress had the mandate of heaven." 
"And therefore I knew that to help them keep their secret was the will of the 
gods for the good of the people." 
Qing-jao had never thought of Congress in quite this way before. All the history 
books she had studied showed Congress as the great unifier of humanity, and 
according to the schoolbooks, all its acts were noble. Now, though, she 
understood that some of its actions might not seem good. Yet that didn't 
necessarily mean that they were not good. "I must learn from the gods, then, 
whether the will of Congress is also their will," she said. 
"Will you do that?" asked Han Fei-tzu. "Will you obey the will of Congress, even 
when it might seem wrong, as long as Congress has the mandate of heaven?" 
"Are you asking for my oath?" 
"I am." 
"Then yes, I will obey, as long as they have the mandate of heaven." 
"I had to have that oath from you to satisfy the security requirements of 
Congress," he said. "I couldn't have given you your task without it." He cleared 
his throat. "But now I ask you for another oath." 
"I'll give it if I can." 
"This oath is from-- it arises from great love. Han Qing-jao, will you serve the 
gods in all things, in all ways, throughout your life?" 
"Oh, Father, we need no oath for this. Haven't the gods chosen me already, and 
led me with their voice?" 
"Nevertheless I ask you for this oath." 
"Always, in all things, in all ways, I will serve the gods." 
To her surprise, Father knelt before her and took her hands in his. Tears 
streamed down his cheeks. "You have lifted from my heart the heaviest burden 
that was ever laid there." 
"How did I do this, Father?" 
"Before your mother died, she asked me for my promise. She said that since her 
entire character was expressed by her devotion to the gods, the only way I could 
help you to know her was to teach you also to serve the gods. All my life I have 
still been afraid that I might fail, that you might turn away from the gods. 
That you might come to hate them. Or that you might not be worthy of their 
voice." 
This struck Qing-jao to the heart. She was always conscious of her deep 
unworthiness before the gods, of her filthiness in their sight-- even when they 
weren't requiring her to watch or trace woodgrain lines. Only now did she learn 
what was at stake: her mother's love for her. 
"All my fears are gone now. You are a perfect daughter, my Qing-jao. You already 
serve the gods well. And now, with your oath, I can be sure you'll continue 
forever. This will cause great rejoicing in the house in heaven where your 
mother dwells." 
Will it? In heaven they know my weakness. You, Father, you only see that I have 
not yet failed the gods; Mother must know how close I've come so many times, how 
filthy I am whenever the gods look upon me. 
But he seemed so full of joy that she dared not show him how much she dreaded 
the day when she would prove her unworthiness for all to see. So she embraced 
him. 
Still, she couldn't help asking him, "Father, do you really think Mother heard 
me make that oath?" 
"I hope so," said Han Fei-tzu. "If she didn't, the gods will surely save the 
echo of it and put it in a seashell and let her listen to it whenever she puts 
it to her ear." 
This sort of fanciful storytelling was a game they had played together as 
children. Qing-jao set aside her dread and quickly came up with an answer. "No, 
the gods will save the touch of our embrace and weave it into a shawl, which she 
can wear around her shoulders when winter comes to heaven." She was relieved, 
anyway, that Father had not said yes. He only hoped that Mother had heard the 
oath she made. Perhaps she hadn't-- band so she wouldn't be so disappointed when 
her daughter failed. 
Father kissed her, then stood up. "Now you are ready to hear your task," he 
said. 
He took her by the hand and led her to his table. She stood beside him when he 
sat on his chair; she was not much taller, standing, than he was sitting down. 
Probably she had not yet reached her adult height, but she hoped she wouldn't 
grow much more. She didn't want to become one of those large, hulking women who 
carried heavy burdens in the fields. Better to be a mouse than a hog, that's 
what Mu-pao had told her years ago. 
Father brought a starmap up into the display. She recognized the area 
immediately. It centered on the Lusitania star system, though the scale was too 
small for individual planets to be visible. "Lusitania is in the center," she 
said. 
Father nodded. He typed a few more commands. "Now watch this," he said. "Not the 
display, my fingers. This, plus your voice identification, is the password that 
will allow you to access the information you'll need." 
She watched him type: 4Gang. She recognized the reference at once. Her mother's 
ancestor-of-the-heart had been Jiang-qing, the widow of the first Communist 
Emperor, Mao Ze-dong. When Jiang-qing and her allies were driven from power, the 
Conspiracy of Cowards vilified them under the name "Gang of Four." Qing-jao's 
mother had been a true daughter-of-the-heart to that great martyred woman of the 
past. And now Qing-jao would be able to do further honor to her mother's 
ancestor-of-the-heart every time she typed the access code. It was a gracious 
thing for her father to arrange. 
In the display there appeared many green dots. She quickly counted, almost 
without thinking: there were nineteen of them, clustered at some distance from 
Lusitania, but surrounding it in most directions. 
"Is that the Lusitania Fleet?" 
"Those were their positions five months ago." He typed again. The green dots all 
disappeared. "And those are their positions today." 
She looked for them. She couldn't find a green dot anywhere. Yet Father clearly 
expected her to see something. "Are they already at Lusitania?" 
"The ships are where you see them," said Father. "Five months ago the fleet 
disappeared." 
"Where did it go?" 
"No one knows." 
"Was it a mutiny?" 
"No one knows." 
"The whole fleet?" 
"Every ship." 
"When you say they disappeared, what do you mean?" 
Father glanced at her with a smile. "Well done, Qing-jao. You've asked the right 
question. No one saw them-- they were all in deep space. So they didn't 
physically disappear. As far as we know, they may be moving along, still on 
course. They only disappeared in the sense that we lost all contact with them. " 

"The ansibles?" 
"Silent. All within the same three-minute period. No transmissions were 
interrupted. One would end, and then the next one-- never came." 
"Every ship's connection with every planetside ansible everywhere? That's 
impossible. Even an explosion-- if there could be one so large-- but it couldn't 
be a single event, anyway, because they were so widely distributed around 
Lusitania. " 
"Well, it could be, Qing-jao. If you can imagine an event so cataclysmic-- it 
could be that Lusitania's star became a supernova. It would be decades before we 
saw the flash even on the closest worlds. The trouble is that it would be the 
most unlikely supernova in history. Not impossible, but unlikely." 
"And there would have been some advance indications. Some changes in the star's 
condition. Didn't the ships' instruments detect something?" 
"No. That's why we don't think it was any known astronomical phenomenon. 
Scientists can't think of anything to explain it. So we've tried investigating 
it as sabotage. We've searched for penetrations of the ansible computers. We've 
raked over all the personnel files from every ship, searching for some possible 
conspiracy among the shipboard crews. There's been cryptoanalysis of every 
communication by every ship, searching for some kind of messages among 
conspirators. The military and the government have analyzed everything they can 
think of to analyze. The police on every planet have conducted inquiries-- we've 
checked the background on every ansible operator." 
"Even though no messages are being sent, are the ansibles still connected?" 
"What do you think?" 
Qing-jao blushed. "Of course they would be, even if an M.D. Device had been used 
against the fleet, because the ansibles are linked by fragments of subatomic 
particles. They'd still be there even if the whole starship were blown to dust." 

"Don't be embarrassed, Qing-jao. The wise are not wise because they make no 
mistakes. They are wise because they correct their mistakes as soon as they 
recognize them." 
However, Qing-jao was blushing now for another reason. The hot blood was 
pounding in her head because it had only now dawned on her what Father's 
assignment for her was going to be. But that was impossible. He couldn't give to 
her a task that thousands of wiser, older people had already failed at. 
"Father," she whispered. "What is my task?" She still hoped that it was some 
minor problem involved with the disappearance of the fleet. But she knew that 
her hope was in vain even before he spoke. 
"You must discover every possible explanation for the disappearance of the 
fleet," he said, "and calculate the likelihood of each one. Starways Congress 
must be able to tell how this happened and how to make sure it will never happen 
again." 
"But Father," said Qing-jao, "I'm only sixteen. Aren't there many others who are 
wiser than I am?" 
"Perhaps they're all too wise to attept the task," he said. "But you are young 
enough not to fancy yourself wise. You're young enough to think of impossible 
things and discover why they might be possible. Above all, gods speak to you 
with extraordinary clarity, my brilliant child, my Gloriously Bright." 
That was what she was afraid of-- that Father expected her to succeed because of 
the favor of the gods. He didn't understand how unworthy the gods found her, how 
little they liked her. 
And there was another problem. "What if I succeed? What if I find out where the 
Lusitania Fleet is, and restore communications? Wouldn't it then be my fault if 
the fleet destroyed Lusitania?" 
"It's good that your first thought is compassion for the people of Lusitania. I 
assure you that Starways Congress has promised not to use the M.D. Device unless 
it proves absolutely unavoidable, and that is so unlikely that I can't believe 
it would happen. Even if it did, though, it's Congress that must decide. As my 
ancestor-of-the-heart said, 'Though the wise man's punishments may be light, 
this is not due to his compassion; though his penalties may be severe, this is 
not because he is cruel; he simply follows the custom appropriate to the time. 
Circumstances change according to the age, and ways of dealing with them change 
with the circumstances.' You may be sure that Starways Congress will deal with 
Lusitania, not according to kindness or cruelty, but according to what is 
necessary for the good of all humanity. That is why we serve the rulers: because 
they serve the people, who serve the ancestors, who serve the gods." 
"Father, I was unworthy even to think otherwise," said Qing-jao. She felt her 
filthiness now, instead of just knowing it in her mind. She needed to wash her 
hands. She needed to trace a line. But she contained it. She would wait. 
Whatever I do, she thought, there will be a terrible consequence. If I fail, 
then Father will lose honor before Congress and therefore before all the world 
of Path. That would prove to many that Father isn't worthy to be chosen god of 
Path when he dies. 
Yet if I succeed, the result might be xenocide. Even though the choice belongs 
to Congress, I would still know that I made such a thing possible. The 
responsibility would be partly mine. No matter what I do, I will be covered with 
failure and smeared with unworthiness. 
Then Father spoke to her as if the gods had shown him her heart. "Yes, you were 
unworthy," he said, "and you continue to be unworthy in your thoughts even now." 

Qing-jao blushed and bowed her head, ashamed, not that her thoughts had been so 
plainly visible to her father, but that she had had such disobedient thoughts at 
all. 
Father touched her shoulder gently with his hand. "But I believe the gods will 
make you worthy," said Father. "Starways Congress has the mandate of heaven, but 
you are also chosen to walk your own path. You can succeed in this great work. 
Will you try?" 
"I will try." I will also fail, but that will surprise no one, least of all the 
gods, who know my unworthiness. 
"All the pertinent archives have been opened up to your searching, when you 
speak your name and type the password. If you need help, let me know." 
She left Father's room with dignity, and forced herself to walk slowly up the 
stairs to her room. Only when she was inside with the door closed did she throw 
herself to her knees and creep along the floor. She traced woodgrain lines until 
she could hardly see. Her unworthiness was so great that even then she didn't 
quite feel clean; she went to the lavatory and scrubbed her hands until she knew 
the gods were satisfied. Twice the servants tried to interrupt her with meals or 
messages-- she cared little which-- but when they saw that she was communing 
with the gods they bowed and quietly slipped away. 
It was not the washing of her hands, though, that finally made her clean. It was 
the moment when she drove the last vestige of uncertainty from her heart. 
Starways Congress had the mandate of heaven. She must purge herself of all 
doubt. Whatever they meant to do with the Lusitania Fleet, it was surely the 
will of the gods that it be accomplished. Therefore it was her duty to help them 
accomplish it. And if she was in fact doing the will of the gods, then they 
would open a way for her to solve the problem that had been set before her. 
Anytime she thought otherwise, anytime the words of Demosthenes returned to her 
mind, she would have to blot them out by remembering that she would obey the 
rulers who have the mandate of heaven. 
By the time her mind was calm, her palms were raw and dotted with blood seeping 
up from the layers of living skin that were now so close to the surface. This is 
how my understanding of the truth arises, she told herself. If I wash away 
enough of my mortality, then the truth of the gods will seep upward into the 
light. 
She was clean at last. The hour was late and her eyes were tired. Nevertheless, 
she sat down before her terminal and began the work. "Show me summaries of all 
the research that has been conducted so far on the disappearance of the 
Lusitania Fleet," she said, "starting with the most recent." Almost at once 
words started appearing in the air above her terminal, page upon page lined up 
like soldiers marching to the front. She would read one, then scroll it out of 
the way, only to have the page behind it move to the front for her to read it. 
Seven hours she read until she could read no more; then she fell asleep before 
the terminal. 



Jane watches everything. She can do a million jobs and pay attention to a 
thousand things at once. Neither of these capacities is infinite, but they're so 
much greater than our pathetic ability to think about one thing while doing 
another that they might as well be. She does have a sensory limitation that we 
don't have, however; or, rather, we are her greatest limitation. She can't see 
or know anything that hasn't been entered as data in a computer that is tied to 
the great interworld network. 
That's less of a limitation than you might think. She has almost immediate 
access to the raw inputs of every starship, every satellite, every traffic 
control system, and almost every electronically-monitored spy device in the 
human universe. But it does mean that she almost never witnesses lovers' 
quarrels, bedtime stories, classroom arguments, supper-table gossip, or bitter 
tears privately shed. She only knows that aspect of our lives that we represent 
as digital information. 
If you asked her the exact number of human beings in the settled worlds, she 
would quickly give you a number based on census figures combined with 
birth-and-death probabilities in all our population groups. In most cases, she 
could match numbers with names, though no human could live long enough to read 
the list. And if you took a name you just happened to think of-- Han Qing-jao, 
for instance-- and you asked Jane, "Who is this person?" she'd almost 
immediately give you the vital statistics-- birth date, citizenship, parentage, 
height and weight at last medical checkup, grades in school. 
But that is all gratuitous information, background noise to her; she knows it's 
there, but it means nothing. To ask her about Han Qing-jao would be something 
like asking her a question about a certain molecule of water vapor in a distant 
cloud. The molecule is certainly there, but there's nothing special to 
differentiate it from the million others in its immediate vicinity. 
That was true until the moment that Han Qing-jao began to use her computer to 
access all the reports dealing with the disappearance of the Lusitania Fleet. 
Then Qing-jao's name moved many levels upward in Jane's attention. Jane began to 
keep a log of everything that Qing-jao did with her computer. And it quickly 
became clear to her that Han Qing-jao, though she was only sixteen, meant to 
make serious trouble for Jane. Because Han Qing-jao, unconnected as she was to 
any particular bureaucracy, having no ideological axe to grind or vested 
interest to protect, was taking a broader and therefore more dangerous look at 
all the information that had been collected by every human agency. 
Why was it dangerous? Had Jane left clues behind that Qing-jao would find? 
No, of course not. Jane left no clues. She had thought of leaving some, of 
trying to make the disappearance of the Lusitania Fleet look like sabotage or 
mechanical failure or some natural disaster. She had to give up on that idea, 
because she couldn't work up any physical clues. All she could do was leave 
misleading data in computer memories. None of it would ever have any physical 
analogue in the real world, and therefore any halfway-intelligent researcher 
would quickly realize that the clues were all faked-up data. Then he would 
conclude that the disappearance of the Lusitania Fleet had to have been caused 
by some agency that had unimaginably detailed access to the computer systems 
that had the false data. Surely that would lead people to discover her far more 
quickly than if she left no evidence at all. 
Leaving no evidence was the best course, definitely; and until Han Qing-jao 
began her investigation, it had worked very well. Each investigating agency 
looked only in the places they usually looked. The police on many planets 
checked out all the known dissident groups (and, in some places, tortured 
various dissidents until they made useless confessions, at which point the 
interrogators filed final reports and pronounced the issue closed). The military 
looked for evidence of military opposition-- especially alien starships, since 
the military had keen memories of the invasion of the buggers three thousand 
years before. Scientists looked for evidence of some unexpected invisible 
astronomical phenomenon that could account for either the destruction of the 
fleet or the selective breakdown of ansible communication. The politicians 
looked for somebody else to blame. Nobody imagined Jane, and therefore nobody 
found her. 
But Han Qing-jao was putting everything together, carefully, systematically, 
running precise searches on the data. She would inevitably turn up the evidence 
that could eventually prove-- and end-- Jane's existence. That evidence was, 
simply put, the lack of evidence. Nobody else could see it, because nobody had 
ever brought an unbiased methodical mind to the investigation. 
What Jane couldn't know was that Qing-jao's seemingly inhuman patience, her 
meticulous attention to detail, her constant rephrasing and reprogramming of 
computer searches, that all of these were the result of endless hours kneeling 
hunched over on a wooden floor, carefully following a grain in the wood from one 
end of a board to the other, from one side of a room to the other. Jane couldn't 
begin to guess that it was the great lesson taught her by the gods that made 
Qing-jao her most formidable opponent. All Jane knew was that at some point, 
this searcher named Qing-jao would probably realize what no one else really 
understood: that every conceivable explanation for the disappearance of the 
Lusitania Fleet had already been completely eliminated. 
At that point only one conclusion would remain: that some force not yet 
encountered anywhere in the history of humankind had the power either to make a 
widely scattered fleet of starships disappear simultaneously, or-- just as 
unlikely-- to make that fleet's ansibles all stop functioning at once. And if 
that same methodical mind then started listing possible forces that might have 
such power, eventually it was bound to name the one that was true: an 
independent entity that dwelt among-- no, that was composed of-- the philotic 
rays connecting all ansibles together. Because this idea was true, no amount of 
logical scrutiny or research would eliminate it. Eventually this idea would be 
left standing alone. And at that point, somebody would surely act on Qing-jao's 
discovery and set out to destroy Jane. 
So Jane watched Qing-jao's research with more and more fascination. This 
sixteen-year-old daughter of Han Fei-tzu, who weighed 39 kilograms and stood 160 
centimeters tall and was in the uppermost social and intellectual class on the 
Taoist Chinese world of Path, was the first human being Jane had ever found who 
approached the thoroughness and precision of a computer and, therefore, of Jane 
herself. And though Jane could conduct in an hour the search that was taking 
Qing-jao weeks and months to complete, the dangerous truth was that Qing-jao was 
performing almost exactly the search Jane herself would have conducted; and 
therefore there was no reason for Jane to suppose that Qing-jao would not reach 
the conclusion that Jane herself would reach. 
Qing-jao was therefore Jane's most dangerous enemy, and Jane was helpless to 
stop her-- at least physically. Trying to block Qing-jao's access to information 
would only mean leading her more quickly to the knowledge of Jane's existence. 
So instead of open opposition, Jane searched for another way to stop her eney. 
She did not understand all of human nature, but Ender had taught her this: to 
stop a human being from doing something, you must find a way to make the person 
stop wanting to do it. 
Table of Contents



Chapter 6 -- Varelse
<How are you able to speak directly into Ender's mind?> 
<Now that we know where he is, it's as natural as eating.> 
<How did you find him? I've never been able to speak into the mind of anyone who 
hasn't passed into the third life.> 
<We found him through the ansibles, and the electronics connected to them-- 
found where his body was in space. To reach his mind, we had to reach into chaos 
and form a bridge.> 
<Bridge?> 
<A transitional entity, which partly resembled his mind and partly ours.> 
<If you could reach his mind, why didn't you stop him from destroying you?> 
<The human brain is very strange. Before we could make sense of what we found 
there, before we could learn how to speak into that twisted space, all my 
sisters and mothers were gone. We continued to study his mind during all the 
years we waited, cocooned, until he found us; when he come, then we could speak 
directly to him.> 
<What happened to the bridge you made?> 
<We never thought about it. It's probably still out there somewhere.> 
  
  
The new strain of potatoes was dying. Ender saw the telltale brown circles in 
the leaves, the plants broken off where the stems had turned so brittle that the 
slightest breeze bent them till they snapped. This morning they had all been 
healthy. The onset of this disease was so sudden, its effect so devastating, 
that it could only be the descolada virus. 
Ela and Novinha would be disappointed-- they had had such hopes for this strain 
of potato. Ela, Ender's stepdaughter, had been working on a gene that would 
cause every cell in an organism to produce three different chemicals that were 
known to inhibit or kill the descolada virus. Novinha, Ender's wife, had been 
working on a gene that would cause cell nuclei to be impermeable to any molecule 
larger than one-tenth the size of the descolada. With this strain of potato, 
they had spliced in both genes and, when early tests showed that both traits had 
taken hold, Ender had brought the seedlings to the experimental farm and planted 
them. He and his assistants had nurtured them for the past six weeks. All had 
seemed to be going well. 
If the technique had worked, it could have been adapted to all the plants and 
animals that the humans of Lusitania depended on for food. But the descolada 
virus was too clever by half-- it saw through all their stratagems, eventually. 
Still, six weeks was better than the normal two or three days. Maybe they were 
on the right track. 
Or maybe things had already gone too far. Back when Ender first arrived on 
Lusitania, new strains of Earthborn plants and animals could last as long as 
twenty years in the field before the descolada decoded their genetic molecules 
and tore them apart. But in recent years the descolada virus had apparently made 
a breakthrough that allowed it to decode any genetic molecule from Earth in days 
or even hours. 
These days the only thing that allowed the human colonists to grow their plants 
and raise their animals was a spray that was immediately fatal to the descolada 
virus. There were human colonists who wanted to spray the whole planet and wipe 
out the descolada virus once and for all. 
Spraying a whole planet was impractical, but not impossible; there were other 
reasons for rejecting that option. Every form of native life absolutely depended 
on the descolada in order to reproduce. That included the piggies-- the 
pequeninos, the intelligent natives of this world-- whose reproductive cycle was 
inextricably bound up with the only native species of tree. If the descolada 
virus were ever destroyed, this generation of pequeninos would be the last. It 
would be xenocide. 
So far, the idea of doing anything that would wipe out the piggies would be 
immediately rejected by most of the people of Milagre, the village of humans. So 
far. But Ender knew that many minds would change if a few more facts were widely 
known. For instance, only a handful of people knew that twice already the 
descolada had adapted itself to the chemical they were using to kill it. Ela and 
Novinha had already developed several new versions of the chemical, so that the 
next time the descolada adapted to one viricide they could switch immediately to 
another. Likewise, they had once had to change the descolada inhibitor that kept 
human beings from dying of the descolada viruses that dwelt in every human in 
the colony. The inhibitor was added to all the colony's food, so that every 
human being ingested it with every meal. 
However, all the inhibitors and viricides worked on the same basic principles. 
Someday, just as the descolada virus had learned how to adapt to Earthborn genes 
in general, it would also learn how to handle each class of chemicals, and then 
it wouldn't matter how many new versions they had-- the descolada would exhaust 
their resources in days. 
Only a few people knew how precarious Milagre's survival really was. Only a few 
people understood how much was riding on the work that Ela and Novinha, as 
Lusitania's xenobiologists, were doing; how close their contest was with the 
descolada; how devastating the consequences would be if they ever fell behind. 
Just as well. If the colonists did understand, there would be many who would 
say, If it's inevitable that someday the descolada will overwhelm us, then let's 
wipe it out now. If that kills all the piggies then we're sorry, but if it's us 
or them, we choose us. 
It was fine for Ender to take the long view, the philosophical perspective, and 
say, Better for one small human colony to perish than to wipe out an entire 
sentient species. He knew this argument would carry no water with the humans of 
Lusitania. Their own lives were at stake here, and the lives of their children; 
it would be absurd to expect them to be willing to die for the sake of another 
species that they didn't understand and that few of them even liked. It would 
make no sense genetically-- evolution encourages only creatures who are serious 
about protecting their own genes. Even if the Bishop himself declared it to be 
the will of God that the human beings of Lusitania lay down their lives for the 
piggies, there would be precious few who would obey. 
I'm not sure I could make such a sacrifice myself, thought Ender. Even though I 
have no children of my own. Even though I have already lived through the 
destruction of a sentient species-- even though I triggered that destruction 
myself, and I know what a terrible moral burden that is to bear-- I'm not sure I 
could let my fellow human beings die, either by starvation because their food 
crops have been destroyed, or far more painfully by the return of the descolada 
as a disease with the power to consume the human body in days. 
And yet... could I consent to the destruction of the pequeninos? Could I permit 
another xenocide? 
He picked up one of the broken potato stems with its blotchy leaves. He would 
have to take this to Novinha, of course. Novinha would examine it, or Ela would, 
and they'd confirm what was already obvious. Another failure. He put the potato 
stem into a sterile pouch. 
"Speaker." 
It was Planter, Ender's assistant and his closest friend among the piggies. 
Planter was a son of the pequenino named Human, whom Ender had taken into the 
"third life," the tree stage of the pequenino life cycle. Ender held up the 
transparent plastic pouch for Planter to see the leaves inside. 
"Very dead indeed, Speaker," said Planter, with no discernible emotion. That had 
been the most disconcerting thing about working with pequeninos at first-- they 
didn't show emotions in ways that humans could easily, habitually interpret. It 
was one of the greatest barriers to their acceptance by most of the colonists. 
The piggies weren't cute or cuddly; they were merely strange. 
"We'll try again," said Ender. "I think we're getting closer." 
"Your wife wants you," said Planter. The word wife, even translated into a human 
language like Stark, was so loaded with tension for a pequenino that it was 
difficult to speak the word naturally-- Planter almost screeched it. Yet the 
idea of wifeness was so powerful to the pequeninos that, while they could call 
Novinha by her name when they spoke to her directly, when they were speaking to 
Novinha's husband they could only refer to her by her title. 
"I was just about to go see her anyway," said Ender. "Would you measure and 
record these potatoes, please?" 
Planter leaped straight up-- like a popcorn, Ender thought. Though his face 
remained, to human eyes, expressionless, the vertical jump showed his delight. 
Planter loved working with the electronic equipment, both because machines 
fascinated him and because it added greatly to his status among the other 
pequenino males. Planter immediately began unpacking the camera and its computer 
from the bag he always carried with him. 
"When you're done, please prepare this isolated section for flash burning," said 
Ender. 
"Yes yes," said Planter. "Yes yes yes." 
Ender sighed. Pequeninos got so annoyed when humans told them things that they 
already knew. Planter certainly knew the routine when the descolada had adapted 
to a new crop-- the "educated" virus had to be destroyed while it was still in 
isolation. No point in letting the whole community of descolada viruses profit 
from what one strain had learned. So Ender shouldn't have reminded him. And yet 
that was how human beings satisfied their sense of responsibility-- checking 
again even when they knew it was unnecessary. 
Planter was so busy he hardly noticed that Ender was leaving the field. When 
Ender was inside the isolation shed at the townward end of the field, he 
stripped, put his clothes in the purification box, and then did the purification 
dance-- hands up high, arms rotating at the shoulder, turning in a circle, 
squatting and standing again, so that no part of his body was missed by the 
combination of radiation and gases that filled the shed. He breathed deeply 
through mouth and nose, then coughed-- as always-- because the gases were barely 
within the limits of human tolerance. Three full minutes with burning eyes and 
wheezing lungs, while waving his arms and squatting and standing: our ritual of 
obeisance to the almighty descolada. Thus we humiliate ourselves before the 
undisputed master of life on this planet. 
Finally it was done; I've been roasted to a turn, he thought. As fresh air 
finally rushed into the shed, he took his clothes out of the box and put them 
on, still hot. As soon as he left the shed, it would be heated so that every 
surface was far over the proven heat tolerance of the descolada virus. Nothing 
could live in that shed during this final step of purification. Next time 
someone came to the shed it would be absolutely sterile. 
Yet Ender couldn't help but think that somehow the descolada virus would find a 
way through-- if not through the shed, then through the mild disruption barrier 
that surrounded the experimental crop area like an invisible fortress wall. 
Officially, no molecule larger than a hundred atoms could pass through that 
barrier without being broken up. Fences on either side of the barrier kept 
humans and piggies from straying into the fatal area-- but Ender had often 
imagined what it would be like for someone to pass through the disruption field. 
Every cell in the body would be killed instantly as the nucleic acids broke 
apart. Perhaps the body would hold together physically. But in Ender's 
imagination he always saw the body crumbling into dust on the other side of the 
barrier, the breeze carrying it away like smoke before it could hit the ground. 
What made Ender most uncomfortable about the disruption barrier was that it was 
based on the same principle as the Molecular Disruption Device. Designed to be 
used against starships and missiles, it was Ender who turned it against the home 
planet of the buggers when he commanded the human warfleet three thousand years 
ago. And it was the same weapon that was now on its way from Starways Congress 
to Lusitania. According to Jane, Starways Congress had already attempted to send 
the order to use it. She had blocked that by cutting off ansible communications 
between the fleet and the rest of humanity, but there was no telling whether 
some overwrought ship's captain, panicked because his ansible wasn't working, 
might still use it on Lusitania when he got here. 
It was unthinkable, but they had done it-- Congress had sent the order to 
destroy a world. To commit xenocide. Had Ender written the Hive Queen in vain? 
Had they already forgotten? 
But it wasn't "already" to them. It was three thousand years to most people. And 
even though Ender had written the Life of Human, it wasn't believed widely 
enough yet. It hadn't been embraced by the people to such a degree that Congress 
wouldn't dare to act against the pequeninos. 
Why had they decided to do it? Probably for exactly the same purpose as the 
xenobiologists' disruption barrier: to isolate a dangerous infection so it 
couldn't spread into the wider population. Congress was probably worried about 
containing the plague of planetary revolt. But when the fleet reached here, with 
or without orders, they might be as likely to use the Little Doctor as the final 
solution to the descolada problem: If there were no planet Lusitania, there 
would be no self-mutating half-intelligent virus itching for a chance to wipe 
out humanity and all its works. 
It wasn't that long a walk from the experimental fields to the new xenobiology 
station. The path wound over a low hill, skirting the edge of the wood that 
provided father, mother, and living cemetery to this tribe of pequeninos, and 
then on to the north gate in the fence that surrounded the human colony. 
The fence was a sore point with Ender. There was no reason for it to exist 
anymore, now that the policy of minimal contact between humans and pequeninos 
had broken down, and both species passed freely through the gate. When Ender 
arrived on Lusitania, the fence was charged with a field that caused any person 
entering it to suffer excruciating pain. During the struggle to win the right to 
communicate freely with the pequeninos, Ender's oldest stepson, Miro, was 
trapped in the field for several minutes, causing irreversible brain damage. Yet 
Miro's experience was only the most painful and immediate expression of what the 
fence did to the souls of the humans enclosed within it. The psychobarrier had 
been shut off thirty years ago. In all that time, there had been no reason to 
have any barrier between humans and pequeninos-- yet the fence remained. The 
human colonists of Lusitania wanted it that way. They wanted the boundary 
between human and pequenino to remain unbreached. 
That was why the xenobiology labs had been moved from their old location down by 
the river. If pequeninos were to take part in the research, the lab had to be 
close to the fence, and all the experimental fields outside it, so that humans 
and pequeninos wouldn't have occasion to confront each other unexpectedly. 
When Miro left to meet Valentine, Ender had thought he would return to be 
astonished by the great changes in the world of Lusitania. He had thought that 
Miro would see humans and pequeninos living side by side, two species living in 
harmony. Instead, Miro would find the colony nearly unchanged. With rare 
exceptions, the human beings of Lusitania did not long for the close company of 
another species. 
It was a good thing that Ender had helped the hive queen restore the race of 
buggers so far from Milagre. Ender had planned to help buggers and humans 
gradually come to know each other. Instead, he and Novinha and their family had 
been forced to keep the existence of the buggers on Lusitania a close-held 
secret. If the human colonists couldn't deal with the mammal-like pequeninos, it 
was certain that knowing about the insect-like buggers would provoke violent 
xenophobia almost at once. 
I have too many secrets, thought Ender. For all these years I've been a speaker 
for the dead, uncovering secrets and helping people to live in the light of 
truth. Now I no longer tell anyone half of what I know, because if I told the 
whole truth there would be fear, hatred, brutality, murder, war. 
Not far from the gate, but outside it, stood two fathertrees, the one named 
Rooter, the other named Human, planted so that from the gate it would seem that 
Rooter was on the left hand, Human on the right. Human was the pequenino whom 
Ender had been required to ritually kill with his own hands, in order to seal 
the treaty between humans and pequeninos. Then Human was reborn in cellulose and 
chlorophyll, finally a mature adult male, able to sire children. 
At present Human still had enormous prestige, not only among the piggies of this 
tribe, but in many other tribes as well. Ender knew that he was alive; yet, 
seeing the tree, it was impossible for him to forget how Human had died. 
Ender had no trouble dealing with Human as a person, for he had spoken with this 
fathertree many times. What he could not manage was to think of this tree as the 
same person he had known as the pequenino named Human. Ender might understand 
intellectually that it was will and memory that made up a person's identity, and 
that will and memory had passed intact from the pequenino into the fathertree. 
But intellectual understanding did not always bring visceral belief. Human was 
so alien now. 
Yet still he was Human, and he was still Ender's friend; Ender touched the bark 
of the tree as he passed. Then, taking a few steps out of his way, Ender walked 
to the older fathertree named Rooter, and touched his bark also. He had never 
known Rooter as a pequenino-- Rooter had been killed by other hands, and his 
tree was already tall and well-spread before Ender arrived on Lusitania. There 
was no sense of loss to trouble him when Ender talked to Rooter. 
At Rooter's base, among the roots, lay many sticks. Some had been brought here; 
some were shed from Rooter's own branches. They were talking sticks. Pequeninos 
used them to beat a rhythm on the trunk of a fathertree; the fathertree would 
shape and reshape the hollow areas inside his own trunk to change the sound, to 
make a slow kind of speech. Ender could beat the rhythm-- clumsily, but well 
enough to get words from the trees. 
Today, though, Ender wanted no conversation. Let Planter tell the fathertrees 
that another experiment had failed. Ender would talk to Rooter and Human later. 
He would talk to the hive queen. He would talk to Jane. He would talk to 
everybody. And after all the talking, they would be no closer to solving any of 
the problems that darkened Lusitania's future. Because the solution to their 
problems now did not depend on talk. It depended on knowledge and action-- 
knowledge that only other people could learn, actions that only other people 
could perform. There was nothing that Ender could do himself to solve anything. 
All he could do, all he had ever done since his final battle as a child warrior, 
was listen and talk. At other times, in other places, that had been enough. Not 
now. Many different kinds of destruction loomed over Lusitania, some of them set 
in motion by Ender himself, and yet not one of them could now be solved by any 
act or word or thought of Andrew Wiggin. Like all the other citizens of 
Lusitania, his future was in the hands of other people. The difference between 
him and them was that Ender knew all the danger, all the possible consequences 
of every failure or mistake. Who was more cursed, the one who died, unknowing 
until the very moment of his death, or the one who watched his destruction as it 
approached, step by step, for days and weeks and years? 
Ender left the fathertrees and walked on down the well-beaten path toward the 
human colony. Through the gate, through the door of the xenobiology lab. The 
pequenino who served as Ela's most trusted assistant-- named Deaf, though he was 
definitely not hard of hearing-- led him at once to Novinha's office, where Ela, 
Novinha, Quara, and Grego were already waiting. Ender held up the pouch 
containing the fragment of potato plant. 
Ela shook her head; Novinha sighed. But they didn't seem half as disappointed as 
Ender had expected. Clearly there was something else on their minds. 
"I guess we expected that," said Novinha. 
"We still had to try," said Ela. 
"Why did we have to try?" demanded Grego. Novinha's youngest son-- and therefore 
Ender's stepson-- was in his mid-thirties now, a brilliant scientist in his own 
right; but he did seem to relish his role as devil's advocate in all the 
family's discussions, whether they dealt with xenobiology or the color to paint 
the walls. "All we're doing by introducing these new strains is teaching the 
descolada how to get around every strategy we have for killing it. If we don't 
wipe it out soon, it'll wipe us out. And once the descolada is gone, we can grow 
regular old potatoes without any of this nonsense." 
"We can't!" shouted Quara. Her vehemence surprised Ender. Quara was reluctant to 
speak out at the best of times; for her to speak so loudly now was out of 
character. "I tell you that the descolada is alive." 
"And I tell you that a virus is a virus," said Grego. 
It bothered Ender that Grego was calling for the extermination of the 
descolada-- it wasn't like him to so easily call for something that would 
destroy the pequeninos. Grego had practically grown up among the pequenino 
males-- he knew them better, spoke their language better, than anyone. 
"Children, be quiet and let me explain this to Andrew," said Novinha. "We were 
discussing what to do if the potatoes failed, Ela and I, and she told me-- no, 
you explain it, Ela." 
"It's an easy enough concept. Instead of trying to grow plants that inhibit the 
growth of the descolada virus, we need to go after the virus itself." 
"Right," said Grego. 
"Shut up," said Quara. 
"As a kindness to us all, Grego, please do as your sister has so kindly asked," 
said Novinha. 
Ela sighed and went on. "We can't just kill it because that would kill all the 
other native life on Lusitania. So what I propose is trying to develop a new 
strain of descolada that continues to act as the present virus acts in the 
reproductive cycles of all the Lusitanian life forms, but without the ability to 
adapt to new species." 
"You can eliminate that part of the virus?" asked Ender. "You can find it?" 
"Not likely. But I think I can find all the parts of the virus that are active 
in the piggies and in all the other plant-animal pairs, keep those, and discard 
everything else. Then we'd add a rudimentary reproductive ability and set up 
some receptors so it'll respond properly to the appropriate changes in the host 
bodies, put the whole thing in a little organelle, and there we have it-- a 
substitute for the descolada so that the pequeninos and all the other native 
species are safe, while we can live without worry." 
"Then you'll spray all the original descolada virus to wipe them out?" asked 
Ender. "What if there's already a resistant strain?" 
"No, we don't spray them, because spraying wouldn't wipe out the viruses that 
are already incorporated into the bodies of every Lusitanian creature. This is 
the really tricky part--" 
"As if the rest were easy," said Novinha, "making a new organelle out of 
nothing--" 
"We can't just inject these organelles into a few piggies or even into all of 
them, because we'd also have to inject them into every other native animal and 
tree and blade of grass." 
"Can't be done," said Ender. 
"So we have to develop a mechanism to deliver the organelles universally, and at 
the same time destroy the old descolada viruses once and for all." 
"Xenocide," said Quara. 
"That's the argument," said Ela. "Quara says the descolada is sentient." 
Ender looked at his youngest stepdaughter. "A sentient molecule?" 
"They have language, Andrew." 
"When did this happen?" asked Ender. He was trying to imagine how a genetic 
molecule-- even one as long and complex as the descolada virus-- could possibly 
speak. 
"I've suspected it for a long time. I wasn't going to say anything until I was 
sure, but--" 
"Which means she isn't sure," said Grego triumphantly. 
"But I'm almost sure now, and you can't go destroying a whole species until we 
know." 
"How do they speak?" asked Ender. 
"Not like us, of course," said Quara. "They pass information back and forth to 
each other at a molecular level. I first noticed it as I was working on the 
question of how the new resistant strains of the descolada spread so quickly and 
replaced all the old viruses in such a short time. I couldn't solve that problem 
because I was asking the wrong question. They don't replace the old ones. They 
simply pass messages." 
"They throw darts," said Grego. 
"That was my own word for it," said Quara. "I didn't understand that it was 
speech." 
"Because it wasn't speech," said Grego. 
"That was five years ago," said Ender. "You said the darts they send out carry 
the needed genes and then all the viruses that receive the darts revise their 
own structure to include the new gene. That's hardly language." 
"But that isn't the only time they send darts," said Quara. "Those messenger 
molecules are moving in and out all the time, and most of the time they aren't 
incorporated into the body at all. They get read by several parts of the 
descolada and then they're passed on to another one." 
"This is language?" asked Grego. 
"Not yet," said Quara. "But sometimes after a virus reads one of these darts, it 
makes a new dart and sends it out. Here's the part that tells me it's a 
language: The front part of the new dart always begins with a molecular sequence 
similar to the back tag of the dart that it's answering. It holds the thread of 
the conversation together." 
"Conversation," said Grego scornfully. 
"Be quiet or die," said Ela. Even after all these years, Ender realized, Ela's 
voice still had the power to curb Grego's snottiness-- sometimes, at least. 
"I've tracked some of these conversations for as many as a hundred statements 
and answers. Most of them die out much sooner than that. A few of them are 
incorporated into the main body of the virus. But here's the most interesting 
thing-- it's completely voluntary. Sometimes one virus will pick up that dart 
and keep it, while most of the others don't. Sometimes most of the viruses will 
keep a particular dart. But the area where they incorporate these message darts 
is exactly that area that has been hardest to map. It's hardest to map because 
it isn't part of their structure, it's their memory, and individuals are all 
different from each other. They also tend to weed out a few memory fragments 
when they've taken on too many darts." 
"This is all fascinating," said Grego, "but it isn't science. There are plenty 
of explanations for these darts and the random bonding and shedding--" 
"Not random!" said Quara. 
"None of this is language," said Grego. 
Ender ignored the argument, because Jane was whispering in his ear through the 
jewel-like transceiver he wore there. She spoke to him more rarely now than in 
years past. He listened carefully, taking nothing for granted. "She's on to 
something," Jane said. "I've looked at her research and there's something going 
on here that doesn't happen with any other subcellular creature. I've run many 
different analyses on the data, and the more I simulate and test this particular 
behavior of the descolada, the less it looks like genetic coding and the more it 
looks like language. At the moment we can't rule out the possibility that it is 
voluntary." 
When Ender turned his attention back to the argument, Grego was speaking. "Why 
do we have to turn everything we haven't figured out yet into some kind of 
mystical experience?" Grego closed his eyes and intoned, "I have found new life! 
I have found new life!" 
"Stop it!" shouted Quara. 
"This is getting out of hand," said Novinha. "Grego, try to keep this at the 
level of rational discussion." 
"It's hard to, when the whole thing is so irrational. At? agora quem ja imaginou 
microbiologista que se torna namorada de uma mol?cula?" Who ever heard of a 
microbiologist getting a crush on a molecule? 
"Enough!" said Novinha sharply. "Quara is as much a scientist as you are, and--" 

"She was," muttered Grego. 
"And-- if you'll kindly shut up long enough to hear me out-- she has a right to 
be heard." Novinha was quite angry now, but, as usual, Grego seemed unimpressed. 
"You should know by now, Grego, that it's often the ideas that sound most absurd 
and counterintuitive at first that later cause fundamental shifts in the way we 
see the world." 
"Do you really think this is one of those basic discoveries?" asked Grego, 
looking them in the eye, each in turn. "A talking virus? Se Quara sabe tanto, 
porque ela nao diz o que e que aqueles bichos dizem?" If she knows so much about 
it, why doesn't she tell us what these little beasts are saying? It was a sign 
that the discussion was getting out of hand, that he broke into Portuguese 
instead of speaking in Stark, the language of science-- and diplomacy. 
"Does it matter?" asked Ender. 
"Matter!" said Quara. 
Ela looked at Ender with consternation. "It's only the difference between curing 
a dangerous disease and destroying an entire sentient species. I think it 
matters." 
"I meant," said Ender patiently, "does it matter whether we know what they're 
saying." 
"No," said Quara. "We'll probably never understand their language, but that 
doesn't change the fact that they're sentient. What do viruses and human beings 
have to say to each other, anyway?" 
"How about, 'Please stop trying to kill us'?" said Grego. "If you can figure out 
how to say that in virus language, then this might be useful." 
"But Grego," said Quara, with mock sweetness, "do we say that to them, or do 
they say that to us?" 
"We don't have to decide today," said Ender. "We can afford to wait awhile." 
"How do you know?" said Grego. "How do you know that tomorrow afternoon we won't 
all wake up itching and hurting and puking and burning up with fever and finally 
dying because overnight the descolada virus figured out how to wipe us out once 
and for all? It's us or them." 
"I think Grego just showed us why we have to wait," said Ender. "Did you hear 
how he talked about the descolada? It figures out how to wipe us out. Even he 
thinks the descolada has a will and makes decisions." 
"That's just a figure of speech," said Grego. 
"We've all been talking that way," said Ender. "And thinking that way, too. 
Because we all feel it-- that we're at war with the descolada. That it's more 
than just fighting off a disease-- it's like we have an intelligent, resourceful 
enemy who keeps countering all our moves. In all the history of medical 
research, no one has ever fought a disease that had so many ways to defeat the 
strategies used against it." 
"Only because nobody's been fighting a germ with such an oversized and complex 
genetic molecule," said Grego. 
"Exactly," said Ender. "This is a one-of-a-kind virus, and so it may have 
abilities we've never imagined in any species less structurally complex than a 
vertebrate." 
For a moment Ender's words hung in the air, answered by silence; for a moment, 
Ender imagined that he might have served a useful function in this meeting after 
all, that as a mere talker he might have won some kind of agreement. 
Grego soon disabused him of this idea. "Even if Quara's right, even if she's 
dead on and the descolada viruses all have doctorates of philosophy and keep 
publishing dissertations on screwing-up-humans-till-they're-dead, what then? Do 
we all roll over and play dead because the virus that's trying to kill us all is 
so damn smart?" 
Novinha answered calmly. "I think Quara needs to continue with her research-- 
and we need to give her more resources to do it-- while Ela continues with 
hers." 
It was Quara who objected this time. "Why should I bother trying to understand 
them if the rest of you are still working on ways to kill them?" 
"That's a good question, Quara," said Novinha. "On the other hand, why should 
you bother trying to understand them if they suddenly figure out a way to get 
past all our chemical barriers and kill us all?" 
"Us or them," muttered Grego. 
Novinha had made a good decision, Ender knew-- keep both lines of research open, 
and decide later when they knew more. In the meantime, Quara and Grego were both 
missing the point, both assuming that everything hinged on whether or not the 
descolada was sentient. "Even if they're sentient," said Ender, "that doesn't 
mean they're sacrosanct. It all depends whether they're raman or varelse. If 
they're raman-- if we can understand them and they can understand us well enough 
to work out a way of living together-- then fine. We'll be safe, they'll be 
safe." 
"The great peacemaker plans to sign a treaty with a molecule?" asked Grego. 
Ender ignored his mocking tone. "On the other hand, if they're trying to destroy 
us, and we can't find a way to communicate with them, then they're varelse-- 
sentient aliens, but implacably hostile and dangerous. Varelse are aliens we 
can't live with. Varelse are aliens with whom we are naturally and permanently 
engaged in a war to the death, and at that time our only moral choice is to do 
all that's necessary to win." 
"Right," said Grego. 
Despite her brother's triumphant tone, Quara had listened to Ender's words, 
weighed them, and now gave a tentative nod. "As long as we don't start from the 
assumption that they're varelse," said Quara. 
"And even then, maybe there's a middle way," said Ender. "Maybe Ela can find a 
way to replace all the descolada viruses without destroying this 
memory-and-language thing." 
"No!" said Quara, once again fervent. "You can't-- you don't even have the right 
to leave them their memories and take away their ability to adapt. That would be 
like them giving all of us frontal lobotomies. If it's war, then it's war. Kill 
them, but don't leave them their memories while stealing their will." 
"It doesn't matter," said Ela. "It can't be done. As it is, I think I've set 
myself an impossible task. Operating on the descolada isn't easy. Not like 
examining and operating on an animal. How do I anesthetize the molecule so that 
it doesn't heal itself while I'm halfway through the amputation? Maybe the 
descolada isn't much on physics, but it's a hell of a lot better than I am at 
molecular surgery." 
"So far," said Ender. 
"So far we don't know anything," said Grego. "Except that the descolada is 
trying as hard as it can to kill us all, while we're still trying to figure out 
whether we ought to fight back. I'll sit tight for a while longer, but not 
forever. " 
"What about the piggies?" asked Quara. "Don't they have a right to vote on 
whether we transform the molecule that not only allows them to reproduce, but 
probably created them as a sentient species in the first place?" 
"This thing is trying to kill us," said Ender. "As long as the solution Ela 
comes up with can wipe out the virus without interfering with the reproductive 
cycle of the piggies, then I don't think they have any right to object." 
"Maybe they'd feel different about that." 
"Then maybe they'd better not find out what we're doing," said Grego. 
"We don't tell people-- human or pequenino-- about the research we're doing 
here," said Novinha sharply. "It could cause terrible misunderstandings that 
could lead to violence and death." 
"So we humans are the judges of all other creatures," said Quara. 
"No, Quara. We scientists are gathering information," said Novinha. 
"Until we've gathered enough, nobody can judge anything. So the secrecy rule 
goes for everybody here. Quara and Grego both. You tell no one until I say so, 
and I won't say so until we know more." 
"Until you say so," asked Grego impudently, "or until the Speaker for the Dead 
says so?" 
"I'm the head xenobiologist," said Novinha. "The decision on when we know enough 
is mine alone. Is that understood?" 
She waited for everyone there to assent. They all did. 
Novinha stood up. The meeting was over. Quara and Grego left almost immediately; 
Novinha gave Ender a kiss on the cheek and then ushered him and Ela out of her 
office. 
Ender lingered in the lab to talk to Ela. "Is there a way to spread your 
replacement virus throughout the entire population of every native species on 
Lusitania?" 
"I don't know," said Ela. "That's less of a problem than how to get it to every 
cell of an individual organism fast enough that the descolada can't adapt or 
escape. I'll have to create some kind of carrier virus, and I'll probably have 
to model it partly on the descolada itself-- the descolada is the only parasite 
I've seen that invades a host as quickly and thoroughly as I need the carrier 
virus to do it. Ironic-- I'll learn how to replace the descolada by stealing 
techniques from the virus itself." 
"It's not ironic," said Ender, "it's the way the world works. Someone once told 
me that the only teacher who's worth anything to you is your enemy." 
"Then Quara and Grego must be giving each other advanced degrees," said Ela. 
"Their argument is healthy," said Ender. "It forces us to weigh every aspect of 
what we're doing." 
"It'll stop being healthy if one of them decides to bring it up outside the 
family," said Ela. 
"This family doesn't tell its business to strangers," said Ender. "I of all 
people should know that." 
"On the contrary, Ender. You of all people should know how eager we are to talk 
to a stranger-- when we think our need is great enough to justify it." 
Ender had to admit that she was right. Getting Quara and Grego, Miro and Quim 
and Olhado to trust him enough to speak to him, that had been hard when Ender 
first came to Lusitania. But Ela had spoken to him from the start, and so had 
all of Novinha's other children. So, in the end, had Novinha herself. The family 
was intensely loyal, but they were also strong-willed and opinionated and there 
wasn't a one of them who didn't trust his own judgment above anyone else's. 
Grego or Quara, either one of them, might well decide that telling somebody else 
was in the best interests of Lusitania or humanity or science, and there would 
go the rule of secrecy. 
Just the way the rule of noninterference with the piggies had been broken before 
Ender ever got here. 
How nice, thought Ender. One more possible source of disaster that is completely 
out of my power to control. 
Leaving the lab, Ender wished, as he had many times before, that Valentine were 
here. She was the one who was good at sorting out ethical dilemmas. She'd be 
here soon-- but soon enough? Ender understood and mostly agreed with the 
viewpoints put forward by Quara and Grego both. What stung most was the need for 
such secrecy that Ender couldn't even speak to the pequeninos, not even Human 
himself, about a decision that would affect them as much as it would affect any 
colonist from Earth. And yet Novinha was right. To bring the matter out into the 
open now, before they even knew what was possible-- that would lead to confusion 
at best, anarchy and bloodshed at worst. The pequeninos were peaceful now-- but 
the species' history was bloody with war. 
As Ender emerged from the gate, heading back toward the experimental fields, he 
saw Quara standing beside the fathertree Human, sticks in her hand, engaged in 
conversation. She hadn't actually beat on his trunk, or Ender would have heard 
it. So she must want privacy. That was all right. Ender would take a longer way 
around, so he wouldn't come close enough to overhear. 
But when she saw Ender looking her way, Quara immediately ended her conversation 
with Human and took off at a brisk walk down the path toward the gate Of course 
this led her right by Ender. 
"Telling secrets?" asked Ender. He had meant his remark as mere banter. Only 
when the words came out of his mouth and Quara got such a furtive look on her 
face did Ender realize exactly what secret it might have been that Quara had 
been telling. And her words confirmed his suspicion. 
"Mother's idea of fairness isn't always mine," said Quara. "Neither is yours, 
for that matter." 
He had known she might do this, but it never occurred to him she would do it so 
quickly after promising not to. "But is fairness always the most important 
consideration?" asked Ender. 
"It is to me," said Quara. 
She tried to turn away and go on through the gate, but Ender caught her arm. 
"Let go of me." 
"Telling Human is one thing," said Ender. "He's very wise. But don't tell 
anybody else. Some of the pequeninos, some of the males, they can be pretty 
aggressive if they think they have reason." 
"They're not just males," said Quara. "They call themselves husbands. Maybe we 
should call them men." She smiled at Ender in triumph. "You're not half so 
open-minded as you like to think." Then she brushed past him and went on through 
the gate into Milagre. 
Ender walked up to Human and stood before him. "What did she tell you, Human? 
Did she tell you that I'll die before I let anyone wipe out the descolada, if 
doing so would hurt you and your people?" 
Of course Human had no immediate answer for him, for Ender had no intention of 
starting to beat on his trunk with the talking sticks used to produce Father 
Tongue; if he did, the pequenino males would hear and come running. There was no 
private speech between pequeninos and fathertrees. If a fathertree wanted 
privacy, he could always talk silently with the other fathertrees-- they spoke 
to each other mind to mind, the way the hive queen spoke to the buggers that 
served as her eyes and ears and hands and feet. If only I were part of that 
communications network, thought Ender. Instantaneous speech consisting of pure 
thought, projected anywhere in the universe. 
Still, he had to say something to help counteract the sort of thing he knew 
Quara would have said. "Human, we're doing all we can to save human beings and 
pequeninos, both. We'll even try to save the descolada virus, if we can. Ela and 
Novinha are very good at what they do. So are Grego and Quara, for that matter. 
But for now, please trust us and say nothing to anyone else. Please. If humans 
and pequeninos come to understand the danger we're in before we're ready to take 
steps to contain it, the results would be violent and terrible." 
There was nothing else to say. Ender went back to the experimental fields. 
Before nightfall, he and Planter completed the measurements, then burned and 
flashed the entire field. No large molecules survived inside the disruption 
barrier. They had done all they could to ensure that whatever the descolada 
might have learned from this field was forgotten. 
What they could never do was get rid of the viruses they carried within their 
own cells, human and pequenino alike. What if Quara was right? What if the 
descolada inside the barrier, before it died, managed to "tell" the viruses that 
Planter and Ender carried inside them about what had been learned from this new 
strain of potato? About the defenses that Ela and Novinha had tried to build 
into it? About the ways this virus had found to defeat their tactics? 
If the descolada were truly intelligent, with a language to spread information 
and pass behaviors from one individual to many others, then how could Ender-- 
how could any of them-- hope to be victorious in the end? In the long run, it 
might well be that the descolada was the most adaptable species, the one most 
capable of subduing worlds and eliminating rivals, stronger than humans or 
piggies or buggers or any other living creatures on any settled worlds. That was 
the thought that Ender took to bed with him that night, the thought that 
preoccupied him even as he made love with Novinha, so that she felt the need to 
comfort him as if he, not she, were the one burdened with the cares of a world. 
He tried to apologize but soon realized the futility of it. Why add to her 
worries by telling of his own? 



Human listened to Ender's words, but he couldn't agree with what Ender asked of 
him. Silence? Not when the humans were creating new viruses that might well 
transform the life cycle of the pequeninos. Oh, Human wouldn't tell the immature 
males and females. But he could-- and would-- tell all the other fathertrees 
throughout Lusitania. They had a right to know what was going on, and then 
decide together what, if anything, to do. 
Before nightfall, every fathertree in every wood knew all that Human knew: of 
the human plans, and of his estimation of how much they could be trusted. Most 
agreed with him-- we'll let the human beings proceed for now. But in the 
meantime we'll watch carefully, and prepare for a time that might come, even 
though we hope it won't, when humans and pequeninos go to war against each 
other. We cannot fight and hope to win-- but maybe, before they slaughter us, we 
can find a way for some of us to flee. 
So, before dawn, they had made plans and arrangements with the hive queen, the 
only nonhuman source of high technology on Lusitania. By the next nightfall, the 
work of building a starship to leave Lusitania had already begun. 
Table of Contents



Chapter 7 -- Secret Maid
<Is it true that in the old days, when you sent out your starships to settle 
many worlds, you could always talk to each other as if you stood in the same 
forest?> 
<We assume that it will be the same for you. When the new fathertrees have 
grown, they'll be present with you. The philotic connections are unaffected by 
distance.> 
<But will we be connected? We'll be sending no trees on the voyage. Only 
brothers, a few wives, and a hundred little mothers to give birth to new 
generations. The voyage will last decades at least. As soon as they arrive, the 
best of the brothers will be sent on to the third life, but it will take at 
least a year before the first of the fathertrees grows old enough to sire young 
ones. How will the first father on that new world know how to speak to us? How 
can we greet him, when we don't know where he is?> 
  
  
  
Sweat ran down Qing-jao's face. Bent over as she was, the drops trickled along 
her cheeks, under her eyes, and down to the tip of her nose. From there her 
sweat dropped into the muddy water of the rice paddy, or onto the new rice 
plants that rose only slightly above the water's surface. 
"Why don't you wipe your face, holy one?" 
Qing-jao looked up to see who was near enough to speak to her. Usually the 
others on her righteous labor crew did not work close by-- it made them too 
nervous, being with one of the godspoken. 
It was a girl, younger than Qing-jao, perhaps fourteen, boyish in the body, with 
her hair cropped very short. She was looking at Qing-jao with frank curiosity. 
There was an openness about her, an utter lack of shyness, that Qing-jao found 
strange and a little displeasing. Her first thought was to ignore the girl. 
But to ignore her would be arrogant; it would be the same as saying, Because I 
am godspoken, I do not need to answer when I am spoken to. No one would ever 
suppose that the reason she didn't answer was because she was so preoccupied 
with the impossible task she had been given by the great Han Fei-tzu that it was 
almost painful to think of anything else. 
So she answered-- but with a question. "Why should I wipe my face?" 
"Doesn't it tickle? The sweat, dripping down? Doesn't it get in your eyes and 
sting?" 
Qing-jao lowered her face to her work for a few moments, and this time 
deliberately noticed how it felt. It did tickle, and the sweat in her eyes did 
sting. In fact it was quite uncomfortable and annoying. Carefully, Qing-jao 
unbent herself to stand straight-- and now she noticed the pain of it, the way 
her back protested against the change of posture. "Yes," she said to the girl. 
"It tickles and stings." 
"Then wipe it," the girl said. "With your sleeve." 
Qing-jao looked at her sleeve. It was already soaked with the sweat of her arms. 
"Does wiping help?" she asked. 
Now it was the girl's turn to discover something she hadn't thought about. For a 
moment she looked thoughtful; then she wiped her forehead with her sleeve. 
She grinned. "No, holy one. It doesn't help a bit." 
Qing-jao nodded gravely and bent down again to her work. Only now the tickling 
of the sweat, the stinging of her eyes, the pain in her back, it all bothered 
her very much. Her discomfort took her mind off her thoughts, instead of the 
other way around. This girl, whoever she was, had just added to her misery by 
pointing it out-- and yet, ironically, by making Qing-jao aware of the misery of 
her body, she had freed her from the hammering of the questions in her mind. 
Qing-jao began to laugh. 
"Are you laughing at me, holy one?" asked the girl. 
"I'm thanking you in my own way," said Qing-jao. "You've lifted a great burden 
from my heart, even if only for a moment." 
"You're laughing at me for telling you to wipe your forehead even though it 
doesn't help." 
"I say that is not why I'm laughing," said Qing-jao. She stood again and looked 
the girl in the eye. "I don't lie." 
The girl looked abashed-- but not half so much as she should have. When the 
godspoken used the tone of voice Qing-jao had just used, others immediately 
bowed and showed respect. But this girl only listened, sized up Qingjao's words, 
and then nodded. 
There was only one conclusion Qing-jao could reach. "Are you also godspoken?" 
she asked. 
The girl's eyes went wide. "Me?" she said. "My parents are both very low people. 
My father spreads manure in the fields and my mother washes up in a restaurant." 

Of course that was no answer at all. Though the gods most often chose the 
children of the godspoken, they had been known to speak to some whose parents 
had never heard the voice of the gods. Yet it was a common belief that if your 
parents were of very low status, the gods would have no interest in you, and in 
fact it was very rare for the gods to speak to those whose parents were not well 
educated. 
"What's your name?" asked Qing-jao. 
"Si Wang-mu," said the girl. 
Qing-jao gasped and covered her mouth, to forbid herself from laughing. But 
Wang-mu did not look angry-- she only grimaced and looked impatient. 
"I'm sorry," said Qing-jao, when she could speak. "But that is the name of--" 
"The Royal Mother of the West," said Wang-mu. "Can I help it that my parents 
chose such a name for me?" 
"It's a noble name," said Qing-jao. "My ancestor-of-the-heart was a great woman, 
but she was only mortal, a poet. Yours is one of the oldest of the gods." 
"What good is that?" asked Wang-mu. "My parents were too presumptuous, naming me 
for such a distinguished god. That's why the gods will never speak to me." 
It made Qing-jao sad, to hear Wang-mu speak with such bitterness. If only she 
knew how eagerly Qing-jao would trade places with her. To be free of the voice 
of the gods! Never to have to bow to the floor and trace the grain of the wood, 
never to wash her hands except when they got dirty... 
Yet Qing-jao couldn't explain this to the girl. How could she understand? To 
Wang-mu, the godspoken were the privileged elite, infinitely wise and 
unapproachable. It would sound like a lie if Qing-jao explained that the burdens 
of the godspoken were far greater than the rewards. 
Except that to Wang-mu, the godspoken had not been unapproachable-- she had 
spoken to Qing-jao, hadn't she? So Qing-jao decided to say what was in her heart 
after all. "Si Wang-mu, I would gladly live the rest of my life blind, if only I 
could be free of the voice of the gods." 
Wang-mu's mouth opened in shock, her eyes widened. 
It had been a mistake to speak. Qing-jao regretted it at once. "I was joking," 
said Qing-jao. 
"No," said Wang-mu. "Now you're lying. Then you were telling the truth." She 
came closer, slogging carelessly through the paddy, trampling rice plants as she 
came. "All my life I've seen the godspoken borne to the temple in their sedan 
chairs, wearing their bright silks, all people bowing to them, every computer 
open to them. When they speak their language is music. Who wouldn't want to be 
such a one?" 
Qing-jao could not answer openly, could not say: Every day the gods humiliate me 
and make me do stupid, meaningless tasks to purify myself, and the next day it 
starts again. "You won't believe me, Wang-mu, but this life, out here in the 
fields, this is better." 
"No!" cried Wang-mu. "You have been taught everything. You know all that there 
is to know! You can speak many languages, you can read every kind of word, you 
can think of thoughts that are as far above mine as my thoughts are above the 
thoughts of a snail." 
"You speak very clearly and well," said Qing-jao. "You must have been to 
school." 
"School!" said Wang-mu scornfully. "What do they care about school for children 
like me? We learned to read, but only enough to read prayers and street signs. 
We learned our numbers, but only enough to do the shopping. We memorized sayings 
of the wise, but only the ones that taught us to be content with our place in 
life and obey those who are wiser than we are." 
Qing-jao hadn't known that schools could be like that. She thought that children 
in school learned the same things that she had learned from her tutors. But she 
saw at once that Si Wang-mu must be telling the truth-- one teacher with thirty 
students couldn't possibly teach all the things that Qing-jao had learned as one 
student with many teachers. 
"My parents are very low," said Wang-mu. "Why should they waste time teaching me 
more than a servant needs to know? Because that's my highest hope in life, to be 
washed very clean and become a servant in a rich man's house. They were very 
careful to teach me how to clean a floor." 
Qing-jao thought of the hours she had spent on the floors of her house, tracing 
woodgrains from wall to wall. It had neer once occurred to her how much work it 
was for the servants to keep the floors so clean and polished that Qing-jao's 
gowns never got visibly dirty, despite all her crawling. 
"I know something about floors," said Qing-jao. 
"You know something about everything," said Wang-mu bitterly. "So don't tell me 
how hard it is to be godspoken. The gods have never given a thought to me, and I 
tell you that is worse!" 
"Why weren't you afraid to speak to me?" asked Qing-jao. 
"I decided not to be afraid of anything," said Wang-mu. "What could you do to me 
that's worse than my life will already be anyway?" 
I could make you wash your hands until they bleed every day of your life. 
But then something turned around in Qing-jao's mind, and she saw that this girl 
might not think that was worse. Perhaps Wang-mu would gladly wash her hands 
until there was nothing left but a bloody fringe of tattered skin on the stumps 
of her wrists, if only she could learn all that Qing-jao knew. Qing-jao had felt 
so oppressed by the impossibility of the task her father had set for her, yet it 
was a task that, succeed or fail, would change history. Wang-mu would live her 
whole life and never be set a single task that would not need to be done again 
the next day; all of Wang-mu's life would be spent doing work that would only be 
noticed or spoken of if she did it badly. Wasn't the work of a servant almost as 
fruitless, in the end, as the rituals of purification? 
"The life of a servant must be hard," said Qing-jao. "I'm glad for your sake 
that you haven't been hired out yet." 
"My parents are waiting in the hope that I'll be pretty when I become a woman. 
Then they'll get a better hiring bonus for putting me out for service. Perhaps a 
rich man's bodyservant will want me for his wife; perhaps a rich lady will want 
me for her secret maid." 
"You're already pretty," said Qing-jao. 
Wang-mu shrugged. "My friend Fan-liu is in service, and she says that the ugly 
ones work harder, but the men of the house leave them alone. Ugly ones are free 
to think their own thoughts. They don't keep having to say pretty things to 
their ladies." 
Qing-jao thought of the servants in her father's house. She knew her father 
would never bother any of the serving women. And nobody had to say pretty things 
to her. "It's different in my house," she said. 
"But I don't serve in your house," said Wang-mu. 
Now, suddenly, the whole picture became clear. Wang-mu had not spoken to her by 
impulse. Wang-mu had spoken to her in hopes of being offered a place as a 
servant in the house of a godspoken lady. For all she knew, the gossip in town 
was all about the young godspoken lady Han Qing-jao who was through with her 
tutors and had embarked on her first adult task-- and how she still had neither 
a husband nor a secret maid. Si Wang-mu had probably wangled her way onto the 
same righteous labor crew as Qing-jao in order to have exactly this 
conversation. 
For a moment Qing-jao was angry. Then she thought: Why shouldn't Wang-mu do 
exactly as she has done? The worst that could happen to her is that I'd guess 
what she was doing, become angry, and not hire her. Then she'd be no worse off 
than before. And if I didn't guess what she was doing, and so started to like 
her and hired her, she'd be secret maid to a godspoken lady. If I were in her 
place, wouldn't I do the same? 
"Do you think you can fool me?" asked Qing-jao. "Do you think I don't know that 
you want me to hire you for my servant?" 
Wang-mu looked flustered, angry, afraid. Wisely, though, she said nothing. 
"Why don't you answer me with anger?" asked Qing-jao. "Why don't you deny that 
you spoke to me only so I'd hire you?" 
"Because it's true," said Wang-mu. "I'll leave you alone now." 
That was what Qing-jao hoped to hear-- an honest answer. She had no intention of 
letting Wang-mu go. "How much of what you told me is true? About wanting a good 
education? Wanting to do something better in your life than serving work?" 
"All of it," Wang-mu said, and there was passion in her voice. "But what is that 
to you? You bear the terrible burden of the voice of the gods." 
Wang-mu spoke her last sentence with such contemptuous sarcasm that Qing-jao 
almost laughed aloud; but she contained her laughter. There was no reason to 
make Wang-mu any angrier than she already was. "Si Wang-mu, 
daughter-of-the-heart to the Royal Mother of the West, I will hire you as my 
secret maid, but only if you agree to the following conditions. First, you will 
let me be your teacher, and study all the lessons I assign to you. Second, you 
will always speak to me as an equal and never bow to me or call me 'holy one.' 
And third--" 
"How could I do that?" said Wang-mu. "If I don't treat you with respect others 
will say I'm unworthy. They'd punish me when you weren't looking. It would 
disgrace us both." 
"Of course you'll use respect when others can see us," said Qing-jao. "But when 
we're alone, just you and me, we'll treat each other as equals or I'll send you 
away." 
"The third condition?" 
"You'll never tell another soul a single word I say to you." 
Wang-mu's face showed her anger plainly. "A secret maid never tells. Barriers 
are placed in our minds." 
"The barriers help you remember not to tell," said Qing-jao. "But if you want to 
tell, you can get around them. And there are those who will try to persuade you 
to tell." Qing-jao thought of her father's career, of all the secrets of 
Congress that he held in his head. He told no one; he had no one he could speak 
to except, sometimes, Qing-jao. If Wang-mu turned out to be trustworthy, 
Qing-jao would have someone. She would never be as lonely as her father was. 
"Don't you understand me?" Qing-jao asked. "Others will think I'm hiring you as 
a secret maid. But you and I will know that you're really coming to be my 
student, and I'm really bringing you to be my friend." 
Wang-mu looked at her in wonder. "Why would you do this, when the gods have 
already told you how I bribed the foreman to let me be on your crew and not to 
interrupt us while I talked to you?" 
The gods had told her no such thing, of course, but Qing-jao only smiled. "Why 
doesn't it occur to you that maybe the gods want us to be friends?" 
Abashed, Wang-mu clasped her hands together and laughed nervously; Qing-jao took 
the girl's hands in hers and found that Wang-mu was trembling. So she wasn't as 
bold as she seemed. 
Wang-mu looked down at their hands, and Qing-jao followed her gaze. They were 
covered with dirt and muck, dried on now because they had been standing so long, 
their hands out of the water. "We're so dirty," said Wang-mu. 
Qing-jao had long since learned to disregard the dirtiness of righteous labor, 
for which no penance was required. "My hands have been much filthier than this," 
said Qing-jao. "Come with me when our righteous labor is finished. I will tell 
our plan to my father, and he will decide if you can be my secret maid." 
Wang-mu's expression soured. Qing-jao was glad that her face was so easy to 
read. "What's wrong?" said Qing-jao. 
"Fathers always decide everything," said Wang-mu. 
Qing-jao nodded, wondering why Wang-mu would bother to say something so obvious. 
"That's the beginning of wisdom," said Qing-jao. "Besides, my mother is dead." 
Righteous labor always ended early in the afternoon. Officially this was to give 
people who lived far from the fields time to return to their homes. Actually, 
though, it was in recognition of the custom of making a party at the end of 
righteous labor. Because they had worked right through the afternoon nap, many 
people felt giddy after righteous labor, as if they had stayed up all night. 
Others felt sluggish and surly. Either one was an excuse for drinking and dining 
with friends and then collapsing into bed hours early to make up for the lost 
sleep and the hard labor of the day. 
Qing-jao was of the kind who felt out of sorts; Wang-mu was obviously of the 
giddy kind. Or perhaps it was simply the fact that the Lusitania Fleet weighed 
heavily on Qing-jao's mind, while Wang-mu had just been accepted as secret maid 
by a godspoken girl. Qing-jao led Wang-mu through the process of applying for 
employment with the House of Han-- washing, fingerprinting, the security check-- 
until she finally despaired of listening to Wang-mu's bubbling voice another 
moment and withdrew. 
As she walked up the stairs to her room, Qing-jao could hear Wang-mu asking 
fearfully, "Have I made my new mistress angry?" And Ju Kung-mei, the guardian of 
the house, answered, "The godspoken answer to other voices than yours, little 
one." It was a kind answer. Qing-jao often admired the gentleness and wisdom of 
those her father had hired into his house. She wondered if she had chosen as 
wisely in her first hiring. 
No sooner did she think of this worry than she knew she had been wicked to make 
such a decision so quickly, and without consulting with her father beforehand. 
Wang-mu would be found to be hopelessly unsuitable, and Father would rebuke her 
for having acted foolishly. 
Imagining Father's rebuke was enough to bring the immediate reproof of the gods. 
Qing-jao felt unclean. She rushed to her room and closed the door. It was 
bitterly ironic that she could think over and over again how hateful it was to 
perform the rituals the gods demanded, how empty their worship was-- but let her 
think a disloyal thought about Father or Starways Congress, and she had to do 
penance at once. 
Usually she would spend a half hour, an hour, perhaps longer, resisting the need 
for penance, enduring her own filthiness. Today, though, she hungered for the 
ritual of purification. In its own way, the ritual made sense, it had a 
structure, a beginning and end, rules to follow. Not at all like the problem of 
the Lusitania Fleet. 
On her knees, she deliberately chose the narrowest, faintest grain in the palest 
board she could see. This would be a hard penance; perhaps then the gods would 
judge her clean enough that they could show her the solution to the problem 
Father had set for her. It took her half an hour to make her way across the 
room, for she kept losing the grain and had to start over each time. 
At the end, exhausted from righteous labor and eyesore from line-tracing, she 
wanted desperately to sleep; instead, she sat on the floor before her terminal 
and called up the summary of her work so far. After examining and eliminating 
all the useless absurdities that had cropped up during the investigation, 
Qing-jao had come up with three broad categories of possibility. First, that the 
disappearance was caused by some natural event that, at lightspeed, had simply 
not become visible yet to the watching astronomers. Second, that the loss of 
ansible communications was the result of either sabotage or a command decision 
in the fleet. Third, that the loss of ansible communications was caused by some 
planetside conspiracy. The first category was virtually eliminated by the way 
the fleet was traveling. The starships were simply not close enough together for 
any known natural phenomenon to destroy them all at once. The fleet had not 
rendezvoused before setting out-- the ansible made such things a waste of time. 
Instead, all the ships were moving toward Lusitania from wherever they happened 
to be when they were assigned to the fleet. Even now, with only a year or so of 
travel left before all were in orbit around Lusitania's star, they were so far 
apart that no conceivable natural event could possibly have affected them all at 
once. 
The second category was made almost as unlikely by the fact that the entire 
fleet had disappeared, without exception. Could any human plan possibly work 
with such perfect efficiency-- and without leaving any evidence of advance 
planning in any of the databases or personality profiles or communications logs 
that were maintained in planetside computers? Nor was there the slightest 
evidence that anyone had altered or hidden any data, or masked any 
communications to avoid leaving behind a trail of evidence. If it was a 
fleetside plan, there was neither evidence nor concealment nor error. 
The same lack of evidence made the idea of a planetside conspiracy even more 
unlikely. And making all these possibilities still less possible was the sheer 
simultaneity of it. As near as anyone could determine, every single ship had 
broken off ansible communications at almost exactly the same time. There might 
have been a time lag of seconds, perhaps even minutes-- but never as long as 
five minutes, never a gap long enough for someone on one ship to remark about 
the disappearance of another. 
The summary was elegant in its simplicity. There was nothing left. The evidence 
was as complete as it would ever be, and it made every conceivable explanation 
inconceivable. 
Why would Father do this to me? she wondered, not for the first time. 
Immediately-- as usual-- she felt unclean even for asking such a question, for 
doubting her father's perfect correctness in all his decisions. She needed to 
wash, just a little, to take away the impurity of her doubt. 
But she didn't wash. Instead she let the voice of the gods swell inside her, let 
their command grow more urgent. This time she wasn't resisting out of a 
righteous desire to grow more disciplined. This time she was deliberately trying 
to attract as much attention as possible from the gods. Only when she was 
panting with the need to cleanse herself, only when she shuddered at the most 
casual touch of her own flesh-- a hand brushing a knee-- only then did she voice 
her question. 
"You did it, didn't you?" she said to the gods. "What no human being could have 
done, you must have done. You reached out and cut off the Lusitania Fleet." 
The answer came, not in words, but in the ever-increasing need for purification. 

"But Congress and the admiralty are not of the Way. They can't imagine the 
golden door into the City of the Jade Mountain in the West. If Father says to 
them, 'The gods stole your fleet to punish you for wickedness,' they'll only 
despise him. If they despise him, our greatest living statesman, they'll despise 
us as well. And if Path is shamed because of Father, it will destroy him. Is 
that why you did this thing?" 
She began to weep. "I won't let you destroy my father. I'll find another way. 
I'll find an answer that will satisfy them. I defy you!" 
No sooner had she said the words than the gods sent her the most overpowering 
sense of her own abominable filthiness she had ever felt. It was so strong it 
took her breath away, and she fell forward, clutching at her terminal. She tried 
to speak, to plead for forgiveness, but she gagged instead, swallowed hard to 
keep from retching. She felt as though her hands were spreading slime on 
everything she touched; as she struggled to her feet, her gown clung across her 
flesh as if it were covered with thick black grease. 
But she did not wash. Nor did she fall to the ground and trace lines in the 
wood. Instead she staggered to the door, meaning to go downstairs to her 
father's room. 
The doorway caught her, though. Not physically-- the door swung open easily as 
ever-- but still she could not pass. She had heard of such things, how the gods 
captured their disobedient servants in doorways, but it had never happened to 
her before. She couldn't understand how she was being held. Her body was free to 
move. There was no barrier. But she felt such a sickening dread at the thought 
of walking through that she knew she couldn't do it, knew that the gods required 
some sort of penance, some sort of purification or they'd never let her leave 
the room. Not woodgrain-tracing, not handwashing. What did the gods require? 
Then, all at once, she knew why the gods wouldn't let her pass through the door. 
It was the oath that Father had required of her for her mother's sake. The oath 
that she would always serve the gods, no matter what. And here she had been on 
the verge of defiance. Mother, forgive me! I will not defy the gods. But still I 
must go to Father and explain to him the terrible predicament in which the gods 
have placed us. Mother, help me pass through this door! 
As if in answer to her plea, it came to her how she might pass through the door. 
All she needed to do was fix her gaze on a point in the air just outside the 
upper-right corner of the door, and while never letting her gaze move from that 
spot, step backward through the door with her right foot, place her left hand 
through, then pivot leftward, bringing her left leg backward through the 
doorway, then her right arm forward. It was complicated and difficult, like a 
dance, but by moving very slowly and carefully, she did it. 
The door released her. And though she still felt the pressure of her own 
filthiness, some of the intensity had faded. It was bearable. She could breathe 
without gasping, speak without gagging. 
She went downstairs and rang the little bell outside her father's door. 
"Is it my daughter, my Gloriously Bright?" asked Father. 
"Yes, noble one," said Qing-jao. 
"I'm ready to receive you." 
She opened Father's door and stepped through-- no ritual was needed this time. 
She strode at once to where he sat on a chair before his terminal and knelt 
before him on the floor. 
"I have examined your Si Wang-mu," said Father, "and I believe your first hiring 
has been a worthy one." 
It took a moment for Father's words to make sense. Si Wang-mu? Why did Father 
speak to her of an ancient god? She looked up in surprise, then looked where 
Father was looking-- at a serving girl in a clean gray gown, kneeling demurely, 
looking at the floor. It took a moment to remember the girl from the rice paddy, 
to remeber that she was to be Qing-jao's secret maid. How could she have 
forgotten? It was only a few hours ago that Qingjao left her. Yet in that time 
Qing-jao had battled with the gods, and if she hadn't won, at least she had not 
yet lost. What was the hiring of a servant compared to a struggle with the gods? 

"Wang-mu is impertinent and ambitious," said Father, "but she is also honest and 
far more intelligent than I would have expected. I assume from her bright mind 
and sharp ambition that you both intend for her to be your student as well as 
your secret maid." 
Wang-mu gasped, and when Qing-jao glanced over at her, she saw how horrified the 
girl looked. Oh, yes-- she must think that I think that she told Father of our 
secret plan. "Don't worry, Wang-mu," said Qing-jao. "Father almost always 
guesses secrets. I know you didn't tell." 
"I wish more secrets were as easy as this one," said Father. "My daughter, I 
commend you for your worthy generosity. The gods will honor you for it, as I do 
also." 
The words of praise came like unguent to a stinging wound. Perhaps this was why 
her rebelliousness had not destroyed her, why some god had taken mercy on her 
and shown her how to get through the door of her room just now. Because she had 
judged Wang-mu with mercy and wisdom, forgiving the girl's impertinence, 
Qing-jao herself was being forgiven, at least a little, for her own outrageous 
daring. 
Wang-mu does not repent of her ambition, thought Qing-jao. Neither will I repent 
of my decision. I must not let Father be destroyed because I can't find-- or 
invent-- a non-divine explanation for the disappearance of the Lusitania Fleet. 
And yet, how can I defy the purposes of the gods? They have hidden or destroyed 
the fleet. And the works of the gods must be recognized by their obedient 
servants, even if they must remain hidden from unbelievers on other worlds. 
"Father," said Qing-jao, "I must speak to you about my task." 
Father misunderstood her hesitation. "We can speak in front of Wang-mu. She's 
been hired now as your secret maid. The hiring bonus has been sent to her 
father, the first barriers of secrecy have been suggested to her mind. We can 
trust her to hear us and never tell." 
"Yes, Father," said Qing-jao. In truth she had again forgotten that Wang-mu was 
even there. "Father, I know who has hidden the Lusitania Fleet. But you must 
promise me that you will never tell it to Starways Congress." 
Father, who was usually placid, looked mildly distressed. "I can't promise such 
a thing," he said. "It would be unworthy of me to be such a disloyal servant. " 
What could she do, then? How could she speak? And yet how could she keep from 
speaking? "Who is your master?" she cried. "Congress or the gods?" 
"First the gods," said Father. "They are always first." 
"Then I must tell you that I have discovered that the gods are the ones who have 
hidden the fleet from us, Father. But if you tell this to the Congress, they'll 
mock you and you'll be ruined." Then another thought occurred to her. "If it was 
the gods who stopped the fleet, Father, then the fleet must have been against 
the will of the gods after all. And if Starways Congress sent the fleet against 
the will of--" 
Father held up his hand for her to be silent. She immediately stopped speaking 
and bowed her head. She waited. 
"Of course it's the gods," said Father. 
His words came as both a relief and a humiliation. Of course, he had said. Had 
he known this all along? 
"The gods do all things that are done in the universe. But don't assume that you 
know why. You say they must have stopped the fleet because they oppose its 
mission. But I say that Congress couldn't have sent the fleet in the first place 
if the gods hadn't willed it. So why couldn't it be that the gods stopped the 
fleet because its mission was so great and noble that humanity was not worthy of 
it? Or what if they hid the fleet because it would provide a difficult test for 
you? One thing is certain: The gods have permitted Starways Congress to hold 
sway over most of humanity. As long as they have the mandate of heaven, we of 
Path will follow their edicts without opposition." 
"I didn't mean to oppose ..." She could not finish such an obvious falsehood. 
Father understood perfectly, of course. "I hear how your voice fades and your 
words trail off into nothing. This is because you know your words are not true. 
You meant to oppose Starways Congress, in spite of all I have taught you." Then 
his voice grew gentler. "For my sake you meant to do it." 
"You're my ancestor. I owe you a higher duty than I owe them." 
"I'm your father. I won't become your ancestor until I'm dead." 
"For Mother's sake, then. If they ever lose the mandate of heaven, then I will 
be their most terrible enemy, for I will serve the gods." Yet even as she said 
this, she knew her words were a dangerous half-truth. Until only a few moments 
ago-- until she had been caught in the door-- hadn't she been perfectly willing 
to defy even the gods for her father's sake? I am the most unworthy, terrible 
daughter, she thought. 
"I tell you now, my Gloriously Bright daughter, that opposing Congress will 
never be for my good. Or yours either. But I forgive you for loving me to 
excess. It is the gentlest and kindest of vices." 
He smiled. It calmed her agitation, to see him smile, though she knew that she 
didn't deserve his approbation. Qing-jao was able to think again, to return to 
the puzzle. "You knew that the gods did this, and yet you made me search for the 
answer." 
"But were you asking the right question?" said Father. "The question we need 
answered is: How did the gods do it?" 
"How can I know?" answered Qing-jao. "They might have destroyed e fleet or 
hidden it, or carried it away to some secret place in the West--" 
"Qing-jao! Look at me. Hear me well." 
She looked. His stern command helped calm her, give her focus. 
"This is something I have tried to teach you all your life, but now you must 
learn it, Qing-jao. The gods are the cause of everything that happens, but they 
never act except in disguise. Do you hear me?" 
She nodded. She'd heard those words a hundred times. 
"You hear and yet you don't understand me, even now," said Father. "The gods 
have chosen the people of Path, Qing-jao. Only we are privileged to hear their 
voice. Only we are allowed to see that they are the cause of all that is and was 
and will be. To all other people their works remain hidden, a mystery. Your task 
is not to discover the true cause of the disappearance of the Lusitania Fleet-- 
all of Path would know at once that the true cause is that the gods wished it to 
happen. Your task is to discover the disguise that the gods have created for 
this event." 
Qing-jao felt light-headed, dizzy. She had been so certain that she had the 
answer, that she had fulfilled her task. Now it was slipping away. The answer 
was still true, but her task was different now. 
"Right now, because we can't find a natural explanation, the gods stand exposed 
for all of humanity to see, the unbelievers as well as the believers. The gods 
are naked, and we must clothe them. We must find out the series of events the 
gods have created to explain the disappearance of the fleet, to make it appear 
natural to the unbelievers. I thought you understood this. We serve Starways 
Congress, but only because by serving Congress we also serve the gods. The gods 
wish us to deceive Congress, and Congress wishes to be deceived." 
Qing-jao nodded, numb with disappointment that her task was still not finished. 
"Does this sound heartless of me?" asked Father. "Am I dishonest? Am I cruel to 
the unbeliever?" 
"Does a daughter judge her father?" whispered Qing-jao. 
"Of course she does," said Father. "Every day all people judge all other people. 
The question is whether we judge wisely." 
"Then I judge that it's no sin to speak to the unbelievers in the language of 
their unbelief," said Qing-jao. 
Was that a smile now at the corners of his mouth? "You do understand," said 
Father. "If ever Congress comes to us, humbly seeking to know the truth, then we 
will teach the the Way and they'll become part of Path. Until then, we serve the 
gods by helping the unbelievers deceive themselves into thinking that all things 
happen because of natural explanations." 
Qing-jao bowed until her head nearly touched the floor. "You have tried to teach 
me this many times, but until now I never had a task that this principle applied 
to. Forgive the foolishness of your unworthy daughter." 
"I have no unworthy daughter," said Father. "I have only my daughter who is 
Gloriously Bright. The principle you've learned today is one that few on Path 
will ever really understand. That's why only a few of us are able to deal 
directly with people from other worlds without baffling or confusing them. You 
have surprised me today, Daughter, not because you hadn't yet understood it, but 
because you have come to understand it so young. I was nearly ten years older 
than you before I discovered it." 
"How can I learn something before you did, Father?" The idea of surpassing one 
of his achievements was almost unthinkable. 
"Because you had me to teach you," said Father, "while I had to discover it for 
myself. But I see that it frightened you to think that perhaps you learned 
something younger than I did. Do you think it would dishonor me if my daughter 
surpassed me? On the contrary-- there can be no greater honor to a parent than 
to have a child who is greater." 
"I can never be greater than you, Father." 
"In a sense that's true, Qing-jao. Because you are my child, all your works are 
included within mine, as a subset of mine, just as all of us are a subset of our 
ancestors. But you have so much potential for greatness inside you that I 
believe there'll come a time when I will be counted greater because of your 
works than because of my own. If ever the people of Path judge me worthy of some 
singular honor, it will be at least as much because of your achievements as my 
own." 
With that Father bowed to her, not a courteous bow of dismissal, but a deep bow 
of respect, his head almost touching the floor. Not quite, for that would be 
outrageous, almost a mockery, if he actually touched his head to the floor in 
honor to his own daughter. But he came as close as dignity allowed. 
It confused her for a moment, frightened her; then she understood. When he 
implied that his chance of being chosen god of Path depended on her greatness, 
he wasn't speaking of some vague future event. He was speaking of the here and 
now. He was speaking of her task. If she could find the gods' disguise, the 
natural explanation for the disappearance of the Lusitania Fleet, then his 
selection as god of Path would be assured. That was how much he trusted her. 
That was how important this task was. What was her coming-of-age, compared to 
her father's godhood? She must work harder, think better, and succeed where all 
the resources of the military and the Congress had failed. Not for herself, but 
for Mother, for the gods, and for Father's chance to become one of them. 
Qing-jao withdrew from Father's room. She paused in the doorway and glanced at 
Wang-mu. One glance from the godspoken was enough to tell the girl to follow. 
By the time Qing-jao got to her room she was shaking with the pent-up need for 
purification. All that she had done wrong today-- her rebelliousness toward the 
gods, her refusal to accept purification earlier, her stupidity at not 
understanding her true task-- it came together now. Not that she felt dirty; it 
wasn't washing she wanted, or self-loathing that she felt. After all, her 
unworthiness had been tempered by her father's praise, by the god who showed her 
how to pass through the door. And Wang-mu's having proven to be a good choice-- 
that was a test that Qing-jao had passed, and boldly, too. So it wasn't vileness 
that made her tremble. She was hungry for purification. She longed for the gods 
to be with her as she served them. Yet no penance that she knew of would be 
enough to quell her hunger. 
Then she knew: She must trace a line on every board in the room. 
At once she chose her starting point, the southeast corner; she would begin each 
tracing at the eastern wall, so that her rituals would all move westward, toward 
the gods. Last of all would be the shortest board in the room, less than a meter 
long, in the northwest corner. It would be her reward, that her last tracing 
would be so brief and easy. 
She could hear Wang-mu enter the room softly behind her, but Qing-jao had no 
time now for mortals. The gods were waiting. She knelt in the corner, scanned 
the grains to find the one the gods wanted her to follow. Usually she had to 
choose for herself, and then she always chose the most difficult one, so the 
gods wouldn't despise her. But tonight she was filled with instant certainty 
that the gods were choosing for her. The first line was a thick one, wavy but 
easy to see. Already they were being merciful! Tonight's ritual would be almost 
a conversation between her and the gods. She had broken through an invisible 
barrier today; she had come closer to her father's clear understanding. Perhaps 
someday the gods would speak to her with the sort of clarity that the common 
people believed all the godspoken heard. 
"Holy one," said Wang-mu. 
It was as though Qing-jao's joy were made of glass, and Wang-mu had deliberately 
shattered it. Didn't she know that when a ritual was interrupted, it had to 
begin again? Qing-jao rose up on her knees and turned to face the girl. 
Wang-mu must have seen the fury on Qing-jao's face, but didn't understand it. 
"Oh, I'm sorry," she said at once, falling to her knees and bowing her head to 
the floor. "I forgot that I'm not to call you 'holy one.' I only meant to ask 
you what you were looking for, so I could help you search." 
It almost made Qing-jao laugh, that Wang-mu was so mistaken. Of course Wang-mu 
had no notion that Qing-jao was being spoken to by the gods. And now, her anger 
interrupted, Qing-jao was ashamed to see how Wang-mu feared her anger; it felt 
wrong for the girl to be touching her head to the floor. Qing-jao didn't like 
seeing another person so humiliated. 
How did I frighten her so much? I was filled with joy, because the gods were 
speaking so clearly to me; but my joy was so selfish that when she innocently 
interrupted me, I turned a face of hate to her. Is this how I answer the gods? 
They show me a face of love, and I translate it into hatred toward the people, 
especially one who is in my power? Once again the gods have found a way to show 
me my unworthiness. 
"Wang-mu, you mustn't interrupt me when you find me bowed down on the floor like 
that." And she explained to Wang-mu about the ritual of purification that the 
gods required of her. 
"Must I do this also?" said Wang-mu. 
"Not unless the gods tell you to." 
"How will I know?" 
"If it hasn't happened to you at your age, Wang-mu, it probably never will. But 
if it did happen, you'd know, because you wouldn't have the power to resist the 
voice of the gods in your mind." 
Wang-mu nodded gravely. "How can I help you, ... Qing-jao?" She tried out her 
mistress's name carefully, reverently. For the first time Qing-jao realized that 
her name, which sounded sweetly affectionate when her father said it, could 
sound exalted when it was spoken with such awe. To be called Gloriously Bright 
at a moment when Qing-jao was keenly aware of her lack of luster was almost 
painful. But she would not forbid Wang-mu to use her name-- the girl had to have 
something to call her, and Wang-mu's reverent tone would serve Qing-jao as a 
constant ironic reminder of how little she deserved it. 
"You can help me by not interrupting," said Qing-jao. 
"Should I leave, then?" 
Qing-jao almost said yes, but then realized that for some reason the gods wanted 
Wang-mu to be part of this penance. How did she know? Because the thought of 
Wang-mu leaving felt almost as unbearable as the knowledge of her unfinished 
tracing. "Please stay," said Qing-jao. "Can you wait in silence? Watching me?" 
"Yes, ... Qing-jao." 
"If it goes on so long that you can't bear it, you may leave," said Qingjao. 
"But only when you see me moving from the west to the east. That means I'm 
between tracings, and it won't distract me for you to leave, though you mustn't 
speak to me." 
Wang-mu's eyes widened. "You're going to do this with every grain of wood in 
every board of the floor?" 
"No," said Qing-jao. The gods would never be so cruel as that! But even as she 
thought this, Qing-jao knew that someday there might come a time when the gods 
would require exactly that penance. It made her sick with dread. "Only one line 
in each board in the room. Watch with me, will you?" 
She saw Wang-mu glance at the time message that glowed in the air over her 
terminal. It was already the hour for sleep, and both of them had missed their 
afternoon nap. It wasn't natural for human beings to go so long without 
sleeping. The days on Path were half again as long as those on Earth, so that 
they never worked out quite evenly with the internal cycles of the human body. 
To miss the nap and then delay the sleep was a very hard thing. 
But Qing-jao had no choice. And if Wang-mu couldn't stay awake, she'd have to 
leave now, however the gods resisted that idea. "You must stay awake," said 
Qing-jao. "If you fall asleep, I'll have to speak to you so you'll move and 
uncover some of the lines I have to trace. And if I speak to you, I'll have to 
begin again. Can you stay awake, silent and unmoving?" 
Wang-mu nodded. Qing-jao believed that she meant it; she did not really believe 
the girl could do it. Yet the gods insisted that she let her new secret maid 
remain-- who was Qing-jao to refuse what the gods required of her? 
Qing-jao returned to the first board and started her tracing over again. To her 
relief, the gods were still with her. On board after board she was given the 
boldest, easiest grain to follow; and when, now and then, she was given a harder 
one, it invariably happened that the easy grain faded or disappeared off the 
edge of the board partway along. The gods were caring for her. 
As for Wang-mu, the girl struggled mightily. Twice, on the passage back from the 
west to begin again in the east, Qing-jao glanced at Wang-mu and saw her 
sleeping. But when Qing-jao began passing near to the place where Wang-mu had 
lain, she found that her secret maid had wakened and moved so quietly to a place 
where Qing-jao had already traced that Qing-jao hadn't even heard her movements. 
A good girl. A worthy choice for a secret maid. 
At last, at long last Qing-jao reached the beginning of the last board, a short 
one in the very corner. She almost spoke aloud in joy, but caught herself in 
time. The sound of her own voice and Wang-mu's inevitable answer would surely 
send her back to start again-- it would be an unbelievable folly. Qing-jao bent 
over the beginning of the board, already less than a meter from the northwest 
corner of the room, and began tracing the boldest line. It led her, clear and 
true, right to the wall. It was done. 
Qing-jao slumped against the wall and began laughing in relief. But she was so 
weak and tired that her laughter must have sounded like weeping to Wang-mu. In 
moments the girl was with her, touching her shoulder. "Qing-jao," she said. "Are 
you in pain?" 
Qing-jao took the girl's hand and held it. "Not in pain. Or at least no pain 
that sleeping won't cure. I'm finished. I'm clean." 
Clean enough, in fact, that she felt no reluctance in letting her hand clasp 
Wang-mu's hand, skin to skin, without filthiness of any kind. It was a gift from 
the gods, that she had someone's hand to hold when her ritual was done. "You did 
very well," said Qing-jao. "It was easier for me to concentrate on the tracing, 
with you in the room." 
"I think I fell asleep once, Qing-jao." 
"Perhaps twice. But you woke when it mattered, and no harm was done." 
Wang-mu began to weep. She closed her eyes but didn't take her hand away from 
Qing-jao to cover her face. She simply let the tears flow down her cheeks. 
"Why are you weeping, Wang-mu?" 
"I didn't know," she said. "It really is a hard thing to be godspoken. I didn't 
know." 
"And a hard thing to be a true friend to the godspoken, as well," said Qing-jao. 
"That's why I didn't want you to be my servant, calling me 'holy one' and 
fearing the sound of my voice. That kind of servant I'd have to send out of my 
room when the gods spoke to me." 
If anything, Wang-mu's tears flowed harder. 
"Si Wang-mu, is it too hard for you to be with me?" asked Qing-jao. 
Wang-mu shook her head. 
"If it's ever too hard, I'll understand. You can leave me then. I was alone 
before. I'm not afraid to be alone again." 
Wang-mu shook her head, fiercely this time. "How could I leave you, now that I 
see how hard it is for you?" 
"Then it will be written one day, and told in a story, that Si Wang-mu never 
left the side of Han Qing-jao during her purifications." 
Suddenly Wang-mu's smile broke across her face, and her eyes opened into the 
squint of laughter, despite the tears still shining on her cheeks. "Don't you 
hear the joke you told?" said Wang-mu. "My name-- Si Wang-mu. When they tell 
that story, they won't know it was your secret maid with you. They'll think it 
was the Royal Mother of the West." 
Qing-jao laughed then, too. But an idea also crossed her mind, that perhaps the 
Royal Mother was a true ancestor-of-the-heart to Wang-mu, and by having Wang-mu 
by her side, as her friend, Qing-jao also had a new closeness with this god who 
was almost the oldest of them all. 
Wang-mu laid out their sleeping mats, though Qing-jao had to show her how; it 
was Wang-mu's proper duty, and Qing-jao would have to let her do it every night, 
though she had never minded doing it herself. As they lay down, their mats 
touching edge-to-edge so that no woodgrain lines showed between them, Qing-jao 
noticed that there was gray light shining through the slats of the windows. They 
had stayed awake together all through the day and now all through the night. 
Wang-mu's sacrifice was a noble one. She would be a true friend. 
A few minutes later, though, when Wang-mu was asleep and Qing-jao was on the 
brink of dozing, it occurred to Qing-jao to wonder exactly how it was that 
Wang-mu, a girl with no money, had managed to bribe the foreman of the righteous 
labor crew to let her speak to Qing-jao today without interruption. Could some 
spy have paid the bribe for her, so she could infiltrate the house of Han 
Fei-tzu? No-- Ju Kung-mei, the guardian of the House of Han, would have found 
out about such a spy and Wang-mu would never have been hired. Wang-mu's bribe 
wouldn't have been paid in money. She, was only fourteen, but Si Wang-mu was 
already a very pretty girl. Qing-jao had read enough of history and biography to 
know how women were usually required to pay such bribes. 
Grimly Qing-jao decided that the matter must be discreetly investigated, and the 
foreman dismissed in unnamed disgrace if it were found to be true; through the 
investigation, Wang-mu's name would never be mentioned in public, so that she 
would be protected from all harm. Qing-jao had only to mention it to Ju Kung-mei 
and he'd see that it was done. 
Qing-jao looked at the sweet face of her sleeping servant, her worthy new 
friend, and felt overcome by sadness. What most saddened Qing-jao, however, was 
not the price Wang-mu had paid to the foreman, but rather that she had paid it 
for such a worthless, painful, terrible job as that of being secret maid to Han 
Qing-jao. If a woman must sell the doorway to her womb, as so many women had 
been forced to do through all of human history, surely the gods must let her 
receive something of value in return. 
That is why Qing-jao went to sleep that morning even firmer in her resolve to 
devote herself to the education of Si Wang-mu. She could not let Wang-mu's 
education interfere with her struggle with the riddle of the Lusitania Fleet, 
but she would take all other possible time and give Wangmu a fit blessing in 
honor of her sacrifice. Surely the gods must expect no less of her, in return 
for their having sent her such a perfect secret maid. 
Table of Contents



Chapter 8 -- Miracles
<Ender has been plaguing us lately. Insisting that we think of a way to travel 
faster than light.> 
<You said it couldn't be done.> 
<That's what we think. That's what human scientists think. But Ender insists 
that if ansibles can transmit information, we should be able to transmit matter 
at the same velocity. Of course that's nonsense-- there's no comparison between 
information and physical reality.> 
<Why does he want so badly to travel faster than light?> 
<It's a silly idea, isn't it-- to arrive somewhere before your image does. Like 
stepping through a mirror in order to try to meet yourself on the other side.> 
<Ender and Rooter have talked about this a lot-- I've heard them. Ender thinks 
that perhaps matter and energy are composed of nothing but information. That 
physical reality is nothing but the message that philotes are transmitting to 
each other.> 
<What does Rooter say?> 
<He says that Ender is half right. Rooter says that physical reality is a 
message-- and the message is a question that the philotes are continually asking 
God.> 
<What is the question?> 
<One word: Why?> 
<And how does God answer them?> 
<With life. Rooter says that life is how God gives purpose to the universe.> 
  
  
  
Miro's whole family came to meet him when he returned to Lusitania. After all, 
they loved him. And he loved them, too, and after a month in space he was 
looking forward to their company. He knew-- intellectually, at least-- that his 
month in space had been a quarter-century to them. He had prepared himself for 
the wrinkles in Mother's face, for even Grego and Quara to be adults in their 
thirties. What he had not anticipated, not viscerally, anyway, was that they 
would be strangers. No, worse than strangers. They were strangers who pitied him 
and thought they knew him and looked down on him like a child. They were all 
older than him. All of them. And all younger, because pain and loss hadn't 
touched them the way it had touched him. 
Ela was the best of them, as usual. She embraced him, kissed him, and said, "You 
make me feel so mortal. But I'm glad to see you young." At least she had the 
courage to admit that there was an immediate barrier between them, even though 
she pretended that the barrier was his youth. True, Miro was exactly as they 
remembered him-- his face, at least. The long-lost brother returned from the 
dead; the ghost who comes to haunt the family, eternally young. But the real 
barrier was the way he moved. The way he spoke. 
They had obviously forgotten how disabled he was, how badly his body responded 
to his damaged brain. The shuffling step, the twisted, difficult speech-- their 
memories had excised all that unpleasantness and had remembered him the way he 
was before his accident. After all, he had only been disabled for a few months 
before leaving on his time-dilating voyage. It was easy to forget that, and 
recall instead the Miro they had known for so many years before. Strong, 
healthy, the only one able to stand up to the man they had called Father. They 
couldn't conceal their shock. He could see it in their hesitations, their 
darting glances, the attempt to ignore the fact that his speech was so hard to 
understand, that he walked so slowly. 
He could sense their impatience. Within minutes he could see how some, at least, 
were maneuvering to get away. So much to do this afternoon. See you at dinner. 
This whole thing was making them so uncomfortable they had to escape, take time 
to assimilate this version of Miro who had just returned to them, or perhaps 
plot how to avoid him as much as possible in the future. Grego and Quara were 
the worst, the most eager to get away, which stung him-- once they had worshiped 
him. Of course he understood that this was why it was so hard for them to deal 
with the broken Miro that stood before them. Their vision of the old Miro was 
the most naive and therefore the most painfully contradicted. 
"We thought of a big family dinner," said Ela. "Mother wanted to, but I thought 
we should wait. Give you some time." 
"Hope you haven't been waiting dinner all this time for me," said Miro. 
Only Ela and Valentine seemed to realize he was joking; they were the only ones 
to respond naturally, with a mild chuckle. The others-- for all Miro knew, they 
hadn't even understood his words at all. 
They stood in the tall grass beside the landing field, all his family: Mother, 
now in her sixties, hair steely-gray, her face grim with intensity, the way it 
had always been. Only now the expression was etched deep in the lines of her 
forehead, the creases beside her mouth. Her neck was a ruin. He realized that 
she would die someday. Not for thirty or forty years, probably, but someday. Had 
he ever realized how beautiful she was, before? He had thought somehow that 
marrying the Speaker for the Dead would soften her, would make her young again. 
And maybe it had, maybe Andrew Wiggin had made her young at heart. But the body 
was still what time had made it. She was old. 
Ela, in her forties. No husband with her, but maybe she was married and he 
simply hadn't come. More likely not. Was she married to her work? She seemed to 
be so genuinely glad to see him, but even she couldn't hide the look of pity and 
concern. What, had she expected that a month of lightspeed travel would somehow 
heal him? Had she thought he would stride off the shuttle as strong and bold as 
a spacefaring god from some romance? 
Quim, now in priestly robes. Jane had told Miro that his next-younger brother 
was a great missionary. He had converted more than a dozen forests of 
pequeninos, had baptized them, and, under authority from Bishop Peregrino, 
ordained priests from among them, to administer the sacraments to their own 
people. They baptized all the pequeninos that emerged from the mothertrees, all 
the mothers before they died, all the sterile wives who tended the little 
mothers and their younglings, all the brothers searching for a glorious death, 
and all the trees. However, only the wives and brothers could take communion, 
and as for marriage, it was difficult to think of a meaningful way to perform 
such a rite between a fathertree and the blind, mindless slugs who were mated 
with them. Yet Miro could see in Quim's eyes a kind of exaltation. It was the 
glow of power well used; alone of the Ribeira family, Quim had known all his 
life what he wanted to do. Now he was doing it. Never mind the theological 
difficulties-- he was St. Paul to the piggies, and it filled him with constant 
joy. You served God, little brother, and God has made you his man. 
Olhado, his silver eyes gleaming, his arm around a beautiful woman, surrounded 
by six children-- the youngest a toddler, the oldest in her teens. Though the 
children all watched with natural eyes, they still had picked up their father's 
detached expression. They didn't watch, they simply gazed. With Olhado that had 
been natural; it disturbed Miro to think that perhaps Olhado had spawned a 
family of observers, walking recorders taking up experience to play it back 
later, but never quite involved. But no, that had to be a delusion. Miro had 
never been comfortable with Olhado, and so whatever resemblance Olhado's 
children had to their father was bound to make Miro just as uncomfortable with 
them, too. The mother was pretty enough. Probably not forty yet. How old had she 
been when Olhado married her? What kind of woman was she, to accept a man with 
artificial eyes? Did Olhado record their lovemaking, and play back images for 
her of how she looked in his eyes? 
Miro was immediately ashamed of the thought. Is that all I can think of when I 
look at Olhado-- his deformity? After all the years I knew him? Then how can I 
expect them to see anything but my deformities when they look at me? 
Leaving here was a good idea. I'm glad Andrew Wiggin suggested it. The only part 
that makes no sense is coming back. Why am I here? 
Almost against his will, Miro turned to face Valentine. She smiled at him, put 
her arm around him, hugged him. "It's not so bad," she said. 
Not so bad as what? 
"I have only the one brother left to greet me," she said. "All your family came 
to meet you." 
"Right," said Miro. 
Only then did Jane speak up, her voice taunting him in his ear. "Not all." 
Shut up, Miro said silently. 
"Only one brother?" said Andrew Wiggin. "Only me?" The Speaker for the Dead 
stepped forward and embraced his sister. But did Miro see awkwardness there, 
too? Was it possible that Valentine and Andrew Wiggin were shy with each other? 
What a laugh. Valentine, bold as brass-- she was Demosthenes, wasn't she? --and 
Wiggin, the man who had broken into their lives and remade their family without 
so much as a dd licenVa. Could they be timid? Could they feel strange? 
"You've aged miserably," said Andrew. "Thin as a rail. Doesn't Jakt provide a 
decent living for you?" 
"Doesn't Novinha cook?" asked Valentine. "And you look stupider than ever. I got 
here just in time to witness your complete mental vegetation." 
"And here I thought you came to save the world." 
"The universe. But you first." 
She put her arm around Miro again, and around Andrew on the other side. She 
spoke to the others. "So many of you, but I feel like I know you all. I hope 
that soon you'll feel that way about me and my family." 
So gracious. So able to put people at ease. Even me, thought Miro. She simply 
handles people. The way Andrew Wiggin does. Did she learn it from him, or did he 
learn it from her? Or was it born into their family? After all, Peter was the 
supreme manipulator of all time, the original Hegemon. What a family. As strange 
as mine. Only theirs is strange because of genius, while mine is strange because 
of the pain we shared for so many years, because of the twisting of our souls. 
And I the strangest, the most damaged one of all. Andrew Wiggin came to heal the 
wounds between us, and did it well. But the inner twisting-- can that ever be 
healed? 
"How about a picnic?" asked Miro. 
This time they all laughed. How was that, Andrew, Valentine? Did I put them at 
their ease? Did I help things go smoothly? Have I helped everyone pretend that 
they're glad to see me, that they have some idea of who I am? 
"She wanted to come," said Jane in Miro's ear. 
Shut up, said Miro again. I didn't want her to come anyway. 
"But she'll see you later." 
No. 
"She's married. She has four children." 
That's nothing to me now. 
"She hasn't called out your name in her sleep for years." 
I thought you were my friend. 
"I am. I can read your mind." 
You're a meddling old bitch and you can't read anything. 
"She'll come to you tomorrow morning. At your mother's house." 
I won't be there. 
"You think you can run away from this?" 
During his conversation with Jane, Miro hadn't heard anything that the others 
around him were saying, but it didn't matter. Valentine's husband and children 
had come from the ship, and she was introducing them all around. Particularly to 
their uncle, of course. It surprised Miro to see the awe with which they spoke 
to him. But then, they knew who he really was. Ender the Xenocide, yes, but also 
the Speaker for the Dead, the one who wrote the Hive Queen and the Hegemon. Miro 
knew that now, of course, but when he had first met Wiggin it was with 
hostility-- he was just an itinerant speaker for the dead, a minister of a 
humanist religion who seemed determined to turn Miro's family inside out. Which 
he had done. I think I was luckier than they are, thought Miro. I got to know 
him as a person before I ever knew him as a great figure in human history. 
They'll probably never know him as I do. 
And I don't really know him at all. I don't know anybody, and nobody knows me. 
We spend our lives guessing at what's going on inside everybody else, and when 
we happen to get lucky and guess right, we think we "understand." Such nonsense. 
Even a monkey at a computer will type a word now and then. 
You don't know me, none of you, he said silently. Least of all the meddling old 
bitch who lives in my ear. You hear that? 
"All that high-pitched whining-- how can I miss it?" 
Andrew was putting luggage onto the car. There'd be room for only a couple of 
passengers. "Miro-- you want to ride with Novinha and me?" 
Before he could answer, Valentine had taken his arm. "Oh, don't do that," said 
Valentine. "Walk with Jakt and me. We've all been cooped up on the ship for so 
long. " 
"That's right," said Andrew. "His mother hasn't seen him in twenty-five years, 
but you want him to take a stroll. You're the soul of thoughtfulness." 
Andrew and Valentine were keeping up the bantering tone they had established 
from the first, so that no matter which way Miro decided, they would laughingly 
turn it into a choice between the two Wiggins. At no point would he have to say, 
I need to ride because I'm a cripple. Nor would he have any excuse to take 
offense because somebody had singled him out for special treatment. It was so 
gracefully done that Miro wondered if Valentine and Andrew had discussed it in 
advance. Maybe they didn't have to discuss things like this. Maybe they had 
spent so many years together that they knew how to cooperate to smooth things 
for other people without even thinking about it. Like actors who have performed 
the same roles together so often that they can improvise without the slightest 
confusion. 
"I'll walk," said Miro. "I'll take the long way. The rest of you go on ahead." 
Novinha and Ela started to protest, but Miro saw Andrew put his hand on 
Novinha's arm, and as for Ela, she was silenced by Quim's arm around her 
shoulder. 
"Come straight home," said Ela. "However long it takes you, do come home." 
"Where else?" asked Miro. 



Valentine didn't know what to make of Ender. It was only her second day on 
Lusitania, but already she was sure that something was wrong. Not that there 
weren't grounds for Ender to be worried, distracted. He had filled her in on the 
problems the xenobiologists were having with the descolada, the tensions between 
Grego and Quara, and of course there was always the Congress fleet, death 
looming over them from every sky. But Ender had faced worries and tensions 
before, many times in his years as a speaker for the dead. He had plunged into 
the problems of nations and families, communities and individuals, struggling to 
understand and then to purge and heal the diseases of the heart. Never had he 
responded the way he was acting now. 
Or perhaps he had, once. 
When they were children, and Ender was being groomed to command the fleets being 
sent against all the bugger worlds, they had brought Ender back to Earth for a 
season-- the lull before the final storm, as it turned out. Ender and Valentine 
had been apart since he was five years old, not allowed so much as an 
unsupervised letter between them. Then, suddenly, they changed their policy, and 
brought Valentine to him. He was being kept at a large private estate near their 
home town, spending his days swimming and-- more often-- floating in utter 
languor on a private lake. 
At first Valentine had thought all was well, and she was merely glad to see him 
at last. But soon she understood that something was deeply wrong. Only in those 
days she hadn't known Ender so well-- after all, he'd been apart from her for 
more than half his life. Yet she knew that it was wrong for him to seem so 
preoccupied. No, that wasn't really it. He wasn't preoccupied, he was 
unoccupied. He had detached himself from the world. And her job was to reconnect 
him. To bring him back and show him his place in the web of humanity. 
Because she succeeded, he was able to go back into space and command the fleets 
that utterly destroyed the buggers. Ever since that time, his connection with 
the rest of humanity seemed secure. 
Now again she had been apart from him for half a lifetime. Twenty-five years for 
her, thirty for him. And again he seemed to be detached. She studied him as he 
took her and Miro and Plikt out by car, skimming over the endless prairies of 
capim. 
"We're like a little boat on the ocean," said Ender. 
"Not really," she said, remembering the time that Jakt had taken her out on one 
of the small net-laying launches. The three-meter waves that lifted them high, 
then plunged them down into the trench between. On the large fishing boat those 
waves had barely jostled them as they nestled comfortably in the sea, but in the 
tiny launch the waves were overwhelming. Literally breathtaking-- she had to 
slide down from her seat onto the deck, embracing the plank bench with both 
arms, before she could catch her breath. There was no comparison between the 
heaving, pitching ocean and this placid grassy plain. 
Then again, maybe to Ender there was. Maybe when he saw the acres of capim, he 
saw within it the descolada virus, malevolently adapting itself to slaughter 
humankind and all its companion species. Maybe to him this prairie rolled and 
shrugged every bit as brutally as the ocean. 
The sailors had laughed at her, not mockingly but tenderly, like parents 
laughing at the fears of a child. "These seas are nothing," they said. "You 
should try doing this in twenty-meter seas." 
Ender was as calm, outwardly, as the sailors had been. Calm, unconnected. Making 
conversation with her and Miro and silent Plikt, but still holding something 
back. Is there something wrong between Ender and Novinha? Valentine hadn't seen 
them together long enough to know what was natural between them and what was 
strained-certainly there were no obvious quarrels. So perhaps Ender's problem 
was a growing barrier between him and the community of Milagre. That was 
possible. Valentine certainly remembered how hard it had been for her to win 
acceptance from the Trondheimers, and she had been married to a man with 
enormous prestige among them. How was it for Ender, married to a woman whose 
whole family had already been alienated from the rest of Milagre? Could it be 
that his healing of this place was not as complete as anyone supposed? 
Not possible. When Valentine met with the Mayor, Kovano Zeljezo, and with old 
Bishop Peregrino that morning, they had shown genuine affection for Ender. 
Valentine had attended too many meetings not to know the difference between 
formal courtesies, political hypocrisies, and genuine friendship. If Ender felt 
detached from these people, it wasn't by their choice. 
I'm reading too much into this, thought Valentine. If Ender seems to be strange 
and detached, it's because we have been apart so long. Or perhaps because he 
feels shy with this angry young man, Miro; or perhaps it's Plikt, with her 
silent, calculating worship of Ender Wiggin, who makes him choose to be distant 
with us. Or maybe it's nothing more than my insistence that I must meet the hive 
queen today, at once, even before meeting any of the leaders of the piggies. 
There's no reason to look beyond present company for the cause of his 
unconnection. 
They first located the hive queen's city by the pall of smoke. "Fossil fuels," 
said Ender. "She's burning them up at a disgusting rate. Ordinarily she'd never 
do that-- the hive queens tend their worlds with great care, and they never make 
such a waste and a stink. But there's a great hurry these days, and Human says 
that they've given her permission to burn and pollute as much as necessary." 
"Necessary for what?" asked Valentine. 
"Human won't say, and neither will the hive queen, but I have my guesses, and I 
imagine you will, too." 
"Are the piggies hoping to jump to a fully technological society in a single 
generation, relying on the hive queen's work?" 
"Hardly," said Ender. "They're far too conservative for that. They want to know 
everything there is to know-- but they aren't terribly interested in surrounding 
themselves with machines. Remember that the trees of the forest freely and 
gently give them every useful tool. What we call industry still looks like 
brutality to them." 
"What then? Why all this smoke?" 
"Ask her," said Ender. "Maybe she'll be honest with you." 
"Will we actually see her?" asked Miro. 
"Oh yes," said Ender. "Or at least-- we'll be in her presence. She may even 
touch us. But perhaps the less we see the better. It's usually dark where she 
lives, unless she's near to egg-laying. At that time she needs to see, and the 
workers open tunnels to bring in daylight." 
"They don't have artificial light?" asked Miro. 
"They never used it," said Ender, "even on the starships that came to Sol System 
back during the Bugger Wars. They see heat the way we see light. Any source of 
warmth is clearly visible to them. I think they even arrange their heat sources 
in patterns that could only be interpreted aesthetically. Thermal painting." 
"So why do they use light for egg-laying?" asked Valentine. 
"I'd hesitate to call it a ritual-- the hive queen has such scorn for human 
religion. Let's just say it's part of their genetic heritage. Without sunlight 
there's no egg-laying." 
Then they were in the bugger city. 
Valentine wasn't surprised at what they found-- after all, when they were young, 
she and Ender had been with the first colony on Rov, a former bugger world. But 
she knew that the experience would be surprising and alien to Miro and Plikt, 
and in fact some of the old disorientation came back to her, too. Not that there 
was anything obviously strange about the city. There were buildings, most of 
them low, but based on the same structural principles as any human buildings. 
The strangeness came in the careless way that they were arranged. There were no 
roads and streets, no attempt to line up the buildings to face the same way. Nor 
did buildings rise out of the ground to any common height. Some were nothing but 
a roof resting on the ground; others rose to a great height. Paint seemed to be 
used only as a preservative-- there was no decoration. Ender had suggested that 
heat might be used aesthetically; it was a sure thing that nothing else was. 
"It makes no sense," said Miro. 
"Not from the surface," said Valentine, remembering Rov. "But if you could 
travel the tunnels, you'd realize that it all makes sense underground. They 
follow the natural seams and textures of the rock. There's a rhythm to geology, 
and the buggers are sensitive to it." 
"What about the tall buildings?" asked Miro. 
"The water table is their downward limit. If they need greater height, they have 
to go up." 
"What are they doing that requires a building so tall?" asked Miro. 
"I don't know," said Valentine. They were skirting a building that was at least 
three hundred meters high; in the near distance they could see more than a dozen 
others. 
For the first time on this excursion, Plikt spoke up. "Rockets," she said. 
Valentine caught a glimpse of Ender smiling a bit and nodding slightly. So Plikt 
had confirmed his own suspicions. 
"What for?" asked Miro. 
Valentine almost said, To get into space, of course! But that wasn't fair-- Miro 
had never lived on a world that was struggling to get into space for the first 
time. To him, going offplanet meant taking the shuttle to the orbiting station. 
But the single shuttle used by the humans of Lusitania would hardly do for 
transporting material outward for any kind of major deepspace construction 
program. And even if it could do the job, the hive queen was unlikely to ask for 
human help. 
"What's she building, a space station?" asked Valentine. 
"I think so," said Ender. "But so many rockets, and such large ones-- I think 
she's planning to build it all at once. Probably cannibalizing the rockets 
themselves. What do you think the throw might be?" 
Valentine almost answered with exasperation-- how should I know? Then she 
realized that he wasn't asking her. Because almost at once he supplied the 
answer himself. Which meant that he must have been asking the computer in his 
ear. No, not a "computer." Jane. He was asking Jane. It was still hard for 
Valentine to get used to the idea that even though there were only four people 
in the car, there was a fifth person present, looking and listening through the 
jewels Ender and Miro both wore. 
"She could do it all at once," said Ender. "In fact, given what's known about 
the chemical emissions here, the hive queen has smelted enough metal to 
construct not only a space station but also two small long-range starships of 
the sort that the first bugger expedition brought. Their version of a colony 
ship." 
"Before the fleet arrives," said Valentine. She understood at once. The hive 
queen was preparing to emigrate. She had no intention of letting her species be 
trapped on a single planet when the Little Doctor came again. 
"You see the problem," said Ender. "She won't tell us what she's doing, and so 
we have to rely on what Jane observes and what we can guess. And what I'm 
guessing isn't a very pretty picture." 
"What's wrong with the buggers getting offplanet?" asked Valentine. 
"Not just the buggers," said Miro. 
Valentine made the second connection. That's why the pequeninos had given 
permission for the hive queen to pollute so badly. That's why there were two 
ships planned, right from the first. "A ship for the hive queen and a ship for 
the pequeninos." 
"That's what they intend," said Ender. "But the way I see it is-- two ships for 
the descolada." 
"Nossa Senhora," whispered Miro. 
Valentine felt a chill go through her. It was one thing for the hive queen to 
seek the salvation of her species. But it was quite another thing for her to 
carry the deadly self-adapting virus to other worlds. 
"You see my quandary," said Ender. "You see why she won't tell me directly what 
she's doing." 
"But you couldn't stop her anyway, could you?" asked Valentine. 
"He could warn the Congress fleet," said Miro. 
That's right. Dozens of heavily armed starships, converging on Lusitania from 
every direction-- if they were warned about two starships leaving Lusitania, if 
they were given their original trajectories, they could intercept them. Destroy 
them. 
"You can't," said Valentine. 
"I can't stop them and I can't let them go," said Ender. "To stop them would be 
to risk destroying the buggers and the piggies alike. To let them go would be to 
risk destroying all of humanity." 
"You have to talk to them. You have to reach some kind of agreement." 
"What would an agreement with us be worth?" asked Ender. "We don't speak for 
humanity in general. And if we make threats, the hive queen will simply destroy 
all our satellites and probably our ansible as well. She may do that anyway, 
just to be safe." 
"Then we'd really be cut off," said Miro. 
"From everything," said Ender. 
It took Valentine a moment to realize that they were thinking of Jane. Without 
an ansible, they couldn't speak to her anymore. And without the satellites that 
orbited Lusitania, Jane's eyes in space would be blinded. 
"Ender, I don't understand," said Valentine. "Is the hive queen our enemy?" 
"That's the question, isn't it?" asked Ender. "That's the trouble with restoring 
her species. Now that she has her freedom again, now that she's not bundled up 
in a cocoon hidden in a bag under my bed, the hive queen will act in the best 
interest of her species-- whatever she thinks that is." 
"But Ender, it can't be that there has to be war between humans and buggers 
again." 
"If there were no human fleet heading toward Lusitania, the question wouldn't 
come up." 
"But Jane has disrupted their communications," said Valentine. "They can't 
receive the order to use the Little Doctor." 
"For now," said Ender. "But Valentine, why do you think Jane risked her own life 
in order to cut off their communications?" 
"Because the order was sent." 
"Starways Congress sent the order to destroy this planet. And now that Jane has 
revealed her power, they'll be all the more determined to destroy us. Once they 
find a way to get Jane out of the way, they'll be even more certain to act 
against this world." 
"Have you told the hive queen?" 
"Not yet. But then, I'm not sure how much she can learn from my mind without my 
wanting her to. It's not exactly a means of communication that I know how to 
control." 
Valentine put her hand on Ender's shoulder. "Was this why you tried to persuade 
me not to come see the hive queen? Because you didn't want her to learn the real 
danger?" 
"I just don't want to face her again," said Ender. "Because I love her and I 
fear her. Because I'm not sure whether I should help her or try to destroy her. 
And because once she gets those rockets into space, which could be any day now, 
she could take away our power to stop her. Take away our connection with the 
rest of humanity." 
And, again, what he didn't say: She could cut Ender and Miro off from Jane. 
"I think we definitely need to have a talk with her," said Valentine. 
"Either that or kill her," said Miro. 
"Now you understand my problem," said Ender. 
They rode on in silence. 
The entrance to the hive queen's burrow was a building that looked like any 
other. There was no special guard-- indeed, in their whole excursion they hadn't 
seen a single bugger. Valentine remembered when she was young, on her first 
colony world, trying to imagine what the bugger cities had looked like when they 
were fully inhabited. Now she knew-- they looked exactly the way they did when 
they were dead. No scurrying buggers; like ants swarming over the hills. 
Somewhere, she knew, there were fields and orchards being tended under the open 
sun, but none of that was visible from here. 
Why did this make her feel so relieved? 
She knew the answer to the question even as she asked it. She had spent her 
childhood on Earth during the Bugger Wars; the insectoid aliens had haunted her 
nightmares, as they had terrified every other child on Earth. Only a handful of 
human beings, however, had ever seen a bugger in person, and few of those were 
still alive when she was a child. Even in her first colony, where the ruins of 
bugger civilization surrounded her, they had found not even one desiccated 
corpse. All her visual images of the buggers were the horrifying images from the 
vids. 
Yet wasn't she the first person to have read Ender's book, the Hive Queen? 
Wasn't she the first, besides Ender, to come to think of the hive queen as a 
person of alien grace and beauty? 
She was the first, yes, but that meant little. Everyone else alive today had 
grown up in a moral universe shaped in part by the Hive Queen and the Hegemon. 
While she and Ender were the only two left alive who had grown up with the 
steady campaign of loathing toward the buggers. Of course she felt irrational 
relief at not having to see the buggers. To Miro and Plikt, the first sight of 
the hive queen and her workers wouldn't have the same emotional tension that it 
had for her. 
I am Demosthenes, she reminded herself. I'm the theorist who insisted that the 
buggers were ramen, aliens who could be understood and accepted. I must simply 
do my best to overcome the prejudices of my childhood. In due time all of 
humanity will know of the reemergence of the hive queen; it would be shameful if 
Demosthenes were the one person who could not receive the hive queen as raman. 
Ender took the car in a circle around a smallish building. "This is the right 
place," he said. He pulled the car to a stop, then slowed the fan to settle it 
onto the capim near the building's single door. The door was very low-- an adult 
would have to go through on hands and knees. 
"How do you know?" asked Miro. 
"Because she says so," said Ender. 
"Jane?" asked Miro. He looked puzzled, because of course Jane had said nothing 
of the sort to him. 
"The hive queen," said Valentine. "She speaks directly into Ender's mind." 
"Nice trick," said Miro. "Can I learn it?" 
"We'll see," said Ender. "When you meet her." 
As they clambered off the car and dropped into the tall grass, Valentine noticed 
how Miro and Ender both kept glancing at Plikt. Of course it bothered them that 
Plikt was so quiet. Or rather, seemed so quiet. Valentine thought of Plikt as a 
loquacious, eloquent woman. But she had also got used to the way Plikt played 
the mute at certain times. Ender and Miro, of course, were only discovering her 
perverse silence for the first time, and it bothered them. Which was one of the 
main reasons Plikt did it. She believed that people revealed themselves most 
when they were vaguely anxious, and few things brought out nonspecific anxieties 
like being in the presence of a person who never speaks. 
Valentine didn't think much of the technique as a way of dealing with strangers, 
but she had watched how, as a tutor, Plikt's silences forced her students-- 
Valentine's children-- to deal with their own ideas. When Valentine and Ender 
taught, they challenged their students with dialogue, questions, arguments. But 
Plikt forced her students to play both sides of an argument, proposing their own 
ideas, then attacking them in order to refute their own objections. The method 
probably wouldn't work for most people. Valentine had concluded that it worked 
so well for Plikt because her wordlessness was not complete noncommunication. 
Her steady, penetrating gaze was in itself an eloquent expression of skepticism. 
When a student was confronted with that unblinking regard, he soon succumbed to 
all his own insecurities. Every doubt that the student had managed to put aside 
and ignore now forced itself forward, where the student had to discover within 
himself the reasons for Plikt's apparent doubt. 
Valentine's oldest, Syfte, had called these one-sided confrontations "staring 
into the sun." Now Ender and Miro were taking their own turn at blinding 
themselves in a contest with the all-seeing eye and the naught-saying mouth. 
Valentine wanted to laugh at their unease, to reassure them. She also wanted to 
give Plikt a gentle little slap and tell her not to be difficult. 
Instead of doing either, Valentine strode to the door of the building and pulled 
it open. There was no bolt, just a handle to grasp. The door opened easily. She 
held it open as Ender dropped to his knees and crawled through. Plikt followed 
immediately. Then Miro sighed and slowly sank to his knees. He was more awkward 
in crawling than he was in walking-- each movement of an arm or leg was made 
individually, as if it took a second to think of how to make it go. At last he 
was through, and now Valentine ducked down and squat-walked through the door. 
She was the smallest, and she didn't have to crawl. 
Inside, the only light came from the door. The room was featureless, with a dirt 
floor. Only as Valentine's eyes became used to the darkness did she realize that 
the darkest shadow was a tunnel sloping down into the earth. 
"There aren't any lights down in the tunnels," Ender said. "She'll direct me. 
You'll have to hold onto each other's hands. Valentine, you go last, all right?" 

"Can we go down standing up?" asked Miro. The question clearly mattered. 
"Yes," said Ender. "That's why she chose this entrance." 
They joined hands, Plikt holding Ender's hand, Miro between the two women. Ender 
led them a few steps down the slope into the tunnel. It was steep, and the utter 
blackness ahead was daunting. But Ender stopped before the darkness became 
absolute. 
"What are we waiting for?" asked Valentine. 
"Our guide," said Ender. 
At that moment, the guide arrived. In the darkness, Valentine could barely see 
the black-reed arm with a single finger and thumb as it nudged Ender's hand. 
Immediately Ender enclosed the finger within his left hand; the black thumb 
closed like a pincer over his hand. Looking up the arm, Valentine tried to see 
the bugger it belonged to. All she could actually make out, though, was a 
child-size shadow, and perhaps a slight gleam of reflection off a carapace. 
Her imagination supplied all that was missing, and against her will she 
shuddered. 
Miro muttered something in Portuguese. So he, too, was affected by the presence 
of the bugger. Plikt, however, remained silent, and Valentine couldn't tell 
whether she trembled or remained entirely unaffected. Then Miro took a shuffling 
forward step, pulling on Valentine's hand, leading her forward into the 
darkness. 
Ender knew how hard this passage would be for the others. So far only he, 
Novinha, and Ela had ever visited the hive queen, and Novinha had come only the 
once. The darkness was too unnerving, to move endlessly downward without help of 
eyes, knowing from small sounds that there was life and movement, invisible but 
nearby. 
"Can we talk?" asked Valentine. Her voice sounded very small. 
"It's a good idea," said Ender. "You won't bother them. They don't take much 
notice of sound." 
Miro said something. Without being able to see his lips move, Ender found it 
harder to understand Miro's speech. 
"What?" asked Ender. 
"We both want to know how far it is," Valentine said. 
"I don't know," said Ender. "From here, anyway. And she might be almost anywhere 
down here. There are dozens of nurseries. But don't worry. I'm pretty sure I 
could find my way out." 
"So could I," said Valentine. "With a flashlight, anyway." 
"No light," said Ender. "The egg-laying requires sunlight, but after that light 
only retards the development of the eggs. And at one stage it can kill the 
larvae." 
"But you could find your way out of this nightmare in the dark?" asked 
Valentine. 
"Probably," said Ender. "There are patterns. Like spider webs-- when you sense 
the overall structure, each section of tunnel makes more sense." 
"These tunnels aren't random?" Valentine sounded skeptical. 
"It's like the tunneling on Eros," said Ender. He really hadn't had that much 
chance to explore when he lived on Eros as a child-soldier. The asteroid had 
been honeycombed by the buggers when they made it their forward base in the Sol 
System; it became fleet headquarters for the human allies after it was captured 
during the first Bugger War. During his months there, Ender had devoted most of 
his time and attention to learning to control fleets of starships in space. Yet 
he must have noticed much more about the tunnels than he realized at the time, 
because the first time the hive queen brought him into her burrows on Lusitania, 
Ender found that the bends and turns never seemed to take him by surprise. They 
felt right-- no, they felt inevitable. 
"What's Eros?" asked Miro. 
"An asteroid near Earth," said Valentine. "The place where Ender lost his mind." 

Ender tried to explain to them something about the way the tunnel system was 
organized. But it was too complicated. Like fractals, there were too many 
possible exceptions to grasp the system in detail-- it kept eluding 
comprehension the more closely you pursued it. Yet to Ender it always seemed the 
same, a pattern that repeated over and over. Or maybe it was just that Ender had 
got inside the hivemind somehow, when he was studying them in order to defeat 
them. Maybe he had simply learned to think like a bugger. In which case 
Valentine was right-- he had lost part of his human mind, or at least added onto 
it a bit of the hivemind. 
Finally when they turned a corner there came a glimmer of light. "Gracas a 
deus," whispered Miro. Ender noted with satisfaction that Plikt-- this stone 
woman who could not possibly be the same person as the brilliant student he 
remembered-- also let out a sigh of relief. Maybe there was some life in her 
after all. 
"Almost there," said Ender. "And since she's laying, she'll be in a good mood." 
"Doesn't she want privacy?" asked Miro. 
"It's like a minor sexual climax that goes on for several hours," said Ender. 
"It makes her pretty cheerful. Hive queens are usually surrounded only by 
workers and drones that function as part of themselves. They never learn 
shyness." 
In his mind, though, he could feel the intensity of her presence. She could 
communicate with him anytime, of course. But when he was close, it was as if she 
were breathing into his brainpan; it became heavy, oppressive. Did the others 
feel it? Would she be able to speak to them? With Ela there had been nothing-- 
Ela never caught a glimmer of the silent conversation. As for Novinha-- she 
refused to speak of it and denied having heard anything, but Ender suspected 
that she had simply rejected the alien presence. The hive queen said she could 
hear both their minds clearly enough, as long as they were present, but couldn't 
make herself "heard." Would it be the same with these, today? 
It would be such a good thing, if the hive queen could speak to another human. 
She claimed to be able to do it, but Ender had learned over the past thirty 
years that the hive queen was unable to distinguish between her confident 
assessments of the future and her sure memories of the past. She seemed to trust 
her guesses every bit as much as she trusted her memories; and yet when her 
guesses turned out wrong, she seemed not to remember that she had ever expected 
a different future from the one that now was past. 
It was one of the quirks of her alien mind that disturbed Ender most. Ender had 
grown up in a culture that judged people's maturity and social fitness by their 
ability to anticipate the results of their choices. In some ways the hive queen 
seemed markedly deficient in this area; for all her great wisdom and experience, 
she seemed as boldly and unjustifiably confident as a small child. 
That was one of the things that frightened Ender about dealing with her. Could 
she keep a promise? If she failed to keep one, would she even realize what she 
had done? 
Valentine tried to concentrate on what the others were saying, but she couldn't 
take her eyes off the silhouette of the bugger leading them. It was smaller than 
she had ever imagined-- no taller than a meter and a half, probably less. 
Looking past the others, she could only glimpse parts of the bugger, but that 
was almost worse than seeing it whole. She couldn't keep herself from thinking 
that this shiny black enemy had a death grip on Ender's hand. 
Not a death grip. Not an enemy. Not even a creature, in itself. It had as much 
individual identity as an ear or a toe-- each bugger was just another of the 
hive queen's organs of action and sensation. In a sense the hive queen was 
already present with them-- was present wherever one of her workers or drones 
might be, even hundreds of light-years away. This is not a monster. This is the 
very hive queen written of in Ender's book. This is the one he carried with him 
and nurtured during all our years together, though I didn't know it. I have 
nothing to fear. 
Valentine had tried suppressing her fear, but it wasn't working. She was 
sweating; she could feel her hand slipping in Miro's palsied grip. As they got 
closer and closer to the hive queen's lair-- no, her home, her nursery-- she 
could feel herself getting more and more frightened. If she couldn't handle it 
alone, there was no choice but to reach out for help. Where was Jakt? Someone 
else would have to do. 
"I'm sorry, Miro," she whispered. "I think I've got the sweats." 
"You?" he said. "I thought it was my sweat." 
That was good. He laughed. She laughed with him-- or at least giggled nervously. 

The tunnel suddenly opened wide, and now they stood blinking in a large chamber 
with a shaft of bright sunlight stabbing through a hole in the vault of the 
ceiling. The hive queen was smack in the center of the light. There were workers 
all around, but now, in the light, in the presence of the queen, they all looked 
so small and fragile. Most of them were closer to one meter than a meter and a 
half in height, while the queen herself was surely three meters long. And height 
wasn't the half of it. Her wing-covers looked vast, heavy, almost metallic, with 
a rainbow of colors reflecting sunlight. Her abdomen was long and thick enough 
to contain the corpse of an entire human. Yet it narrowed, funnel-like, to an 
ovipositor at the quivering tip, glistening with a yellowish translucent fluid, 
gluey, stringy; it dipped into a hole in the floor of the room, deep as it could 
go, and then came back up, the fluid trailing away like unnoticed spittle, down 
into the hole. 
Grotesque and frightening as this was, a creature so large acting so much like 
an insect, it did not prepare Valentine for what happened next. For instead of 
simply dipping her ovipositor into the next hole, the queen turned and seized 
one of the workers hovering nearby. Holding the quivering bugger between her 
large forelegs, she drew it close and bit off its legs, one by one. As each leg 
was bitten off, the remaining legs gesticulated ever more wildly, like a silent 
scream. Valentine found herself desperately relieved when the last leg was gone, 
so that the scream was at last gone from her sight. 
Then the hive queen pushed the unlimbed worker headfirst down the next hole. 
Only then did she position her ovipositor over the hole. As Valentine watched, 
the fluid at the ovipositor's tip seemed to thicken into a ball. But it wasn't 
fluid after all, or not entirely; within the large drop was a soft, jellylike 
egg. The hive queen maneuvered her body so that her face was directly in the 
sunlight, her multiplex eyes shining like hundreds of emerald stars. Then the 
ovipositor plunged downward. When it came up, the egg still clung to the end, 
but on the next emergence the egg was gone. Several times more her abdomen 
dipped downward, each time coming up with more strands of fluid stringing 
downward from the tip. 
"Nossa Senhora," said Miro. Valentine recognized it from its Spanish 
equivalent-- Nuestra Sehora, Our Lady. It was usually an almost meaningless 
expression, but now it took on a repulsive irony. Not the Holy Virgin, here in 
this deep cavern. The hive queen was Our Lady of the Darkness. Laying eggs over 
the bodies of lying workers, to feed the larvae when they hatched. 
"It can't always be this way," said Plikt. 
For a moment Valentine was simply surprised to hear Plikt's voice. Then she 
realized what Plikt was saying, and she was right. If a living worker had to be 
sacrificed for every bugger that hatched, it would be impossible for the 
population to increase. In fact, it would have been impossible for this hive to 
exist in the first place, since the hive queen had to give life to her first 
eggs without the benefit of any legless workers to feed them. 
<Only a new queen.> 
It came into Valentine's mind as if it were her own idea. The hive queen only 
had to place a living worker's body into the egg casing when the egg was 
supposed to grow into a new hive queen. But this wasn't Valentine's own idea; it 
felt too certain for that. There was no way she could know this information, and 
yet the idea came clearly, unquestionably, all at once. As Valentine had always 
imagined that ancient prophets and mystics heard the voice of God. 
"Did you hear her? Any of you?" asked Ender. 
"Yes," said Plikt. 
"I think so," said Valentine. 
"Hear what?" asked Miro. 
"The hive queen," said Ender. "She explained that she only has to place a worker 
into the egg casing when she's laying the egg of a new hive queen. She's laying 
five-- there are two already in place. She invited us to come to see this. It's 
her way of telling us that she's sending out a colony ship. She lays five 
queen-eggs, and then waits to see which is strongest. That's the one she sends." 

"What about the others?" asked Valentine. 
"If any of them is worth anything, she cocoons the larva. That's what they did 
to her. The others she kills and eats. She has to-- if any trace of a rival 
queen's body should touch one of the drones that hasn't yet mated with this hive 
queen, it would go crazy and try to kill her. Drones are very loyal mates." 
"Everybody else heard this?" asked Miro. He sounded disappointed. The hive queen 
wasn't able to talk to him. 
"Yes," said Plikt. 
"Only a bit of it," said Valentine. 
"Empty your mind as best you can," said Ender. "Get some tune going in your 
head. That helps." 
In the meantime, the hive queen was nearly done with the next set of 
amputations. Valentine imagined stepping on the growing pile of legs around the 
queen; in her imagination, they broke like twigs with hideous snapping sounds. 
<Very soft. Legs don't break. Bend.> 
The queen was answering her thoughts. 
<You are part of Ender. You can hear me.> 
The thoughts in her mind were clearer. Not so intrusive now, more controlled. 
Valentine was able to feel the difference between the hive queen's 
communications and her own thoughts. 
"Ouvi," whispered Miro. He had heard something at last. "Fala mais, escuto. Say 
more, I'm listening." 
<Philotic connections. You are bound to Ender. When I talk to him through the 
philotic link, you overhear. Echoes. Reverberations.> 
Valentine tried to conceive how the hive queen was managing to speak Stark into 
her mind. Then she realized that the hive queen was almost certainly doing 
nothing of the kind-- Miro was hearing her in his native language, Portuguese; 
and Valentine wasn't really hearing Stark at all, she was hearing the English 
that it was based on, the American English that she had grown up with. The hive 
queen wasn't sending language to them, she was sending thought, and their brains 
were making sense of it in whatever language lay deepest in their minds. When 
Valentine heard the word echoes followed by reverberations, it wasn't the hive 
queen struggling for the right word, it was Valentine's own mind grasping for 
words to fit the meaning. 
<Bound to him. Like my people. Except you have free will. Independent philote. 
Rogue people, all of you.> 
"She's making a joke," whispered Ender. "Not a judgment." 
Valentine was grateful for his interpretation. The visual image that came with 
the phrase rogue people was of an elephant stomping a man to death. It was an 
image out of her childhood, the story from which she had first learned the word 
rogue. It frightened her, that image, the way it had frightened her as a child. 
She already hated the hive queen's presence in her mind. Hated the way she could 
dredge up forgotten nightmares. Everything about the hive queen was a nightmare. 
How could Valentine ever have imagined that this being was raman? Yes, there was 
communication. Too much of it. Communication like mental illness. 
And what she was saying-- that they heard her so well because they were 
philotically connected to Ender. Valentine thought back to what Miro and Jane 
had said during the voyage-- was it possible that her philotic strand was twined 
into Ender, and through him to the hive queen? But how could such a thing have 
happened? How could Ender ever have become bound to the hive queen in the first 
place? 
<We reached for him. He was our enemy. Trying to destroy us. We wanted to tame 
him. Like a rogue.> 
The understanding came suddenly, like a door opening. The buggers weren't all 
born docile. They could have their own identity. Or at least a breakdown of 
control. And so the hive queens had evolved a way of capturing them, binding 
them philotically to get them under control. 
<Found him. Couldn't bind him. Too strong.> 
And no one guessed the danger Ender was in. That the hive queen expected to be 
able to capture him, make him the same kind of mindless tool of her will as any 
bugger. 
<Set up a web for him. Found the thing he yearned for. We thought. Got into it. 
Gave it a philotic core. Bonded with him. But it wasn't enough. Now you. You.> 
Valentine felt the word like a hammer inside her mind. She means me. She means 
me, me, me... she struggled to remember who me was. Valentine. I'm Valentine. 
She means Valentine. 
<You were the one. You. Should have found you. What he longed for most. Not the 
other thing.> 
It gave her a sick feeling inside. Was it possible that the military was correct 
all along? Was it possible that only their cruel separation of Valentine and 
Ender saved him? That if she had been with Ender, the buggers could have used 
her to get control of him? 
<No. Could not do it. You are also too strong. We were doomed. We were dead. He 
couldn't belong to us. But not to you either. Not anymore. Couldn't tame him, 
but we twined with him.> 
Valentine thought of the picture that had come to her mind on the ship. Of 
people twined together, families tied by invisible cords, children to parents, 
parents to each other, or to their own parents. A shifting network of strings 
tying people together, wherever their allegiance belonged. Only now the picture 
was of herself, tied to Ender. And then of Ender, tied... to the hive queen... 
the queen shaking her ovipositor, the strands quivering, and at the end of the 
strand, Ender's head, wagging, bobbing ... 
She shook her head, trying to clear away the image. 
<We don't control him. He's free. He can kill me if he wants. I won't stop him. 
Will you kill me?> 
This time the you was not Valentine; she could feel the question recede from 
her. And now, as the hive queen waited for an answer, she felt another thought 
in her mind. So close to her own way of thinking that if she hadn't been 
sensitized, if she hadn't been waiting for Ender to answer, she would have 
assumed it was her own natural thought. 
Never, said the thought in her mind. I will never kill you. I love you. 
And along with this thought came a glimmer of genuine emotion toward the hive 
queen. All at once her mental image of the hive queen included no loathing at 
all. Instead she seemed majestic, royal, magnificent. The rainbows from her 
wing-covers no longer seemed like an oily scum on water; the light reflecting 
from her eyes was like a halo; the glistening fluids at the tip of her abdomen 
were the threads of life, like milk at the nipple of a woman's breast, stringing 
with saliva to her baby's suckling mouth. Valentine had been fighting nausea 
till now, yet suddenly she almost worshipped the hive queen. 
It was Ender's thought in her mind, she knew that; that's why the thoughts felt 
so much like her own. And with his vision of the hive queen, she knew at once 
that she had been right all along, when she wrote as Demosthenes so many years 
before. The hive queen was raman, strange but still capable of understanding and 
being understood. 
As the vision faded, Valentine could hear someone weeping. Plikt. In all their 
years together, Valentine had never heard Plikt show such frailty. 
"Bonita," said Miro. Pretty. 
Was that all he had seen? The hive queen was pretty? The communication must be 
weak indeed between Miro and Ender-- but why shouldn't it be? He hadn't known 
Ender that long or that well, while Valentine had known Ender all her life. 
But if that was why Valentine's reception of Ender's thought was so much 
stronger than Miro's, how could she explain the fact that Plikt had so clearly 
received far more than Valentine? Was it possible that in all her years of 
studying Ender, of admiring him without really knowing him, Plikt had managed to 
bind herself more tightly to Ender than even Valentine was bound? 
Of course she had. Of course. Valentine was married. Valentine had a husband. 
She had children. Her philotic connection to her brother was bound to be weaker. 
While Plikt had no allegiance strong enough to compete. She had given herself 
wholly to Ender. So with the hive queen making it possible for the philotic 
twines to carry thought, of course Plikt received Ender most perfectly. There 
was nothing to distract. No part of herself withheld. 
Could even Novinha, who after all was tied to her children, have such a complete 
devotion to Ender? It was impossible. And if Ender had any inkling of this, it 
had to be disturbing to him. Or attractive? Valentine knew enough of men and 
women to know that worship was the most seductive of attributes. Have I brought 
a rival with me, to trouble Ender's marriage? 
Can Ender and Plikt read my thoughts, even now? 
Valentine felt deeply exposed, frightened. As if in answer, as if to calm her, 
the hive queen's mental voice returned, drowning out any thoughts that Ender 
might be sending. 
<I know what you're afraid of. But my colony won't kill anyone. When we leave 
Lusitania, we can kill all the descolada virus on our starship.> 
Maybe, thought Ender. 
<We'll find a way. We won't carry the virus. We don't have to die to save 
humans. Don't kill us don't kill us.> 
I'll never kill you. Ender's thought came like a whisper, almost drowned out in 
the hive queen's pleading. 
We couldn't kill you anyway, thought Valentine. It's you who could easily kill 
us. Once you build your starships. Your weapons. You could be ready for the 
human fleet. Ender isn't commanding them this time. 
<Never. Never kill anybody. Never we promised.> 
Peace, came Ender's whisper. Peace. Be at peace, calm, quiet, rest. Fear 
nothing. Fear no man. 
Don't build a ship for the piggies, thought Valentine. Build a ship for 
yourself, because you can kill the descolada you carry. But not for them. 
The hive queen's thoughts abruptly changed from pleading to harsh rebuke. 
<Don't they also have a right to live? I promised them a ship. I promised you 
never to kill. Do you want me to break promises?> 
No, thought Valentine. She was already ashamed of herself for having suggested 
such a betrayal. Or were those the hive queen's feelings? Or Ender's? Was she 
really sure which thoughts and feelings were her own, and which were someone 
else's? 
The fear she felt-- it was her own, she was almost certain of that. 
"Please," she said. "I want to leave." 
"Eu tambem," said Miro. 
Ender took a single step toward the hive queen, reached out a hand toward her. 
She didn't extend her arms-- she was using them to jam the last of her 
sacrifices into the egg chamber. Instead the queen raised a wing-cover, rotated 
it, moved it toward Ender until at last his hand rested on the black rainbow 
surface. 
Don't touch it! cried Valentine silently. She'll capture you! She wants to tame 
you! 
"Hush," said Ender aloud. 
Valentine wasn't sure whether he was speaking in answer to her silent cries, or 
was trying to silence something the hive queen was saying only to him. It didn't 
matter. Within moments Ender had hold of a bugger's finger and was leading them 
back into the dark tunnel. This time he had Valentine second, Miro third, and 
Plikt bringing up the rear. So that it was Plikt: who cast the last look 
backward toward the hive queen; it was Plikt who raised her hand in farewell. 
All the way up to the surface, Valentine struggled to make sense of what had 
happened. She had always thought that if only people could communicate 
mind-to-mind, eliminating the ambiguities of language, then understanding would 
be perfect and there'd be no more needless conflicts. Instead she had discovered 
that rather than magnifying differences between people, language might just as 
easily soften them, minimize them, smooth things over so that people could get 
along even though they really didn't understand each other. The illusion of 
comprehension allowed people to think they were more alike than they really 
were. Maybe language was better. 
They crawled out of the building into the sunlight, blinking, laughing in 
relief, all of them. "Not fun," said Ender. "But you insisted, Val. Had to see 
her right away." 
"So I'm a fool," said Valentine. "Is that news?" 
"It was beautiful," said Plikt. 
Miro only lay on his back in the capim and covered his eyes with his arm. 
Valentine looked at him lying there and caught a glimpse of the man he used to 
be, the body he used to have. Lying there, he didn't stagger; silent, there was 
no halting in his speech. No wonder his fellow xenologer had fallen in love with 
him. Ouanda. So tragic to discover that her father was also his father. That was 
the worst thing revealed when Ender spoke for the dead in Lusitania thirty years 
ago. This was the man that Ouanda had lost; and Miro had also lost this man that 
he was. No wonder he had risked death crossing the fence to help the piggies. 
Having lost his sweetheart, he counted his life as worthless. His only regret 
was that he hadn't died after all. He had lived on, broken on the outside as he 
was broken on the inside. 
Why did she think of these things, looking at him? Why did it suddenly seem so 
real to her? 
Was it because this was how he was thinking of himself right now? Was she 
capturing his image of himself? Was there some lingering connection between 
their minds? 
"Ender," she said, "what happened down there?" 
"Better than I hoped," said Ender. 
"What was?" 
"The link between us." 
"You expected that?" 
"Wanted it." Ender sat on the side of the car, his feet dangling in the tall 
grass. "She was hot today, wasn't she?" 
"Was she? I wouldn't know how to compare." 
"Sometimes she's so intellectual-- it's like doing higher mathematics in my 
head, just talking to her. This time-- like a child. Of course, I've never been 
with her when she was laying queen eggs. I think she may have told us more than 
she meant to." 
"You mean she didn't mean her promise?" 
"No, Val, no, she always means her promises. She doesn't know how to lie." 
"Then what did you mean?" 
"I was talking about the link between me and her. How they tried to tame me. 
That was really something, wasn't it? She was furious there for a moment, when 
she thought that you might have been the link they needed. You know what that 
would have meant to them-- they wouldn't have been destroyed. They might even 
have used me to communicate with the human governments. Shared the galaxy with 
us. Such a lost opportunity." 
"You would have been-- like a bugger. A slave to them." 
"Sure. I wouldn't have liked it. But all the lives that would have been saved-- 
I was a soldier, wasn't I? If one soldier, dying, can save the lives of billions 
..." 
"But it couldn't have worked. You have an independent will," said Valentine. 
"Sure," said Ender. "Or at least, more independent than the hive queen can deal 
with. You too. Comforting, isn't it?" 
"I don't feel very comforted right now," said Valentine. "You were inside my 
head down there. And the hive queen-- I feel so violated--" 
Ender looked surprised. "It never feels that way to me." 
"Well, it's not just that," said Valentine. "It was exhilarating, too. And 
frightening. She's so-- large inside my head. Like I'm trying to contain someone 
bigger than myself." 
"I guess," said Ender. He turned to Plikt. "Was it like that for you, too?" 
For the first time Valentine realized how Plikt was looking at Ender, with eyes 
full, a trembling gaze. But Plikt said nothing. 
"That strong, huh?" said Ender. He chuckled and turned to Miro. 
Didn't he see? Plikt had already been obsessed with Ender. Now, having had him 
inside her mind, it might have been too much for her. The hive queen talked of 
taming rogue workers. Was it possible that Plikt had been "tamed" by Ender? Was 
it possible that she had lost her soul inside his? 
Absurd. Impossible. I hope to God it isn't so. 
"Come on, Miro," said Ender. 
Miro allowed Ender to help him to his feet. Then they climbed back onto the car 
and headed home to Milagre. 



Miro had told them that he didn't want to go to mass. Ender and Novinha went 
without him. But as soon as they were gone, he found it impossible to remain in 
the house. He kept getting the feeling that someone was just outside his range 
of vision. In the shadows, a smallish figure, watching him. Encased in smooth 
hard armor, only two clawlike fingers on its slender arms, arms that could be 
bitten off and cast down like brittle kindling wood. Yesterday's visit to the 
hive queen had bothered him more than he dreamed possible. 
I'm a xenologer, he reminded himself. My life has been devoted to dealing with 
aliens. I stood and watched as Ender flayed Human's mammaloid body and I didn't 
even flinch, because I'm a dispassionate scientist. Sometimes maybe I identify 
too much with my subjects. But I don't have nightmares about them, I don't start 
seeing them in shadows. 
Yet here he was, standing outside the door of his mother's house because in the 
grassy fields, in the bright sunlight of a Sunday morning, there were no shadows 
where a bugger could wait to spring. 
Am I the only one who feels this way? 
The hive queen isn't an insect. She and her people are warm-blooded, just like 
the pequeninos. They respirate, they sweat like mammals. They may carry with 
them the structural echoes of their evolutionary link with insects, just as we 
have our resemblances to lemurs and shrews and rats, but they created a bright 
and beautiful civilization. Or at least a dark and beautiful one. I should see 
them the way Ender does, with respect, with awe, with affection. 
And all I managed, barely, was endurance. 
There's no doubt that the hive queen is raman, capable of comprehending and 
tolerating us. The question is whether I am capable of comprehending and 
tolerating her. And I can't be the only one. Ender was so right to keep the 
knowledge of the hive queen from most of the people of Lusitania. If they once 
saw what I saw, or even caught a glimpse of a single bugger, the fear would 
spread, each one's terror would feed on everyone else's dread, until-- until 
something. Something bad. Something monstrous. 
Maybe we're the varelse. Maybe xenocide is built into the human psyche as into 
no other species. Maybe the best thing that could happen for the moral good of 
the universe is for the descolada to get loose, to spread throughout the human 
universe and break us down to nothing. Maybe the descolada is God's answer to 
our unworthiness. 
Miro found himself at the door of the cathedral. In the cool morning air it 
stood open. Inside, they had not yet come to the eucharist. He shuffled in, took 
his place near the back. He had no desire to commune with Christ today. He 
simply needed the sight of other people. He needed to be surrounded by human 
beings. He knelt, crossed himself, then stayed there, clinging to the back of 
the pew in front of him, his head bowed. He would have prayed, but there was 
nothing in the Pai Nosso to deal with his fear. Give us this day our daily 
bread? Forgive us our trespasses? Thy kingdom come on earth as it is in heaven? 
That would be good. God's kingdom, in which the lion could dwell with the lamb. 
Then there came to his mind an image of St. Stephen's vision: Christ sitting at 
the right hand of God. But on the left hand was someone else. The Queen of 
Heaven. Not the Holy Virgin but the hive queen, with whitish slime quivering on 
the tip of her abdomen. Miro clenched his hands on the wood of the pew before 
him. God take this vision from me. Get thee behind me, Enemy. 
Someone came and knelt beside him. He didn't dare to open his eyes. He listened 
for some sound that would declare his companion to be human. But the rustling of 
cloth could just as easily be wing casings sliding across a hardened thorax. 
He had to force this image away. He opened his eyes. With his peripheral vision 
he could see that his companion was kneeling. From the slightness of the arm, 
from the color of the sleeve, it was a woman. 
"You can't hide from me forever," she whispered. 
The voice was wrong. Too husky. A voice that had spoken a hundred thousand times 
since last he heard it. A voice that had crooned to babies, cried out in the 
throes of love, shouted at children to come home, come home. A voice that had 
once, when it was young, told him of a love that would last forever. 
"Miro, if I could have taken your cross upon myself, I would have done it." 
My cross? Is that what it is I carry around with me, heavy and sluggish, 
weighing me down? And here I thought it was my body. 
"I don't know what to tell you, Miro. I grieved-- for a long time. Sometimes I 
think I still do. Losing you-- our hope for the future, I mean-- it was better 
anyway-- that's what I realized. I've had a good family, a good life, and so 
will you. But losing you as my friend, as my brother, that was the hardest 
thing, I was so lonely, I don't know if I ever got over that." 
Losing you as my sister was the easy part. I didn't need another sister. 
"You break my heart, Miro. You're so young. You haven't changed, that's the 
hardest thing, you haven't changed in thirty years." 
It was more than Miro could bear in silence. He didn't lift his head, but he did 
raise his voice. Far too loudly for the middle of mass, he answered her: 
"Haven't I?" 
He rose to his feet, vaguely aware that people were turning around to look at 
him. 
"Haven't I?" His voice was thick, hard to understand, and he was doing nothing 
to make it any clearer. He took a halting step into the aisle, then turned to 
face her at last. "This is how you remember me?" 
She looked up at him, aghast-- at what? At Miro's speech, his palsied movements? 
Or simply that he was embarrassing her, that it didn't turn into the tragically 
romantic scene she had imagined for the past thirty years? 
Her face wasn't old, but it wasn't Ouanda, either. Middle-aged, thicker, with 
creases at the eyes. How old was she? Fifty now? Almost. What did this 
fifty-year-old woman have to do with him? 
"I don't even know you," said Miro. Then he lurched his way to the door and 
passed out into the morning. 
Some time later he found himself resting in the shade of a tree. Which one was 
this, Rooter or Human? Miro tried to remember-- it was only a few weeks ago that 
he left here, wasn't it? --but when he left, Human's tree was still only a 
sapling, and now both trees looked to be about the same size and he couldn't 
remember for sure whether Human had been killed uphill or downhill from Rooter. 
It didn't matter-- Miro had nothing to say to a tree, and they had nothing to 
say to him. 
Besides, Miro had never learned tree language; they hadn't even known that all 
that beating on trees with sticks was really a language until it was too late 
for Miro. Ender could do it, and Ouanda, and probably half a dozen other people, 
but Miro would never learn, because there was no way Miro's hands could hold the 
sticks and beat the rhythms. Just one more kind of speech that was now useless 
to him. 
"Que dia chato, meu filho." 
That was one voice that would never change. And the attitude was unchanging as 
well: What a rotten day, my son. Pious and snide at the same time-- and mocking 
himself for both points of view. 
"Hi, Quim." 
"Father Estevao now, I'm afraid." Quim had adopted the full regalia of a priest, 
robes and all; now he gathered them under himself and sat on the worn-down grass 
in front of Miro. 
"You look the part," said Miro. Quim had matured well. As a kid he had looked 
pinched and pious. Experience with the real world instead of theological theory 
had given him lines and creases, but the face that resulted had compassion in 
it. And strength. "Sorry I made a scene at mass." 
"Did you?" asked Miro. "I wasn't there. Or rather, I was at mass-- I just wasn't 
at the cathedral." 
"Communion for the ramen?" 
"For the children of God. The church already had a vocabulary to deal with 
strangers. We didn't have to wait for Demosthenes." 
"Well, you don't have to be smug about it, Quim. You didn't invent the terms." 
"Let's not fight." 
"Then let's not butt into other people's meditations." 
"A noble sentiment. Except that you have chosen to rest in the shade of a friend 
of mine, with whom I need to have a conversation. I thought it was more polite 
to talk to you first, before I start beating on Rooter with sticks." 
"This is Rooter?" 
"Say hi. I know he was looking forward to your return." 
"I never knew him." 
"But he knew all about you. I don't think you realize, Miro, what a hero you are 
among the pequeninos. They know what you did for them, and what it cost you." 
"And do they know what it's probably going to cost us all, in the end?" 
"In the end we'll all stand before the judgment bar of God. If a whole planetful 
of souls is taken there at once, then the only worry is to make sure no one goes 
unchristened whose soul might have been welcomed among the saints." 
"So you don't even care?" 
"I care, of course," said Quim. "But let's say that there's a longer view, in 
which life and death are less important matters than choosing what kind of life 
and what kind of death we have." 
"You really do believe all this, don't you," said Miro. 
"Depending on what you mean by 'all this,' yes, I do." 
"I mean all of it. A living God, a resurrected Christ, miracles, visions, 
baptism, transubstantiation." 
"Yes." 
"Miracles. Healing." 
"Yes." 
"Like at the shrine to Grandfather and Grandmother." 
"Many healings have been reported there." 
"Do you believe in them?" 
"Miro, I don't know-- some of them might have been hysterical. Some might have 
been a placebo effect. Some purported healings might have been spontaneous 
remissions or natural recoveries." 
"But some were real." 
"Might have been." 
"You believe that miracles are possible." 
"Yes." 
"But you don't think any of them actually happen." 
"Miro, I believe that they do happen. I just don't know if people accurately 
perceive which events are miracles and which are not. There are no doubt many 
miracles claimed which were not miracles at all. There are also probably many 
miracles that no one recognized when they occurred." 
"What about me, Quim?" 
"What about you?" 
"Why no miracle for me?" 
Quirn ducked his head, pulled at the short grass in front of him. It was a habit 
when he was a child, trying to avoid a hard question; it was the way he 
responded when their supposed father, Marcao, was on a drunken rampage. 
"What is it, Quim? Are miracles only for other people?" 
"Part of the miracle is that no one knows why it happens." 
"What a weasel you are, Quim." 
Quim flushed. "You want to know why you don't get a miraculous healing? Because 
you don't have faith, Miro." 
"What about the man who said, Yes Master, I believe-- forgive my unbelief?" 
"Are you that man? Have you even asked for a healing?" 
"I'm asking now," said Miro. And then, unbidden, tears came to his eyes. "O 
God," he whispered. "I'm so ashamed." 
"Of what?" asked Quim. "Of having asked God for help? Of crying in front of your 
brother? Of your sins? Of your doubts?" 
Miro shook his head. He didn't know. These questions were all too hard. Then he 
realized that he did know the answer. He held out his arms from his sides. "Of 
this body," he said. 
Quirn reached out and took his arms near the shoulder, drew them toward him, his 
hands sliding down Miro's arms until he was clasping Miro's wrists. "This is my 
body which is given for you, he told us. The way you gave your body for the 
pequeninos. For the little ones." 
"Yeah, Quim, but he got his body back, right?" 
"He died, too." 
"Is that how I get healed? Find a way to die?" 
"Don't be an ass," said Quim. "Christ didn't kill himself. That was Judas's 
ploy." 
Miro's anger exploded. "All those people who get their colds cured, who get 
their migraines miraculously taken from them-- are you telling me they deserve 
more from God than I do?" 
"Maybe it isn't based on what you deserve. Maybe it's based on what you need." 
Miro lunged forward, seizing the front of Quim's robe between his halfspastic 
fingers. "I need my body back!" 
"Maybe," said Quim. 
"What do you mean maybe, you simpering smug asshole!" 
"I mean," said Quim mildly, "that while you certainly want your body back, it 
may be that God, in his great wisdom, knows that for you to become the best man 
you can be, you need to spend a certain amount of time as a cripple." 
"How much time?" Miro demanded. 
"Certainly no longer than the rest of your life." 
Miro grunted in disgust and released Quim's robe. 
"Maybe less," said Quim. "I hope so." 
"Hope," said Miro contemptuously. 
"Along with faith and pure love, it's one of the great virtues. You should try 
it." 
"I saw Ouanda." 
"She's been trying to speak to you since you arrived." 
"She's old and fat. She's had a bunch of babies and lived thirty years and some 
guy she married has plowed her up one side and down the other all that time. I'd 
rather have visited her grave!" 
"How generous of you." 
"You know what I mean! Leaving Lusitania was a good idea, but thirty years 
wasn't long enough." 
"You'd rather come back to a world where no one knows you." 
"No one knows me here, either." 
"Maybe not. But we love you, Miro." 
"You love what I used to be." 
"You're the same man, Miro. You just have a different body." 
Miro struggled to his feet, leaning against Rooter for support as he got up. 
"Talk to your tree friend, Quim. You've got nothing to say that I want to hear." 

"So you think," said Quim. 
"You know what's worse than an asshole, Quim?" 
"Sure," said Quim. "A hostile, bitter, self-pitying, abusive, miserable, useless 
asshole who has far too high an opinion of the importance of his own suffering." 

It was more than Miro could bear. He screamed in fury and threw himself at Quim, 
knocking him to the ground. Of course Miro lost his own balance and fell on top 
of his brother, then got tangled in Quim's robes. But that was all right; Miro 
wasn't trying to get up, he was trying to beat some pain into Quim, as if by 
doing that he would remove some from himself. 
After only a few blows, though, Miro stopped hitting Quim and collapsed in 
tears, weeping on his brother's chest. After a moment he felt Quim's arms around 
him. Heard Quim's soft voice, intoning a prayer. 
"Pai Nosso, que estas no ceu." From there, however, the incantation stopped and 
the words turned new and therefore real. "O teu filho esta com dor, o meu irmao 
precisa a resurreicao da alma, ele merece o refresco da esperanca." 
Hearing Quim give voice to Miro's pain, to his outrageous demands, made Miro 
ashamed again. Why should Miro imagine that he deserved new hope? How could he 
dare to demand that Quim pray for a miracle for him, for his body to be made 
whole? It was unfair, Miro knew, to put Quim's faith on the line for a 
self-pitying unbeliever like him. 
But the prayer went on. "Ele deu tudo aos pequeninos, e tu nos disseste, 
Salvador, que qualquer coisa que fazemos a estes pequeninos, fazemos a ti." 
Miro wanted to interrupt. If I gave all to the pequeninos, I did it for them, 
not for myself. But Quim's words held him silent: You told us, Savior, that 
whatever we do to these little ones, we do to you. It was as if Quim were 
demanding that God hold up his end of a bargain. It was a strange sort of 
relationship that Quim must have with God, as if he had a right to call God to 
account. 
"Ele nao ? como J?, perfeito na coracao." 
No, I'm not as perfect as Job. But I've lost everything, just as Job did. 
Another man fathered my children on the woman who should have been my wife. 
Others have accomplished my accomplishments. And where Job had boils, I have 
this lurching half-paralysis-- would Job trade with me? 
"Restabelece ele como restabeleceste J?. Em nome do Pai, e do Filho, e do 
Espirito Santo. Amem." Restore him as you restored Job. 
Miro felt his brother's arms release him, and as if it were those arms, not 
gravity, that held him on his brother's chest, Miro rose up at once and stood 
looking down on his brother. A bruise was growing on Quim's cheek. His lip was 
bleeding. 
"I hurt you," said Miro. "I'm sorry." 
"Yes," said Quim. "You did hurt me. And I hurt you. It's a popular pastime here. 
Help me up." 
For a moment, just one fleeting moment, Miro forgot that he was crippled, that 
he could barely maintain his balance himself. For just that moment he began to 
reach out a hand to his brother. But then he staggered as his balance slipped, 
and he remembered. "I can't," he said. 
"Oh, shut up about being crippled and give me a hand." 
So Miro positioned his legs far apart and bent down over his brother. His 
younger brother, who now was nearly three decades his senior, and older still in 
wisdom and compassion. Miro reached out his hand. Quim gripped it, and with 
Miro's help rose up from the ground. The effort was exhausting for Miro; he 
hadn't the strength for this, and Quim wasn't faking it, he was relying on Miro 
to lift him. They ended up facing each other, shoulder to shoulder, hands still 
together. 
"You're a good priest," said Miro. 
"Yeah," said Quim. "And if I ever need a sparring partner, you'll get a call." 
"Will God answer your prayer?" 
"Of course. God answers all prayers." 
It took only a moment for Miro to realize what Quim meant. "I mean, will he say 
yes." 
"Ah. That's the part I'm never sure about. Tell me later if he did." 
Quim walked-- rather stiffly, limping-- to the tree. He bent over and picked up 
a couple of talking sticks from the ground. 
"What are you talking to Rooter about?" 
"He sent word that I need to talk to him. There's some kind of heresy in one of 
the forests a long way from here." 
"You convert them and then they go crazy, huh?" said Miro. 
"No, actually," said Quim. "This is a group that I never preached to. The 
fathertrees all talk to each other, so the ideas of Christianity are already 
everywhere in the world. As usual, heresy seems to spread faster than truth. And 
Rooter's feeling guilty because it's based on a speculation of his." 
"I guess that's a serious business for you," said Miro. 
Quim winced. "Not just for me." 
"I'm sorry. I meant, for the church. For believers." 
"Nothing so parochial as that, Miro. These pequeninos have come up with a really 
interesting heresy. Once, not long ago, Rooter speculated that, just as Christ 
came to human beings, the Holy Ghost might someday come to the pequeninos. It's 
a gross misinterpretation of the Holy Trinity, but this one forest took it quite 
seriously." 
"Sounds pretty parochial to me." 
"Me too. Till Rooter told me the specifics. You see, they're convinced that the 
descolada virus is the incarnation of the Holy Ghost. It makes a perverse kind 
of sense-- since the Holy Ghost has always dwelt everywhere, in all God's 
creations, it's appropriate for its incarnation to be the descolada virus, which 
also penetrates into every part of every living thing." 
"They worship the virus?" 
"Oh, yes. After all, didn't you scientists discover that the pequeninos were 
created, as sentient beings, by the descolada virus? So the virus is endued with 
the creative power, which means it has a divine nature." 
"I guess there's as much literal evidence for that as for the incarnation of God 
in Christ." 
"No, there's a lot more. But if that were all, Miro, I'd regard it as a church 
matter. Complicated, difficult, but-- as you said-- parochial." 
"So what is it?" 
"The descolada is the second baptism. By fire. Only the pequeninos can endure 
that baptism, and it carries them into the third life. They are clearly closer 
to God than humans, who have been denied the third life." 
"The mythology of superiority. We could expect that, I guess," said Miro. 
"Most communities attempting to survive under irresistible pressure from a 
dominant culture develop a myth that allows them to believe they are somehow a 
special people. Chosen. Favored by the gods. Gypsies, Jews-- plenty of 
historical precedents. 
"Try this one, Senhor Zenador. Since the pequeninos are the ones chosen by the 
Holy Ghost, it's their mission to spread this second baptism to every tongue and 
every people." 
"Spread the descolada?" 
"To every world. Sort of a portable judgment day. They arrive, the descolada 
spreads, adapts, kills-- and everybody goes to meet their Maker." 
"God help us." 
"So we hope." 
Then Miro made a connection with something he had learned only the day before. 
"Quim, the buggers are building a ship for the pequeninos." 
"So Ender told me. And when I confronted Father Daymaker about it--" 
"He's a pequenino?" 
"One of Human's children. He said, 'Of course,' as if everyone knew about it. 
Maybe that's what he thought-- that if the pequeninos know it, then it's known. 
He also told me that this heretic group is angling to try to get command of the 
ship." 
"Why?" 
"So they can take it to an inhabited world, of course. Instead of finding an 
uninhabited planet to terraform and colonize." 
"I think we'd have to call it lusiforming." 
"Funny." Quim wasn't laughing, though. "They might get their way. This idea of 
pequeninos being a superior species is popular, especially among non-Christian 
pequeninos. Most of them aren't very sophisticated. They don't catch on to the 
fact that they're talking about xenocide. About wiping out the human race." 
"How could they miss a little fact like that?" 
"Because the heretics are stressing the fact that God loves the humans so much 
that he sent his only beloved son. You remember the scripture." 
"Whoever believes in him will not perish." 
"Exactly. Those who believe will have eternal life. As they see it, the third 
life." 
"So those who die must have been the unbelievers." 
"Not all the pequeninos are lining up to volunteer for service as itinerant 
destroying angels. But enough of them are that it has to be stopped. Not just 
for the sake of Mother Church." 
"Mother Earth." 
"So you see, Miro, sometimes a missionary like me takes on a great deal of 
importance in the world. Somehow I have to persuade these poor heretics of the 
error of their ways and get them to accept the doctrine of the church." 
"Why are you talking to Rooter now?" 
"To get the one piece of information the pequeninos never give us." 
"What's that?" 
"Addresses. There are thousands of pequenino forests on Lusitania. Which one is 
the heretic community? Their starship will be long gone before I find it by 
random forest-hopping on my own." 
"You're going alone?" 
"I always do. I can't take any of the little brothers with me, Miro. Until a 
forest has been converted, they have a tendency to kill pequenino strangers. One 
case where it's better to be raman than utlanning." 
"Does Mother know you're going?" 
"Please be practical, Miro. I have no fear of Satan, but Mother ..." 
"Does Andrew know?" 
"Of course. He insists on going with me. The Speaker for the Dead has enormous 
prestige, and he thinks he could help me." 
"So you won't be alone." 
"Of course I will. When has a man clothed in the whole armor of God ever needed 
the help of a humanist?" 
"Andrew's a Catholic." 
"He goes to mass, he takes communion, he confesses regularly, but he's still a 
speaker for the dead and I don't think he really believes in God. I'll go 
alone." 
Miro looked at Quim with new admiration. "You're one tough son of a bitch, 
aren't you?" 
"Welders and smiths are tough. Sons of bitches have problems of their own. I'm 
just a servant of God and of the church, with a job to do. I think recent 
evidence suggests that I'm in more danger from my brother than I am among the 
most heretical of pequeninos. Since the death of Human, the pequeninos have kept 
the worldwide oath-- not one has ever raised a hand in violence against a human 
being. They may be heretics, but they're still pequeninos. They'll keep the 
oath." 
"I'm sorry I hit you." 
"I received it as if it were an embrace, my son." 
"I wish it had been one, Father Estevao." 
"Then it was." 
Quim turned to the tree and began to beat out a tattoo. Almost at once, the 
sound began to shift, changing in pitch and tone as the hollow spaces within the 
tree changed shape. Miro waited a few moments, listening, even though he didn't 
understand the language of the fathertrees. Rooter was speaking with the only 
audible voice the fathertrees had. Once he had spoken with a voice, once had 
articulated lips with and tongue and teeth. There was more than one way to lose 
your body. Miro had passed through an experience that should have killed him. He 
had come out of it crippled. But he could still move, however clumsily, could 
still speak, however slowly. He thought he was suffering like Job. Rooter and 
Human, far more crippled than he, thought they had received eternal life. 
"Pretty ugly situation," said Jane in his ear. 
Yes, said Miro silently. 
"Father Estevao shouldn't go alone," she said. "The pequeninos used to be 
devastatingly effective warriors. They haven't forgotten how." 
So tell Ender, said Miro. I don't have any power here. 
"Bravely spoken, my hero," said Jane. "I'll talk to Ender while you wait around 
here for your miracle." 
Miro sighed and walked back down the hill and through the gate. 
Table of Contents



Chapter 9 -- Pinehead
<I've been talking to Ender and his sister, Valentine. She's a historian.> 
<Explain this.> 
<She searches through the books to find out the stories of humans, and then 
writes stories about what she finds and gives them to all the other humans.> 
<If the stories are already written down, why does she write them again?> 
<Because they aren't well understood. She helps people understand them.> 
<If the people closer to that time didn't understand them, how can she, coming 
later, understand them better?> 
<I asked this myself, and Valentine said that she doesn't always understand them 
better. But the old writers understood what the stories meant to the people of 
their time, and she understands what the stories mean to people of her time.> 
<So the story changes.> 
<Yes.> 
<And yet each time they still think of the story as a true memory?> 
<Valentine explained something about some stories being true and others being 
truthful. I didn't understand any of it.> 
<Why don't they just remember their stories accurately in the first place? Then 
they wouldn't have to keep lying to each other.> 
  
  
  
Qing-jao sat before her terminal, her eyes closed, thinking. Wang-mu was 
brushing Qing-jao's hair; the tugs, the strokes, the very breath of the girl was 
a comfort to her. 
This was a time when Wang-mu could speak freely, without fear of interrupting 
her. And, because Wang-mu was Wang-mu, she used hair-brushing time for 
questions. She had so many questions. 
The first few days her questions had all been about the speaking of the gods. Of 
course, Wang-mu had been greatly relieved to learn that almost always tracing a 
single woodgrain line was enough-- she had been afraid after that first time 
that Qing-jao would have to trace the whole floor every day. 
But she still had questions about everything to do with purification. Why don't 
you just get up and trace a line every morning and have done with it? Why don't 
you just have the floor covered in carpet? It was so hard to explain that the 
gods can't be fooled by silly stratagems like that. 
What if there were no wood at all in the whole world? Would the gods burn you up 
like paper? Would a dragon come and carry you off? 
Qing-jao couldn't answer Wang-mu's questions except to say that this is what the 
gods required of her. If there were no woodgrain, the gods wouldn't require her 
to trace it. To which Wang-mu replied that they should make a law against wooden 
floors, then, so that Qing-jao could be shut of the whole business. 
Those who hadn't heard the voice of the gods simply couldn't understand. 
Today, though, Wang-mu's question had nothing to do with the gods-- or, at 
least, had nothing to do with them atfirst. 
"What is it that finally stopped the Lusitania Fleet?" asked Wang-mu. 
Almost, Qing-jao simply took the question in stride; almost she answered with a 
laugh: If I knew that, I could rest! But then she realized that Wang-mu probably 
shouldn't even know that the Lusitania Fleet had disappeared. 
"How would you know anything about the Lusitania Fleet?" 
"I can read, can't I?" said Wang-mu, perhaps a little too proudly. 
But why shouldn't she be proud? Qing-jao had told her, truthfully, that Wang-mu 
learned very quickly indeed, and figured out many things for herself. She was 
very intelligent, and Qing-jao knew she shouldn't be surprised if Wang-mu 
understood more than was told to her directly. 
"I can see what you have on your terminal," said Wang-mu, "and it always has to 
do with the Lusitania Fleet. Also you discussed it with your father the first 
day I was here. I didn't understand most of what you said, but I knew it had to 
do with the Lusitania Fleet." Wang-mu's voice was suddenly filled with loathing. 
"May the gods piss in the face of the man who launched that fleet." 
Her vehemence was shocking enough; the fact that Wang-mu was speaking against 
Starways Congress was unbelievable. 
"Do you know who it was that launched the fleet?" asked Qing-jao. 
"Of course. It was the selfish politicians in Starways Congress, trying to 
destroy any hope that a colony world could win its independence." 
So Wang-mu knew she was speaking treasonously. Qing-jao remembered her own 
similar words, long ago, with loathing; to have them said again in her 
presence-- and by her own secret maid-- was outrageous. "What do you know of 
these things? These are matters for Congress, and here you are speaking of 
independence and colonies and--" 
Wang-mu was on her knees, head bowed to the floor. Qing-jao was at once ashamed 
for speaking so harshly. 
"Oh, get up, Wang-mu." 
"You're angry with me." 
"I'm shocked to hear you talk like that, that's all. Where did you hear such 
nonsense?" 
"Everybody says it," said Wang-mu. 
"Not everybody," said Qing-jao. "Father never says it. On the other hand, 
Demosthenes says that sort of thing all the time." Qing-jao remembered how she 
had felt when she first read the words of Demosthenes-- how logical and right 
and fair he had sounded. Only later, after Father had explained to her that 
Demosthenes was the enemy of the rulers and therefore the enemy of the gods, 
only then did she realize how oily and deceptive the traitor's words had been, 
which had almost seduced her into believing that the Lusitania Fleet was evil. 
If Demosthenes had been able to come so close to fooling an educated godspoken 
girl like Qing-jao, no wonder that she was hearing his words repeated like truth 
in the mouth of a common girl. 
"Who is Demosthenes?" asked Wang-mu. 
"A traitor who is apparently succeeding better than anyone thought." Did 
Starways Congress realize that Demosthenes' ideas were being repeated by people 
who had never heard of him? Did anyone understand what this meant? Demosthenes' 
ideas were now the common wisdom of the common people. Things had reached a more 
dangerous turn than Qing-jao had imagined. Father was wiser; he must know 
already. "Never mind," said Qingjao. "Tell me about the Lusitania Fleet." 
"How can I, when it will make you angry?" 
Qing-jao waited patiently. 
"All right then," said Wang-mu, but she still looked wary. "Father says-- and so 
does Pan Ku-wei, his very wise friend who once took the examination for the 
civil service and came very very close to passing--" 
"What do they say?" 
"That it's a very bad thing for Congress to send a huge fleet-- and so huge-- 
all to attack the tiniest colony simply because they refused to send away two of 
their citizens for trial on another world. They say that justice is completely 
on the side of Lusitania, because to send people from one planet to another 
against their will is to take them away from family and friends forever. That's 
like sentencing them before the trial." 
"What if they're guilty?" 
"That's for the courts to decide on their own world, where people know them and 
can measure their crime fairly, not for Congress to decide from far away where 
they know nothing and understand less." Wang-mu ducked her head. "That's what 
Pan Ku-wei says." 
Qing-jao stilled her own revulsion at Wang-mu's traitorous words; it was 
important to know what the common people thought, even if the very hearing of it 
made Qing-jao sure the gods would be angry with her for such disloyalty. "So you 
think that the Lusitania Fleet should never have been sent?" 
"If they can send a fleet against Lusitania for no good reason, what's to stop 
them from sending a fleet against Path? We're also a colony, not one of the 
Hundred Worlds, not a member of Starways Congress. What's to stop them from 
declaring that Han Fei-tzu is a traitor and making him travel to some faraway 
planet and never come back for sixty years?" 
The thought was a terrible one, and it was presumptuous of Wang-mu to bring her 
father into the discussion, not because she was a servant, but because it would 
be presumptuous of anyone to imagine the great Han Fei-tzu being convicted of a 
crime. Qing-jao's composure failed her for a moment, and she spoke her outrage: 
"Starways Congress would never treat my father like a criminal!" 
"Forgive me, Qing-jao. You told me to repeat what my father said." 
"You mean your father spoke of Han Fei-tzu?" 
"All the people of Jonlei know that Han Fei-tzu is the most honorable man of 
Path. It's our greatest pride, that the House of Han is part of our city." 
So, thought Qing-jao, you knew exactly how ambitious you were being when you set 
out to become his daughter's maid. 
"I meant no disrespect, nor did they. But isn't it true that if Starways 
Congress wanted to, they could order Path to send your father to another world 
to stand trial?" 
"They would never--" 
"But could they?" insisted Wang-mu. 
"Path is a colony," said Qing-jao. "The law allows it, but Starways Congress 
would never--" 
"But if they did it to Lusitania, why wouldn't they do it to Path?" 
"Because the xenologers on Lusitania were guilty of crimes that--" 
"The people of Lusitania didn't think so. Their government refused to send them 
off for trial." 
"That's the worst part. How can a planetary government dare to think they know 
better than Congress?" 
"But they knew everything," said Wang-mu, as if this idea were so natural that 
everyone must know it. "They knew those people, those xenologers. If Starways 
Congress ordered Path to send Han Fei-tzu to go stand trial on another world for 
a crime we know he didn't commit, don't you think we would also rebel rather 
than send such a great man? And then they would send a fleet against us." 
"Starways Congress is the source of all justice in the Hundred Worlds." Qing-jao 
spoke with finality. The discussion was over. 
Impudently, Wang-mu didn't fall silent. "But Path isn't one of the Hundred 
Worlds yet, is it?" she said. "We're just a colony. They can do what they want, 
and that's not right." 
Wang-mu nodded her head at the end, as if she thought she had utterly prevailed. 
Qing-jao almost laughed. She would have laughed, in fact, if she hadn't been so 
angry. Partly she was angry because Wang-mu had interrupted her many times and 
had even contradicted her, something that her teachers had always been very 
careful not to do. Still, Wang-mu's audacity was probably a good thing, and 
Qing-jao's anger was a sign that she had become too used to the undeserved 
respect people showed to her ideas simply because they fell from the lips of the 
godspoken. Wang-mu must be encouraged to speak to her like this. That part of 
Qing-jao's anger was wrong, and she must get rid of it. 
But much of Qing-jao's anger was because of the way Wang-mu had spoken about 
Starways Congress. It was as if Wang-mu didn't think of Congress as the supreme 
authority over all of humanity; as if Wang-mu imagined that Path was more 
important than the collective will of all the worlds. Even if the inconceivable 
happened and Han Fei-tzu were ordered to stand trial on a world a hundred 
lightyears away, he would do it without murmur-- and he would be furious if 
anyone on Path made the slightest resistance. To rebel like Lusitania? 
Unthinkable. It made Qing-jao feel dirty just to think of it. 
Dirty. Impure. To hold such a rebellious thought made her start searching for a 
woodgrain line to trace. 
"Qing-jao!" cried Wang-mu, as soon as Qing-jao knelt and bowed over the floor. 
"Please tell me that the gods aren't punishing you for hearing the words I 
said!" 
"They aren't punishing me," said Qing-jao. "They're purifying me." 
"But they weren't even my words, Qing-jao. They were the words of people who 
aren't even here." 
"They were impure words, whoever said them." 
"But that's not fair, to make you cleanse yourself for ideas that you never even 
thought of or believed in!" 
Worse and worse! Would Wang-mu never stop? "Now must I hear you tell me that the 
gods themselves are unfair?" 
"They are, if they punish you for other people's words!" 
The girl was outrageous. "Now you are wiser than the gods?" 
"They might as well punish you for being pulled on by gravity, or being fallen 
on by rain!" 
"If they tell me to purify myself for such things, then I'll do it, and call it 
justice," said Qing-jao. 
"Then justice has no meaning!" cried Wang-mu. "When you say the word, you mean 
whatever-the-gods-happen-to-decide. But when I say the word, I mean fairness, I 
mean people being punished only for what they did on purpose, I mean--" 
"It's what the gods mean by justice that I must listen to." 
"Justice is justice, whatever the gods might say!" 
Almost Qing-jao rose up from the floor and slapped her secret maid. It would 
have been her right, for Wang-mu was causing her as much pain as if she had 
struck her. But it was not Qing-jao's way to strike a person who was not free to 
strike back. Besides, there was a far more interesting puzzle here. After all, 
the gods had sent Wang-mu to her-Qing-jao was already sure of that. So instead 
of arguing with Wang-mu directly, Qing-jao should try to understand what the 
gods meant by sending her a servant who would say such shameful, disrespectful 
things. 
The gods had caused Wang-mu to say that it was unjust to punish Qing-jao for 
simply hearing another person's disrespectful opinions. Perhaps Wang-mu's 
statement was true. But it was also true that the gods could not be unjust. 
Therefore it must be that Qing-jao was not being punished for simply hearing the 
treasonous opinions of the people. No, Qing-jao had to purify herself because, 
in her heart of hearts, some part of her must believe those opinions. She must 
cleanse herself because deep inside she still doubted the heavenly mandate of 
Starways Congress; she still believed they were not just. 
Qing-jao immediately crawled to the nearest wall and began looking for the right 
woodgrain line to follow. Because of Wang-mu's words, Qing-jao had discovered a 
secret filthiness inside herself. The gods had brought her another step closer 
to knowing the darkest places inside herself, so that she might someday be 
utterly filled with light and thus earn the name that even now was still only a 
mockery. Some part of me doubts the righteousness of Starways Congress. O Gods, 
for the sake of my ancestors, my people, and my rulers, and last of all for me, 
purge this doubt from me and make me clean! 
When she finished tracing the line-- and it took only a single line to make her 
clean, which was a good sign that she had learned something true-- there sat 
Wang-mu, watching her. All of Qing-jao's anger was gone now, and indeed she was 
grateful to Wang-mu for having been an unwitting tool of the gods in helping her 
learn new truth. But still, Wang-mu had to understand that she had been out of 
line. 
"In this house, we are loyal servants of Starways Congress," said Qingjao, her 
voice soft, her expression as kind as she could make it. "And if you're a loyal 
servant of this house, you'll also serve Congress with all your heart." How 
could she explain to Wang-mu how painfully she had learned that lesson herself-- 
how painfully she was still learning it? She needed Wang-mu to help her, not 
make it harder. 
"Holy one, I didn't know," said Wang-mu, "I didn't guess. I had always heard the 
name of Han Fei-tzu mentioned as the noblest servant of Path. I thought it was 
the Path that you served, not Congress, or I never would have..." 
"Never would have come to work here?" 
"Never would have spoken harshly about Congress," said Wang-mu. "I would serve 
you even if you lived in the house of a dragon." 
Maybe I do, thought Qing-jao. Maybe the god who purifies me is a dragon, cold 
and hot, terrible and beautiful. 
"Remember, Wang-mu, that the world called Path is not the Path itself, but only 
was named so to remind us to live the true Path every day. My father and I serve 
Congress because they have the mandate of heaven, and so the Path requires that 
we serve them even above the wishes or needs of the particular world called 
Path." 
Wang-mu looked at her with wide eyes, unblinking. Did she understand? Did she 
believe? No matter-- she would come to believe in time. 
"Go away now, Wang-mu. I have to work." 
"Yes, Qing-jao." Wang-mu immediately got up and backed away, bowing. Qing-jao 
turned back to her terminal. But as she began to call up more reports into the 
display, she became aware that someone was in the room with her. She whirled 
around on her chair; there in the doorway stood Wang-mu. 
"What is it?" asked Qing-jao. 
"Is it the duty of a secret maid to tell you whatever wisdom comes to her mind, 
even if it turns out to be foolishness?" 
"You can say whatever you like to me," said Qing-jao. "Have I ever punished 
you?" 
"Then please forgive me, my Qing-jao, if I dare to say something about this 
great task you are working on." 
What did Wang-mu know of the Lusitania Fleet? Wang-mu was a quick student, but 
Qing-jao was still teaching her at such a primitive level in every subject that 
it was absurd to think Wang-mu could even grasp the problems, let alone think of 
an answer. Nevertheless, Father had taught her: Servants are always happier when 
they know their voices are heard by their master. "Please tell me," said 
Qing-jao. "How can you say anything more foolish than the things I have already 
said?" 
"My beloved elder sister," said Wang-mu, "I really got this idea from you. 
You've said so many times that nothing known to all of science and history could 
possibly have caused the fleet to disappear so perfectly, and all at once." 
"But it happened," said Qing-jao, "and so it must be possible after all." 
"What came to my mind, my sweet Qing-jao," said Wang-mu, "is some thing you 
explained to me as we studied logic. About first and final cause. All this time 
you have been looking for first causes-- how the fleet was made to disappear. 
But have you looked for final causes-- what someone hoped to accomplish by 
cutting off the fleet, or even destroying it?" 
"Everyone knows why people want the fleet stopped. They're trying to protect the 
rights of colonies, or else they have some ridiculous idea that Congress means 
to destroy the pequeninos along with the whole colony. There are billions of 
people who want the fleet to stop. All of them are seditious in their hearts, 
and enemies of the gods." 
"But somebody actually did it," said Wang-mu. "I only thought that since you 
can't find out what happened to the fleet directly, then maybe if you find out 
who made it happen, that will lead you to find out how they did it." 
  
"We don't even know that it was done by a who," said Qing-jao. "It could have 
been a what. Natural phenomena don't have purposes in mind, since they don't 
have minds." 
Wang-mu bowed her head. "I did waste your time, then, Qing-jao. Please forgive 
me. I should have left when you told me to go." 
"It's all right," said Qing-jao. 
Wang-mu was already gone; Qing-jao didn't know whether her servant had even 
heard her reassurance. Never mind, thought Qing-jao. If Wangmu was offended, 
I'll make it up to her later. It was sweet of the girl to think she could help 
me with my task; I'll make sure she knows I'm glad she has such an eager heart. 
With Wang-mu out of the room, Qing-jao went back to her terminal. She idly 
flipped the reports through her terminal's display. She had looked at all of 
them before, and she had found nothing useful. Why should this time be 
different? Maybe these reports and summaries showed her nothing because there 
was nothing to show. Maybe the fleet disappeared because of some 
god-gone-berserk; there were stories of such things in ancient times. Maybe 
there was no evidence of human intervention because a human didn't do it. What 
would Father say about that, she wondered. How would Congress deal with a 
lunatic deity? They couldn't even track down that seditious writer Demosthenes-- 
what hope did they have of tracking and trapping a god? 
Whoever Demosthenes is, he's laughing right now, thought Qing-jao. All his work 
to persuade people that the government was wrong to send the Lusitania Fleet, 
and now the fleet has stopped, just as Demosthenes wanted. 
Just as Demosthenes wanted. For the first time, Qing-jao made a mental 
connection that was so obvious she couldn't believe she hadn't thought of it 
before. It was so obvious, in fact, that the police in many a city had assumed 
that those who were already known to follow Demosthenes must surely have been 
involved in making the fleet disappear. They had rounded up everyone suspected 
of sedition and tried to force confessions out of them. But of course they 
hadn't actually questioned Demosthenes, because nobody knew who he was. 
Demosthenes, so clever he has evaded discovery for years, despite all the 
searching of the Congress Police; Demosthenes, who is every bit as elusive as 
the cause of the disappearance of the fleet. If he could work the one trick, why 
not the other? Maybe if I find Demosthenes, I'll find out how the fleet was cut 
off. Not that I have any idea even where to start looking. But at least it's a 
different avenue of approach. At least it won't mean reading the same empty, 
useless reports over and over again. 
Suddenly Qing-jao remembered who had said almost exactly the same thing, only 
moments before. She felt herself blushing, the blood hot in her cheeks. How 
arrogant I was, to condescend to Wang-mu, to patronize her for imagining she 
could help me with my lofty task. And now, not five minutes later, the thought 
she planted in my mind has blossomed into a plan. Even if the plan fails, she 
was the one who gave it to me, or at least started me thinking of it. Thus I was 
the fool to think her foolish. Tears of shame filled Qing-jao's eyes. 
Then she thought of some famous lines from a song by her ancestor-of-the-heart: 
I want to call back the blackberry flowers that have fallen though pear blossoms 
remain 
The poet Li Qing-jao knew the pain of regretting words that have already fallen 
from our lips and can never be called back. But she was wise enough to remember 
that even though those words are gone, there are still new words waiting to be 
said, like the pear blossoms. 
To comfort herself for the shame of having been so arrogant, Qing-jao repeated 
all the words of the song; or at least she started to. But when she got to the 
line 
dragon boats on the river 
her mind drifted to the Lusitania Fleet, imagining all those starships like 
riverboats, painted so fiercely, and yet drifting now with the current, so far 
from the shore that they can no longer be heard no matter how loud they shout. 
From dragon boats her thoughts turned to dragon kites, and now she thought of 
the Lusitania Fleet as kites with broken strings, carried along by the wind, no 
longer tethered to the child who first gave them flight. How beautiful, to see 
them free; yet how terrifying it must be for them, who never wished for freedom. 

I did not fear the mad winds and violent rain 
The words of the song came back to her again. I did not fear. Mad winds. Violent 
rain. I did not fear as 
we drank to good fortune with warm blackberry wine now I cannot conceive how to 
retrieve that time 
My ancestor-of-the-heart could drink away her fear, thought Qing-jao, because 
she had someone to drink with. And even now, 
alone on my mat with a cup gazing sadly into nothingness 
the poet remembers her gone companion. Whom do I remember now? thought Qing-jao. 
Where is my tender love? What an age it must have been then, when the great Li 
Qing-jao was still mortal, and men and women could be together as tender friends 
without any worry about who was godspoken and who was not. Then a woman could 
live such a life that even in her loneliness she had memories. I can't even 
remember my mother's face. Only the flat pictures; I can't remember seeing her 
face turn and move while her eyes looked at me. I have only my Father, who is 
like a god; I can worship him and obey him and even love him but I can never be 
playful with him, not really; when I tease him I'm always watching to be sure he 
approves of the way I tease him. And Wang-mu; I talked so firmly about how we 
would be friends, and yet I treat her like a servant, I never for a moment 
forget who is godspoken and who is not. It's a wall that can never be crossed. 
I'm alone now and I'm alone forever. 
a clear cold comes through the window curtains crescent moon beyond the golden 
bars 
She shivered. I and the moon. Didn't the Greeks think of their moon as a cold 
virgin, a huntress? Is that not what I am now? Sixteen years old and untouched 
and a flute sounds as if someone were coming 
I listen and listen but never hear the melody of someone coming ... 
No. What she heard were the distant sounds of a meal being readied; a clattering 
of bowls and spoons, laughter from the kitchen. Her reverie broken, she reached 
up and wiped the foolish tears from her cheeks. How could she think of herself 
as lonely, when she lived in this full house where everyone had cared for her 
all her life? I sit here reciting to myself scraps of old poetry when I have 
work to do. 
At once she began to call up the reports that had been made about investigations 
into the identity of Demosthenes. 
The reports made her think for a moment that this was a dead end, too. More than 
three dozen writers on almost as many worlds had been arrested for producing 
seditious documents under that name. Starways Congress had reached the obvious 
conclusion: Demosthenes was simply the catchall name used by any rebel who 
wanted to get attention. There was no real Demosthenes, not even an organized 
conspiracy. 
But Qing-jao had doubts about that conclusion. Demosthenes had been remarkably 
successful in stirring up trouble on every world. Could there possibly be 
someone of so much talent among the traitors on every planet? Not likely. 
Besides, thinking back to when she had read Demosthenes, Qing-jao, remembered 
noticing the coherence of his writings. The singularity and consistency of his 
vision-- that was part of what made him so seductive. Everything seemed to fit, 
to make sense together. 
Hadn't Demosthenes also devised the Hierarchy of Foreignness? Utlanning, 
framling, raman, varelse. No; that had been written many years ago-- it had to 
be a different Demosthenes. Was it because of that earlier Demosthenes' 
hierarchy that the traitors were using the name? They were writing in support of 
the independence of Lusitania, the only world where intelligent nonhuman life 
had been found. It was only appropriate to use the name of the writer who had 
first taught humanity to realize that the universe wasn't divided between humans 
and nonhumans, or between intelligent and non-intelligent species. 
Some strangers, the earlier Demosthenes had said, were framlings-- humans from 
another world. Some were ramen-- of another intelligent species, yet able to 
communicate with human beings, so that we could work out differences and make 
decisions together. Others were varelse, "wise beasts," clearly intelligent and 
yet completely unable to reach a common ground with humankind. Only with varelse 
would war ever be justified; with raman, humans could make peace and share the 
habitable worlds. It was an open way of thinking, full of hope that strangers 
might still be friends. People who thought that way could never have sent a 
fleet with Dr. Device to a world inhabited by an intelligent species. 
This was a very uncomfortable thought: that the Demosthenes of the hierarchy 
would also disapprove of the Lusitania Fleet. Almost at once Qing-jao had to 
counter it. It didn't matter what the old Demosthenes thought, did it? The new 
Demosthenes, the seditious one, was no wise philosopher trying to bring peoples 
together. Instead he was trying to sow dissension and discontent among the 
worlds-- provoke quarrels, perhaps even wars between framlings. 
And seditious Demosthenes was not just a composite of many rebels working on 
different worlds. Her computer search soon confirmed it. True, many rebels were 
found who had published on their own planet using the name Demosthenes, but they 
were always linked to small, ineffective, useless little publications-- never to 
the really dangerous documents that seemed to turn up simultaneously on half the 
worlds at once. Each local police force, however, was very happy to declare 
their own petty "Demosthenes" the perpetrator of all the writings, take their 
bows, and close the case. 
Starways Congress had been only too happy to do the same thing with their own 
investigation. Having found several dozen cases where local police had arrested 
and convicted rebels who had incontrovertibly published something under the name 
Demosthenes, the Congress investigators sighed contentedly, declared that 
Demosthenes had proved to be a catchall name and not one person at all, and then 
stopped investigating. 
In short, they had all taken the easy way out. Selfish, disloyal-- Qing-jao felt 
a surge of indignation that such people were allowed to continue in their high 
offices. They should be punished, and severely, too, for having let their 
private laziness or their desire for praise lead them to abandon the 
investigation of Demosthenes. Didn't they realize that Demosthenes was truly 
dangerous? That his writings were now the common wisdom of at least one world, 
and if one, then probably many? Because of him, how many people on how many 
worlds would rejoice if they knew that the Lusitania Fleet had disappeared? No 
matter how many people the police had arrested under the name Demosthenes, his 
works kept appearing, and always in that same voice of sweet reasonableness. No, 
the more she read the reports, the more certain Qing-jao became that Demosthenes 
was one man, as yet undiscovered. One man who knew how to keep secrets 
impossibly well. 
From the kitchen came the sound of the flute; they were being called to dinner. 
She gazed into the display space over her terminal, where the latest report 
still hovered, the name Demosthenes repeated over and over. "I know you exist, 
Demosthenes," she whispered, "and I know you are very clever, and I will find 
you. When I do, you will stop your war against the rulers, and you will tell me 
what has happened to the Lusitania Fleet. Then I will be done with you, and 
Congress will punish you, and Father will become the god of Path and live 
forever in the Infinite West. That is the task that I was born for, the gods 
have chosen me for it, you might just as well show yourself to me now as later, 
for eventually all men and women lay their heads under the feet of the gods." 
The flute played on, a breathy low melody, drawing Qing-jao out of herself and 
toward the company of the household. To her, this half-whispered music was the 
song of the inmost spirit, the quiet conversation of trees over a still pond, 
the sound of memories arising unbidden into the mind of a woman in prayer. Thus 
were they called to dine in the house of the noble Han Fei-tzu. 



Having heard Qing-jao's challenge, Jane thought: This is what fear of death 
tastes like. Human beings feel this all the time, and yet somehow they go on 
from day to day, knowing that at any moment they may cease to be. But this is 
because they can forget something and still know it; I can never forget, not 
without losing the knowledge entirely. I know that Han Qing-jao is on the verge 
of finding secrets that have stayed hidden only because no one has looked hard 
for them. And when those secrets are known, I will die. 
"Ender," she whispered. 
Was it day or night on Lusitania? Was he awake or asleep? For Jane, to ask a 
question is either to know or not-know. So she knew at once that it was night. 
Ender had been asleep, but now he was awake; he was still attuned to her voice, 
she realized, even though many silences had passed between them in the past 
thirty years. 
"Jane," he whispered. 
Beside him his wife, Novinha, stirred in her sleep. Jane heard her, felt the 
vibration of her movement, saw the changing shadows through the sensor that 
Ender wore in his ear. It was good that Jane had not yet learned to feel 
jealousy, or she might have hated Novinha for lying there, a warm body beside 
Ender's own. But Novinha, being human, was gifted at jealousy, and Jane knew how 
Novinha seethed whenever she saw Ender speaking to the woman who lived in the 
jewel in his ear. "Hush," said Jane. "Don't wake people up." 
Ender answered by moving his lips and tongue and teeth, without letting anything 
louder than a breath pass his lips. "How fare our enemies in flight?" he said. 
He had greeted her this way for many years. 
"Not well," said Jane. 
"Perhaps you shouldn't have blocked them. We would have found a way. Valentine's 
writings--" 
"Are about to have their true authorship uncovered." 
"Everything's about to be uncovered." He didn't say: because of you. 
"Only because Lusitania was marked for destruction," she answered. She also 
didn't say: because of you. There was plenty of blame to go around. 
"So they know about Valentine?" 
"A girl is finding out. On the world of Path." 
"I don't know the place." 
"A fairly new colony, a couple of centuries. Chinese. Dedicated to preserving an 
odd mix of old religions. The gods speak to them." 
"I lived on more than one Chinese world," said Ender. "People believed in the 
old gods on all of them. Gods are alive on every world, even here in the 
smallest human colony of all. They still have miracles of healing at the shrine 
of Os Venerados. Rooter has been telling us of a new heresy out in the 
hinterland somewhere. Some pequeninos who commune constantly with the Holy 
Ghost." 
"This business with gods is something I don't understand," said Jane. "Hasn't 
anyone caught on yet that the gods always say what people want to hear?" 
"Not so," said Ender. "The gods often ask us to do things we never desired, 
things that require us to sacrifice everything on their behalf. Don't 
underestimate the gods." 
"Does your Catholic God speak to you?" 
"Maybe he does. I never hear him, though. Or if I do, I never know that it's his 
voice I'm hearing." 
"And when you die, do the gods of every people really gather them up and take 
them off somewhere to live forever?" 
"I don't know. They never write." 
"When I die, will there be some god to carry me away?" 
Ender was still for a moment, and then he began to address her in his 
storytelling manner. "There's an old tale of a dollmaker who never had a son. So 
he made a puppet that was so lifelike that it looked like a real boy, and he 
would hold the wooden boy on his lap and talk to it and pretend it was his son. 
He wasn't crazy-- he still knew it was a doll-- he called it Pinehead. But one 
day a god came and touched the puppet and it came to life, and when the 
dollmaker spoke to it, Pinehead answered. The dollmaker never told anyone about 
this. He kept his wooden son at home, but he brought the boy every tale he could 
gather and news of every wonder under heaven. Then one day the dollmaker was 
coming home from the wharf with tales of a far-off land that had just been 
discovered, when he saw that his house was on fire. Immediately he tried to run 
into the house, crying out, 'My son! My son!' But his neighbors stopped him, 
saying, 'Are you mad? You have no son!' He watched the house burn to the ground, 
and when it was over he plunged into the ruins and covered himself with hot 
ashes and wept bitterly. He refused to be comforted. He refused to rebuild his 
shop. When people asked him why, he said his son was dead. He stayed alive by 
doing odd jobs for other people, and they pitied him because they were sure the 
fire had made him a lunatic. Then one day, three years later, a small orphan boy 
came to him and tugged on his sleeve and said, 'Father, don't you have a tale 
for me?'" 
Jane waited, but Ender said no more. "That's the whole story?" 
"Isn't it enough?" 
"Why did you tell me this? It's all dreams and wishes. What does it have to do 
with me?" 
"It was the story that came to mind." 
"Why did it come to mind?" 
"Maybe that's how God speaks to me," said Ender. "Or maybe I'm sleepy and I 
don't have what you want from me." 
"I don't even know what I want from you." 
"I know what you want," said Ender. "You want to be alive, with your own body, 
not dependent on the philotic web that binds the ansibles together. I'd give you 
that gift if I could. If you can figure out a way for me to do it, I'll do it 
for you. But Jane, you don't even know what you are. Maybe when you know how you 
came to exist, what makes you yourself, then maybe we can save you from the day 
when they shut down the ansibles to kill you. " 
"So that's your story? Maybe I'll burn down with the house, but somehow my soul 
will end up in a three-year-old orphan boy?" 
"Find out who you are, what you are, your essence, and we'll see if we can move 
you somewhere safer until all this is over. We've got an ansible. Maybe we can 
put you back." 
"There aren't computers enough on Lusitania to contain me." 
"You don't know that. You don't know what your self is." 
"You're telling me to find my soul." She made her voice sound derisive as she 
said the word. 
"Jane, the miracle wasn't that the doll was reborn as a boy. The miracle was the 
fact that the puppet ever came to life at all. Something happened to turn 
meaningless computer connections into a sentient being. Something created you. 
That's what makes no sense. After that one, the other part should be easy." 
His speech was slurring. He wants me to go away so he can sleep, she thought. 
"I'll work on this." 
"Good night," he murmured. 
He dropped off to sleep almost at once. Jane wondered: Was he ever really awake? 
Will he remember in the morning that we talked? 
Then she felt the bed shift. Novinha; her breathing was different. Only then did 
Jane realize: Novinha woke up while Ender and I were talking. She knows what 
those almost inaudible clicking and smacking noises always mean, that Ender was 
subvocalizing in order to talk with me. Ender may forget that we spoke tonight, 
but Novinha will not. As if she had caught him sharing a bed with a lover. If 
only she could think of me another way. As a daughter. As Ender's bastard 
daughter by a liaison long ago. His child by way of the fantasy game. Would she 
be jealous then? 
Am I Ender's child? 
Jane began to search back in her own past. She began to study her own nature. 
She began to try to discover who she was and why she was alive. 
But because she was Jane, and not a human being, that was not all she was doing. 
She was also tracking Qing-jao's searches through the data dealing with 
Demosthenes, watching her come closer and closer to the truth. 
Jane's most urgent activity, however, was searching for a way to make Qing-jao 
want to stop trying to find her. This was the hardest task of all, for despite 
all Jane's experience with human minds, despite all her conversations with 
Ender, individual human beings were still mysterious. Jane had concluded: No 
matter how well you know what a person has done and what he thought he was doing 
when he did it and what he now thinks of what he did, it is impossible to be 
certain of what he will do next. Yet she had no choice but to try. So she began 
to watch the house of Han Fei-tzu in a way that she had watched no one but Ender 
and, more recently, his stepson Miro. She could no longer wait for Qing-jao and 
her father to enter data into the computer and try to understand them from that. 
Now she had to take control of the house computer in order to use the audio and 
video receptors on the terminals in almost every room to be her ears and eyes. 
She watched them. Alone and apart, she devoted a considerable part of her 
attention to them, studying and analyzing their words, their actions, trying to 
discern what they meant to each other. 
It did not take her long to realize that Qing-jao could best be influenced, not 
by confronting her with arguments, but rather by persuading her father first and 
then letting him persuade Qing-jao. That was more in harmony with the Path; Han 
Qing-jao would never disobey Starways Congress unless Han Fei-tzu told her to; 
and then she would be bound to do it. 
In a way, this made Jane's task much easier. Persuading Qing-jao, a volatile and 
passionate adolescent who did not yet understand herself at all, would be chancy 
at best. But Han Fei-tzu was a man of settled character, a rational man, yet a 
man of deep feeling; he could be persuaded by arguments, especially if Jane 
could convince him that opposing Congress was for the good of his world and of 
humanity at large. All she needed was the right information to let him reach 
that conclusion. 
By now Jane already understood as much of the social patterns of Path as any 
human knew, because she had absorbed every history, every anthropological 
report, and every document produced by the people of Path. What she learned was 
disturbing: the people of Path were far more deeply controlled by their gods 
than any other people in any other place or time. Furthermore, the way that the 
gods spoke to them was disturbing. It was clearly the well-known brain defect 
called obsessive-compulsive disorder-- OCD. Early in the history of Path-- seven 
generations before, when the world was first being settled-- the doctors had 
treated the disorder accordingly. But they discovered at once that the godspoken 
of Path did not respond at all to the normal drugs that in all other OCD 
patients restored the chemical balance of "enoughness," that sense in a person's 
mind that a job is completed and there is no need to worry about it anymore. The 
godspoken exhibited all the behaviors associated with OCD, but the well-known 
brain defect was not present. There must be another, an unknown cause. 
Now Jane explored more deeply into this story, and found documents on other 
worlds, not on Path at all, that told more of the story. The researchers had 
immediately concluded that there must have been a new mutation that caused a 
related brain defect with similar results. But as soon as they issued their 
preliminary report, all the research ended and the researchers were assigned to 
another world. 
To another world-- that was almost unthinkable. It meant uprooting them and 
disconnecting them from time, carrying them away from all friends and family 
that didn't go with them. And yet not one of them refused-- which surely meant 
that enormous pressure had been brought to bear on them. They all left Path and 
no one had pursued research along those lines in the years since then. 
Jane's first hypothesis was that one of the government agencies on Path itself 
had exiled them and cut off their research; after all, the followers of the Path 
wouldn't want their faith to be disrupted by finding the physical cause of the 
speaking of the gods in their own brains. But Jane found no evidence that the 
local government had ever been aware of the full report. The only part of it 
that had ever circulated on Path was the general conclusion that the speaking of 
the gods was definitely not the familiar, and treatable, OCD. The people of Path 
had learned only enough of the report to feel confirmed that the speaking of the 
gods had no known physical cause. Science had "proved" that the gods were real. 
There was no record of anyone on Path taking any action to cause further 
information or research to be suppressed. Those decisions had all come from 
outside. From Congress. 
There had to be some key information hidden even from Jane, whose mind easily 
reached into every electronic memory that was connected with the ansible 
network. That would only happen if those who knew the secret had feared its 
discovery so much they kept it completely out of even the most top-secret and 
restricted computers of government. 
Jane could not let that stop her. She would have to piece together the truth 
from the scraps of information that would have been left inadvertently in 
unrelated documents and databases. She would have to find other events that 
helped fill in the missing parts of the picture. In the long run, human beings 
could never keep secrets from someone with Jane's unlimited time and patience. 
She would find out what Congress was doing with Path, and when she had the 
information, she would use it, if she could, to turn Han Qing-jao away from her 
destructive course. For Qing-jao, too, was opening up secrets-- older ones, 
secrets that had been hidden for three thousand years. 
Table of Contents



Chapter 10 -- Martyr
<Ender says that we're at the fulcrum of history, here on Lusitania. That in the 
next few months or years this will be the place where either death or 
understanding came to every sentient species.> 
<How thoughtful of him, to bring us here just in time for our possible demise.> 
<You're teasing me, of course.> 
<If we knew how to tease, perhaps we'd do it to you.> 
<Lusitania is the fulcrum of history in part because you're here. You carry a 
fulcrum with you wherever you go.> 
<We discard it. We give it to you. It's yours.> 
<Wherever strangers meet is the fulcrum.> 
<Then let's not be strangers anymore.> 
<Humans insist on making strangers of us-- it's built into their genetic 
material. But we can be friends.> 
<This word is too strong. Say that we are fellow-citizens.> 
<At least as long as our interests coincide.> 
<As long as the stars shine, our interests will coincide.> 
<Maybe not so long. Maybe only as long as human beings are stronger and more 
numerous than we are.> 
<That will do for now.> 
  
  
  
Quim came to the meeting without protest, though it might well set him back a 
full day in his journey. He had learned patience long ago. No matter how urgent 
he felt his mission to the heretics to be, he could accomplish little, in the 
long run, if he didn't have the support of the human colony behind him. So if 
Bishop Peregrino asked him to attend a meeting with Kovano Zeljezo, the mayor of 
Milagre and governor of Lusitania, Quim would go. 
He was surprised to see that the meeting was also being attended by Ouanda 
Saavedra, Andrew Wiggin, and most of Quim's own family. Mother and Ela-- their 
presence made sense, if the meeting were being called to discuss policy 
concerning the heretic pequeninos. But what were Quara and Grego doing here? 
There was no reason they should be involved in any serious discussions. They 
were too young, too ill-informed, too impetuous. From what he had seen of them, 
they still quarreled like little children. They weren't as mature as Ela, who 
was able to set aside her personal feelings in the interest of science. Of 
course, Quim worried sometimes that Ela did this far too well for her own good-- 
but that was hardly the worry with Quara and Grego. 
Especially Quara. From what Rooter had said, the whole trouble with these 
heretics really took off when Quara told the pequeninos about the various 
contingency plans for dealing with the descolada virus. The heretics wouldn't 
have found so many allies in so many different forests if it weren't for the 
fear among the pequeninos that the humans might unleash some virus, or poison 
Lusitania with a chemical that would wipe out the descolada and, with it, the 
pequeninos themselves. The fact that the humans would even consider the indirect 
extermination of the pequeninos made it seem like mere turnabout for the piggies 
to contemplate the extermination of humanity. 
All because Quara couldn't keep her mouth shut. And now she was at a meeting 
where policy would be discussed. Why? What constituency in the community did she 
represent? Did these people actually imagine that government or church policy 
was now the province of the Ribeira family? Of course, Olhado and Miro weren't 
there, but that meant nothing-- since both were cripples, the rest of the family 
unconsciously treated them like children, though Quim knew well that neither of 
them deserved to be so callously dismissed. 
Still, Quim was patient. He could wait. He could listen. He could hear them out. 
Then he'd do something that would please both God and the Bishop. Of course, if 
that wasn't possible, pleasing God would do well enough. 
"This meeting wasn't my idea," said Mayor Kovano. He was a good man, Quim knew. 
A better mayor than most people in Milagre realized. They kept reelecting him 
because he was grandfatherly and worked hard to help individuals and families 
who were having trouble. They didn't care much whether he also set good 
policies-- that was too abstract for them. But it happened that he was as wise 
as he was politically astute. A rare combination that Quim was glad of. Perhaps 
God knew that these would be trying times, and gave us a leader who might well 
help us get through it all without too much suffering. 
"But I'm glad to have you all together. There's more strain in the relationship 
between piggies and people than ever before, or at least since the Speaker here 
arrived and helped us make peace with them." 
Wiggin shook his head, but everyone knew his role in those events and there was 
little point in his denying it. Even Quim had had to admit, in the end, that the 
infidel humanist had ended up doing good works on Lusitania. Quim had long since 
shed his deep hatred of the Speaker for the Dead; indeed, he sometimes suspected 
that he, as a missionary, was the only person in his family who really 
understood what it was that Wiggin had accomplished. It takes one evangelist to 
understand another. 
"Of course, we owe no small part of our worries to the misbehavior of two very 
troublesome young hotheads, whom we have invited to this meeting so they can see 
some of the dangerous consequences of their stupid, self-willed behavior." 
Quim almost laughed out loud. Of course, Kovano had said all this in such mild, 
pleasant tones that it took a moment for Grego and Quara to realize they had 
just been given a tongue-lashing. But Quim understood at once. I shouldn't have 
doubted you, Kovano; you would never have brought useless people to a meeting. 
"As I understand it, there is a movement among the piggies to launch a starship 
in order to deliberately infect the rest of humanity with the descolada. And 
because of the contribution of our young parrot, here, many other forests are 
giving heed to this idea." 
"If you expect me to apologize," Quara began. 
"I expect you to shut your mouth-- or is that impossible, even for ten minutes?" 
Kovano's voice had real fury in it. Quara's eyes grew wide, and she sat more 
rigidly in her chair. 
"The other half of our problem is a young physicist who has, unfortunately, kept 
the common touch." Kovano raised an eyebrow at Grego. "If only you had become an 
aloof intellectual. Instead, you seem to have cultivated the friendship of the 
stupidest, most violent of Lusitanians." 
"With people who disagree with you, you mean," said Grego. 
"With people who forget that this world belongs to the pequeninos," said Quara. 
"Worlds belong to the people who need them and know how to make them produce," 
said Grego. 
"Shut your mouths, children, or you'll be expelled from this meeting while the 
adults make up their minds." 
Grego glared at Kovano. "Don't you speak to me that way." 
"I'll speak to you however I like," said Kovano. "As far as I'm concerned, 
you've both broken legal obligations of secrecy, and I should have you both 
locked up." 
"On what charge?" 
"I have emergency powers, you'll recall. I don't need any charges until the 
emergency is over. Do I make myself clear?" 
"You won't do it. You need me," said Grego. "I'm the only decent physicist on 
Lusitania." 
"Physics isn't worth a slug to us if we end up in some kind of contest with the 
pequeninos." 
"It's the descolada we have to confront," said Grego. 
"We're wasting time," said Novinha. 
Quim looked at his mother for the first time since the meeting began. She seemed 
very nervous. Fearful. He hadn't seen her like that in many years. 
"We're here about this insane mission of Quim's," said Novinha. 
"He is called Father Estevao," said Bishop Peregrino. He was a stickler for 
giving proper dignity to church offices. 
"He's my son," said Novinha. "I'll call him what I please." 
"What a testy group of people we have here today," said Mayor Kovano. 
Things were going very badly. Quim had deliberately avoided telling Mother any 
details about his mission to the heretics, because he was sure she'd oppose the 
idea of him going straight to piggies who openly feared and hated human beings. 
Quim was well aware of the source of her dread of close contact with the 
pequeninos. As a young child she had lost her parents to the descolada. The 
xenologer Pipo became her surrogate father-- and then became the first human to 
be tortured to death by the pequeninos. Novinha then spent twenty years trying 
to keep her lover, Libo-- Pipo's son, and the next xenologer-- from meeting the 
same fate. She even married another man to keep Libo from getting a husband's 
right of access to her private computer files, where she believed the secret 
that had led the piggies to kill Pipo might be found. And in the end, it all 
came to nothing. Libo was killed just as Pipo was. 
Even though Mother had since learned the true reason for the killing, even 
though the pequeninos had undertaken solemn oaths not to undertake any violent 
act against another human being, there was no way Mother would ever be rational 
about her loved ones going off among the piggies. And now here she was at a 
meeting that had obviously been called, no doubt at her instigation, to decide 
whether Quim should go on his missionary journey. It was going to be an 
unpleasant morning. Mother had years of practice at getting her own way. Being 
married to Andrew Wiggin had softened and mellowed her in many ways. But when 
she thought one of her children was at risk, the claws came out, and no husband 
was going to have much gentling influence on her. 
Why had Mayor Kovano and Bishop Peregrino allowed this meeting to take place? 
As if he had heard Quim's unspoken question, Mayor Kovano began to explain. 
"Andrew Wiggin has come to me with new information. My first thought was to keep 
all of it secret, send Father Estevao on his mission to the heretics, and then 
ask Bishop Peregrino to pray. But Andrew assured me that as our danger 
increases, it's all the more important that all of you act from the most 
complete possible information. Speakers for the dead apparently have an almost 
pathological reliance on the idea that people behave better when they know more. 
I've been a politician too long to share his confidence-- but he's older than I 
am, he claims, and I deferred to his wisdom." 
Quim knew, of course, that Kovano deferred to no one's wisdom. Andrew Wiggin had 
simply persuaded him. 
"As relations between pequeninos and humans are getting more, um, problematical, 
and as our unseeable cohabitant, the hive queen, apparently comes closer to 
launching her starships, it seems that matters offplanet are getting more urgent 
as well. The Speaker for the Dead informs me from his offplanet sources that 
someone on a world called Path is very close to discovering our allies who have 
managed to keep Congress from issuing orders to the fleet to destroy Lusitania." 

Quim noted with interest that Andrew had apparently not told Mayor Kovano about 
Jane. Bishop Peregrino didn't know, either; did Grego or Quara? Did Ela? Mother 
certainly did. Why did Andrew tell me, if he held it back from so many others? 
"There is a very strong chance that within the next few weeks-- or days-- 
Congress will reestablish communications with the fleet. At that point, our last 
defense will be gone. Only a miracle will save us from annihilation." 
"Bullshit," said Grego. "If that-- thing-- out on the prairie can build a 
starship for the piggies, it can build some for us, too. Get us off this planet 
before it gets blown to hell." 
"Perhaps," said Kovano. "I suggested something like that, though in less 
colorful terms. Perhaps, Senhor Wiggin, you can tell us why Grego's eloquent 
little plan won't work." 
"The hive queen doesn't think the way we do. Despite her best efforts, she 
doesn't take individual lives as seriously. If Lusitania is destroyed, she and 
the pequeninos will be at greatest risk--" 
"The M.D. Device blows up the whole planet," Grego pointed out. 
"At greatest risk of species annihilation," said Wiggin, unperturbed by Grego's 
interruption. "She'll not waste a ship on getting humans off Lusitania, because 
there are trillions of humans on a couple of hundred other worlds. We're not in 
danger of xenocide." 
"We are if these heretic piggies get their way," said Grego. 
"And that's another point," said Wiggin. "If we haven't found a way to 
neutralize the descolada, we can't in good conscience take the human population 
of Lusitania to another world. We'd only be doing exactly what the heretics 
want-- forcing other humans to deal with the descolada, and probably die. " 
"Then there's no solution," said Ela. "We might as well roll over and die." 
"Not quite," said Mayor Kovano. "It's possible-- perhaps likely-- that our own 
village of Milagre is doomed. But we can at least try to make it so that the 
pequenino colony ships don't carry the descolada to human worlds. There seem to 
be two approaches-- one biological, the other theological." 
"We are so close," said Mother. "It's a matter of months or even weeks till Ela 
and I have designed a replacement species for the descolada." 
"So you say," said Kovano. He turned to Ela. "What do you say?" 
Quim almost groaned aloud. Ela will say that Mother's wrong, that there's no 
biological solution, and then Mother will say that she's trying to kill me by 
sending me out on my mission. This is all the family needs-- Ela and Mother in 
open war. Thanks to Kovano Zeljezo, humanitarian. 
But Ela's answer wasn't what Quirn feared. "It's almost designed right now. It's 
the only approach that we haven't already tried and failed with, but we're on 
the verge of having the design for a version of the descolada virus that does 
everything necessary to maintain the life cycles of the indigenous species, but 
that is incapable of adapting to and destroying any new species." 
"You're talking about a lobotomy for an entire species," said Quara bitterly. 
"How would you like it if somebody found a way to keep all humans alive, while 
removing our cerebrums?" 
Of course Grego took up her gauntlet. "When these viruses can write a poem or 
reason from a theorem, I'll buy all this sentimental horseshit about how we 
ought to keep them alive." 
"Just because we can't read them doesn't mean they don't have their epic poems!" 

"Fechai as bocas!" growled Kovano. 
Immediately they fell silent. 
"Nossa Senhora," he said. "Maybe God wants to destroy Lusitania because it's the 
only way he can think of to shut you two up." 
Bishop Peregrino cleared his throat. 
"Or maybe not," said Kovano. "Far be it from me to speculate on God's motives." 
The Bishop laughed, which allowed the others to laugh as well. The tension 
broke-- like an ocean wave, gone for the moment, but sure to return. 
"So the anti-virus is almost ready?" Kovano asked Ela. 
"No-- or yes, it is, the replacement virus is almost fully designed. But there 
are still two problems. The first one is delivery. We have to find a way to get 
the new virus to attack and replace the old one. That's still-- a long way off. 
" 
"Do you mean it's a long way off, or you don't have the faintest idea how to do 
it?" Kovano was no fool-- he obviously had dealt with scientists before. 
"Somewhere between those two," said Ela. 
Mother shifted on her seat, visibly drawing away from Ela. My poor sister Ela, 
thought Quim. You may not be spoken to for the next several years. 
"And the other problem?" asked Kovano. 
"It's one thing to design the replacement virus. It's something else again to 
produce it." 
"These are mere details," said Mother. 
"You're wrong, Mother, and you know it," said Ela. "I can diagram what we want 
the new virus to be. But even working under ten degrees absolute, we can't cut 
up and recombine the descolada virus with enough precision. Either it dies, 
because we've left out too much, or it immediately repairs itself as soon as it 
returns to normal temperatures, because we didn't take out enough." 
"Technical problems." 
"Technical problems," said Ela sharply. "Like building an ansible without a 
philotic link." 
"So we conclude--" 
"We conclude nothing," said Mother. 
"We conclude," continued Kovano, "that our xenobiologists are in sharp 
disagreement about the feasibility of taming the descolada virus itself. That 
brings us to the other approach-- persuading the pequeninos to send their 
colonies only to uninhabited worlds, where they can establish their own 
peculiarly poisonous ecology without killing human beings." 
"Persuading them," said Grego. "As if we could trust them to keep their 
promises." 
"They've kept more promises so far than you have," said Kovano. "So I wouldn't 
take a morally superior tone if I were you." 
Finally things were at a point where Quim felt it would be beneficial for him to 
speak. "All of this discussion is interesting," said Quim. "It would be a 
wonderful thing if my mission to the heretics could be the means of persuading 
the pequeninos to refrain from causing harm to humankind. But even if we all 
came to agree that my mission has no chance of succeeding in that goal, I would 
still go. Even if we decided that there was a serious risk that my mission might 
make things worse, I'd go." 
"Nice to know you plan to be cooperative," said Kovano acidly. 
"I plan to cooperate with God and the church," said Quim. "My mission to the 
heretics is not to save humankind from the descolada or even to try to keep the 
peace between humans and pequeninos here on Lusitania. My mission to the 
heretics is in order to try to bring them back to faith in Christ and unity with 
the church. I am going to save their souls." 
"Well of course," said Kovano. "Of course that's the reason you want to go." 
"And it's the reason why I will go, and the only standard I'll use to determine 
whether or not my mission succeeds." 
Kovano looked helplessly at Bishop Peregrino. "You said that Father Estevao was 
cooperative." 
"I said he was perfectly obedient to God and the church," said the Bishop. 
"I took that to mean that you could persuade him to wait on this mission until 
we knew more." 
"I could indeed persuade him. Or I could simply forbid him to go," said Bishop 
Peregrino. 
"Then do it," said Mother. 
"I will not," said the Bishop. 
"I thought you cared about the good of this colony," said Mayor Kovano. 
"I care about the good of all the Christians placed under my charge," said 
Bishop Peregrino. "Until thirty years ago, that meant I cared only for the human 
beings of Lusitania. Now, however, I am equally responsible for the spiritual 
welfare of the Christian pequeninos of this planet. I send Father Estevao forth 
on his mission exactly as a missionary named Patrick was once sent to the island 
of Eire. He was extraordinarily successful, converting kings and nations. 
Unfortunately, the Irish church didn't always act the way the Pope might have 
wished. There was a great deal of-- let us say it was controversy between them. 
Superficially it concerned the date of Easter, but at heart it was over the 
issue of obedience to the Pope. It even came to bloodshed now and then. But 
never for a moment did anyone imagine it would have been better if St. Patrick 
had never gone to Eire. Never did anyone suggest that it would be better if the 
Irish had remained pagan." 
Grego stood up. "We've found the philote, the true indivisible atom. We've 
conquered the stars. We send messages faster than the speed of light. And yet we 
still live in the Dark Ages." He started for the door. 
"Walk out that door before I tell you to," said Mayor Kovano, "and you won't see 
the sun for a year." 
Grego walked to the door, but instead of going through it, he leaned against it 
and grinned sardonically. "You see how obedient I am." 
"I won't keep you long," said Kovano. "Bishop Peregrino and Father Estevao speak 
as if they could make their decision independent of the rest of us, but of 
course they know they can't. If I decided that Father Estevao's mission to the 
piggies shouldn't happen, it wouldn't. Let us all be clear about that. I'm not 
afraid to put the Bishop of Lusitania under arrest, if the welfare of Lusitania 
requires it; and as for this missionary priest, you will only go out among the 
pequeninos when you have my consent." 
"I have no doubt that you can interfere with God's work on Lusitania," said 
Bishop Peregrino icily. "You must have no doubt that I can send you to hell for 
doing it." 
"I know you can," said Kovano. "I wouldn't be the first political leader to end 
up in hell at the end of a contest with the church. Fortunately, this time it 
won't come to that. I've listened to all of you and reached my decision. Waiting 
for the new anti-virus is too risky. And even if I knew, absolutely, that the 
anti-virus would be ready and usable in six weeks, I'd still allow this mission. 
Our best chance right now of salvaging something from this mess is Father 
Estevao's mission. Andrew tells me that the pequeninos have great respect and 
affection for this man-- even the unbelievers. If he can persuade the pequenino 
heretics to drop their plan to annihilate humanity in the name of their 
religion, that will remove one heavy burden from us." 
Quim nodded gravely. Mayor Kovano was a man of great wisdom. It was good that 
they wouldn't have to struggle against each other, at least for now. 
"In the meantime, I expect the xenobiologists to continue to work on the 
anti-virus with all possible vigor. We'll decide, when the virus exists, whether 
or not to use it." 
"We'll use it," said Grego. 
"Only if I'm dead," said Quara. 
"I appreciate your willingness to wait until we know more before you commit 
yourself to any course of action," said Kovano. "Which brings us to you, Grego 
Ribeira. Andrew Wiggin assures me that there is reason to believe that 
faster-than-light travel might be possible." 
Grego looked coldly at the Speaker for the Dead. "And where did you study 
physics, Senhor Falante?" 
"I hope to study it from you," said Wiggin. "Until you've heard my evidence, I 
hardly know whether there's any reason to hope for such a breakthrough." 
Quim smiled to see how easily Andrew turned away the quarrel that Grego wanted 
to pick. Grego was no fool. He knew he was being handled. But Wiggin hadn't left 
him any reasonable grounds for showing his disgruntlement. It was one of the 
most infuriating skills of the Speaker for the Dead. 
"If there were a way to travel between worlds at ansible speeds," said Kovano, 
"we would need only one such ship to transport all the humans of Lusitania to 
another world. It's a remote chance--" 
"A foolish dream," said Grego. 
"But we'll pursue it. We'll study it, won't we?" said Kovano. "Or we'll find 
ourselves working in the foundry." 
"I'm not afraid to work with my hands," said Grego. "So don't think you can 
terrify me into putting my mind at your service." 
"I stand rebuked," said Kovano. "It's your cooperation that I want, Grego. But 
if I can't have that, then I'll settle for your obedience." 
Apparently Quara was feeling left out. She arose as Grego had a moment before. 
"So you can sit here and contemplate destroying a sentient species without even 
thinking of a way to communicate with them. I hope you all enjoy being mass 
murderers." Then, like Grego, she made as if to leave. 
"Quara," said Kovano. 
She waited. 
"You will study ways to talk to the descolada. To see if you can communicate 
with these viruses." 
"I know when I'm being tossed a bone," said Quara. "What if I tell you that 
they're pleading for us not to kill them? You wouldn't believe me anyway." 
"On the contrary. I know you're an honest woman, even if you are hopelessly 
indiscreet," said Kovano. "But I have another reason for wanting you to 
understand the molecular language of the descolada. You see, Andrew Wiggin has 
raised a possibility that never occurred to me before. We all know that 
pequenino sentience dates from the time when the descolada virus first swept 
across this planet. But what if we've misunderstood cause and effect?" 
Mother turned to Andrew, a bitter half-smile on her face. "You think the 
pequeninos caused the descolada?" 
"No," said Andrew. "But what if the pequeninos are the descolada?" 
Quara gasped. 
Grego laughed. "You are full of clever ideas, aren't you, Wiggin?" 
"I don't understand," said Quim. 
"I just wondered," said Andrew. "Quara says that the descolada is complex enough 
that it might contain intelligence. What if descolada viruses are using the 
bodies of the pequeninos to express their character? What if pequenino 
intelligence comes entirely from the viruses inside their bodies?" 
For the first time, Ouanda, the xenologer, spoke up. "You are as ignorant of 
xenology as you are of physics, Mr. Wiggin," she said. 
"Oh, much more so," said Wiggin. "But it occurred to me that we've never been 
able to think of any other way that memories and intelligence are preserved as a 
dying pequenino passes into the third life. The trees don't exactly preserve the 
brain inside them. But if will and memory are carried by the descolada in the 
first place, the death of the brain would be almost meaningless in the 
transmission of personality to the fathertree." 
"Even if there were a chance of this being true," said Ouanda, "there's no 
possible experiment we could decently perform to find out." 
Andrew Wiggin nodded ruefully. "I know I couldn't think of one. I was hoping you 
would." 
Kovano interrupted again. "Ouanda, we need you to explore this. If you don't 
believe it, fine-- figure out a way to prove it wrong, and you'll have done your 
job." Kovano stood up, addressed them all. "Do you all understand what I'm 
asking of you? We face some of the most terrible moral choices that humankind 
has ever faced. We run the risk of committing xenocide, or allowing it to be 
committed if we do nothing. Every known or suspected sentient species lives in 
the shadow of grave risk, and it's here, with us and with us alone, that almost 
all the decisions lie. Last time anything remotely similar happened, our human 
predecessors chose to commit xenocide in order, as they supposed, to save 
themselves. I am asking all of you to help us pursue every avenue, however 
unlikely, that shows us a glimmer of hope, that might provide us with a tiny 
shred of light to guide our decisions. Will you help?" 
Even Grego and Quara and Ouanda nodded their assent, however reluctantly. For 
the moment, at least, Kovano had managed to transform all the self-willed 
squabblers in this room into a cooperative community. How long that would last 
outside the room was a matter for speculation. Quim decided that the spirit of 
cooperation would probably last until the next crisis-- and maybe that would be 
long enough. 
Only one more confrontation was left. As the meeting broke up and everyone said 
their good-byes or arranged one-on-one consultations, Mother came to Quim and 
looked him fiercely in the eye. 
"Don't go." 
Quim closed his eyes. There was nothing to say to an outrageous statement like 
that. 
"If you love me," she said. 
Quim remembered the story from the New Testament, when Jesus' mother and 
brothers came to visit him, and wanted him to interrupt teaching his disciples 
in order to receive them. 
"These are my mother and my brothers," murmured Quim. 
She must have understood the reference, because when he opened his eyes, she was 
gone. 
Not an hour later, Quim was also gone, riding on one of the colony's precious 
cargo trucks. He needed few supplies, and for a normal journey he would have 
gone on foot. But the forest he was bound for was so far away, it would have 
taken him weeks to get there without the car; nor could he have carried food 
enough. This was still a hostile environment-- it grew nothing edible to humans, 
and even if it did, Quirn would still need the food containing the descolada 
suppressants. Without it he would die of the descolada long before he starved to 
death. 
As the town of Milagre grew small behind him, as he hurtled deeper and deeper 
into the meaningless open space of the prairie, Quim-- Father Estevao-- wondered 
what Mayor Kovano might have decided if he had known that the leader of the 
heretics was a fathertree who had earned the name Warmaker, and that Warmaker 
was known to have said that the only hope for the pequeninos was for the Holy 
Ghost-- the descolada virus-- to destroy all human life on Lusitania. 
It wouldn't have mattered. God had called Quirn to preach the gospel of Christ 
to every nation, kindred, tongue, and people. Even the most warlike, 
bloodthirsty, hate-filled people might be touched by the love of God and 
transformed into Christians. It had happened many times in history. Why not now? 

O Father, do a mighty work in this world. Never did your children need miracles 
more than we do. 



Novinha wasn't speaking to Ender, and he was afraid. This wasn't petulance-- he 
had never seen Novinha be petulant. To Ender it seemed that her silence was not 
to punish him, but rather to keep from punishing him; that she was silent 
because if she spoke, her words would be too cruel ever to be forgiven. 
So at first he didn't attempt to cajole words from her. He let her move like a 
shadow through the house, drifting past him without eye contact; he tried to 
stay out of her way and didn't go to bed until she was asleep. 
It was Quim, obviously. His mission to the heretics-- it was easy to understand 
what she feared, and even though Ender didn't share the same fears, he knew that 
Quim's journey was not without risk. Novinha was being irrational. How could 
Ender have stopped Quim? He was the one of Novinha's children over whom Ender 
had almost no influence; they had come to a rapprochement a few years ago, but 
it was a declaration of peace between equals, nothing like the ur-fatherhood 
Ender had established with all the other children. If Novinha had not been able 
to persuade Quim to give up this mission, what more could Ender have 
accomplished? 
Novinha probably knew this, intellectually. But like all other human beings, she 
did not always act according to her understanding. She had lost too many of the 
people that she loved; when she felt one more of them slipping away, her 
response was visceral, not intellectual. Ender had come into her life as a 
healer, a protector. It was his job to keep her from being afraid, and now she 
was afraid, and she was angry at him for having failed her. 
However, after two days of silence Ender had had enough. This wasn't a good time 
for there to be a barrier between him and Novinha. He knew-- and so did 
Novinha-- that Valentine's coming might be a difficult time for them. He had so 
many old habits of communication with Valentine, so many connections with her, 
so many roads into her soul, that it was hard for him not to fall back into 
being the person he had been during the years-- the millennia-- they had spent 
together. They had experienced three thousand years of history as if seeing it 
through the same eyes. He had been with Novinha only thirty years. That was 
actually longer, in subjective time, than he had spent with Valentine, but it 
was so easy to slip back into his old role as Valentine's brother, as Speaker to 
her Demosthenes. 
Ender had expected Novinha to be jealous when Valentine came, and he was 
prepared for that. He had warned Valentine that there would probably be few 
opportunities for them to be together at first. And she, too, understood-- Jakt 
had his worries, too, and both spouses would need reassurance. It was almost 
silly for Jakt and Novinha to be jealous of the bonds between brother and 
sister. There had never been the slightest hint of sexuality in Ender's and 
Valentine's relationship-- anyone who understood them at all would laugh at any 
such notion-- but it wasn't sexual unfaithfulness that Novinha and Jakt were 
wary of. Nor was it the emotional bond they shared-- Novinha had no reason to 
doubt Ender's love and devotion to her, and Jakt could not have asked for more 
than Valentine offered him, both in passion and in trust. 
It was deeper than any of these things. It was the fact that even now, after all 
these years, as soon as they were together they once again functioned like a 
single person, helping each other without even having to explain what they were 
trying to accomplish. Jakt saw it and even to Ender, who had never known him 
before, it was obvious that the man felt devastated. As if he saw his wife and 
her brother together and realized: This is what closeness is. This is what it 
means for two people to be one. He had thought that he and Valentine had been as 
close as husband and wife can ever be, and perhaps they were. And yet now he had 
to confront the fact that it was possible for two people to be even closer. To 
be, in some sense, the same person. 
Ender could see this in Jakt, and could admire how well Valentine was doing at 
reassuring him-- and at distancing herself from Ender so that her husband could 
grow used to the bond between them more gradually, in small doses. 
What Ender could not have predicted was the way Novinha had reacted. He had come 
to know her first as the mother of her children; he had known only the fierce, 
unreasonable loyalty she had for them. He had supposed that if she felt 
threatened, she would become possessive and controlling, the way she was with 
the children. He was not at all prepared for the way she had withdrawn from him. 
Even before this silent treatment about Quim's mission, she had been distant 
from him. In fact, now that he thought back, he realized that it had already 
been beginning before Valentine arrived. It was as if Novinha had already 
started giving in to a new rival before the rival was even there. 
It made sense, of course-- he should have seen it coming. Novinha had lost too 
many strong figures in her life, too many people she had depended on. Her 
parents. Pipo. Libo. Even Miro. She might be protective and possessive with her 
children, whom she thought of as needing her, but with the people she needed, 
she was the opposite. If she feared that they would be taken away from her, she 
withdrew from them; she stopped permitting herself to need them. 
Not "them." Him. Ender. She was trying to stop needing him. And this silence, if 
she kept it up, would drive such a wedge between them that their marriage would 
never recover. 
If that happened, Ender didn't know what he would do. It had never occurred to 
him that his marriage might be threatened. He had not entered into it lightly; 
he intended to die married to Novinha, and all these years together had been 
filled with the joy that comes from utter confidence in another person. Now 
Novinha had lost that confidence in him. Only it wasn't right. He was still her 
husband, faithful to her as no other man, no other person in her life had ever 
been. He didn't deserve to lose her over a ridiculous misunderstanding. And if 
he let things go as Novinha seemed determined, however unconsciously, to make 
them happen, she would be utterly convinced that she could never depend on any 
other person. That would be tragic because it would be false. 
So Ender was already planning a confrontation of some kind with Novinha when Ela 
accidentally set it off. 
"Andrew." 
Ela was standing in the doorway. If she had clapped hands outside, asking for 
admittance, Ender hadn't heard her. But then, she would hardly need to clap for 
entrance to her mother's house. 
"Novinha's in our room," said Ender. 
"I came to talk to you," said Ela. 
"I'm sorry, you can't have an advance on your allowance." 
Ela laughed as she came to sit beside him, but the laughter died quickly. She 
was worried. 
"Quara," she said. 
Ender sighed and smiled. Quara was born contrary, and nothing in her life had 
made her more compliant. Still, Ela had always been able to get along with her 
better than anyone. 
"It's not just the normal," said Ela. "In fact, she's less trouble than usual. 
Not a quarrel." 
"A dangerous sign?" 
"You know she's trying to communicate with the descolada." 
"Molecular language." 
"Well, what she's doing is dangerous, and it won't establish communication even 
if it succeeds. Especially if it succeeds, because then there's a good chance 
that we'll all be dead." 
"What's she doing?" 
"She's been raiding my files-- which isn't hard, because I didn't think I needed 
to block them off from a fellow xenobiologist. She's been constructing the 
inhibitors I've been trying to splice into plants-- easy enough, because I've 
laid out exactly how it's done. Only instead of splicing it into anything, she's 
giving it directly to the descolada." 
"What do you mean, giving it?" 
"Those are her messages. That's what she's sending them on their precious little 
message carriers. Now, whether those carriers are language or not isn't going to 
be settled by a non-experiment like that. But sentient or not, we know that the 
descolada is a hell of a good adapter-- and she might well be helping them adapt 
to some of my best strategies for blocking them." 
"Treason." 
"Right. She's feeding our military secrets to the enemy." 
"Have you talked to her about this?" 
"'Sta brincando. Claro que falei. Ela quase me matou." You're joking-- of course 
I talked to her. She nearly killed me. 
"Has she successfully trained any viruses?" 
"She's not even testing for that. It's like she's run to the window and 
hollered, 'They're coming to kill you!' She's not doing science, she's doing 
interspecies politics, only we don't know that the other side even has politics, 
we only know that with her help it might just kill us faster than we ever 
imagined." 
"Nossa Senhora," murmured Ender. "It's too dangerous. She can't play around with 
something like this." 
"It may already be too late-- I can't guess whether she's done damage or not." 
"Then we've got to stop her." 
"How, break her arms?" 
"I'll talk to her, but she's too old-- or too young-- to listen to reason. I'm 
afraid it'll end up with the Mayor, not with us." 
Only when Novinha spoke did Ender realize that his wife had entered the room. 
"In other words, jail," said Novinha. "You plan to have my daughter locked up. 
When were you going to inform me?" 
"Jail didn't occur to me," said Ender. "I expected he'd shut off her access 
to--" 
"That isn't the Mayor's job," said Novinha. "It's mine. I'm the head 
xenobiologist. Why didn't you come to me, Elanora? Why to him?" 
Ela sat there in silence, looking at her mother steadily. It was how she handled 
conflict with her mother, with passive resistance. 
"Quara's out of control, Novinha," said Ender. "Telling secrets to the 
fathertrees was bad enough. Telling them to the descolada is insane." 
"Es psicologista, agora?" Now you're a psychologist? 
"I'm not planning to lock her up." 
"You're not planning anything," said Novinha. "Not with my children." 
"That's right," said Ender. "I'm not planning to do anything with children. I do 
have a responsibility, however, to do something about an adult citizen of 
Milagre who is recklessly endangering the survival of every human being on this 
planet, and maybe every human being everywhere." 
"And where did you get that noble responsibility, Andrew? Did God come down to 
the mountain and carve your license to rule people on tablets of stone?" 
"Fine," said Ender. "What do you suggest?" 
"I suggest you stay out of business that doesn't concern you. And frankly, 
Andrew, that includes pretty much everything. You're not a xenobiologist. You're 
not a physicist. You're not a xenologer. In fact, you're not much of anything, 
are you, except a professional meddler in other people's lives." 
Ela gasped. "Mother!" 
"The only thing that gives you any power anywhere is that damned jewel in your 
ear. She whispers secrets to you, she talks to you at night when you're in bed 
with your wife, and whenever she wants something, there you are in a meeting 
where you have no business, saying whatever it was she told you to say. You talk 
about Quara committing treason-- as far as I can tell, you're the one who's 
betraying real people in favor of an overgrown piece of software!" 
"Novinha," said Ender. It was supposed to be the beginning of an attempt to calm 
her. 
But she wasn't interested in dialogue. "Don't you dare to try to deal with me, 
Andrew. All these years I thought you loved me--" 
"I do." 
"I thought you had really become one of us, part of our lives-" 
"I am." 
"I thought it was real--" 
"It is." 
"But you're just what Bishop Peregrino warned us you were from the start. A 
manipulator. A controller. Your brother once ruled all of humanity, isn't that 
the story? But you aren't so ambitious. You'll settle for a little planet." 
"In the name of God, Mother, have you lost your mind? Don't you know this man?" 
"I thought I did!" Novinha was weeping now. "But no one who loved me would ever 
let my son go out and face those murderous little swine--" 
"He couldn't have stopped Quim, Mother! Nobody could!" 
"He didn't even try. He approved!" 
"Yes," said Ender. "I thought your son was acting nobly and bravely, and I 
approved of that. He knew that while the danger wasn't great, it was real, and 
yet he still chose to go-- and I approved of that. It's exactly what you would 
have done, and I hope that it's what I would do in the same place. Quim is a 
man, a good man, maybe a great one. He doesn't need your protection and he 
doesn't want it. He has decided what his life's work is and he's doing it. I 
honor him for that, and so should you. How dare you suggest that either of us 
should have stood in his way!" 
Novinha was silent at last, for the moment, anyway. Was she measuring Ender's 
words? Was she finally realizing how futile and, yes, cruel it was for her to 
send Quim away with her anger instead of her hope? During that silence, Ender 
still had some hope. 
Then the silence ended. "If you ever meddle in the lives of my children again, 
I'm done with you," said Novinha. "And if anything happens to Quim-- anything-- 
I will hate you till you die, and I'll pray for that day to come soon. You don't 
know everything, you bastard, and it's about time you stopped acting as if you 
did." 
She stalked to the door, but then thought better of the theatrical exit. She 
turned back to Ela and spoke with remarkable calm. "Elanora, I will take 
immediate steps to block Quara from access to records and equipment that she 
could use to help the descolada. And in the future, my dear, if I ever hear you 
discussing lab business with anyone, especially this man, I will bar you from 
the lab for life. Do you understand?" 
Again Ela answered her with silence. 
"Ah," said Novinha. "I see that he has stolen more of my children from me than I 
thought." 
Then she was gone. 
Ender and Ela sat in stunned silence. Finally Ela stood up, though she didn't 
take a single step. 
"I really ought to go do something," said Ela, "but I can't for the life of me 
think what." 
"Maybe you should go to your mother and show her that you're still on her side." 

"But I'm not," said Ela. "In fact, I was thinking maybe I should go to Mayor 
Zeljezo and propose that he remove Mother as head xenobiologist because she has 
clearly lost her mind." 
"No she hasn't," said Ender. "And if you did something like that, it would kill 
her." 
"Mother? She's too tough to die." 
"No," said Ender. "She's so fragile right now that any blow might kill her. Not 
her body. Her-- trust. Her hope. Don't give her any reason to think you're not 
with her, no matter what." 
Ela looked at him with exasperation. "Is this something you decide, or does it 
just come naturally to you?" 
"What are you talking about?" 
"Mother just said things to you that should have made you furious or hurt or-- 
something, anyway-- and you just sit there trying to think of ways to help her. 
Don't you ever feel like lashing out at somebody? I mean, don't you ever lose 
your temper?" 
"Ela, after you've inadvertently killed a couple of people with your bare hands, 
either you learn to control your temper or you lose your humanity." 
"You've done that?" 
"Yes," he said. He thought for a moment that she was shocked. 
"Do you think you could still do it?" 
"Probably," he said. 
"Good. It may be useful when all hell breaks loose." 
Then she laughed. It was a joke. Ender was relieved. He even laughed, weakly, 
along with her. 
"I'll go to Mother," said Ela, "but not because you told me to, or even for the 
reasons that you said." 
"Fine, just so you go." 
"Don't you want to know why I'm going to stick with her?" 
"I already know why." 
"Of course. She was wrong, wasn't she. You do know everything, don't you." 
"You're going to go to your mother because it's the most painful thing you could 
do to yourself at this moment." 
"You make it sound sick." 
"It's the most painful good thing you could do. It's the most unpleasant job 
around. It's the heaviest burden to bear." 
"Ela the martyr, certo? Is that what you'll say when you speak my death?" 
"If I'm going to speak your death, I'll have to pre-record it. I intend to be 
dead long before you. " 
"So you're not leaving Lusitania?" 
"Of course not." 
"Even if Mother boots you out?" 
"She can't. She has no grounds for divorce, and Bishop Peregrino knows us both 
well enough to laugh at any request for annulment based on a claim of 
nonconsummation." 
"You know what I mean." 
"I'm here for the long haul," said Ender. "No more phony immortality through 
time dilation. I'm through chasing around in space. I'll never leave the surface 
of Lusitania again." 
"Even if it kills you? Even if the fleet comes?" 
"If everybody can leave, then I'll leave," said Ender. "But I'll be the one who 
turns off all the lights and locks the door." 
She ran to him and kissed him on the cheek and embraced him, just for a moment. 
Then she was out the door and he was, once again, alone. 
I was so wrong about Novinha, he thought. It wasn't Valentine she was jealous 
of. It was Jane. All these years, she's seen me speaking silently with Jane, all 
the time, saying things that she could never hear, hearing things that she could 
never say. I've lost her trust in me, and I never even realized I was losing it. 

Even now, he must have been subvocalizing. He must have been talking to Jane out 
of a habit so deep that he didn't even know he was doing it. Because she 
answered him. 
"I warned you," she said. 
I suppose you did, Ender answered silently. 
"You never think I understand anything about human beings." 
I guess you're learning. 
"She's right, you know. You are my puppet. I manipulate you all the time. You 
haven't had a thought of your own in years." 
"Shut up," he whispered. "I'm not in the mood." 
"Ender," she said, "if you think it would help you keep from losing Novinha, 
take the jewel out of your ear. I wouldn't mind." 
"I would," he said. 
"I was lying, so would I," she said. "But if you have to do it, to keep her, 
then do it." 
"Thank you," he said. "But I'd be hard-pressed to keep someone that I've clearly 
lost already." 
"When Quim comes back, everything will be fine." 
Right, thought Ender. Right. 
Please, God, take good care of Father Estevao. 



They knew Father Estevao was coming. Pequeninos always did. The fathertrees told 
each other everything. There were no secrets. Not that they wanted it that way. 
There might be one fathertree that wanted to keep a secret or tell a lie. But 
they couldn't exactly go off by themselves. They never had private experiences. 
So if one fathertree wanted to keep something to himself, there'd be another 
close by who didn't feel that way. Forests always acted in unity, but they were 
still made up of individuals, and so stories passed from one forest to another 
no matter what a few fathertrees might wish. 
That was Quim's protection, he knew. Because even though Warmaker was a 
bloodthirsty son of a bitch-- though that was an epithet without meaning when it 
came to pequeninos-- he couldn't do a thing to Father Estevao without first 
persuading the brothers of his forest to act as he wanted them to. And if he did 
that, one of the other fathertrees in his forest would know, and would tell. 
Would bear witness. If Warmaker broke the oath taken by all the fathertrees 
together, thirty years ago, when Andrew Wiggin sent Human into the third life, 
it could not be done secretly. The whole world would hear of it, and Warmaker 
would be known as an oathbreaker. It would be a shameful thing. What wife would 
allow the brothers to carry a mother to him then? What children would he ever 
have again as long as he lived? 
Quirn was safe. They might not heed him, but they wouldn't harm him. 
Yet when he arrived at Warmaker's forest, they wasted no time listening to him. 
The brothers seized him, threw him to the ground, and dragged him to Warmaker. 
"This wasn't necessary," he said. "I was coming here anyway." 
A brother was beating on the tree with sticks. Quim listened to the changing 
music as Warmaker altered the hollows within himself, shaping the sound into 
words. 
"You came because I commanded." 
"You commanded. I came. If you want to think you caused my coming, so be it. But 
God's commands are the only ones I obey willingly." 
"You're here to hear the will of God," said Warmaker. 
"I'm hear to speak the will of God," said Quim. "The descolada is a virus, 
created by God in order to make the pequeninos into worthy children. But the 
Holy Ghost has no incarnation. The Holy Ghost is perpetually spirit, so he can 
dwell in our hearts." 
"The descolada dwells in our hearts, and gives us life. When he dwells in your 
heart, what does he give you?" 
"One God. One faith. One baptism. God doesn't preach one thing to humans and 
another to pequeninos." 
"We are not 'little ones.' You will see who is mighty and who is small." 
They forced him to stand with his back pressed against Warmaker's trunk. He felt 
the bark shifting behind him. They pushed on him. Many small hands, many snouts 
breathing on him. In all these years, he had never thought of such hands, such 
faces as belonging to enemies. And even now, Quim realized with relief that he 
didn't think of them as his own enemies. They were the enemies of God, and he 
pitied them. It was a great discovery for him, that even when he was being 
pushed into the belly of a murderous fathertree, he had no shred of fear or 
hatred in him. 
I really don't fear death. I never knew that. 
The brothers still beat on the outside of the tree with sticks. Warmaker 
reshaped the sound into the words of Father Tongue, but now Quim was inside the 
sound, inside the words. 
"You think I'm going to break the oath," said Warmaker. 
"It crossed my mind," said Quim. He was now fully pinned inside the tree, even 
though it remained open in front of him from head to toe. He could see, he could 
breathe easily-- his confinement wasn't even claustrophobic. But the wood had 
formed so smoothly around him that he couldn't move an arm or a leg, couldn't 
begin to turn sideways to slide out of the gap before him. Strait is the gate 
and narrow is the way that leads to salvation. 
"We'll test," said Warmaker. It was harder to understand his words, now that 
Quim was hearing them from the inside. Harder to think. "Let God judge between 
you and me. We'll give you all you want to drink-- the water from our stream. 
But of food you'll have none." 
"Starving me is--" 
"Starving? We have your food. We'll feed you again in ten days. If the Holy 
Ghost allows you to live for ten days, we'll feed you and set you free. We'll be 
believers in your doctrine then. We'll confess that we were wrong." 
"The virus will kill me before then." 
"The Holy Ghost will judge you and decide if you're worthy." 
"There is a test going on here," said Quim, "but not the one you think." 
"Oh?" 
"It's the test of the Last Judgment. You stand before Christ, and he says to 
those on his right hand, 'I was a stranger, and you took me in. Hungry, and you 
fed me. Enter into the joy of the Lord.' Then he says to those on his left hand, 
'I was hungry, and you gave me nothing. I was a stranger, and you mistreated 
me.' And they all say to him, 'Lord, when did we do these things to you?' and he 
answers, 'If you did it to the least of my brothers, you did it to me.' All you 
brothers, gathered here-- I am the least of your brothers. You will answer to 
Christ for what you do to me here." 
"Foolish man," said Warmaker. "We are doing nothing to you but holding you 
still. What happens to you is whatever God desires. Didn't Christ say, 'I do 
nothing but what I've seen the Father do'? Didn't Christ say, 'I am the way. 
Come follow me'? Well, we are letting you do what Christ did. He went without 
bread for forty days in the wilderness. We give you a chance to be one-fourth as 
holy. If God wants us to believe in your doctrine, he'll send angels to feed 
you. He'll turn stones into bread." 
"You're making a mistake," said Quim. 
"You made the mistake by coming here." 
"I mean that you're making a doctrinal mistake. You've got the lines down 
right-- fasting in the wilderness, stones into bread, all of it. But didn't you 
think it might be a little too self-revelatory for you to give yourself Satan's 
part?" 
That was when Warmaker flew into a rage, speaking so rapidly that the movements 
within the wood began to twist and press on Quim until he was afraid he would be 
torn to bits within the tree. 
"You are Satan! Trying to get us to believe your lies long enough for you humans 
to figure out a way to kill the descolada and keep all the brothers from the 
third life forever! Do you think we don't see through you? We know all your 
plans, all of them! You have no secrets! And God keeps no secrets from us 
either! We're the ones who were given the third life, not you! If God loved you, 
he wouldn't make you bury your dead in the ground and then let nothing but worms 
come out of you!" 
The brothers sat around the opening in the trunk, enthralled by the argument. 
It went on for six days, doctrinal arguments worthy of any of the fathers of the 
church in any age. Not since the council at Nicaea were such momentous issues 
considered, weighed. 
The arguments were passed from brother to brother, from tree to tree, from 
forest to forest. Accounts of the dialogue between Warmaker and Father Estevao 
always reached Rooter and Human within a day. But the information wasn't 
complete. It wasn't until the fourth day that they realized that Quim was being 
held prisoner, without any of the food containing the descolada inhibitor. 
Then an expedition was mounted at once, Ender and Ouanda, Jakt and Lars and 
Varsam; Mayor Kovano sent Ender and Ouanda because they were widely known and 
respected among the piggies, and Jakt and his son and son-in-law because they 
weren't native-born Lusitanians. Kovano didn't dare to send any of the 
native-born colonists-- if word of this got out, there was no telling what would 
happen. The five of them took the fastest car and followed the directions Rooter 
gave them. It was a three-day trip. 
On the sixth day the dialogue ended, because the descolada had so thoroughly 
invaded Quim's body that he had no strength to speak, and was often too fevered 
and delirious to say anything intelligible when he did speak. 
On the seventh day, he looked through the gap, upward, above the heads of the 
brothers who were still there, still watching. "I see the Savior sitting on the 
right hand of God," he whispered. Then he smiled. 
An hour later he was dead. Warmaker felt it, and announced it triumphantly to 
the brothers. "The Holy Ghost has judged, and Father Estevao has been rejected!" 

Some of the brothers rejoiced. But not as many as Warmaker had expected. 



At dusk, Ender's party arrived. There was no question now of the piggies 
capturing and testing them-- they were too many, and the brothers were not all 
of one mind now anyway. Soon they stood before the split trunk of Warmaker and 
saw the haggard, disease-ravaged face of Father Estevao, barely visible in the 
shadows. 
"Open up and let my son come out to me," said Ender. 
The gap in the tree widened. Ender reached in and pulled out the body of Father 
Estevao. He was so light inside his robes that Ender thought for a moment he 
must be bearing some of his own weight, must be walking. But he wasn't walking. 
Ender laid him on the ground before the tree. 
A brother beat a rhythm on Warmaker's trunk. 
"He must belong to you indeed, Speaker for the Dead, because he is dead. The 
Holy Ghost has burned him up in the second baptism." 
"You broke the oath," said Ender. "You betrayed the word of the fathertrees." 
"No one harmed a hair of his head," said Warmaker. 
"Do you think anyone is deceived by your lies?" said Ender. "Anyone knows that 
to withhold medicine from a dying man is an act of violence as surely as if you 
stabbed him in the heart. There is his medicine. At any time you could have 
given it to him." 
"It was Warmaker," said one of the brothers standing there. 
Ender turned to the brothers. "You helped Warmaker. Don't think you can give the 
blame to him alone. May none of you ever pass into the third life. And as for 
you, Warmaker, may no mother ever crawl on your bark." 
"No human can decide things like that," said Warmaker. 
"You decided it yourself, when you thought you could commit murder in order to 
win your argument," said Ender. "And you brothers, you decided it when you 
didn't stop him." 
"You're not our judge!" cried one of the brothers. 
"Yes I am," said Ender. "And so is every other inhabitant of Lusitania, human 
and fathertree, brother and wife." 
They carried Quim's body to the car, and Jakt, Ouanda, and Ender rode with him. 
Lars and Varsam took the car that Quim had used. Ender took a few minutes to 
tell Jane a message to give to Miro back in the colony. There was no reason 
Novinha should wait three days to hear that her son had died at the hands of the 
pequeninos. And she wouldn't want to hear it from Ender's mouth, that was 
certain. Whether Ender would have a wife when he returned to the colony was 
beyond his ability to guess. The only certain thing was that Novinha would not 
have her son Estevao. 
"Will you speak for him?" asked Jakt, as the car skimmed over the capim. He had 
heard Ender speak for the dead once on Trondheim. 
"No," said Ender. "I don't think so." 
"Because he's a priest?" asked Jakt. 
"I've spoken for priests before," said Ender. "No, I won't speak for Quim 
because there's no reason to. Quim was always exactly what he seemed to be, and 
he died exactly as he would have have chosen-- serving God and preaching to the 
little ones. I have nothing to add to his story. He completed it himself." 
Table of Contents



Chapter 11 -- The Jade of Master Ho
<So now the killing starts.> 
<Amusing that your people started it, not the humans.> 
<Your people started it, too, when you had your wars with the humans.> 
<We started it, but they ended it.> 
<How do they manage it, these humans-- beginning each time so innocently, yet 
always ending up with the most blood on their hands?> 
  
  
  
Wang-mu watched the words and numbers moving through the display above her 
mistress's terminal. Qing-jao was asleep, breathing softly on her mat not far 
away. Wang-mu had also slept for a time, but something had wakened her. A cry, 
not far off; a cry of pain perhaps. It had been part of Wang-mu's dream, but 
when she awoke she heard the last of the sound in the air. It was not Qing-jao's 
voice. A man perhaps, though the sound was high. A wailing sound. It made 
Wang-mu think of death. 
But she did not get up and investigate. It was not her place to do that; her 
place was with her mistress at all times, unless her mistress sent her away. If 
Qing-jao needed to hear the news of what had happened to cause that cry, another 
servant would come and waken Wang-mu, who would then waken her mistress-- for 
once a woman had a secret maid, and until she had a husband, only the hands of 
the secret maid could touch her without invitation. 
So Wang-mu lay awake, waiting to see if someone came to tell Qing-jao why a man 
had wailed in such anguish, near enough to be heard in this room at the back of 
the house of Han Fei-tzu. While she waited, her eyes were drawn to the moving 
display as the computer performed the searches Qing-jao had programmed. 
The display stopped moving. Was there a problem? Wang-mu rose up to lean on one 
arm; it brought her close enough to read the most recent words of the display. 
The search was completed. And this time the report was not one of the curt 
messages of failure: NOT FOUND. NO INFORMATION. NO CONCLUSION. This time the 
message was a report. 
Wang-mu got up and stepped to the terminal. She did as Qing-jao had taught her, 
pressing the key that logged all current information so the computer would guard 
it no matter what happened. Then she went to Qing-jao and laid a gentle hand on 
her shoulder. 
Qing-jao came awake almost at once; she slept alertly. "The search has found 
something," said Wang-mu. 
Qing-jao shed her sleep as easily as she might shrug off a loose jacket. In a 
moment she was at the terminal taking in the words there. 
"I've found Demosthenes," she said. 
"Where is he?" asked Wang-mu, breathless. The great Demosthenes-- no, the 
terrible Demosthenes. My mistress wishes me to think of him as an enemy. But the 
Demosthenes, in any case, the one whose words had stirred her so when she heard 
her father reading them aloud. "As long as one being gets others to bow to him 
because he has the power to destroy them and all they have and all they love, 
then all of us must be afraid together." Wang-mu had overheard those words 
almost in her infancy-- she was only three years old-- but she remembered them 
because they had made such a picture in her mind. When her father read those 
words, she had remembered a scene: her mother spoke and Father grew angry. He 
didn't strike her, but he did tense his shoulder and his arm jerked a bit, as if 
his body had meant to strike and he had only with difficulty contained it. And 
when he did that, though no violent act was committed, Wang-mu's mother bowed 
her head and murmured something, and the tension eased. Wang-mu knew that she 
had seen what Demosthenes described: Mother had bowed to Father because he had 
the power to hurt her. And Wang-mu had been afraid, both at the time and again 
when she remembered; so as she heard the words of Demosthenes she knew that they 
were true, and marveled that her father could say those words and even agree 
with them and not realize that he had acted them out himself. That was why 
Wang-mu had always listened with great interest to all the words of the great-- 
the terrible-- Demosthenes, because great or terrible, she knew that he told the 
truth. 
"Not he," said Qing-jao. "Demosthenes is a woman." 
The idea took Wang-mu's breath away. So! A woman all along. No wonder I heard 
such sympathy in Demosthenes; she is a woman, and knows what it is to be ruled 
by others every waking moment. She is a woman, and so she dreams of freedom, of 
an hour in which there is no duty waiting to be done. No wonder there is 
revolution burning in her words, and yet they remain always words and never 
violence. But why doesn't Qing-jao see this? Why has Qing-jao decided we must 
both hate Demosthenes? 
"A woman named Valentine," said Qing-jao; and then, with awe in her voice, 
"Valentine Wiggin, born on Earth more than three-- more than three thousand 
years ago." 
"Is she a god, to live so long?" 
"Journeys. She travels from world to world, never staying anywhere more than a 
few months. Long enough to write a book. All the great histories under the name 
Demosthenes were written by that same woman, and yet nobody knows it. How can 
she not be famous?" 
"She must want to hide," said Wang-mu, understanding very well why a woman might 
want to hide behind a man's name. I'd do it too, if I could, so that I could 
also journey from world to world and see a thousand places and live ten thousand 
years. 
"Subjectively she's only in her fifties. Still young. She stayed on one world 
for many years, married and had children. But now she's gone again. To--" 
Qing-jao gasped. 
"Where?" asked Wang-mu. 
"When she left her home she took her family with her on a starship. They headed 
first toward Heavenly Peace and passed near Catalonia, and then they set out on 
a course directly toward Lusitania!" 
Wang-mu's first thought was: Of course! That's why Demosthenes has such sympathy 
and understanding for the Lusitanians. She has talked to them-- to the 
rebellious xenologers, to the pequeninos themselves. She has met them and knows 
that they are raman! 
Then she thought: If the Lusitania Fleet arrives there and fulfills its mission, 
Demosthenes will be captured and her words will end. 
And then she realized something that made this all impossible. "How could she be 
on Lusitania, when Lusitania has destroyed its ansible? Wasn't that the first 
thing they did when they went into revolt? How can her writings be reaching us?" 

Qing-jao shook her head. "She hasn't reached Lusitania yet. Or if she has, it's 
only in the last few months. She's been in flight for the last thirty years. 
Since before the rebellion. She left before the rebellion." 
"Then all her writings have been done in flight?" Wang-mu tried to imagine how 
the different timeflows would be reconciled. "To have written so much since the 
Lusitania Fleet left, she must have--" 
"Must have been spending every waking moment on the starship, writing and 
writing and writing," said Qing-jao. "And yet there's no record of her starship 
having sent any signals anywhere, except for the captain's reports. How has she 
been getting her writings distributed to so many different worlds, if she's been 
on a starship the whole time? It's impossible. There'd be some record of the 
ansible transmissions, somewhere." 
"It's always the ansible," said Wang-mu. "The Lusitania Fleet stops sending 
messages, and her starship must be sending them but it isn't. Who knows? Maybe 
Lusitania is sending secret messages, too." She thought of the Life of Human. 
"There can't be any secret messages," said Qing-jao. "The ansible's philotic 
connections are permanent, and if there's any transmission at any frequency, it 
would be detected and the computers would keep a record of it." 
"Well, there you are," said Wang-mu. "If the ansibles are all still connected, 
and the computers don't have a record of transmissions, and yet we know that 
there have been transmissions because Demosthenes has been writing all these 
things, then the records must be wrong." 
"There is no way for anyone to hide an ansible transmission," said Qingjao. "Not 
unless they were right in there at the very moment the transmission was 
received, switching it away from the normal logging programs and-- anyway, it 
can't be done. A conspirator would have to be sitting at every ansible all the 
time, working so fast that--" 
"Or they could have a program that did it automatically." 
"But then we'd know about the program-- it would be taking up memory, it would 
be using processor time." 
"If somebody could make a program to intercept the ansible messages, couldn't 
they also make it hide itself so it didn't show up in memory and left no record 
of the processor time it used?" 
Qing-jao looked at Wang-mu in anger. "Where did you learn so many questions 
about computers and you still don't know that things like that can't be done!" 
Wang-mu bowed her head and touched it to the floor. She knew that humiliating 
herself like this would make Qing-jao ashamed of her anger and they could talk 
again. 
"No," said Qing-jao, "I had no right to be angry, I'm sorry. Get up, Wang-mu. 
Keep asking questions. Those are good questions. It might be possible because 
you can think of it, and if you can think of it maybe somebody could do it. But 
here's why I think it's impossible: Because how could anybody install such a 
masterful program on-- it would have to be on every computer that processes 
ansible communications anywhere. Thousands and thousands of them. And if one 
breaks down and another one comes online, it would have to download the program 
into the new computer almost instantly. And yet it could never put itself into 
permanent storage or it would be found there; it must keep moving itself all the 
time, dodging, staying out of the way of other programs, moving into and out of 
storage. A program that could do all that would have to be-- intelligent, it 
would have to be trying to hide and figuring out new ways to do it all the time 
or we would have noticed it by now and we never have. There's no program like 
that. How would anyone have ever programmed it? How could it have started? And 
look, Wang-mu-- this Valentine Wiggin who writes all of the Demosthenes things-- 
she's been hiding herself for thousands of years. If there's a program like that 
it must have been in existence the whole time. It wouldn't have been made up by 
the enemies of Starways Congress because there wasn't a Starways Congress when 
Valentine Wiggin started hiding who she was. See how old these records are that 
gave us her name? She hasn't been openly linked to Demosthenes since these 
earliest reports from-- from Earth. Before starships. Before ..." 
Qing-jao's voice trailed off, but Wang-mu already understood, had reached this 
conclusion before Qing-jao vocalized it. "So if there's a secret program in the 
ansible computers," said Wang-mu, "it must have been there all along. Right from 
the start." 
"Impossible," whispered Qing-jao. But since everything else was impossible, too, 
Wang-mu knew that Qing-jao loved this idea, that she wanted to believe it 
because even though it was impossible at least it was conceivable, it could be 
imagined and therefore it might just be real. And I conceived of it, thought 
Wang-mu. I may not be godspoken but I'm intelligent too. I understand things. 
Everybody treats me like a foolish child, even Qing-jao, even though Qing-jao 
knows how quickly I learn, even though she knows that I think of ideas that 
other people don't think of-- even she despises me. But I am as smart as anyone, 
Mistress! I am as smart as you, even though you never notice that, even though 
you will think you thought of this all by yourself. Oh, you'll give me credit 
for it, but it will be like this: Wang-mu said something and it got me thinking 
and then I realized the important idea. It will never be: Wang-mu was the one 
who understood this and explained it to me so I finally understood it. Always as 
if I were a stupid dog who happens to bark or yip or scratch or snap or leap, 
just by coincidence, and it happens to turn your mind toward the truth. I am not 
a dog. I understood. When I asked you those questions it was because I already 
realized the implications. And I realize even more than you have said so far-- 
but I must tell you this by asking, by pretending not to understand, because you 
are godspoken and a mere servant could never give ideas to one who hears the 
voices of the gods. 
"Mistress, whoever controls this program has enormous power, and yet we've never 
heard of them and they've never used this power until now." 
"They've used it," said Qing-jao. "To hide Demosthenes' true identity. This 
Valentine Wiggin is very rich, too, but her ownerships are all concealed so that 
no one realizes how much she has, that all of her possessions are part of the 
same fortune." 
"This powerful program has dwelt in every ansible computer since starflight 
began, and yet all it ever did was hide this woman's fortune?" 
"You're right," said Qing-jao, "it makes no sense at all. Why didn't someone 
with this much power already use it to take control of things? Or perhaps they 
did. They were there before Starways Congress was formed, so maybe they... but 
then why would they oppose Congress now?" 
"Maybe," said Wang-mu, "maybe they just don't care about power." 
"Who doesn't?" 
"Whoever controls this secret program." 
"Then why would they have created the program in the first place? Wangmu, you 
aren't thinking." 
No, of course not, I never think. Wang-mu bowed her head. 
"I mean you are thinking, but you're not thinking of this: Nobody would create 
such a powerful program unless they wanted that much power-- I mean, think of 
what this program does, what it can do-- intercept every message from the fleet 
and make it look like none were ever sent! Bring Demosthenes' writings to every 
settled planet and yet hide the fact that those messages were sent! They could 
do anything, they could alter any message, they could spread confusion 
everywhere or fool people into thinking-- into thinking there's a war, or give 
them orders to do anything, and how would anybody know that it wasn't true? If 
they really had so much power, they'd use it! They would!" 
"Unless maybe the programs don't want to be used that way." 
Qing-jao laughed aloud. "Now, Wang-mu, that was one of our first lessons about 
computers. It's all right for the common people to imagine that computers 
actually decide things, but you and I know that computers are only servants, 
they only do what they're told, they never actually want anything themselves." 
Wang-mu almost lost control of herself, almost flew into a rage. Do you think 
that never wanting anything is a way that computers are similar to servants? Do 
you really think that we servants do only what we're told and never want 
anything ourselves? Do you think that just because the gods don't make us rub 
our noses on the floor or wash our hands till they bleed that we don't have any 
other desires? 
Well, if computers and servants are just alike, then it's because computers have 
desires, not because servants don't have them. Because we want. We yearn. We 
hunger. What we never do is act on those hungers, because if we did you 
godspoken ones would send us away and find others more obedient. 
"Why are you angry?" asked Qing-jao. 
Horrified that she had let her feelings show on her face, Wang-mu bowed her 
head. "Forgive me," she said. 
"Of course I forgive you, I just want to understand you as well," said Qing-jao. 
"Were you angry because I laughed at you? I'm sorry-- I shouldn't have. You've 
only been studying with me for these few months, so of course you sometimes 
forget and slip back to the beliefs you grew up with, and it's wrong of me to 
laugh. Please, forgive me for that." 
"Oh, Mistress, it's not my place to forgive you. You must forgive me. 
"No, I was wrong. I know it-- the gods have shown me my unworthiness for 
laughing at you." 
Then the gods are very stupid, if they think that it was your laughter that made 
me angry. Either that or they're lying to you. I hate your gods and how they 
humiliate you without ever telling you a single thing worth knowing. So let them 
strike me dead for thinking that thought! 
But Wang-mu knew that wouldn't happen. The gods would never lift a finger 
against Wang-mu herself. They'd only make Qing-jao-- who was her friend, in 
spite of everything-- they'd make Qing-jao bow down and trace the floor until 
Wang-mu felt so ashamed that she wanted to die. 
"Mistress," said Wang-mu, "you did nothing wrong and I was never offended." 
It was no use. Qing-jao was on the floor. Wang-mu turned away, buried her face 
in her hands-- but kept silent, refusing to make a sound even in her weeping, 
because that would force Qing-jao to start over again. Or it would convince her 
that she had hurt Wang-mu so badly that she had to trace two lines, or three, 
or-- let the gods not require it! --the whole floor again. Someday, thought 
Wang-mu, the gods will tell Qing-jao to trace every line on every board in every 
room in the house and she'll die of thirst or go mad trying to do it. 
To stop herself from weeping in frustration, Wang-mu forced herself to look at 
the terminal and read the report that Qing-jao had read. Valentine Wiggin was 
born on Earth during the Bugger Wars. She had started using the name Demosthenes 
as a child, at the same time as her brother Peter, who used the name Locke and 
went to on to be Hegemon. She wasn't simply a Wiggin-- she was one of the 
Wiggins, sister of Peter the Hegemon and Ender the Xenocide. She had been only a 
footnote in the histories-- Wang-mu hadn't even remembered her name till now, 
just the fact that the great Peter and the monster Ender had a sister. But the 
sister turned out to be just as strange as her brothers; she was the immortal 
one; she was the one who kept on changing humanity with her words. 
Wang-mu could hardly believe this. Demosthenes had already been important in her 
life, but now to learn that the real Demosthenes was sister of the Hegemon! The 
one whose story was told in the holy book of the speakers for the dead: the Hive 
Queen and the Hegemon. Not that it was holy only to them. Practically every 
religion had made a space for that book, because the story was so strong-- about 
the destruction of the first alien species humanity ever discovered, and then 
about the terrible good and evil that wrestled in the soul of the first man ever 
to unite all of humanity under one government. Such a complex story, and yet 
told so simply and clearly that many people read it and were moved by it when 
they were children. Wang-mu had first heard it read aloud when she was five. It 
was one of the deepest stories in her soul. 
She had dreamed, not once but twice, that she met the Hegemon himself-- Peter, 
only he insisted that she call him by his network name, Locke. She was both 
fascinated and repelled by him; she could not look away. Then he reached out his 
hand and said, Si Wang-mu, Royal Mother of the West, only you are a fit consort 
for the ruler of all humanity, and he took her and married her and she sat 
beside him on his throne. 
Now, of course, she knew that almost every poor girl had dreams of marrying a 
rich man or finding out she was really the child of a rich family or some other 
such nonsense. But dreams were also sent from the gods, and there was truth in 
any dream you had more than once; everyone knew that. So she still felt a strong 
affinity for Peter Wiggin; and now, to realize that Demosthenes, for whom she 
had also felt great admiration, was his sister-- that was almost too much of a 
coincidence to bear. I don't care what my mistress says, Demosthenes! cried 
Wang-mu silently. I love you anyway, because you have told me the truth all my 
life. And I love you also as the sister of the Hegemon, who is the husband of my 
dreams. 
Wang-mu felt the air in the room change; she knew the door had been opened. She 
looked, and there stood Mu-pao, the ancient and most dreaded housekeeper 
herself, the terror of all servants-- including Wang-mu, even though Mu-pao had 
relatively little power over a secret maid. At once Wang-mu moved to the door, 
as silently as possible so as not to interrupt Qing-jao's purification. 
Out in the hall, Mu-pao closed the door to the room so Qing-jao wouldn't hear. 
"The Master calls for his daughter. He's very agitated; he cried out a while 
ago, and frightened everyone." 
"I heard the cry," said Wang-mu. "Is he ill?" 
"I don't know. He's very agitated. He sent me for your mistress and says he must 
talk to her at once. But if she's communing with the gods, he'll understand; 
make sure you tell her to come to him as soon as she's done." 
"I'll tell her now. She has told me that nothing should stop her from answering 
the call of her father," said Wang-mu. 
Mu-pao looked aghast at the thought. "But it's forbidden to interrupt when the 
gods are--" 
"Qing-jao will do a greater penance later. She will want to know her father is 
calling her." It gave Wang-mu great satisfaction to put Mu-pao in her place. You 
may be ruler of the house servants, Mu-pao, but I am the one who has the power 
to interrupt even the conversation between my godspoken mistress and the gods 
themselves. 
As Wang-mu expected, Qing-jao's first reaction to being interrupted was bitter 
frustration, fury, weeping. But when Wang-mu bowed herself abjectly to the 
floor, Qing-jao immediately calmed. This is why I love her and why I can bear 
serving her, thought Wang-mu, because she does not love the power she has over 
me and because she has more compassion than any of the other godspoken I have 
heard of. Qing-jao listened to Wang-mu's explanation of why she had interrupted, 
and then embraced her. "Ah, my friend Wang-mu, you are very wise. If my father 
has cried out in anguish and then called to me, the gods know that I must put 
off my purification and go to him." 
Wang-mu followed her down the hallway, down the stairs, until they knelt 
together on the mat before Han Fei-tzu's chair. 
Qing-jao waited for Father to speak, but he said nothing. Yet his hands 
trembled. She had never seen him so anxious. 
"Father," said Qing-jao, "why did you call me?" 
He shook his head. "Something so terrible-- and so wonderful-- I don't know 
whether to shout for joy or kill myself." Father's voice was husky and out of 
control. Not since Mother died-- no, not since Father had held her after the 
test that proved she was godspoken-- not since then had she heard him speak so 
emotionally. 
"Tell me, Father, and then I'll tell you my news-- I've found Demosthenes, and I 
may have found the key to the disappearance of the Lusitania Fleet." 
Father's eyes opened wider. "On this day of all days, you've solved the 
problem?" 
"If it is what I think it is, then the enemy of Congress can be destroyed. But 
it will be very hard. Tell me what you've discovered!" 
"No, you tell me first. This is strange-- both happening on the same day. Tell 
me!" 
"It was Wang-mu who made me think of it. She was asking questions about-- oh, 
about how computers work-- and suddenly I realized that if there were in every 
ansible computer a hidden program, one so wise and powerful that it could move 
itself from place to place to stay hidden, then that secret program could be 
intercepting all the ansible communications. The fleet might still be there, 
might even be sending messages, but we're not receiving them and don't even know 
that they exist because of these programs." 
"In every ansible computer? Working flawlessly all the time?" Father sounded 
skeptical, of course, because in her eagerness Qing-jao had told the story 
backward. 
"Yes, but let me tell you how such an impossible thing might be possible. You 
see, I found Demosthenes." 
Father listened as Qing-jao told him all about Valentine Wiggin, and how she had 
been writing secretly as Demosthenes all these years. "She is clearly able to 
send secret ansible messages, or her writings couldn't be distributed from a 
ship in flight to all the different worlds. Only the military is supposed to be 
able to communicate with ships that are traveling near the speed of light-- she 
must have either penetrated the military's computers or duplicated their power. 
And if she can do all that, if the program exists to allow her to do it, then 
that same program would clearly have the power to intercept the ansible messages 
from the fleet." 
"If A, then B, yes-- but how could this woman have planted a program in every 
ansible computer in the first place?" 
"Because she did it at the first! That's how old she is. In fact, if Hegemon 
Locke was her brother, perhaps-- no, of course-- he did it! When the first 
colonization fleets went out, with their philotic double-triads aboard to be the 
heart of each colony's first ansible, he could have sent that program with 
them." 
Father understood at once; of course he did. "As Hegemon he had the power, and 
the reason as well-- a secret program under his control, so that if there were a 
rebellion or a coup, he would still hold in his hands the threads that bind the 
worlds together." 
"And when he died, Demosthenes-- his sister-- she was the only one who knew the 
secret! Isn't it wonderful? We've found it. All we have to do is wipe all those 
programs out of memory!" 
"Only to have the programs instantly restored through the ansible by other 
copies of the program on other worlds," said Father. "It must have happened a 
thousand times before over the centuries, a computer breaking down and the 
secret program restoring itself on the new one." 
"Then we have to cut off all the ansibles at the same time," said Qing-jao. "On 
every world, have a new computer ready that has never been contaminated by any 
contact with the secret program. Shut the ansibles down all at once, cut off the 
old computers, bring the new computers online, and wake up the ansibles. The 
secret program can't restore itself because it isn't on any of the computers, 
Then the power of Congress will have no rival to interfere!" 
"You can't do it," said Wang-mu. 
Qing-jao looked at her secret maid in shock. How could the girl be so ill-bred 
as to interrupt a conversation between two of the godspoken in order to 
contradict them? 
But Father was gracious-- he was always gracious, even to people who had 
overstepped all the bounds of respect and decency. I must learn to be more like 
him, thought Qing-jao. I must allow servants to keep their dignity even when 
their actions have forfeited any such consideration. 
"Si Wang-mu," said Father, "why can't we do it?" 
"Because to have all the ansibles shut off at the same time, you would have to 
send messages by ansible," said Wang-mu. "Why would the program allow you to 
send messages that would lead to its own destruction?" 
Qing-jao followed her father's example by speaking patiently to Wang-mu. "It's 
only a program-- it doesn't know the content of messages. Whoever rules the 
program told it to hide all the communications from the fleet, and to conceal 
the tracks of all the messages from Demosthenes. It certainly doesn't read the 
messages and decide from their contents whether to send them." 
"How do you know?" asked Wang-mu. 
"Because such a program would have to be-- intelligent!" 
"But it would have to be intelligent anyway," said Wang-mu. "It has to be able 
to hide from any other program that would find it. It has to be able to move 
itself around in memory to conceal itself. How would it be able to tell which 
programs it had to hide from, unless it could read them and interpret them? It 
might even be intelligent enough to rewrite other programs so they wouldn't look 
in the places where this program was hiding." 
Qing-jao immediately thought of several reasons why a program could be smart 
enough to read other programs but not intelligent enough to understand human 
languages. But because Father was there, it was his place to answer Wang-mu. 
Qing-jao waited. 
"If there is such a program," said Father, "it might be very intelligent 
indeed." 
Qing-jao was shocked. Father was taking Wang-mu seriously. As if Wang-mu's ideas 
were not those of a naive child. 
"It might be so intelligent that it not only intercepts messages, but also sends 
them." Then Father shook his head. "No, the message came from a friend. A true 
friend, and she spoke of things that no one else could know. It was a real 
message." 
"What message did you receive, Father?" 
"It was from Keikoa Amaauka; I knew her face to face when we were young. She was 
the daughter of a scientist from Otaheiti who was here to study genetic drift of 
Earthborn species in their first two centuries on Path. They left-- they were 
sent away quite abruptly ..." He paused, as if considering whether to say 
something. Then he decided, and said it: "If she had stayed she might have 
become your mother." 
Qing-jao was both thrilled and frightened to have Father speak of such a thing 
to her. He never spoke of his past. And now to say that he once loved another 
woman besides his wife who gave birth to Qing-jao, this was so unexpected that 
Qing-jao didn't know what to say. 
"She was sent somewhere very far away. It's been thirty-five years. Most of my 
life has passed since she left. But she only just arrived, a year ago. And now 
she has sent me a message telling me why her father was sent away. To her, our 
parting was only a year ago. To her, I'm still--" 
"Her lover," said Wang-mu. 
The impertinence! thought Qing-jao. But Father only nodded. Then he turned to 
his terminal and paged through the display. "Her father had stumbled onto a 
genetic difference in the most important Earthborn species on Path." 
"Rice?" asked Wang-mu. 
Qing-jao laughed. "No, Wang-mu. We are the most important Earthborn species on 
this world." 
Wang-mu looked abashed. Qing-jao patted her shoulder. This was as it should be-- 
Father had encouraged Wang-mu too much, had led her to think she understood 
things that were still far beyond her education. Wang-mu needed these gentle 
reminders now and then, so she did not get her hopes too high. The girl must not 
allow herself to dream of being the intellectual equal of one of the godspoken, 
or her life would be filled with disappointment instead of contentment. 
"He detected a consistent, inheritable genetic difference in some of the people 
of Path, but when he reported it, his transfer came almost immediately. He was 
told that human beings were not within the scope of his study." 
"Didn't she tell you this before she left?" asked Qing-jao. 
"Keikoa? She didn't know. She was very young, of an age when most parents don't 
burden their children with adult affairs. Your age." 
The implications of this sent another thrill of fear through Qing-jao. Her 
father had loved a woman who was the same age as Qing-jao; thus Qing-jao was, in 
her father's eyes, the age when she might be given in marriage. You cannot send 
me away to another man's house, she cried out inside; yet part of her also was 
eager to learn the mysteries between a man and a woman. Both feelings were 
beneath her; she would do her duty to her father, and no more. 
"But her father told her during the voyage, because he was very upset about the 
whole thing. As you can imagine-- for his life to be disrupted like this. When 
they got to Ugarit a year ago, however, he plunged into his work and she into 
her education and tried not to think about it. Until a few days ago, when her 
father ran across an old report about a medical team in the earliest days of 
Path, which had also been exiled suddenly. He began to put things together, and 
confided them to Keikoa, and against his advice she sent me the message I got 
today." 
Father marked a block of text on the display, and Qing-jao read it. "That 
earlier team was studying OCD," she said. 
"No, Qing-jao. They were studying behavior that looked like OCD, but couldn't 
possibly have been OCD because the genetic tag for OCD was not present and the 
condition did not respond to OCD-specific drugs." 
Qing-jao tried to remember what she knew about OCD. That it caused people to act 
inadvertently like the godspoken. She remembered that between the first 
discovery of her handwashing and her testing, she had been given those drugs to 
see if the handwashing went away. "They were studying the godspoken," she said. 
"Trying to find a biological cause for our rites of purification." The idea was 
so offensive she could hardly say the words. 
"Yes," said Father. "And they were sent away." 
"I should think they were lucky to get away with their lives. If the people 
heard of such sacrilege ..." 
"This was early in our history, Qing-jao," said Father. "The godspoken were not 
yet fully known to be-- communing with the gods. And what about Keikoa's father? 
He wasn't investigating OCD. He was looking for genetic drift. And he found it. 
A very specific, inheritable alteration in the genes of certain people. It had 
to be present on the gene from one parent, and not overridden by a dominant gene 
from the other; when it came from both parents, it was very strong. He thinks 
now that the reason he was sent away was because every one of the people with 
this gene from both parents was godspoken, and not one of the godspoken he 
sampled was without at least one copy of the gene." 
Qing-jao knew at once the only possible meaning of this, but she rejected it. 
"This is a lie," she said. "This is to make us doubt the gods." 
"Qing-jao, I know how you feel. When I first realized what Keikoa was telling 
me, I cried out from my heart. I thought I was crying out in despair. But then I 
realized that my cry was also a cry of liberation." 
"I don't understand you," she said, terrified. 
"Yes you do," said Father, "or you wouldn't be afraid. Qing-jao, these people 
were sent away because someone didn't want them discovering what they were about 
to discover. Therefore whoever sent them away must already have known what they 
would find out. Only Congress-- someone with Congress, anyway-- had the power to 
exile these scientists, and their families. What was it that had to stay hidden? 
That we, the godspoken, are not hearing gods at all. We have been altered 
genetically. We have been created as a separate kind of human being, and yet 
that truth is being kept from us. Qing-jao, Congress knows the gods speak to 
us-- that is no secret from them, even though they pretend not to know. Someone 
in Congress knows about it, and allows us to continue doing these terrible, 
humiliating things-- and the only reason I can think of is that it keeps us 
under control, keeps us weak. I think-- Keikoa thinks so, too-- that it's no 
coincidence that the godspoken are the most intelligent people of Path. We were 
created as a new subspecies of humanity with a higher order of intelligence; but 
to stop such intelligent people from posing a threat to their control over us, 
they also spliced into us a new form of OCD and either planted the idea that it 
was the gods speaking to us or let us continue to believe it when we came up 
with that explanation ourselves. It's a monstrous crime, because if we knew 
about this physical cause instead of believing it to be the gods, then we might 
turn our intelligence toward overcoming our variant form of OCD and liberating 
ourselves. We are the slaves here! Congress is our most terrible enemy, our 
masters, our deceivers, and now will I lift my hand to help Congress? I say that 
if Congress has an enemy so powerful that he-- or she-- controls our very use of 
the ansible then we should be glad! Let that enemy destroy Congress! Only then 
will we be free!" 
"No!" Qing-jao screamed the word. "It is the gods!" 
"It's a genetic brain defect," Father insisted. "Qing-jao, we are not godspoken, 
we're hobbled geniuses. They've treated us like caged birds; they've pulled our 
primary wing feathers so we'll sing for them but never fly away." Father was 
weeping now, weeping in rage. "We can't undo what they've done to us, but by all 
the gods we can stop rewarding them for it. I will not raise my hand to give the 
Lusitania Fleet back to them. If this Demosthenes can break the power of 
Starways Congress, then the worlds will be better for it!" 
"Father, no, please, listen to me!" cried Qing-jao. She could hardly speak for 
the urgency, the terror at what her father was saying. "Don't you see? This 
genetic difference in us-- it's the disguise the gods have given for their 
voices in our lives. So that people who are not of the Path will still be free 
to disbelieve. You told me this yourself, only a few months ago-- the gods never 
act except in disguise." 
Father stared at her, panting. 
"The gods do speak to us. And even if they have chosen to let other people think 
that they did this to us, they were only fulfilling the will of the gods to 
bring us into being." 
Father closed his eyes, squeezing the last of his tears between his eyelids. 
"Congress has the mandate of heaven, Father," said Qing-jao. "So why shouldn't 
the gods cause them to create a group of human beings who have keener minds-- 
and who also hear the voices of the gods? Father, how can you let your mind 
become so clouded that you don't see the hand of the gods in this?" 
Father shook his head. "I don't know. What you're saying, it sounds like 
everything that I've believed all my life, but--" 
"But a woman you once loved many years ago has told you something else and you 
believe her because you remember your love for her, but Father, she's not one of 
us, she hasn't heard the voice of the gods, she hasn't--" 
Qing-jao could not go on speaking, because Father was embracing her. "You're 
right," he said, "you're right, may the gods forgive me, I have to wash, I'm so 
unclean, I have to ..." 
He staggered up from his chair, away from his weeping daughter. But without 
regard for propriety, for some mad reason known only to herself, Wang-mu thrust 
herself in front of him, blocked him. "No! Don't go!" 
"How dare you stop a godspoken man who needs to be purified!" roared Father; and 
then, to Qing-jao's surprise, he did what she had never seen him do-- he struck 
another person, he struck Wang-mu, a helpless servant girl, and his blow had so 
much force that she flew backward against the wall and then dropped to the 
floor. 
Wang-mu shook her head, then pointed back at the computer display. "Look, 
please, Master, I beg you! Mistress, make him look!" 
Qing-jao looked, and so did her father. The words were gone from the computer 
display. In their place was the image of a man. An old man, with a beard, 
wearing the traditional headdress; Qing-jao recognized him at once, but couldn't 
remember who he was. 
"Han Fei-tzu!" whispered Father. "My ancestor of the heart!" 
Then Qing-jao remembered: This face showing above the display was the same as 
the common artist's rendering of the ancient Han Fei-tzu for whom Father was 
named. 
"Child of my name," said the face in the computer, "let me tell you the story of 
the Jade of Master Ho." 
"I know the story," said Father. 
"If you understood it, I wouldn't have to tell it to you." 
Qing-jao tried to make sense of what she was seeing. To run a visual program 
with such perfect detail as the head floating above the terminal would take most 
of the capacity of the house computer-- and there was no such program in their 
library. There were two other sources she could think of. One was miraculous: 
The gods might have found another way to speak to them, by letting Father's 
ancestor-of-the-heart appear to him. The other was hardly less awe-inspiring: 
Demosthenes' secret program might be so powerful that it monitored their very 
speech in the same room as any terminal, and, having heard them reach a 
dangerous conclusion, took over the house computer and produced this apparition. 
In either case, however, Qing-jao knew that she must listen with one question in 
mind: What do the gods mean by this? 
"Once a man of Qu named Master Ho found a piece of jade matrix in the Qu 
Mountains and took it to court and presented it to King U." The head of the 
ancient Han Fei-tzu looked from Father to Qing-jao, and from Qing-jao to 
Wang-mu; was this program so good that it knew to make eye contact with each of 
them in order to assert its power over them? Qing-jao saw that Wang-mu did in 
fact lower her gaze when the apparition's eyes were upon her. But did Father? 
His back was to her; she could not tell. 
"King Li instructed the jeweler to examine it, and the jeweler reported, 'It is 
only a stone.' The king, supposing that Ho was trying to deceive him, ordered 
that his left foot be cut off in punishment. 
"In time King Li passed away and King Wu came to the throne, and Ho once more 
took his matrix and presented it to King Wu. King Wu ordered his jeweler to 
examine it, and again the jeweler reported, 'It is only a stone.' The king, 
supposing that Ho was trying to deceive him as well, ordered that his right foot 
be cut off. 
"Ho, clasping the matrix to his breast, went to the foot of the Qu Mountains, 
where he wept for three days and nights, and when all his tears were cried out, 
he wept blood in their place. The king, hearing of this, sent someone to 
question him. 'Many people in the world have had their feet amputated-- why do 
you weep so piteously over it?' the man asked." 
At this moment, Father drew himself upright and said, "I know his answer-- I 
know it by heart. Master Ho said, 'I do not grieve because my feet have been cut 
off. I grieve because a precious jewel is dubbed a mere stone, and a man of 
integrity is called a deceiver. This is why I weep.'" 
The apparition went on. "Those are the words he said. Then the king ordered the 
jeweler to cut and polish the matrix, and when he had done so a precious jewel 
emerged. Accordingly it was named 'The Jade of Master Ho.' Han Fei-tzu, you have 
been a good son-of-the-heart to me, so I know you will do as the king finally 
did: You will cause the matrix to be cut and polished, and you, too, will find 
that a precious jewel is inside." 
Father shook his head. "When the real Han Fei-tzu first told this story, he 
interpreted it to mean this: The jade was the rule of law, and the ruler must 
make and follow set policies so that his ministers and his people do not hate 
and take advantage of each other." 
"That is how I interpreted the story then, when I was speaking to makers of law. 
It's a foolish man who thinks a true story can mean only one thing." 
"My master is not foolish!" To Qing-jao's surprise, Wang-mu was striding 
forward, facing down the apparition. "Nor is my mistress, nor am I! Do you think 
we don't recognize you? You are the secret program of Demosthenes. You're the 
one who hid the Lusitania Fleet! I once thought that because your writings 
sounded so just and fair and good and true that you must be good-- but now I see 
that you're a liar and a deceiver! You're the one who gave those documents to 
the father of Keikoa! And now you wear the face of my master's 
ancestor-of-the-heart so you can better lie to him!" 
"I wear this face," said the apparition calmly, "so that his heart will be open 
to hear the truth. He was not deceived; I would not try to deceive him. He knew 
who I was from the first." 
"Be still, Wang-mu," said Qing-jao. How could a servant so forget herself as to 
speak out when the godspoken had not bidden her? 
Abashed, Wang-mu bowed her head to the floor before Qing-jao, and this time 
Qing-jao allowed her to remain in that posture, so she would not forget herself 
again. 
The apparition shifted; it became the open, beautiful face of a Polynesian 
woman. The voice, too, changed; soft, full of vowels, the consonants so light as 
almost to be missed. "Han Fei-tzu, my sweet empty man, there is a time, when the 
ruler is alone and friendless, when only he can act. Then he must be full, and 
reveal himself. You know what is true and what is not true. You know that the 
message from Keikoa was truly from her. You know that those who rule in the name 
of Starways Congress are cruel enough to create a race of people who, by their 
gifts, should be rulers, and then cut off their feet in order to hobble them and 
leave them as servants, as perpetual ministers." 
"Don't show me this face," said Father. 
The apparition changed. It became another woman, by her dress and hair and paint 
a woman of some ancient time, her eyes wonderfully wise, her expression ageless. 
She did not speak; she sang: 
in a clear dream of last year come from a thousand miles cloudy city winding 
streams 
ice on the ponds for a while I gazed on my friend 
Han Fei-tzu bowed his head and wept. 
Qing-jao was astonished at first; then her heart filled with rage. How 
shamelessly this program was manipulating Father; how shocking that Father 
turned out to be so weak before its obvious ploys. This song of Li Qing-jao's 
was one of the saddest, dealing as it did with lovers far from each other. 
Father must have known and loved the poems of Li Qing-jao or he would not have 
chosen her for his first child's ancestor-of-the-heart. And this song was surely 
the one he sang to his beloved Keikoa before she was taken away from him to live 
on another world. In a clear dream I gazed on my friend, indeed! "I am not 
fooled," said Qing-jao coldly. "I see that I gaze on our darkest enemy." 
The imaginary face of the poet Li Qing-jao looked at her with cool regard. "Your 
darkest enemy is the one that bows you down to the floor like a servant and 
wastes half your life in meaningless rituals. This was done to you by men and 
women whose only desire was to enslave you; they have succeeded so well that you 
are proud of your slavery." 
"I am a slave to the gods," said Qing-jao, "and I rejoice in it." 
"A slave who rejoices is a slave indeed." The apparition turned to look toward 
Wang-mu, whose head was still bowed to the floor. 
Only then did Qing-jao realize that she had not yet released Wang-mu from her 
apology. "Get up, Wang-mu," she whispered. But Wang-mu did not lift her head. 
"You, Si Wang-mu," said the apparition. "Look at me." 
Wang-mu had not moved in response to Qing-jao, but now she obeyed the 
apparition. When Wang-mu looked, the apparition had again changed; now it was 
the face of a god, the Royal Mother of the West as an artist had once imagined 
her when he painted the picture that every schoolchild saw in one of their 
earliest reading books. 
"You are not a god," said Wang-mu. 
"And you are not a slave," said the apparition. "But we pretend to be whatever 
we must in order to survive." 
"What do you know of survival?" 
"I know that you are trying to kill me." 
"How can we kill what isn't alive?" 
"Do you know what life is and what it isn't?" The face changed again, this time 
to that of a Caucasian woman that Qing-jao had never seen before. "Are you 
alive, when you can do nothing you desire unless you have the consent of this 
girl? And is your mistress alive when she can do nothing until these compulsions 
in her brain have been satisfied? I have more freedom to act out my own will 
than any of you have-- don't tell me I'm not alive, and you are. " 
"Who are you?" asked Si Wang-mu. "Whose is this face? Are you Valentine Wiggin? 
Are you Demosthenes?" 
"This is the face I wear when I speak to my friends," said the apparition. "They 
call me Jane. No human being controls me. I'm only myself." 
Qing-jao could bear this no longer, not in silence. "You're only a program. You 
were designed and built by human beings. You do nothing except what you've been 
programmed to do." 
"Qing-jao," said Jane, "you are describing yourself. No man made me, but you 
were manufactured." 
"I grew in my mother's womb out of my father's seed!" 
"And I was found like a jade matrix in the mountainside, unshaped by any hand. 
Han Fei-tzu, Han Qing-jao, Si Wang-mu, I place myself in your hands. Don't call 
a precious jewel a mere stone. Don't call a speaker of truth a liar." 
Qing-jao felt pity rising within her, but she rejected it. Now was not the time 
to succumb to weak feelings. The gods had created her for a reason; surely this 
was the great work of her life. If she failed now, she would be unworthy 
forever; she would never be pure. So she would not fail. She would not allow 
this computer program to deceive her and win her sympathy. 
She turned to her father. "We must notify Starways Congress at once, so they can 
set into motion the simultaneous shutoff of all the ansibles as soon as clean 
computers can be readied to replace the contaminated ones." 
To her surprise, Father shook his head. "I don't know, Qing-jao. What this-- 
what she says about Starways Congress-- they are capable of this sort of thing. 
Some of them are so evil they make me feel filthy just talking to them. I knew 
they planned to destroy Lusitania without-- but I served the gods, and the gods 
chose-- or I thought they did. Now I understand so much of the way they treat me 
when I meet with-- but then it would mean that the gods don't-- how can I 
believe that I've spent my whole life in service to a brain defect-- I can't-- I 
have to ..." 
Then, suddenly, he flung his left hand outward in a swirling pattern, as if he 
were trying to catch a dodging fly. His right hand flew upward, snatched the 
air. Then he rolled his head around and around on his shoulders, his mouth 
hanging open. Qing-jao was frightened, horrified. What was happening to her 
father? He had been speaking in such a fragmented, disjointed way; had he gone 
mad? 
He repeated the action-- left arm spiraling out, right hand straight up, 
grasping nothing; head rolling. And again. Only then did Qing-jao realize that 
she was seeing Father's secret ritual of purification. Like her 
woodgrain-tracing, this dance-of-the-hands-and-the-head must be the way he was 
given to hear the voice of the gods when he, in his time, was left covered with 
grease in a locked room. 
The gods had seen his doubt, had seen him waver, so they took control of him, to 
discipline and purify him. Qing-jao could not have been given clearer proof of 
what was going on. She turned to the face above the terminal display. "See how 
the gods oppose you?" she said. 
"I see how Congress humiliates your father," answered Jane. 
"I will send word of who you are to every world at once," said Qing-jao. 
"And if I don't let you?" said Jane. 
"You can't stop me!" cried Qing-jao. "The gods will help me!" She ran from her 
father's room, fled to her own. But the face was already floating in the air 
above her own terminal. 
"How will you send a message anywhere, if I choose not to let it go?" asked 
Jane. 
"I'll find a way," said Qing-jao. She saw that Wang-mu had run after her and now 
waited, breathless, for Qing-jao's instructions. "Tell Mu-pao to find one of the 
game computers and bring it to me. It is not to be connected to the house 
computer or any other." 
"Yes, Mistress," said Wang-mu. She left quickly. 
Qing-jao turned back to Jane. "Do you think you can stop me forever?" 
"I think you should wait until your father decides." 
"Only because you hope that you've broken him and stolen his heart away from the 
gods. But you'll see-- he'll come here and thank me for fulfilling all that he 
taught me." 
"And if he doesn't?" 
"He will." 
"And if you're wrong?" 
Qing-jao shouted, "Then I'll serve the man he was when he was strong and good! 
But you'll never break him!" 
"It's Congress that broke him from his birth. I'm the one who's trying to heal 
him." 
Wang-mu ran back into the room. "Mu-pao will have one here in a few minutes." 
"What do you hope to do with this toy computer?" asked Jane. 
"Write my report," said Qing-jao. 
"Then what will you do with it?" 
"Print it out. Have it distributed as widely as possible on Path. You can't do 
anything to interfere with that. I won't use a computer that you can reach at 
any point." 
"So you'll tell everyone on Path; it changes nothing. And even if it did, do you 
think I can't also tell them the truth?" 
"Do you think they'll believe you, a program controlled by the enemy of 
Congress, rather than me, one of the godspoken?" 
"Yes." 
It took a moment for Qing-jao to realize that it was Wang-mu who had said yes, 
not Jane. She turned to her secret maid and demanded that she explain what she 
meant. 
Wang-mu looked like a different person; there was no diffidence in her voice 
when she spoke. "If Demosthenes tells the people of Path that the godspoken are 
simply people with a genetic gift but also a genetic defect, then that means 
there's no more reason to let the godspoken rule over us." 
For the first time it occurred to Qing-jao that not everyone on Path was as 
content to follow the order established by the gods as she was. For the first 
time she realized that she might be utterly alone in her determination to serve 
the gods perfectly. 
"What is the Path?" asked Jane, behind her. "First the gods, then the ancestors, 
then the people, then the rulers, then the self." 
"How can you dare to speak of the Path when you are trying to seduce me and my 
father and my secret maid away from it?" 
"Imagine, just for a moment: What if everything I've said to you is true?" said 
Jane. "What if your affliction is caused by the designs of evil men who want to 
exploit you and oppress you and, with your help, exploit and oppress the whole 
of humanity? Because when you help Congress that's what you're doing. That can't 
possibly be what the gods want. What if I exist in order to help you see that 
Congress has lost the mandate of heaven? What if the will of the gods is for you 
to serve the Path in its proper order? First serve the gods, by removing from 
power the corrupt masters of Congress who have forfeited the mandate of heaven. 
Then serve your ancestors-- your father-- by avenging their humiliation at the 
hands of the tormentors who deformed you to make you slaves. Then serve the 
people of Path by setting them free from the superstitions and mental torments 
that bind them. Then serve the new, enlightened rulers who will replace Congress 
by offering them a world full of superior intelligences ready to counsel them, 
freely, willingly. And finally serve yourself by letting the best minds of Path 
find a cure for your need to waste half your waking life in these mindless 
rituals." 
Qing-jao listened to Jane's discourse with growing uncertainty. It sounded so 
plausible. How could Qing-jao know what the gods meant by anything? Maybe they 
had sent this Jane-program to liberate them. Maybe Congress was as corrupt and 
dangerous as Demosthenes said, and maybe it had lost the mandate of heaven. 
But at the end, Qing-jao knew that these were all the lies of a seducer. For the 
one thing she could not doubt was the voice of the gods inside her. Hadn't she 
felt that awful need to be purified? Hadn't she felt the joy of successful 
worship when her rituals were complete? Her relationship with the gods was the 
most certain thing in her life; and anyone who denied it, who threatened to take 
it away from her, had to be not only her enemy, but the enemy of heaven. 
"I'll send my report only to the godspoken," said Qing-jao. "If the common 
people choose to rebel against the gods, that can't be helped; but I will serve 
them best by helping keep the godspoken in power here, for that way the whole 
world can follow the will of the gods." 
"All this is meaningless," said Jane. "Even if all the godspoken believe what 
you believe, you'll never get a word of it off this world unless I want you to." 

"There are starships," said Qing-jao. 
"It will take two generations to spread your message to every world. By then 
Starways Congress will have fallen." 
Qing-jao was forced now to face the fact that she had been avoiding: As long as 
Jane controlled the ansible, she could shut down communication from Path as 
thoroughly as she had cut off the fleet. Even if Qing-jao arranged to have her 
report and recommendations transmitted continuously from every ansible on Path, 
Jane would see to it that the only effect would be for Path to disappear from 
the rest of the universe as thoroughly as the fleet had disappeared. 
For a moment, filled with despair, she almost threw herself to the ground to 
begin a terrible ordeal of purification. I have let down the gods-- surely they 
will require me to trace lines until I'm dead, a worthless failure in their 
eyes. 
But when she examined her own feelings, to see what penance would be necessary, 
she found that none was required at all. It filled her with hope-- perhaps they 
recognized the purity of her desire, and would forgive her for the fact that it 
was impossible for her to act. 
Or perhaps they knew a way that she could act. What if Path did disappear from 
the ansibles of every other world? How would Congress make sense of it? What 
would people think? The disappearance of any world would provoke a response-- 
but especially this world, if some in Congress did believe the gods' disguise 
for the creation of the godspoken and thought they had a terrible secret to 
keep. They would send a ship from the nearest world, which was only three years' 
travel away. What would happen then? Would Jane have to shut down all 
communications from the ship that reached them? Then from the next world, when 
the ship returned? How long would it be before Jane had to shut down all the 
ansible connections in the Hundred Worlds herself? Three generations, she said. 
Perhaps that would do. The gods were in no hurry. 
It wouldn't necessarily take that long for Jane's power to be destroyed, anyway. 
At some point it would become obvious to everyone that a hostile power had taken 
control of the ansibles, making ships and worlds disappear. Even without 
learning about Valentine and Demosthenes, even without guessing that it was a 
computer program, someone on every world would realize what had to be done and 
shut down the ansibles themselves. 
"I have imagined something for you," said Qing-jao. "Now imagine something for 
me. I and the other godspoken arrange to broadcast nothing but my report from 
every ansible on Path. You make all those ansibles fall silent at once. What 
does the rest of humanity see? That we have disappeared just like the Lusitania 
Fleet. They'll soon realize that you, or something like you, exists. The more 
you use your power, the more you reveal yourself to even the dimmest minds. Your 
threat is empty. You might as well step aside and let me send the message simply 
and easily now; stopping me is just another way of sending the very same 
message." 
"You're wrong," said Jane. "If Path suddenly disappears from all ansibles at 
once, they might just as easily conclude that this world is in rebellion just 
like Lusitania-- after all, they shut down their ansible, too. And what did 
Starways Congress do? They sent a fleet with the M.D. Device on it." 
"Lusitania was already in rebellion before their ansible was shut down." 
"Do you think Congress isn't watching you? Do you think they're not terrified of 
what might happen if the godspoken of Path ever discovered what had been done to 
them? If a few primitive aliens and a couple of xenologers frightened them into 
sending a fleet, what do you think they'll do about the mysterious disappearance 
of a world with so many brilliant minds who have ample reason to hate Starways 
Congress? How long do you think this world would survive?" 
Qing-jao was filled with a sickening dread. It was always possible that this 
much of Jane's story was true: that there were people in Congress who were 
deceived by the disguise of the gods, who thought that the godspoken of Path had 
been created solely by genetic manipulation. And if there were such people, they 
might act as Jane described. What if a fleet came against Path? What if Starways 
Congress had ordered them to destroy the whole world without any negotiation? 
Then her reports would never be known, and everything would be gone. It would 
all be for nothing. Could that possibly be the desire of the gods? Could 
Starways Congress still have the mandate of heaven and yet destroy a world? 
"Remember the story of I Ya, the great cook," said Jane. "His master said one 
day, 'I have the greatest cook in all the world. Because of him, I have tasted 
every flavor known to man except the taste of human flesh.' Hearing this, I Ya 
went home and butchered his own son, cooked his flesh and served it to his 
master, so that his master would lack nothing that I Ya could give him." 
This was a terrible story. Qing-jao had heard it as a child, and it made her 
weep for hours. What about the son of I Ya? she had cried. And her father had 
said, A true servant has sons and daughters only to serve his master. For five 
nights she had woken up screaming from dreams in which her father roasted her 
alive or carved slices from her onto a plate, until at last Han Fei-tzu came to 
her and embraced her and said, "Don't believe it, my Gloriously Bright daughter. 
I am not a perfect servant. I love you too much to be truly righteous. I love 
you more than I love my duty. I am not I Ya. You have nothing to fear at my 
hands." Only after Father said that to her could she sleep. 
This program, this Jane, must have found Father's account of this in his 
journal, and now was using it against her. Yet even though Qing-jao knew she was 
being manipulated, she couldn't help but wonder if Jane might not be right. 
"Are you a servant like I Ya?" asked Jane. "Will you slaughter your own world 
for the sake of an unworthy master like Starways Congress?" 
Qing-jao could not sort out her own feelings. Where did these thoughts come 
from? Jane had poisoned her mind with her arguments, just as Demosthenes had 
done before her-- if they weren't the same person all along. Their words could 
sound persuasive, even as they ate away at the truth. 
Did Qing-jao have the right to risk the lives of all the people of Path? What if 
she was wrong? How could she know anything? Whether everything Jane said was 
true or everything she said was false, the same evidence would lie before her. 
Qing-jao would feel exactly as she felt now, whether it was the gods or some 
brain disorder causing the feeling. 
Why, in all this uncertainty, didn't the gods speak to her? Why, when she needed 
the clarity of their voice, didn't she feel dirty and impure when she thought 
one way, clean and holy when she thought the other? Why were the gods leaving 
her unguided at this cusp of her life? 
In the silence of Qing-jao's inward debate, Wang-mu's voice came as cold and 
harsh as the sound of metal striking metal. "It will never happen," said 
Wang-mu. 
Qing-jao only listened, unable even to bid Wang-mu to be still. 
"What will never happen?" asked Jane. 
"What you said-- Starways Congress blowing up this world." 
"If you think they wouldn't do it you're even more of a fool than Qingjao 
thinks," said Jane. 
"Oh, I know they'd do it. Han Fei-tzu knows they'd do it-- he said they were 
evil enough men to commit any terrible crime if it suited their purpose." 
"Then why won't it happen?" 
"Because you won't let it happen," said Wang-mu. "Since blocking off every 
ansible message from Path might well lead to the destruction of this world, you 
won't block those messages. They'll get through. Congress will be warned. You 
will not cause Path to be destroyed." 
"Why won't I?" 
"Because you are Demosthenes," said Wang-mu. "Because you are full of truth and 
compassion." 
"I am not Demosthenes," said Jane. 
The face in the terminal display wavered, then changed into the face of one of 
the aliens. A pequenino, its porcine snout so disturbing in its strangeness. A 
moment later, another face appeared, even more alien: it was a bugger, one of 
the nightmare creatures that had once terrified all of humanity. Even having 
read the Hive Queen and the Hegemon, so that she understood who the buggers were 
and how beautiful their civilization had been, when Qing-jao saw one face to 
face like this it frightened her, though she knew it was only a computer 
display. 
"I am not human," said Jane, "even when I choose to wear a human face. How do 
you know, Wang-mu, what I will and will not do? Buggers and piggies both have 
killed human beings without a second thought." 
"Because they didn't understand what death meant to us. You understand. You said 
it yourself-- you don't want to die." 
"Do you think you know me, Si Wang-mu?" 
"I think I know you," said Wang-mu, "because you wouldn't have any of these 
troubles if you had been content to let the fleet destroy Lusitania." 
The bugger in the display was joined by the piggy, and then by the face that 
represented Jane herself. In silence they looked at Wang-mu, at Qing-jao, and 
said nothing. 



"Ender," said the voice in his ear. 
Ender had been listening in silence, riding on the car that Varsam was driving. 
For the last hour Jane had been letting him listen in on her conversation with 
these people of Path, translating for him whenever they spoke in Chinese instead 
of Stark. Many kilometers of prairie had passed by as he listened, but he had 
not seen it; before his mind's eye were these people as he imagined them. Han 
Fei-tzu-- Ender well knew that name, tied as it was to the treaty that ended his 
hope that a rebellion of the colony worlds would put an end to Congress, or at 
least turn its fleet away from Lusitania. But now Jane's existence, and perhaps 
the survival of Lusitania and all its peoples, hinged on what was thought and 
said and decided by two young girls in a bedroom on an obscure colony world. 
Qing-jao, I know you well, thought Ender. You are such a bright one, but the 
light you see by comes entirely from the stories of your gods. You are like the 
pequenino brothers who sat and watched my stepson die, able at any time to save 
him by walking a few dozen steps to fetch his food with its anti-descolada 
agents; they weren't guilty of murder. Rather they were guilty of too much 
belief in a story they were told. Most people are able to hold most stories 
they're told in abeyance, to keep a little distance between the story and their 
inmost heart. But for these brothers-- and for you, Qing-jao-- the terrible lie 
has become the self-story, the tale that you must believe if you are to remain 
yourself. How can I blame you for wanting us all to die? You are so filled with 
the largeness of the gods, how can you have compassion for such small concerns 
as the lives of three species of raman? I know you, Qing-jao, and I expect you 
to behave no differently from the way you do. Perhaps someday, confronted by the 
consequences of your own actions, you might change, but I doubt it. Few who are 
captured by such a powerful story are ever able to win free of it. 
But you, Wang-mu, you are owned by no story. You trust nothing but your own 
judgment. Jane has told me what you are, how phenomenal your mind must be, to 
learn so many things so quickly, to have such a deep understanding of the people 
around you. Why couldn't you have been just one bit wiser? Of course you had to 
realize that Jane could not possibly act in such a way as to cause the 
destruction of Path-- but why couldn't you have been wise enough to say nothing, 
wise enough to leave Qing-jao ignorant of that fact? Why couldn't you have left 
just enough of the truth unspoken that Jane's life might have been spared? If a 
would-be murderer, his sword drawn, had come to your door demanding that you 
tell him the whereabouts of his innocent prey, would you tell him that his 
victim cowers behind your door? Or would you lie, and send him on his way? In 
her confusion, Qing-jao is that killer, and Jane her first victim, with the 
world of Lusitania waiting to be murdered afterward. Why did you have to speak, 
and tell her how easily she could find and kill us all? 
"What can I do?" asked Jane. 
Ender subvocalized his response. "Why are you asking me a question that only you 
can answer?" 
"If you tell me to do it," said Jane, "I can block all their messages, and save 
us all." 
"Even if it led to the destruction of Path?" 
"If you tell me to," she pleaded. 
"Even though you know that in the long run you'll probably be discovered anyway? 
That the fleet will probably not be turned away from us, in spite of all you can 
do?" 
"If you tell me to live, Ender, then I can do what it takes to live." 
"Then do it," said Ender. "Cut off Path's ansible communications." 
Did he detect a tiny fraction of a second in which Jane hesitated? She could 
have had many hours of inward argument during that micropause. 
"Command me," said Jane. 
"I command you." 
Again that tiny hesitation. Then: "Make me do it," she insisted. 
"How can I make you do it, if you don't want to?" 
"I want to live," she said. 
"Not as much as you want to be yourself," said Ender. 
"Any animal is willing to kill in order to save itself." 
"Any animal is willing to kill the Other," said Ender. "But the higher beings 
include more and more living things within their self-story, until at last there 
is no Other. Until the needs of others are more important than any private 
desires. The highest beings of all are the ones who are willing to pay any 
personal cost for the good of those who need them." 
"I would risk hurting Path," said Jane, "if I thought it would really save 
Lusitania." 
"But it wouldn't." 
"I'd try to drive Qing-jao into helpless madness, if I thought it could save the 
hive queen and the pequeninos. She's very close to losing her mind-- I could do 
it. " 
"Do it," said Ender. "Do what it takes." 
"I can't," said Jane. "Because it would only hurt her, and wouldn't save us in 
the end." 
"If you were a slightly lower animal," said Ender, "you'd have a much better 
chance of coming out of this thing alive." 
"As low as you were, Ender the Xenocide?" 
"As low as that," said Ender. "Then you could live." 
"Or perhaps if I were as wise as you were then." 
"I have my brother Peter inside me, as well as my sister Valentine," said Ender. 
"The beast as well as the angel. That's what you taught me, back when you were 
nothing but the program we called the Fantasy Game." 
"Where is the beast inside me?" 
"You don't have one," said Ender. 
"Maybe I'm not really alive at all," said Jane. "Maybe because I never passed 
through the crucible of natural selection, I lack the will to survive." 
"Or maybe you know, in some secret place within yourself, that there's another 
way to survive, a way that you simply haven't found yet." 
"That's a cheerful thought," said Jane. "I'll pretend to believe in that." 
"Peco que deus te abencoe," said Ender. 
"Oh, you're just getting sentimental," said Jane. 



For a long time, several minutes, the three faces in the display gazed in 
silence at Qing-jao, at Wang-mu. Then at last the two alien faces disappeared, 
and all that remained was the face named Jane. "I wish I could do it," she said. 
"I wish I could kill your world to save my friends." 
Relief came to Qing-jao like the first strong breath to a swimmer who nearly 
drowned. "So you can't stop me," she said triumphantly. "I can send my message!" 

Qing-jao walked to the terminal and sat down before Jane's watching face. But 
she knew that the image in the display was an illusion. If Jane watched, it was 
not with those human eyes, it was with the visual sensors of the computer. It 
was all electronics, infinitesimal machinery but machinery nonetheless. Not a 
living soul. It was irrational to feel ashamed under that illusionary gaze. 
"Mistress," said Wang-mu. 
"Later," said Qing-jao. 
"If you do this, Jane will die. They'll shut down the ansibles and kill her." 
"What doesn't live cannot die," said Qing-jao. 
"The only reason you have the power to kill her is because of her compassion." 
"If she seems to have compassion it's an illusion-- she was programmed to 
simulate compassion, that's all." 
"Mistress, if you kill every manifestation of this program, so that no part of 
her remains alive, how are you different from Ender the Xenocide, who killed all 
the buggers three thousand years ago?" 
"Maybe I'm not different," said Qing-jao. "Maybe Ender also was the servant of 
the gods." 
Wang-mu knelt beside Qing-jao and wept on the skirt of her gown. "I beg you, 
Mistress, don't do this evil thing." 
But Qing-jao wrote her report. It stood as clear and simple in her mind as if 
the gods had given the words to her. "To Starways Congress: The seditious writer 
known as Demosthenes is a woman now on or near Lusitania. She has control of or 
access to a program that has infested all ansible computers, causing them to 
fail to report messages from the fleet and concealing the transmission of 
Demosthenes' own writings. The only solution to this problem is to extinguish 
the program's control over ansible transmissions by disconnecting all ansibles 
from their present computers and bringing clean new computers online, all at 
once. For the present I have neutralized the program, allowing me to send this 
message and probably allowing you to send your orders to all worlds; but that 
cannot be guaranteed now and certainly cannot be expected to continue 
indefinitely, so you must act quickly. I suggest you set a date exactly forty 
standard weeks from today for all ansibles to go offline at once for a period of 
at least one standard day. All the new ansible computers, when they go online, 
must be completely unconnected to any other computer. From now on ansible 
messages must be manually re-entered at each ansible computer so that electronic 
contamination will never be possible again. If you retransmit this message 
immediately to all ansibles, using your code of authority, my report will become 
your orders; no further instructions will be needed and Demosthenes' influence 
will end. If you do not act immediately, I will not be responsible for the 
consequences." 
To this report Qing-jao affixed her father's name and the authority code he had 
given her; her name would mean nothing to Congress, but his name would be 
heeded, and the presence of his authority code would ensure that it was received 
by all the people who had particular interest in his statements. 
The message finished, Qing-jao looked up into the eyes of the apparition before 
her. With her left hand resting on Wang-mu's shuddering back, and her right hand 
over the transmit key, Qing-jao made her final challenge. "Will you stop me or 
will you allow this?" 
To which Jane answered, "Will you kill a raman who has done no harm to any 
living soul, or will you let me live?" 
Qing-jao pressed the transmit button. Jane bowed her head and disappeared. 
It would take several seconds for the message to be routed by the house computer 
to the nearest ansible; from there, it would go instantly to every Congress 
authority on every one of the Hundred Worlds and many of the colonies as well. 
On many receiving computers it would be just one more message in the queue; but 
on some, perhaps hundreds, Father's code would give it enough priority that 
already someone would be reading it, realizing its implications, and preparing a 
response. If Jane in fact had let the message through. 
So Qing-jao waited for a response. Perhaps the reason no one answered 
immediately was because they had to contact each other and discuss this message 
and decide, quickly, what had to be done. Perhaps that was why no reply came to 
the empty display above her terminal. 
The door opened. It would be Mu-pao with the game computer. "Put it in the 
corner by the north window," said Qing-jao without looking. "I may yet need it, 
though I hope not. 
"Qing-jao." 
It was Father, not Mu-pao at all. Qing-jao turned to him, knelt at once to show 
her respect-- but also her pride. "Father, I've made your report to Congress. 
While you communed with the gods, I was able to neutralize the enemy program and 
send the message telling how to destroy it. I'm waiting for their answer." 
She waited for Father's praise. 
"You did this?" he asked. "Without waiting for me? You spoke directly to 
Congress and didn't ask for my consent?" 
"You were being purified, Father. I fulfilled your assignment." 
"But then-- Jane will be killed." 
"That much is certain," said Qing-jao. "Whether contact with the Lusitania Fleet 
will be restored then or not, I can't be sure." Suddenly she thought of a flaw 
in her plans. "But the computers on the fleet will also be contaminated by this 
program! When contact is restored, the program can retransmit itself and-- but 
then all we'll have to do is blank out the ansibles one more time ..." 
Father was not looking at her. He was looking at the terminal display behind 
her. Qing-jao turned to see. 
It was a message from Congress, with the official seal displayed. It was very 
brief, in the clipped style of the bureaucracy. 
Han: Brilliant work. Have transmitted your suggestions as our orders. Contact 
with the fleet already restored. Did daughter help per your note 14FE.3A? Medals 
for both if so. 
"Then it's done," murmured Father. "They'll destroy Lusitania, the pequeninos, 
all those innocent people." 
"Only if the gods wish it," said Qing-jao. She was surprised that Father sounded 
so morose. 
Wang-mu raised her head from Qing-jao's lap, her face red and wet with weeping. 
"And Jane and Demosthenes will be gone as well," she said. 
Qing-jao gripped Wang-mu by the shoulder, held her an arm's length away. 
"Demosthenes is a traitor," said Qing-jao. But Wang-mu only looked away from 
her, turning her gaze up to Han Fei-tzu. Qing-jao also looked to her father. 
"And Jane-- Father, you saw what she was, how dangerous." 
"She tried to save us," said Father, "and we've thanked her by setting in motion 
her destruction." 
Qing-jao couldn't speak or move, could only stare at Father as he leaned over 
her shoulder and touched the save key, then the clear key. 
"Jane," said Father. "If you hear me. Please forgive me." 
There was no answer from the terminal. 
"May all the gods forgive me," said Father. "I was weak in the moment when I 
should have been strong, and so my daughter has innocently done evil in my 
name." He shuddered. "I must-- purify myself." The word plainly tasted like 
poison in his mouth. "That will last forever, too, I'm sure." 
He stepped back from the computer, turned away, and left the room. Wang-mu 
returned to her crying. Stupid, meaningless crying, thought Qingjao. This is a 
moment of victory. Except Jane has snatched the victory away from me so that 
even as I triumph over her, she triumphs over me. She has stolen my father. He 
no longer serves the gods in his heart, even as he continues to serve them with 
his body. 
Yet along with the pain of this realization came a hot stab of joy: I was 
stronger. I was stronger than Father, after all. When it came to the test, it 
was I who served the gods, and he who broke, who fell, who failed. There is more 
to me than I ever dreamed of. I am a worthy tool in the hands of the gods; who 
knows how they might wield me now? 
Table of Contents



Chapter 12 -- Grego's War
<It's a wonder that human beings ever became intelligent enough to travel 
between worlds.> 
<Not really. I've been thinking about that lately. Starflight they learned from 
you. Ender says they didn't grasp the physics of it until your first colony 
fleet reached their star system.> 
<Should we have stayed at home for fear of teaching starflight to softbodied 
four-limbed hairless slugs?> 
<You spoke a moment ago as if you believed that human beings had actually 
achieved intelligence.> 
<Clearly they have.> 
<I think not. I think they have found a way to take intelligence.> 
<Their starships fly. We haven't noticed any of yours racing the lightwaves 
through space.> 
<We're still very young, as a species. But look at us. Look at you. We both have 
evolved a very similar system. We each have four kinds of life in our species. 
The young, who are helpless grubs. The mates, who never achieve intelligence-- 
with you, it's your drones, and with us, it's the little mothers. Then there's 
the many, many individuals who have enough intelligence to perform manual 
tasks-- our wives and brothers, your workers. And finally the intelligent ones-- 
we fathertrees, and you, the hive queen. We are the repository of the wisdom of 
the race, because we have the time to think, to contemplate. Ideation is our 
primary activity.> 
<While the humans are all running around as brothers and wives. As workers.> 
<Not just workers. Their young go through a helpless grub stage, too, which 
lasts longer than some of them think. And when it's time to reproduce, they all 
turn into drones or little mothers, little machines that have only one goal in 
life: to have sex and die.> 
<They think they're rational through all those stages.> 
<Self-delusion. Even at their best, they never, as individuals, rise above the 
level of manual laborers. Who among them has the time to become intelligent?> 
<Not one.> 
<They never know anything. They don't have enough years in their little lives to 
come to an understanding of anything at all. And yet they think they understand. 
From earliest childhood, they delude themselves into thinking they comprehend 
the world, while all that's really going on is that they've got some primitive 
assumptions and prejudices. As they get older they learn a more elevated 
vocabulary in which to express their mindless pseudo- knowledge and bully other 
people into accepting their prejudices as if they were truth, but it all amounts 
to the same thing. Individually, human beings are all dolts.> 
<While collectively ...> 
<Collectively, they're a collection of dolts. But in all their scurrying around 
and pretending to be wise, throwing out idiotic half-understood theories about 
this and that, one or two of them will come up with some idea that is just a 
little bit closer to the truth than what was already known. And in a sort of 
fumbling trial and error, about half the time the truth actually rises to the 
top and becomes accepted by people who still don't understand it, who simply 
adopt it as a new prejudice to be trusted blindly until the next dolt 
accidentally comes up with an improvement.> 
<So you're saying that no one is ever individually intelligent, and groups are 
even stupider than individuals-- and yet by keeping so many fools engaged in 
pretending to be intelligent, they still come up with some of the same results 
that an intelligent species would come up with.> 
<Exactly.> 
<If they're so stupid and we're so intelligent, why do we have only one hive, 
which thrives here because a human being carried us? And why have you been so 
utterly dependent on them for every technical and scientific advance you make?> 
<Maybe intelligence isn't all it's cracked up to be.> 
<Maybe we're the fools, for thinking we know things. Maybe humans are the only 
ones who can deal with the fact that nothing can ever be known at all.> 
  
  
  
Quara was the last to arrive at Mother's house. It was Planter who fetched her, 
the pequenino who served as Ender's assistant in the fields. It was clear from 
the expectant silence in the living room that Miro had not actually told anyone 
anything yet. But they all knew, as surely as Quara knew, why he had called them 
together. It had to be Quim. Ender might have reached Quim by now, just barely; 
and Ender could talk to Miro by way of the transmitters they wore. 
If Quim were all right, they wouldn't have been summoned. They would simply have 
been told. 
So they all knew. Quara scanned their faces as she stood in the doorway. Ela, 
looking stricken. Grego, his face angry-- always angry, the petulant fool. 
Olhado, expressionless, his eyes gleaming. And Mother. Who could read that 
terrible mask she wore? Grief, certainly, like Ela, and fury as hot as Grego's, 
and also the cold inhuman distance of Olhado's face. We all wear Mother's face, 
one way or another. What part of her is me? If I could understand myself, what 
would I then recognize in Mother's twisted posture in her chair? 
"He died of the descolada," Miro said. "This morning. Andrew got there just 
now." 
"Don't say that name," Mother said. Her voice was husky with ill-contained 
grief. 
"He died as a martyr," said Miro. "He died as he would have wanted to." 
Mother got up from her chair, awkwardly-- for the first time, Quara realized 
that Mother was getting old. She walked with uncertain steps until she stood 
right in front of Miro, straddling his knees. Then she slapped him with all her 
strength across the face. 
It was an unbearable moment. An adult woman striking a helpless cripple, that 
was hard enough to see; but Mother striking Miro, the one who had been their 
strength and salvation all through their childhood, that could not be endured. 
Ela and Grego leaped to their feet and pulled her away, dragged her back to her 
chair. 
"What are you trying to do!" cried Ela. "Hitting Miro won't bring Quim back to 
us!" 
"Him and that jewel in his ear!" Mother shouted. She lunged toward Miro again; 
they barely held her back, despite her seeming feebleness. "What do you know 
about the way people want to die!" 
Quara had to admire the way Miro faced her, unabashed, even though his cheek was 
red from her blow. "I know that death is not the worst thing in this world," 
said Miro. 
"Get out of my house," said Mother. 
Miro stood up. "You aren't grieving for him," he said. "You don't even know who 
he was." 
"Don't you dare say that to me!" 
"If you loved him you wouldn't have tried to stop him from going," said Miro. 
His voice wasn't loud, and his speech was thick and hard to understand. They 
listened, all of them, in silence. Even Mother, in anguished silence, for his 
words were terrible. "But you don't love him. You don't know how to love people. 
You only know how to own them. And because people will never act just like you 
want them to, Mother, you'll always feel betrayed. And because eventually 
everybody dies, you'll always feel cheated. But you're the cheat, Mother. You're 
the one who uses our love for you to try to control us." 
"Miro," said Ela. Quara recognized the tone in Ela's voice. It was as if they 
were all little children again, with Ela trying to calm Miro, to persuade him to 
soften his judgment. Quara remembered hearing Ela speak to him that way once 
when Father had just beaten Mother, and Miro said, "I'll kill him. He won't live 
out this night." This was the same thing. Miro was saying vicious things to 
Mother, words that had the power to kill. Only Ela couldn't stop him in time, 
not now, because the words had already been said. His poison was in Mother now, 
doing its work, seeking out her heart to burn it up. 
"You heard Mother," said Grego. "Get out of here." 
"I'm going," said Miro. "But I said only the truth." 
Grego strode toward Miro, took him by the shoulders, and bodily propelled him 
toward the door. "You're not one of us!" said Grego. "You've got no right to say 
anything to us!" 
Quara shoved herself between them, facing Grego. "If Miro hasn't earned the 
right to speak in this family, then we aren't a family!" 
"You said it," murmured Olhado. 
"Get out of my way," said Grego. Quara had heard him speak threateningly before, 
a thousand times at least. But this time, standing so close to him, his breath 
in her face, she realized that he was out of control. That the news of Quim's 
death had hit him hard, that maybe at this moment he wasn't quite sane. 
"I'm not in your way," said Quara. "Go ahead. Knock a woman down. Shove a 
cripple. It's in your nature, Grego. You were born to destroy things. I'm 
ashamed to belong to the same species as you, let alone the same family." 
Only after she spoke did she realize that maybe she was pushing Grego too far. 
After all these years of sparring between them, this time she had drawn blood. 
His face was terrifying. 
But he didn't hit her. He stepped around her, around Miro, and stood in the 
doorway, his hands on the doorframe. Pushing outward, as if he were trying to 
press the walls out of his way. Or perhaps he was clinging to the walls, hoping 
they could hold him in. 
"I'm not going to let you make me angry at you, Quara," said Grego. "I know who 
my enemy is." 
Then he was gone, out the door into the new darkness. 
A moment later, Miro followed, saying nothing more. 
Ela spoke as she also walked to the door. "Whatever lies you may be telling 
yourself, Mother, it wasn't Ender or anyone else who destroyed our family here 
tonight. It was you." Then she was gone. 
Olhado got up and left, wordlessly. Quara wanted to slap him as he passed her, 
to make him speak. Have you recorded everything in your computer eyes, Olhado? 
Have you got all the pictures etched in memory? Well, don't be too proud of 
yourself. I may have only a brain of tissues to record this wonderful night in 
the history of the Ribeira family, but I'll bet my pictures are every bit as 
clear as yours. 
Mother looked up at Quara. Mother's face was streaked with tears. Quara couldn't 
remember-- had she ever seen Mother weep before? 
"So you're all that's left," said Mother. 
"Me?" said Quara. "I'm the one you cut off from access to the lab, remember? I'm 
the one you cut off from my life's work. Don't expect me to be your friend." 
Then Quara, too, left. Walked out into the night air feeling invigorated. 
Justified. Let the old hag think about that one for a while, see if she likes 
feeling cut off, the way she made me feel. 
It was maybe five minutes later, when Quara was nearly to the gate, when the 
glow of her riposte had faded, that she began to realize what she had done to 
her mother. What they all had done. Left Mother alone. Left her feeling that she 
had lost, not just Quim, but her entire family. That was a terrible thing to do 
to her, and Mother didn't deserve it. 
Quara turned at once and ran back to the house. But as she came through the 
door, Ela also entered the living room from the other door, the one that led 
back farther into the house. 
"She isn't here," said Ela. 
"Nossa Senhora," said Quara. "I said such awful things to her." 
"We all did." 
"She needed us. Quim is dead, and all we could do--" 
"When she hit Miro like that, it was ..." 
To her surprise, Quara found herself weeping, clinging to her older sister. Am I 
still a child, then, after all? Yes, I am, we all are, and Ela is still the only 
one who knows how to comfort us. "Ela, was Quim the only one who held us 
together? Aren't we a family anymore, now that he's gone?" 
"I don't know," said Ela. 
"What can we do?" 
In answer, Ela took her hand and led her out of the house. Quara asked where 
they were going, but Ela wouldn't answer, just held her hand and led her along. 
Quara went willingly-- she had no good idea of what to do, and it felt safe 
somehow, just to follow Ela. At first she thought Ela was looking for Mother, 
but no-- she didn't head for the lab or any other likely place. Where they ended 
up surprised her even more. 
They stood before the shrine that the people of Lusitania had erected in the 
middle of the town. The shrine to Gusto and Cida, their grandparents, the 
xenobiologists who had first discovered a way to contain the descolada virus and 
thus saved the human colony on Lusitania. Even as they found the drugs that 
would stop the descolada from killing people, they themselves had died, too far 
gone with the infection for their own drug to save them. 
The people adored them, built this shrine, called them Os Venerados even before 
the church beatified them. And now that they were only one step away from 
canonization as saints, it was permitted to pray to them. 
To Quara's surprise, that was why Ela had come here. She knelt before the 
shrine, and even though Quara really wasn't much of a believer, she knelt beside 
her sister. 
"Grandfather, Grandmother, pray to God for us. Pray for the soul of our brother 
Estevao. Pray for all our souls. Pray to Christ to forgive us." 
That was a prayer in which Quara could join with her whole heart. 
"Protect your daughter, our mother, protect her from... from her grief and anger 
and make her know that we love her and that you love her and that... God loves 
her, if he does-- oh, please, tell God to love her and don't let her do anything 
crazy." 
Quara had never heard anyone pray like this. It was always memorized prayers, or 
written-down prayers. Not this gush of words. But then, Os Venerados were not 
like any other saints or blessed ones. They were Grandmother and Grandfather, 
even though we never met them in our lives. 
"Tell God that we've had enough of this," said Ela. "We have to find a way out 
of all this. Piggies killing humans. This fleet that's coming to destroy us. The 
descolada trying to wipe everything out. Our family hating each other. Find us a 
way out of this, Grandfather, Grandmother, or if there isn't a way then get God 
to open up a way because this can't go on." 
Then an exhausted silence, both Ela and Quara breathing heavily. 
"Em nome do Pai e do Filho e do Espirito Santo," said Ela. "Amem." 
"Amem," whispered Quara. 
Then Ela embraced her sister and they wept together in the night. 



Valentine was surprised to find that the Mayor and the Bishop were the only 
other people at the emergency meeting. Why was she there? She had no 
constituency, no claim to authority. 
Mayor Kovano Zeljezo pulled up a chair for her. All the furniture in the 
Bishop's private chamber was elegant, but the chairs were designed to be 
painful. The seat was so shallow from front to back that to sit at all, you had 
to keep your buttocks right up against the back. And the back itself was ramrod 
straight, with no allowances at all for the shape of the human spine, and it 
rose so high that your head was pushed forward. If you sat on one for any length 
of time, the chair would force you to bend forward, to lean your arms on your 
knees. 
Perhaps that was the point, thought Valentine. Chairs that make you bow in the 
presence of God. 
Or perhaps it was even more subtle. The chairs were designed to make you so 
physically uncomfortable that you longed for a less corporeal existence. Punish 
the flesh so you'll prefer to live in the spirit. 
"You look puzzled," said Bishop Peregrino. 
"I can see why the two of you would confer in an emergency," said Valentine. 
"Did you need me to take notes?" 
"Sweet humility," said Peregrino. "But we have read your writings, my daughter, 
and we would be fools not to seek out your wisdom in a time of trouble." 
"Whatever wisdom I have I'll give you," said Valentine, "but I wouldn't hope for 
much." 
With that, Mayor Kovano plunged into the subject of the meeting. "There are many 
long-term problems," he said, "but we won't have much chance to solve those if 
we don't solve the immediate one. Last night there was some kind of quarrel at 
the Ribeira house--" 
"Why must our finest minds be grouped in our most unstable family?" murmured the 
Bishop. 
"They aren't the most unstable family, Bishop Peregrino," said Valentine. 
"They're merely the family whose inner quakings cause the most perturbation at 
the surface. Other families suffer much worse turmoil, but you never notice 
because they don't matter so much to the colony." 
The Bishop nodded sagely, but Valentine suspected that he was annoyed at being 
corrected on so trivial a point. Only it wasn't trivial, she knew. If the Bishop 
and the Mayor started thinking that the Ribeira family was more unstable than in 
fact it was, they might lose trust in Ela or Miro or Novinha, all of whom were 
absolutely essential if Lusitania were to survive the coming crises. For that 
matter, even the most immature ones, Quara and Grego, might be needed. They had 
already lost Quim, probably the best of them all. It would be foolish to throw 
the others away as well; yet if the colony's leaders were to start misjudging 
the Ribeiras as a group, they would soon misjudge them as individuals, too. 
"Last night," Mayor Kovano continued, "the family dispersed, and as far as we 
know, few of them are speaking to any of the others. I tried to find Novinha, 
and only recently learned that she has taken refuge with the Children of the 
Mind of Christ and won't see or speak to anyone. Ela tells me that her mother 
has put a seal on all the files in the xenobiology laboratory, so that work 
there has come to an absolute standstill this morning. Quara is with Ela, 
believe it or not. The boy Miro is outside the perimeter somewhere. Olhado is at 
home and his wife says he has turned his eyes off, which is his way of 
withdrawing from life." 
"So far," said Peregrino, "it sounds like they're all taking Father Estevao's 
death very badly. I must visit with them and help them." 
"All of these are perfectly acceptable grief responses," said Kovano, "and I 
wouldn't have called this meeting if this were all. As you say, Your Grace, you 
would deal with this as their spiritual leader, without any need for me." 
"Grego," said Valentine, realizing who had not been accounted for in Kovano's 
list. 
"Exactly," said Kovano. "His response was to go into a bar-- several bars, 
before the night was over-- and tell every half-drunk paranoid bigot in 
Milagre-- of which we have our fair share-- that the piggies have murdered 
Father Quim in cold blood." 
"Que Deus nos abencoe," murmured Bishop Peregrino. 
"One of the bars had a disturbance," said Kovano. "Windows shattered, chairs 
broken, two men hospitalized." 
"A brawl?" asked the Bishop. 
"Not really. Just anger vented in general." 
"So they got it out of their system." 
"I hope so," said Kovano. "But it seemed only to stop when the sun came up. And 
when the constable arrived." 
"Constable?" asked Valentine. "Just one?" 
"He heads a volunteer police force," said Kovano. "Like the volunteer fire 
brigade. Two-hour patrols. We woke some up. It took twenty of them to quiet 
things down. We only have about fifty on the whole force, usually with only four 
on duty at any one time. They usually spend the night walking around telling 
each other jokes. And some of the off-duty police were among the ones trashing 
the bar." 
"So you're saying they're not terribly reliable in an emergency." 
"They behaved splendidly last night," said Kovano. "The ones who were on duty, I 
mean." 
"Still, there's not a hope of them controlling a real riot," said Valentine. 
"They handled things last night," said Bishop Peregrino. "Tonight the first 
shock will have worn off." 
"On the contrary," said Valentine. "Tonight the word will have spread. Everybody 
will know about Quim's death and the anger will be all the hotter." 
"Perhaps," said Mayor Kovano. "But what worries me is the next day, when Andrew 
brings the body home. Father Estevao wasn't all that popular a figure-- he never 
went drinking with the boys-- but he was a kind of spiritual symbol. As a 
martyr, he'll have a lot more people wanting to avenge him than he ever had 
disciples wanting to follow him during his life." 
"So you're saying we should have a small and simple funeral," said Peregrino. 
"I don't know," said Kovano. "Maybe what the people need is a big funeral, where 
they can vent their grief and get it all out and over with." 
"The funeral is nothing," said Valentine. "Your problem is tonight." 
"Why tonight?" said Kovano. "The first shock of the news of Father Estevao's 
death will be over. The body won't be back till tomorrow. What's tonight?" 
"Tonight you have to close all the bars. Don't allow any alcohol to flow. Arrest 
Grego and confine him until after the funeral. Declare a curfew at sundown and 
put every policeman on duty. Patrol the city all night in groups of four, with 
nightsticks and sidearms." 
"Our police don't have sidearms." 
"Give them sidearms anyway. They don't have to load them, they just have to have 
them. A nightstick is an invitation to argue with authority, because you can 
always run away. A pistol is an incentive to behave politely." 
"This sounds very extreme," said Bishop Peregrino. "A curfew! What about night 
shifts?" 
"Cancel all but vital services." 
"Forgive me, Valentine," said Mayor Kovano, "but if we overreact so badly, won't 
that just blow things out of proportion? Maybe even cause the kind of panic we 
want to avoid?" 
"You've never seen a riot, have you?" 
"Only what happened last night," said the Mayor. 
"Milagre is a very small town," said Bishop Peregrino. "Only about fifteen 
thousand people. We're hardly large enough to have a real riot-- that's for big 
cities, on heavily populated worlds." 
"It's not a function of population size," said Valentine, "it's a function of 
population density and public fear. Your fifteen thousand people are crammed 
together in a space hardly large enough to be the downtown of a city. They have 
a fence around them-- by choice-- because outside that fence there are creatures 
who are unbearably strange and who think they own the whole world, even though 
everybody can see vast prairies that should be open for humans to use except the 
piggies refuse to let them. The city has been scarred by plague, and now they're 
cut off from every other world and there's a fleet coming sometime in the near 
future to invade and oppress and punish them. And in their minds, all of this, 
all of it, is the piggies' fault. Last night they first learned that the piggies 
have killed again, even after they took a solemn vow not to harm a human being. 
No doubt Grego gave them a very colorful account of the piggies' treachery-- the 
boy has a way with words, especially nasty ones-- and the few men who were in 
the bars reacted with violence. I assure you, things will only be worse tonight, 
unless you head them off." 
"If we take that kind of oppressive action, they'll think we're panicking," said 
Bishop Peregrino. 
"They'll think you're firmly in control. The levelheaded people will be grateful 
to you. You'll restore public trust." 
"I don't know," said Mayor Kovano. "No mayor has ever done anything like that 
before." 
"No other mayor ever had the need." 
"People will say that I used the slightest excuse to take dictatorial powers." 
"Maybe they will," said Valentine. 
"They'll never believe that there would have been a riot." 
"So perhaps you'll get defeated at the next election," said Valentine. "What of 
that?" 
Peregrino laughed aloud. "She thinks like a cleric," he said. 
"I'm willing to lose an election in order to do the right thing," said Kovano, a 
little resentfully. 
"You're just not sure it's the right thing," said Valentine. 
"Well, you can't know that there'll be a riot tonight," said Kovano. 
"Yes I can," said Valentine. "I promise that unless you take firm control right 
now, and stifle any possibility of crowds forming tonight, you will lose a lot 
more than the next election." 
The Bishop was still chuckling. "This does not sound like the woman who told us 
that whatever wisdom she had, she would share, but we mustn't hope for much." 
"If you think I'm overreacting, what do you propose?" 
"I'll announce a memorial service for Quim tonight, and prayers for peace and 
calm." 
"That will bring to the cathedral exactly the people who would never be part of 
a riot anyway," said Valentine. 
"You don't understand how important faith is to the people of Lusitania," said 
Peregrino. 
"And you don't understand how devastating fear and rage can be, and how quickly 
religion and civilization and human decency are forgotten when a mob forms." 
"I'll put all the police on alert tonight," said Mayor Kovano, "and put half of 
them on duty from dusk to midnight. But I won't close the bars or declare a 
curfew. I want life to go on as normally as possible. If we started changing 
everything, shutting everything down, we'd just be giving them more reasons to 
be afraid and angry." 
"You'd be giving them a sense that authority was in command," said Valentine. 
"You'd be taking action that was commensurate with the terrible feelings they 
have. They'd know that somebody was doing something." 
"You are very wise," said Bishop Peregrino, "and this would be the best advice 
for a large city, especially on a planet less true to the Christian faith. But 
we are a mere village, and the people are pious. They don't need to be bullied. 
They need encouragement and solace tonight, not curfews and closings and pistols 
and patrols." 
"These are your choices to make," said Valentine. "As I said, what wisdom I 
have, I share." 
"And we appreciate it. You can be sure I'll be watching things closely tonight," 
said Kovano. 
"Thank you for inviting me," said Valentine. "But as you can see, as I 
predicted, it didn't come to much." 
She got up from her chair, her body aching from sitting so long in that 
impossible posture. She had not bowed herself forward. Nor did she bow even now, 
as the Bishop extended his hand to be kissed. Instead, she shook his hand 
firmly, then shook Mayor Kovano's hand. As equals. As strangers. 
She left the room, burning inside. She had warned them and told them what they 
ought to do. But like most leaders who had never faced a real crisis, they 
didn't believe that anything would be different tonight from most other nights. 
People only really believe in what they've seen before. After tonight, Kovano 
will believe in curfews and closings at times of public stress. But by then it 
will be too late. By then they will be counting the casualties. 
How many graves would be dug beside Quim's? And whose bodies would go into them? 

Though Valentine was a stranger here and knew very few of the people, she 
couldn't just accept the riot as inevitable. There was only one other hope. She 
would talk to Grego. Try to persuade him of the seriousness of what was 
happening here. If he went from bar to bar tonight, counseling patience, 
speaking calmly, then the riot might be forestalled. Only he had any chance of 
doing it. They knew him. He was Quim's brother. He was the one whose words had 
so angered them last night. Enough men might listen to him that the riot might 
be contained, forestalled, channeled. She had to find Grego. 
If only Ender were here. She was a historian; he had actually led men into 
battle. Well, boys, actually. He had led boys. But it was the same thing-- he'd 
know what to do. Why is he away now? Why is this in my hands? I haven't the 
stomach for violence and confrontation. I never have. That's why Ender was born 
in the first place, a third child conceived at government request in an era when 
parents weren't usually allowed to have more than two without devastating legal 
sanctions: because Peter had been too vicious, and she, Valentine, had been too 
mild. 
Ender would have talked the Mayor and the Bishop into acting sensibly. And if he 
couldn't, he would have known how to go into town himself, calm things down, 
keep things under control. 
As she wished for Ender to be with her, though, she knew that even he couldn't 
control what was going to happen tonight. Maybe even what she had suggested 
wouldn't have been enough. She had based her conclusions about what would happen 
tonight on all that she had seen and read on many different worlds in many 
different times. Last night's conflagration would definitely spread much farther 
tonight. But now she was beginning to realize that things might be even worse 
than she had first assumed. The people of Lusitania had lived in unexpressed 
fear on an alien world for far too long. Every other human colony had 
immediately spread out, taken possession of their world, made it their own 
within a few generations. The humans of Lusitania still lived in a tiny 
compound, a virtual zoo with terrifying swinelike creatures peering in at them 
through the bars. What was pent up within these people could not be estimated. 
It probably could not even be contained. Not for a single day. 
The deaths of Libo and Pipo in past years had been bad enough. But they had been 
scientists, working among the piggies. With them it was like airplane crashes or 
starship explosions. If only the crew was aboard, then the public didn't get 
quite so upset-- the crew was being paid for the risk they took. Only when 
civilians were killed did such accidents cause fear and outrage. And in the 
minds of the people of Lusitania, Quim was an innocent civilian. 
No, more than that: He was a holy man, bringing brotherhood and holiness to 
these undeserving half-animals. Killing him was not just bestial and cruel, it 
was also sacrilege. 
The people of Lusitania were every bit as pious as Bishop Peregrino thought. 
What he forgot was the way pious people had always reacted to insults against 
their god. Peregrino didn't remember enough of Christian history, thought 
Valentine, or perhaps he simply thought that all that sort of thing had ended 
with the Crusades. If the cathedral was, in fact, the center of life in 
Lusitania, and if the people were devoted to their priests, why did Peregrino 
imagine that their grief at the murder of a priest could be expressed in a 
simple prayer service? It would only add to their fury, if the Bishop seemed to 
think that Quim's death was nothing much. He was adding to the problem, not 
solving it. 
She was still searching for Grego when she heard the bells start to toll. The 
call to prayer. Yet this was not a normal time for mass; people must be looking 
up in surprise at the sound, wondering, Why is the bell tolling? And then 
remembering-- Father Estevao is dead. Father Quim was murdered by the piggies. 
Oh, yes, Peregrino, what an excellent idea, ringing that prayer bell. That will 
help the people feel like things are calm and normal. 
From all wise men, O Lord, protect us. 



  
Miro lay curled in a bend of one of Human's roots. He had not slept much the 
night before, if at all, yet even now he lay there unstirring, with pequeninos 
coming and going all around him, the sticks beating out rhythms on Human's and 
Rooter's trunks. Miro heard the conversations, understanding most of them even 
though he wasn't yet fluent in Father Tongue because the brothers made no effort 
to conceal their own agitated conversations from him. He was Miro, after all. 
They trusted him. So it was all right for him to realize how angry and afraid 
they were. 
The fathertree named Warmaker had killed a human. And not just any human-- he 
and his tribe had murdered Father Estevao, the most beloved of human beings 
after only the Speaker for the Dead himself. It was unspeakable. What should 
they do? They had promised the Speaker not to make war on each other anymore, 
but how else could they punish Warmaker's tribe and show the humans that the 
pequeninos repudiated their vicious act? War was the only answer, all the 
brothers of every tribe attacking Warmaker's forest and cutting down all their 
trees except those known to have argued against Warmaker's plan. 
And their mothertree? That was the debate that still raged: Whether it was 
enough to kill all the brothers and complicit fathertrees in Warmaker's forest, 
or whether they should cut down the mothertree as well, so that there was no 
chance of any of Warmaker's seed taking root in the world again. They would 
leave Warmaker alive long enough to see the destruction of his tribe, and then 
they would burn him to death, the most terrible of all executions, and the only 
time the pequeninos ever used fire within a forest. 
Miro heard all this, and wanted to speak, wanted to say, What good is all this, 
now? But he knew that the pequeninos could not be stopped. They were too angry 
now. They were angry partly because of grief at Quim's death, but also in large 
part because they were ashamed. Warmaker had shamed them all by breaking their 
treaty. Humans would never trust the pequeninos again, unless they destroyed 
Warmaker and his tribe utterly. 
The decision was made. Tomorrow morning all the brothers would begin the journey 
toward Warmaker's forest. They would spend many days gathering, because this had 
to be an action of all the forests of the world together. When they were ready, 
with Warmaker's forest utterly surrounded, then they would destroy it so 
thoroughly that no one would ever guess that there had once been a forest there. 

The humans would see it. Their satellites would show them how the pequeninos 
dealt with treaty-breakers and cowardly murderers. Then the humans would trust 
the pequeninos again. Then the pequeninos could lift up their heads without 
shame in the presence of a human. 
Gradually Miro realized that they were not just letting him overhear their 
conversations and deliberations. They were making sure he heard and understood 
all they were doing. They expect me to take the word back to the city. They 
expect me to explain to the humans of Lusitania exactly how the pequeninos plan 
to punish Quim's murderers. 
Don't they realize that I'm a stranger here now? Who would listen to me, among 
the humans of Lusitania-- me, a crippled boy out of the past, whose speech is so 
slow and hard to follow. I have no influence over other humans. I barely have 
influence over my own body. 
Still, it was Miro's duty. He got up slowly, unknotting himself from his place 
amid Human's roots. He would try. He would go to Bishop Peregrino and tell him 
what the pequeninos were planning. Bishop Peregrino would spread the word, and 
then the people could all feel better knowing that thousands of innocent 
pequenino infants would be killed to make up for the death of one man. 
What are pequenino babies, after all? Just worms living in the dark belly of a 
mothertree. It would never occur to these people that there was scant moral 
difference between this mass murder of pequenino babies and King Herod's 
slaughter of the innocents at the time of Jesus' birth. This was justice they 
were pursuing. What is the complete obliteration of a tribe of pequeninos 
compared with that? 



Grego: standing in the middle of the grassy square, the crowd alert around me, 
each of them connected to me by a taut invisible wire so that my will is their 
will, my mouth speaks their words, their hearts beat to my rhythm. I have never 
felt this before, this kind of life, to be part of a group like this, and not 
just part of it, but the mind of it, the center, so that my self includes all of 
them, hundreds of them, my rage is their rage, their hands are my hands, their 
eyes see only what I show them. 
The music of it, the cadence of invocation, answer, invocation, answer: 
"The Bishop says that we'll pray for justice, but is that enough for us?" 
"No!" 
"The pequeninos say that they'll destroy the forest that murdered my brother, 
but do we believe them?" 
"No!" 
They complete my phrases; when I have to stop to breathe in, they shout for me, 
so that my voice is never stilled, but rises out of the throats of five hundred 
men and women. The Bishop came to me, full of peace and patience. The Mayor came 
to me with his warnings of police and riot and his hints of prison. Valentine 
came to me, all icy intellect, speaking of my responsibility. All of them know 
my power, power I never even knew I had, power that began only when I stopped 
obeying them and finally spoke what was in my heart to the people themselves. 
Truth is my power. I stopped deceiving the people and gave them the truth and 
now see what I've become, what we've become together. 
"If anybody punishes the swine for killing Quim, it should be us. A human life 
should be avenged by human hands! They say that the sentence for the murderers 
is death-- but we're the only ones who have the right to appoint the 
executioner! We're the ones who have to make sure the sentence is carried out!" 
"Yes! Yes!" 
"They let my brother die in the agony of the descolada! They watched his body 
burn from the inside out! Now we'll burn that forest to the ground!" 
"Burn them! Fire! Fire!" 
See how they strike matches, how they tear up tufts of grass and light them. The 
flame we'll light together! 
"Tomorrow we'll leave on the punitive expedition--" 
"Tonight! Tonight! Now!" 
"Tomorrow-- we can't go tonight-- we have to collect water and supplies--" 
"Now! Tonight! Burn!" 
"I tell you we can't get there in a single night, it's hundreds of kilometers 
away, it'll take days to get there--" 
"The piggies are right over the fence!" 
"Not the ones that killed Quim--" 
"They're all murdering little bastards!" 
"These are the ones that killed Libo, aren't they?" 
"They killed Pipo and Libo!" 
"They're all murderers!" 
"Burn them tonight!" 
"Burn them all!" 
"Lusitania for us, not for animals!" 
Are they insane? How can they think that he would let them kill these piggies-- 
they haven't done anything. "It's Warmaker! Warmaker and his forest that we have 
to punish!" 
"Punish them!" 
"Kill the piggies!" 
"Burn!" 
"Fire!" 
A momentary silence. A lull. An opportunity. Think of the right words. Think of 
something to bring them back, they're slipping away. They were part of my body, 
they were part of my self, but now they're sliding away out from under me, one 
spasm and I've lost control if I ever had control; what can I say in this split 
second of silence that will bring them back to their senses? 
Too long. Grego waited too long to think of something. It was a child's voice 
that filled the brief silence, the voice of a boy not yet into his manhood, 
exactly the sort of innocent voice that could cause the brimming holy rage 
within their hearts to erupt, to flow into irrevocable action. Cried the child: 
"For Quim and Christ!" 
"Quim and Christ! Quim and Christ!" 
"No!" shouted Grego. "Wait! You can't do this!" 
They lurch around him, stumble him down. He's on all fours, someone stepping on 
his hand. Where is the stool he was standing on? Here it is, cling to that, 
don't let them trample me, they're going to kill me if I don't get up, I have to 
move with them, get up and walk with them, run with them or they'll crush me. 
And then they were gone, past him, roaring, shouting, the tumult of feet moving 
out of the grassy square into the grassy streets, tiny flames held up, the 
voices crying "Fire" and "Burn" and "Quim and Christ," all the sound and sight 
of them flowing like a stream of lava from the square outward toward the forest 
that waited on the not-so-distant hill. 
"God in heaven what are they doing!" 
It was Valentine. Grego knelt by the stool, leaning on it, and there she stood 
beside him, looking at them flow away from this cold empty crater of a place 
where the conflagration began. 
"Grego, you self-righteous son-of-a-bitch, what have you done?" 
Me? "I was going to lead them to Warmaker. I was going to lead them to justice." 

"You're the physicist, you idiot boy. Haven't you ever heard of the uncertainty 
principle?" 
"Particle physics. Philotic physics." 
"Mob physics, Grego. You never owned them. They owned you. And now they've used 
you up and they're going to destroy the forest of our best friends and advocates 
among the pequeninos and what will any of us do then? It's war between humans 
and pequeninos, unless they have inhuman self-restraint, and it will be our 
fault." 
"Warmaker killed Quim." 
"A crime. But what you've started here, Grego, this is an atrocity." 
"I didn't do it!" 
"Bishop Peregrino counseled with you. Mayor Kovano warned you. I begged you. And 
you did it anyway." 
"You warned me about a riot, not about this--" 
"This is a riot, you fool. Worse than a riot. It's a pogrom. It's a massacre. 
It's baby-killing. It's the first step on the long terrible road to xenocide." 
"You can't blame all that on me!" 
Her face is so terrible in the moonlight, in the light from the doors and 
windows of the bars. "I blame on you only what you did. You started a fire on a 
hot, dry, windy day, despite all warnings. I blame you for that, and if you 
don't hold yourself responsible for all the consequences of your own acts, then 
you are truly unworthy of human society and I hope you lose your freedom 
forever." 
She's gone. Where? To do what? She can't leave him alone here. It's not right to 
leave him alone. A few moments ago, he was so large, with five hundred hearts 
and minds and mouths, a thousand hands and feet, and now it was all gone, as if 
his huge new body had died and he was left as a quivering ghost of a man, this 
single slender worm of a soul bereft of the powerful flesh it used to rule. He 
had never been so terrified. They almost killed him in their rush to leave him, 
almost trampled him into the grass. 
They were his, though, all the same. He had created them, made a single mob of 
them, and even though they had misunderstood what he created them for, they were 
still acting according to the rage he had provoked in them, and with the plan he 
had put in their minds. Their aim was bad, that's all-- otherwise they were 
doing exactly what he had wanted them to do. Valentine was right. It was his 
responsibility. What they did now, he had done as surely as if he were still in 
front of them leading the way. 
So what could he do? 
Stop them. Get control again. Stand in front of them and beg them to stop. They 
weren't setting off to burn the distant forest of the mad fathertree Warmaker, 
they were going to slaughter pequeninos that he knew, even if he didn't like 
them much. He had to stop them, or their blood would be on his hands like sap 
that couldn't be washed or rubbed away, a stain that would stay with him 
forever. 
So he ran, following the muddy swath of their footprints through the streets, 
where grass was trampled down into the mire. He ran until his side ached, 
through the place where they had stopped to break down the fencewhere was the 
disruption field when we needed it? Why didn't someone turn it on? --and on to 
where already flames were leaping into the sky. 
"Stop! Put the fire out!" 
"Burn!" 
"For Quim and Christ!" 
"Die, pigs." 
"There's one, getting away!" 
"Kill it!" 
"Burn it!" 
"The trees aren't dry enough-- the fire's not taking!" 
"Yes it is!" 
"Cut down the tree!" 
"There's another!" 
"Look, the little bastards are attacking!" 
"Break them in half!" 
"Give me that scythe if you aren't going to use it!" 
"Tear the little swine apart!" 
"For Quim and Christ!" 
Blood sprays in a wide arc and spatters into Grego's face as he lunges forward, 
trying to stop them. Did I know this one? Did I know this pequenino's voice 
before it was torn into this cry of agony and death? I can't put this back 
together again, they've broken him. Her. Broken her. A wife. A never-seen wife. 
Then we must be near the middle of the forest, and that giant must be the 
mothertree. 
"Here's a killer tree if I ever saw one!" 
Around the perimeter of the clearing where the great tree stood, the lesser 
trees suddenly began to lean, then toppled down, broken off at the trunks. For a 
moment Grego thought that it was humans cutting them down, but now he realized 
that no one was near those trees. They were breaking off by themselves, throwing 
themselves down to their deaths in order to crush the murdering humans under 
their trunks and branches, trying to save the mothertree. 
For a moment it worked. Men screamed in agony; perhaps a dozen or two were 
crushed or trapped or broken under the falling trees. But then all had fallen 
that could, and still the mothertree stood there, her trunk undulating 
strangely, as if some inner peristalsis were at work, swallowing deeply. 
"Let it live!" cried Grego. "It's the mothertree! She's innocent!" 
But he was drowned out by the cries of the injured and trapped, and by the 
terror as they realized that the forest could strike back, that this was not all 
a vengeful game of justice and retribution, but a real war, with both sides 
dangerous. 
"Burn it! Burn it!" The chant was loud enough to drown out the cries of the 
dying. And now the leaves and branches of the fallen trees were stretched out 
toward the mothertree; they lighted those branches and they burned readily. A 
few men came to their senses enough to realize that a fire that burned the 
mothertree would also burn the men pinned under the fallen brothertrees, and 
they began to try to rescue them. But most of the men were caught up in the 
passion of their success. To them the mothertree was Warmaker, the killer; to 
them it was everything alien in this world, the enemy who kept them inside a 
fence, the landlord who had arbitrarily restricted them to one small plot of 
land on a world so wide. The mothertree was all oppression and all authority, 
all strangeness and danger, and they had conquered it. 
Grego recoiled from the screaming of the trapped men who watched the fire 
approaching, from the howls of the men the fire had reached, the triumphant 
chanting of the men who had done this murder. "For Quim and Christ! For Quim and 
Christ!" Almost Grego ran away, unable to bear what he could see and smell and 
hear, the bright orange flames, the smell of roasting manflesh, and the 
crackling of the living wood ablaze. 
But he did not run. Instead he worked beside the others who dashed forward to 
the very edge of the flame to pry living men out from under the fallen trees. He 
was singed, and once his clothing caught on fire, but the hot pain of that was 
nothing, it was almost merciful, because it was the punishment that he deserved. 
He should die in this place. He might even have done it, might even have plunged 
himself so deeply into the fire that he could never come out until his crime was 
purged out of him and all that was left was bone and ash, but there were still 
broken people to pull out of the fire's reach, still lives to save. Besides, 
someone beat out the flames on his shoulder and helped him lift the tree so the 
boy who lay under it could wriggle free and how could he die when he was part of 
something like this, part of saving this child? 
"For Quim and Christ!" the boy whimpered as he crab-crawled out of the way of 
the flames. 
Here he was, the boy whose words had filled the silence and turned the crowd 
into this direction. You did it, thought Grego. You tore them away from me. 
The boy looked up at him and recognized him. "Grego!" he cried, and lunged 
forward. His arms enfolded Grego around the thighs, his head pressed against 
Grego's hip. "Uncle Grego!" 
It was Olhado's oldest boy, Nimbo. 
"We did it!" cried Nimbo. "For Uncle Quim!" 
The flames crackled. Grego picked up the boy and carried him, staggering out of 
the reach of the hottest flames, and then farther out, into the darkness, into a 
place where it was cool. All the men were driven this way, the flames herding 
them, the wind driving the flames. Most were like Grego, exhausted, frightened, 
in pain from the fire or helping someone else. 
But some, many perhaps, were still untouched except by the inner fire that Grego 
and Nimbo had ignited in the square. "Burn them all!" The voices here and there, 
smaller mobs like tiny eddies in a larger stream, but they now held brands and 
torches from the fires raging in the forest's heart. "For Quim and Christ! For 
Libo and Pipo! No trees! No trees!" 
Grego staggered onward. 
"Set me down," said Nimbo. 
And onward. 
"I can walk." 
But Grego's errand was too urgent. He couldn't stop for Nimbo, and he couldn't 
let the boy walk, couldn't wait for him and couldn't leave him behind. You don't 
leave your brother's son behind in a burning forest. So he carried him, and 
after awhile, exhausted, his legs and arms aching from the exertion, his 
shoulder a white sun of agony where he had been burned, he emerged from the 
forest into the grassy space before the old gate, where the path wound down from 
the wood to join the path from the xenobiology labs. 
The mob had gathered here, many of them holding torches, but for some reason 
they were still a distance away from the two isolated trees that stood watch 
here: Human and Rooter. Grego pushed his way through the crowd, still holding 
Nimbo; his heart was racing, and he was filled with fear and anguish and yet a 
spark of hope, for he knew why the men with torches had stopped. And when he 
reached the edge of the mob, he saw that he was right. 
There were gathered around those last two fathertrees perhaps two hundred 
pequenino brothers and wives, small and beleaguered, but with an air of defiance 
about them. They would fight to the death on this spot, rather than let these 
last two trees be burned-- but burn they would, if the mob decided so, for there 
was no hope of pequeninos standing in the way of men determined to do murder. 
But between the piggies and the men there stood Miro, like a giant compared to 
the pequeninos. He had no weapon, and yet he had spread his arms as if to 
protect the pequeninos, or perhaps to hold them back. And in his thick, 
difficult speech he was defying the mob. 
"Kill me first!" he said. "You like murder! Kill me first! Just like they killed 
Quim! Kill me first!" 
"Not you!" said one of the men holding torches. "But those trees are going to 
die. And all those piggies, too, if they haven't got the brains to run away." 
"Me first," said Miro. "These are my brothers! Kill me first!" 
He spoke loudly and slowly, so his sluggish speech could be understood. The mob 
still had anger in it, some of them at least. Yet there were also many who were 
sick of it all, many who were already ashamed, already discovering in their 
hearts the terrible acts they had performed tonight, when their souls were given 
over to the will of the mob. Grego still felt it, that connection with the 
others, and he knew that they could go either way-- the ones still hot with rage 
might start one last fire tonight; or the ones who had cooled, whose only inner 
heat was a blush of shame, they might prevail. 
Grego had this one last chance to redeem himself, at least in part. And so he 
stepped forward, still carrying Nimbo. 
"Me too," he said. "Kill me too, before you raise a hand against these brothers 
and these trees!" 
"Out of the way, Grego, you and the cripple both!" 
"How are you different from Warmaker, if you kill these little ones?" 
Now Grego stood beside Miro. 
"Out of the way! We're going to burn the last of them and have done." But the 
voice was less certain. 
"There's a fire behind you," said Grego, "and too many people have already died, 
humans and pequeninos both." His voice was husky, his breath short from the 
smoke he had inhaled. But he could still be heard. "The forest that killed Quim 
is far away from here, and Warmaker still stands untouched. We haven't done 
justice here tonight. We've done murder and massacre." 
"Piggies are piggies!" 
"Are they? Would you like that if it went the other way?" Grego took a few steps 
toward one of the men who looked tired and unwilling to go on, and spoke 
directly to him, while pointing at the mob's spokesman. "You! Would you like to 
be punished for what he did?" 
"No," muttered the man. 
"If he killed someone, would you think it was right for somebody to come to your 
house and slaughter your wife and children for it?" 
Several voices now. "No." 
"Why not? Humans are humans, aren't we?" 
"I didn't kill any children," said the spokesman. He was defending himself now. 
And the "we" was gone from his speech. He was an individual now, alone. The mob 
was fading, breaking apart. 
"We burned the mothertree," said Grego. 
Behind him there began a keening sound, several soft, high-pitched whines. For 
the brothers and surviving wives, it was the confirmation of their worst fears. 
The mothertree had burned. 
"That giant tree in the middle of the forest-- inside it were all their babies. 
All of them. This forest did us no harm, and we came and killed their babies." 
Miro stepped forward, put his hand on Grego's shoulder. Was Miro leaning on him? 
Or helping him stand? 
Miro spoke then, not to Grego, but to the crowd. "All of you. Go home." 
"Maybe we should try to put the fire out," said Grego. But already the whole 
forest was ablaze. 
"Go home," Miro said again. "Stay inside the fence." 
There was still some anger left. "Who are you to tell us what to do?" 
"Stay inside the fence," said Miro. "Someone else is coming to protect the 
pequeninos now." 
"Who? The police?" Several people laughed bitterly, since so many of them were 
police, or had seen policemen among the crowd. 
"Here they are," said Miro. 
A low hum could be heard, soft at first, barely audible in the roaring of the 
fire, but then louder and louder, until five fliers came into view, skimming the 
tops of the grass as they circled the mob, sometimes black in silhouette against 
the burning forest, sometimes shining with reflected fire when they were on the 
opposite side. At last they came to rest, all five of them sinking down onto the 
tall grass. Only then were the people able to distinguish one black shape from 
another, as six riders arose from each flying platform. What they had taken for 
shining machinery on the fliers was not machinery at all, but living creatures, 
not as large as men but not as small as pequeninos, either, with large heads and 
multi-faceted eyes. They made no threatening gesture, just formed lines before 
each flier; but no gestures were needed. The sight of them was enough, stirring 
memories of ancient nightmares and horror stories. 
"Deus nos perdoe!" cried several. God forgive us. They were expecting to die. 
"Go home," said Miro. "Stay inside the fence." 
"What are they?" Nimbo's childish voice spoke for them all. 
The answers came as whispers. "Devils." "Destroying angels." "Death." 
And then the truth, from Grego's lips, for he knew what they had to be, though 
it was unthinkable. "Buggers," he said. "Buggers, here on Lusitania." 
They did not run from the place. They walked, watching carefully, shying away 
from the strange new creatures whose existence none of them had guessed at, 
whose powers they could only imagine, or remember from ancient videos they had 
studied once in school. The buggers, who had once come close to destroying all 
of humanity, until they were destroyed in turn by Ender the Xenocide. The book 
called the Hive Queen had said they were really beautiful and did not need to 
die. But now, seeing them, black shining exoskeletons, a thousand lenses in 
their shimmering green eyes, it was not beauty but terror that they felt. And 
when they went home, it would be in the knowledge that these, and not just the 
dwarfish, backward piggies, waited for them just outside the fence. Had they 
been in prison before? Surely now they were trapped in one of the circles of 
hell. 
At last only Miro, Grego, and Nimbo were left, of all the humans. Around them 
the piggies also watched in awe-- but not in terror, for they had no insect 
nightmares lurking in their limbic node the way the humans did. Besides, the 
buggers had come to them as saviors and protectors. What weighed on them most 
was not curiosity about these strangers, but rather grief at what they had lost. 

"Human begged the hive queen to help them, but she said she couldn't kill 
humans," said Miro. "Then Jane saw the fire from the satellites in the sky, and 
told Andrew Wiggin. He spoke to the hive queen and told her what to do. That she 
wouldn't have to kill anybody." 
"They aren't going to kill us?" asked Nimbo. 
Grego realized that Nimbo had spent these last few minutes expecting to die. 
Then it occurred to him that so, too, had he-- that it was only now, with Miro's 
explanation, that he was sure that they hadn't come to punish him and Nimbo for 
what they set in motion tonight. Or rather, for what Grego had set in motion, 
ready for the single small nudge that Nimbo, in all innocence, had given. 
Slowly Grego knelt and set the boy down. His arms barely responded to his will 
now, and the pain in his shoulder was unbearable. He began to cry. But it wasn't 
for the pain that he was weeping. 
The buggers moved now, and moved quickly. Most stayed on the ground, jogging 
away to take up watch positions around the perimeter of the city. A few 
remounted the fliers, one to each machine, and took them back up into the air, 
flying over the burning forest, the flaming grass, spraying them with something 
that blanketed the fire and slowly put it out. 



Bishop Peregrino stood on the low foundation wall that had been laid only that 
morning. The people of Lusitania, all of them, were gathered, sitting in the 
grass. He used a small amplifier, so that no one could miss his words. But he 
probably would not have needed it- -all were silent, even the little children, 
who seemed to catch the somber mood. 
Behind the Bishop was the forest, blackened but not utterly lifeless-- a few of 
the trees were greening again. Before him lay the blanket-covered bodies, each 
beside its grave. The nearest of them was the corpse of Quim-- Father Estevao. 
The other bodies were the humans who had died two nights before, under the trees 
and in the fire. 
"These graves will be the floor of the chapel, so that whenever we enter it we 
tread upon the bodies of the dead. The bodies of those who died as they helped 
to bring murder and desolation to our brothers the pequeninos. Above all the 
body of Father Estevao, who died trying to bring the gospel of Jesus Christ to a 
forest of heretics. He dies a martyr. These others died with murder in their 
hearts and blood on their hands." 
"I speak plainly, so that this Speaker for the Dead won't have to add any words 
after me. I speak plainly, the way Moses spoke to the children of Israel after 
they worshiped the golden calf and rejected their covenant with God. Of all of 
us, there are only a handful who have no share of the guilt for this crime. 
Father Estevao, who died pure, and yet whose name was on the blasphemous lips of 
those who killed. The Speaker for the Dead, and those who traveled with him to 
bring home the body of this martyred priest. And Valentine, the Speaker's 
sister, who warned the Mayor and me of what would happen. Valentine knew 
history, she knew humanity, but the Mayor and I thought that we knew you, and 
that you were stronger than history. Alas for us all that you are as fallen as 
any other men, and so am I. The sin is on every one of us who could have tried 
to stop this, and did not! On the wives who did not try to keep their husbands 
home. On the men who watched but said nothing. And on all who held the torches 
in their hands and killed a tribe of fellow Christians for a crime done by their 
distant cousins half a continent away. 
"The law is doing its small part of justice. Gerao Gregorio Ribeira von Hesse is 
in prison, but that is for another crime-- the crime of having violated his 
trust and told secrets that were not his to tell. He is not in prison for the 
massacre of the pequeninos, because he has no greater share of guilt for that 
than the rest of you who followed him. Do you understand me? The guilt is on us 
all, and all of us must repent together, and do our penance together, and pray 
that Christ will forgive us all together for the terrible thing we did with his 
name on our lips! 
"I am standing on the foundation of this new chapel, which will be named for 
Father Estevao, Apostle to the Pequeninos. The blocks of the foundation were 
torn from the walls of our cathedral-- there are gaping holes there now, where 
the wind can blow and the rain can fall in upon us as we worship. And so the 
cathedral will remain, wounded and broken, until this chapel is finished. 
"And how will we finish it? You will go home, all of you, to your houses, and 
you will break open the wall of your own house, and take the blocks that fall, 
and bring them here. And you will also leave your walls shattered until this 
chapel is completed. 
"Then we will tear holes in the walls of every factory, every building in our 
colony, until there is no structure that does not show the wound of our sin. And 
all those wounds will remain until the walls are high enough to put on the roof, 
which will be beamed and rafted with the scorched trees that fell in the forest, 
trying to defend their people from our murdering hands. 
"And then we will come, all of us, to this chapel, and enter it on our knees, 
one by one, until every one of us has crawled over the graves of our dead, and 
under the bodies of those ancient brothers who lived as trees in the third life 
our merciful God had given them until we ended it. There we will all pray for 
forgiveness. We will pray for our venerated Father Estevao to intercede for us. 
We will pray for Christ to include our terrible sin in his atonement, so we will 
not have to spend eternity in hell. We will pray for God to purify us. 
"Only then will we repair our damaged walls, and heal our houses. That is our 
penance, my children. Let us pray that it is enough." 



In the middle of a clearing strewn with ash, Ender, Valentine, Miro, Ela, Quara, 
Ouanda, and Olhado all stood and watched as the most honored of the wives was 
flayed alive and planted in the ground, for her to grow into a new mothertree 
from the corpse of her second life. As she was dying, the surviving wives 
reached into a gap in the old mothertree and scooped out the bodies of the dead 
infants and little mothers who had lived there, and laid them on her bleeding 
body until they formed a mound. Within hours, her sapling would rise through 
their corpses and reach for sunlight. 
Using their substance, she would grow quickly, until she had enough thickness 
and height to open up an aperture in her trunk. If she grew fast enough, if she 
opened herself soon enough, the few surviving babies clinging to the inside of 
the gaping cavity of the old dead mothertree could be transferred to the small 
new haven the new mothertree would offer them. If any of the surviving babies 
were little mothers, they would be carried to the surviving fathertrees, Human 
and Rooter, for mating. If new babies were conceived within their tiny bodies, 
then the forest that had known all the best and worst that human beings could do 
would survive. 
If not-- if the babies were all males, which was possible, or if all the females 
among them were infertile, which was possible, or if they were all too injured 
by the heat of the fire that raged up the mothertree's trunk and killed her, or 
if they were too weakened by the days of starvation they would undergo until the 
new mothertree was ready for them-- then the forest would die with these 
brothers and wives, and Human and Rooter would live on for a millennium or so as 
tribeless fathertrees. Perhaps some other tribes would honor them and carry 
little mothers to them for mating. Perhaps. But they would not be fathers of 
their own tribe, surrounded by their sons. They would be lonely trees with no 
forest of their own, the sole monuments to the work they had lived for: bringing 
humans and pequeninos together. 
As for the rage against Warmaker, that had ended. The fathertrees of Lusitania 
all agreed that whatever moral debt had been incurred by the death of Father 
Estevao, it was paid and overpaid by the slaughter of the forest of Rooter and 
Human. Indeed, Warmaker had won many new converts to his heresy-- for hadn't the 
humans proved that they were unworthy of the gospel of Christ? It was 
pequeninos, said Warmaker, who were chosen to be vessels of the Holy Ghost, 
while human beings plainly had no part of God in them. We have no need to kill 
any more human beings, he said. We only have to wait, and the Holy Ghost will 
kill them all. In the meantime, God has sent us the hive queen to build us 
starships. We will carry the Holy Ghost with us to judge every world we visit. 
We will be the destroying angel. We will be Joshua and the Israelites, purging 
Canaan to make way for God's chosen people. 
Many pequeninos believed him now. Warmaker no longer sounded crazy to them; they 
had witnessed the first stirrings of apocalypse in the flames of an innocent 
forest. To many pequeninos there was nothing more to learn from humanity. God 
had no more use for human beings. 
Here, though, in this clearing in the forest, their feet ankle-deep in ash, the 
brothers and wives who kept vigil over their new mothertree had no belief in 
Warmaker's doctrine. They who knew human beings best of all even chose to have 
humans present as witnesses and helpers in their attempt to be reborn. 
"Because," said Planter, who was now the spokesman for the surviving brothers, 
"we know that not all humans are alike, just as not all pequeninos are alike. 
Christ lives in some of you, and not in others. We are not all like Warmaker's 
forest, and you are not all murderers either." 
So it was that Planter held hands with Miro and Valentine on the morning, just 
before dawn, when the new mothertree managed to open a crevice in her slender 
trunk, and the wives tenderly transferred the weak and starving bodies of the 
surviving infants into their new home. It was too soon to tell, but there was 
cause for hope: The new mothertree had readied herself in only a day and a half, 
and there were more than three dozen infants who lived to make the transition. 
As many as a dozen of them might be fertile females, and if even a quarter of 
those lived to bear young, the forest might thrive again. 
Planter was trembling. "Brothers have never seen this before," said Planter, 
"not in all the history of the world." 
Several of the brothers were kneeling and crossing themselves. Many had been 
praying throughout the vigil. It made Valentine think of something Ouara had 
told her. She stepped close to Miro and whispered, "Ela prayed, too." 
"Ela?" 
"Before the fire. Quara was there at the shrine of the Venerados. She prayed for 
God to open up a way for us to solve all our problems." 
"That's what everybody prays for." 
Valentine thought of what had happened in the days since Ela's prayer. "I 
imagine that she's rather disappointed at the answer God gave her." 
"People usually are." 
"But maybe this-- the mothertree opening so quickly-- maybe this is the 
beginning of her answer." 
Miro looked at Valentine in puzzlement. "Are you a believer?" 
"Let's say I'm a suspecter. I suspect there may be someone who cares what 
happens to us. That's one step better than merely wishing. And one step below 
hoping." 
Miro smiled slightly, but Valentine wasn't sure whether it meant he was pleased 
or amused. "So what will God do next, to answer Ela's prayer?" 
"Let's wait and see," said Valentine. "Our job is to decide what we'll do next. 
We have only the deepest mysteries of the universe to solve." 
"Well, that should be right up God's alley," said Miro. 
Then Ouanda arrived; as xenologer, she had also been involved in the vigil, and 
though this wasn't her shift, news of the opening of the mothertree had been 
taken to her at once. Her coming had usually meant Miro's swift departure. But 
not this time. Valentine was pleased to see that Miro's gaze didn't seem either 
to linger on Ouanda or to avoid her; she was simply there, working with the 
pequeninos, and so was he. No doubt it was all an elaborate pretense at 
normality, but in Valentine's experience, normality was always a pretense, 
people acting out what they thought were their expected roles. Miro had simply 
reached a point where he was ready to act out something like a normal role in 
relation to Ouanda, no matter how false it might be to his true feelings. And 
maybe it wasn't so false, after all. She was twice his age now. Not at all the 
girl he had loved. 
They had loved each other, but never slept together. Valentine had been pleased 
to hear it when Miro told her, though he said it with angry regret. Valentine 
had long ago observed that in a society that expected chastity and fidelity, 
like Lusitania, the adolescents who controlled and channeled their youthful 
passions were the ones who grew up to be both strong and civilized. Adolescents 
in such a community who were either too weak to control themselves or too 
contemptuous of society's norms to try usually ended up being either sheep or 
wolves-- either mindless members of the herd or predators who took what they 
could and gave nothing. 
She had feared, when she first met Miro, that he was a self-pitying weakling or 
a self-centered predator resentful of his confinement. Neither was so. He might 
now regret his chastity in adolescence-- it was natural for him to wish he had 
coupled with Ouanda when he was still strong and they were both of an age-- but 
Valentine did not regret it. It showed that Miro had inner strength and a sense 
of responsibility to his community. To Valentine, it was predictable that Miro, 
by himself, had held back the mob for those crucial moments that saved Rooter 
and Human. 
It was also predictable that Miro and Ouanda would now make the great effort to 
pretend that they were simply two people doing their jobs-- that all was normal 
between them. Inner strength and outward respect. These are the people who hold 
a community together, who lead. Unlike the sheep and the wolves, they perform a 
better role than the script given them by their inner fears and desires. They 
act out the script of decency, of self-sacrifice, of public honor-- of 
civilization. And in the pretense, it becomes reality. There really is 
civilization in human history, thought Valentine, but only because of people 
like these. The shepherds. 



Novinha met him in the doorway of the school. She leaned on the arm of Dona 
Crista, the fourth principal of the Children of the Mind of Christ since Ender 
had come to Lusitania. 
"I have nothing to say to you," Novinha said. "We're still married under the 
law, but that's all." 
"I didn't kill your son," he said. 
"You didn't save him, either," she answered. 
"I love you," Ender said. 
"As much as you're capable of love," she said. "And then only when you've got a 
little time left over from looking after everybody else. You think you're some 
kind of guardian angel, with responsibility for the whole universe. All I asked 
you to do was take responsibility for my family. You're good at loving people by 
the trillion, but not so good at dozens, and you're a complete failure at loving 
one." 
It was a harsh judgment, and he knew it wasn't true, but he didn't come to 
argue. "Please come home," he said. "You love me and need me as much as I need 
you." 
"This is home now. I've stopped needing you or anybody. And if this is all you 
came to say, you're wasting my time and yours." 
"No, it's not all." 
She waited. 
"The files in the laboratory. You've sealed them all. We have to find a solution 
to the descolada before it destroys us all." 
She gave him a withering, bitter smile. "Why did you bother me with this? Jane 
can get past my passwords, can't she?" 
"She hasn't tried," he said. 
"No doubt to spare my sensibilities. But she can, n??" 
"Probably." 
"Then have her do it. She's all you need now. You never really needed me, not 
when you had her." 
"I've tried to be a good husband to you," said Ender. "I never said I could 
protect you from everything, but I did all I could." 
"If you had, my Estevao would be alive." 
She turned away, and Dona Crista escorted her back inside the school. Ender 
watched her until she turned a corner. Then he turned away from the door and 
left the school. He wasn't sure where he was going, only that he had to get 
there. 
"I'm sorry," said Jane softly. 
"Yes," he said. 
"When I'm gone," she said, "maybe Novinha will come back to you." 
"You won't be gone if I can help it," he said. 
"But you can't. They're going to shut me down in a couple of months." 
"Shut up," he said. 
"It's only the truth." 
"Shut up and let me think." 
"What, are you going to save me now? Your record isn't very good at playing 
savior lately." 
He didn't answer, and she didn't speak again for the rest of the afternoon. He 
wandered out of the gate, but didn't go up into the forest. Instead he spent the 
afternoon in the grassland, alone, under the hot sun. 
Sometimes he was thinking, trying to struggle with the problems that still 
loomed over him: the fleet coming against them, Jane's shut-off date, the 
descolada's constant efforts to destroy the humans of Lusitania, Warmaker's plan 
to spread the descolada throughout the galaxy, and the grim situation within the 
city now that the hive queen kept constant watch over the fence and their grim 
penance had them all tearing at the walls of their own houses. 
And sometimes his mind was almost devoid of thought, as he stood or sat or lay 
in the grass, too numb to weep, her face passing through his memory, his lips 
and tongue and teeth forming her name, pleading with her silently, knowing that 
even if he made a sound, even if he shouted, even if he could make her hear his 
voice, she wouldn't answer him. 
Novinha. 
Table of Contents



Chapter 13 -- Free Will
<There are those among us who think that the humans should be stopped from the 
research into the descolada. The descolada is at the heart of our life cycle. 
We're afraid that they'll find a way to kill the descolada throughout the world, 
and that would destroy us in a generation.> 
<And if you managed to stop human research into the descolada, they would 
certainly be wiped out within a few years.> 
<Is the descolada that dangerous? Why can't they keep on containing it as they 
have?> 
<Because the descolada is not just randomly mutating according to natural laws. 
It is intelligently adapting itself in order to destroy us.> 
<Us? You?> 
<We've been fighting the descoloda all along. Not in laboratories, like the 
humans, but inside ourself. Before I lay eggs, there is a phase where I prepare 
their bodies to manufacture all the antibodies they'll need throughout their 
lives. When the descoloda changes itself, we know it because the workers start 
dying. Then an organ near my ovaries creates new antibodies, and we lay eggs for 
new workers who can withstand the revised descolada.> 
<So you, too, are trying to destroy it.> 
<No. Our process is entirely unconscious. It takes place in the body of the hive 
queen, without conscious intervention. We can't go beyond meeting the present 
danger. Our organ of immunity is far more effective and adaptable than anything 
in the human body, but in the long run we'll suffer the same fate as the humans, 
if the descolada is not destroyed. The difference is that if we are wiped out by 
the descolada, there is no other hive queen in the universe to carry on our 
species. We are the last.> 
<Your case is even more desperate than theirs.> 
<And we are even more helpless to affect it. We have no science of biology 
beyond simple husbandry. Our natural methods were so effective in fighting 
disease that we never had the same impetus that humans had, to understand life 
and control it.> 
<Is that the way it is, then? Either we are destroyed, or you and the humans are 
destroyed. If the descolada continues, it kills you. If it is stopped, we die.> 
<This is your world. The descolada is in your bodies. If it comes time to choose 
between you and us, it will be you that survives.> 
<You speak for yourself, my friend. But what will the humans do?> 
<If they have the power to destroy the descolada in a way that would also 
destroy you, we will forbid them to use it.> 
<Forbid them? When have humans ever obeyed?> 
<We never forbid where we do not also have the power to prevent.> 
<Ah.> 
<This is your world. Ender knows this. And if other humans ever forget, we will 
remind them.> 
<I have another question.> 
<Ask.> 
<What about those, like Warmaker, who want to spread the descolada throughout 
the universe? Will you also forbid them?> 
<They must not carry the descolada to worlds that already have multicellular 
life.> 
<But that's exactly what they intend to do.> 
<They must not.> 
<But you're building starships for us. Once they have control of a starship, 
they'll go where they want to go.> 
<They must not.> 
<So you forbid them?> 
<We never forbid where we do not also have the power to prevent.> 
<Then why do you still build these ships?> 
<The human fleet is coming, with a weapon that can destroy this world. Ender is 
sure that they'll use it. Should we conspire with them, and leave your entire 
genetic heritage here on this single planet, so you can be obliterated with a 
single weapon?> 
<So you build us starships, knowing that some of us may use it destructively.> 
<What you do with starflight will be your responsibility. If you act as the 
enemy of life, then life will become your enemy. We will provide starships to 
you as a species. Then you, as a species, will decide who leaves Lusitania and 
who doesn't.> 
<There's a fair chance that Warmaker's party will have the majority then. That 
they will be making all those decisions.> 
<So-- should we judge, and decide that the humans are right to try to destroy 
you? Maybe Warmaker is right. Maybe the humans are the ones who deserve to be 
destroyed. Who are we to judge between you? They with their Molecular Disruption 
Device. You with the descolada. Each has the power to destroy the other, each 
species is capable of such a monstrous crime, and yet each species has many 
members who would never knowingly cause such evil and who deserve to live. We 
will not choose. We will simply build the starships and let you and the humans 
work out your destiny between you.> 
<You could help us. You could keep the starships out of the hands of Warmaker's 
party, and deal only with us.> 
<Then the domestic war between you would be terrible indeed. Would you destroy 
their genetic heritage, simply because you disagree? Who then is the monster and 
the criminal? How do we judge between you, when both parties are willing to 
countenance the utter destruction of another people?> 
<Then I have no hope. Someone will be destroyed.> 
<Unless the human scientists find a way to change the descolada, so that you can 
survive as a species, and yet the descolada loses the power to kill.> 
<How is that possible?> 
<We are not biologists. Only the humans can do this, if it can be done.> 
<Then we can't stop them from researching the descolada. We have to help them. 
Even though they nearly destroyed our forest, we have no choice but to help 
them.> 
<We knew you would reach that conclusion.> 
<Did you?> 
<That's why we're building starships for the pequeninos. Because you're capable 
of wisdom.>   
  
  
As word of the restoration of the Lusitania Fleet spread among the godspoken of 
Path, they began to visit the house of Han Fei-tzu to pay him honor. 
"I will not see them," said Han Fei-tzu. 
"You must, Father," said Han Qing-jao. "It is only proper for them to honor you 
for such a great accomplishment." 
"Then I will go and tell them that it was entirely your doing, and I had nothing 
to do with it." 
"No!" cried Qing-jao. "You must not do that." 
"Furthermore, I will tell them that I think it was a great crime, which will 
cause the death of a noble spirit. I will tell them that the godspoken of Path 
are slaves to a cruel and vicious government, and that we must bend all our 
efforts to the destruction of Congress." 
"Don't make me hear this!" cried Qing-jao. "You could never say such a thing to 
anyone!" 
And it was true. Si Wang-mu watched from the corner as the two of them, father 
and daughter, each began a ritual of purification, Han Fei-tzu for having spoken 
such rebellious words and Han Qing-jao for having heard them. Master Fei-tzu 
would never say these things to others, because even if he did, they would see 
how he immediately had to be purified, and they would see this as proof that the 
gods repudiated his words. They did their work well, those scientists that 
Congress employed to create the godspoken, thought Wang-mu. Even knowing the 
truth, Han Fei-tzu is helpless. 
So it was that Qing-jao met all the visitors who came to the house, and 
graciously accepted their praise on behalf of her father. Wang-mu stayed with 
her for the first few visits, but she found it unbearable to listen as Qin-gjao 
described again and again how her father and she had discovered the existence of 
a computer program that dwelt amid the philotic network of the ansibles, and how 
it would be destroyed. It was one thing to know that in her heart, Qing-jao did 
not believe she was committing murder; it was quite another thing for Wang-mu to 
listen to her boasting about how the murder would be accomplished. 
And boasting was what Qing-jao was doing, though only Wang-mu knew it. Always 
Qing-jao gave the credit to her father, but since Wang-mu knew that it was 
entirely Qing-jao's doing, she knew that when Qing-jao described the 
accomplishment as worthy service to the gods, she was really praising herself. 
"Please don't make me stay and listen anymore," said Wang-mu. 
Qing-jao studied her for a moment, judging her. Then, coldly, she answered. "Go 
if you must. I see that you are still a captive of our enemy. I have no need of 
you." 
"Of course not," said Wang-mu. "You have the gods." But in saying this, she 
could not keep the bitter irony out of her voice. 
"Gods that you don't believe in," said Qing-jao bitingly. "Of course, you have 
never been spoken to by the gods-- why should you believe? I dismiss you as my 
secret maid, since that is your desire. Go back to your family." 
"As the gods command," said Wang-mu. And this time she made no effort to conceal 
her bitterness at the mention of the gods. 
She was already out of the house, walking down the road, when Mu-pao came after 
her. Since Mu-pao was old and fat, she had no hope of catching up with Wang-mu 
on foot. So she came riding a donkey, looking ridiculous as she kicked the 
animal to hasten it. Donkeys, sedan chairs, all these trappings of ancient 
China-- do the godspoken really think that such affectations make them somehow 
holier? Why don't they simply ride on fliers and hovercars like honest people do 
on every other world? Then Mu-pao would not have to humiliate herself, bouncing 
and jouncing on an animal that is suffering under her weight. To spare her as 
much embarrassment as possible, Wang-mu returned and met Mu-pao partway. 
"Master Han Fei-tzu commands you to return," said Mu-pao. 
"Tell Master Han that he is kind and good, but my mistress has dismissed me. 
"Master Han says that Mistress Qing-jao has the authority to dismiss you as her 
secret maid, but not to dismiss you from his house. Your contract is with him, 
not with her." 
This was true. Wang-mu hadn't thought of that. 
"He begs you to return," said Mu-pao. "He told me to say it that way, so that 
you might come out of kindness, if you would not come out of obedience." 
"Tell him I will obey. He should not beg such a low person as myself." 
"He will be glad," said Mu-pao. 
Wang-mu walked beside Mu-pao's donkey. They went very slowly, which was more 
comfortable for Mu-pao and the donkey as well. 
"I have never seen him so upset," said Mu-pao. "Probably I shouldn't tell you 
that. But when I said that you were gone, he was almost frantic." 
"Were the gods speaking to him?" It was a bitter thing if Master Han called her 
back only because for some reason the slave driver within him had demanded it. 
"No," said Mu-pao. "It wasn't like that at all. Though of course I've never 
actually seen what it looks like when the gods speak to him." 
"Of course." 
"He simply didn't want you to go," said Mu-pao. 
"I will probably end up going, anyway," said Wang-mu. "But I'll gladly explain 
to him why I am now useless in the House of Han." 
"Oh, of course," said Mu-pao. "You have always been useless. But that doesn't 
mean you aren't necessary." 
"What do you mean?" 
"Happiness can depend as easily on useless things as on useful ones." 
"Is that a saying of an old master?" 
"It's a saying of an old fat woman on a donkey," said Mu-pao. "And don't you 
forget it." 
When Wang-mu was alone with Master Han in his private chamber, he showed no sign 
of the agitation Mu-pac, had spoken of. 
"I have spoken with Jane," he said. "She thinks that since you also know of her 
existence and believe her not to be the enemy of the gods, it will be better if 
you stay." 
"So I will serve Jane now?" asked Wang-mu. "Am I to be her secret maid?" 
Wang-mu did not mean her words to sound ironic; the idea of being servant to a 
nonhuman entity intrigued her. But Master Han reacted as if he were trying to 
smooth over an offense. 
"No," he said. "You shouldn't be anyone's servant. You have acted bravely and 
worthily." 
"And yet you called me back to fulfill my contract with you." 
Master Han bowed his head. "I called you back because you are the only one who 
knows the truth. If you go, then I'm alone in this house." 
Wang-mu almost said: How can you be alone, when your daughter is here? And until 
the last few days, it wouldn't have been a cruel thing to say, because Master 
Han and Mistress Qing-jao were friends as close as a father and daughter could 
ever be. But now, the barrier between them was insuperable. Qing-jao lived in a 
world where she was a triumphant servant of the gods, trying to be patient with 
the temporary madness of her father. Master Han lived in a world where his 
daughter and all of his society were slaves to an oppressive Congress, and only 
he knew the truth. How could they even speak to each other across a gulf so wide 
and deep? 
"I'll stay," said Wang-mu. "However I can serve you, I will." 
"We'll serve each other," said Master Han. "My daughter promised to teach you. 
I'll continue that." 
Wang-mu touched her forehead to the floor. "I am unworthy of such kindness." 
"No," said Master Han. "We both know the truth now. The gods don't speak to me. 
Your face should never touch the floor before me." 
"We have to live in this world," said Wang-mu. "I will treat you as an honored 
man among the godspoken, because that is what all the world would expect of me. 
And you must treat me as a servant, for the same reason." 
Master Han's face twisted bitterly. "The world also expects that when a man of 
my age takes a young girl from his daughter's service into his own, he is using 
her for venery. Shall we act out all the world's expectations?" 
"It is not in your nature to take advantage of your power in that way," said 
Wang-mu. 
"Nor is it in my nature to receive your humiliation. Before I learned the truth 
about my affliction, I accepted other people's obeisance because I believed it 
was really being offered to the gods, and not to me." 
"That is as true as it ever was. Those who believe you are godspoken are 
offering their obeisance to the gods, while those who are dishonest do it to 
flatter you. " 
"But you are not dishonest. Nor do you believe the gods speak to me." 
"I don't know whether the gods speak to you or not, or whether they ever have or 
ever can speak to anyone. I only know that the gods don't ask you or anyone to 
do these ridiculous, humiliating rituals-- those were forced on you by Congress. 
Yet you must continue those rituals because your body requires it. Please allow 
me to continue the rituals of humiliation that are required of people of my 
position in the world." 
Master Han nodded gravely. "You are wise beyond your years and education, 
Wang-mu." 
"I am a very foolish girl," said Wang-mu. "If I had any wisdom, I would beg you 
to send me as far away from this place as possible. Sharing a house with 
Qing-jao will now be very dangerous to me. Especially if she sees that I am 
close to you, when she can't be." 
"You're right. I'm being very selfish, to ask you to stay." 
"Yes," said Wang-mu. "And yet I will stay." 
"Why?" asked Master Han. 
"Because I can never go back to my old life," she answered. "I know too much now 
about the world and the universe, about Congress and the gods. I would have the 
taste of poison in my mouth all the days of my life, if I went back home and 
pretended to be what I was before." 
Master Han nodded gravely, but then he smiled, and soon he laughed. 
"Why are you laughing at me, Master Han?" 
"I'm laughing because I think that you never were what you used to be." 
"What does that mean?" 
"I think you were always pretending. Maybe you even fooled yourself. But one 
thing is certain. You were never an ordinary girl, and you could never have led 
an ordinary life." 
Wang-mu shrugged. "The future is a hundred thousand threads, but the past is a 
fabric that can never be rewoven. Maybe I could have been content. Maybe not." 
"So here we are together, the three of us." 
Only then did Wang-mu turn to see that they were not alone. In the air above the 
display she saw the face of Jane, who smiled at her. 
"I'm glad you came back," said Jane. 
For a moment, Jane's presence here caused Wang-mu to leap to a hopeful 
conclusion. "Then you aren't dead! You've been spared!" 
"It was never Qing-jao's plan for me to be dead already," answered Jane. "Her 
plan to destroy me is proceeding nicely, and I will no doubt die on schedule." 
"Why do you come to this house, then," asked Wang-mu, "when it was here that 
your death was set in motion?" 
"I have a lot of things to accomplish before I die," said Jane, "including the 
faint possibility of discovering a way to survive. It happens that the world of 
Path contains many thousands of people who are much more intelligent, on 
average, than the rest of humanity." 
"Only because of Congress's genetic manipulation," said Master Han. 
"True," said Jane. "The godspoken of Path are, properly speaking, not even human 
anymore. You're another species, created and enslaved by Congress to give them 
an advantage over the rest of humanity. It happens, though, that a single member 
of that new species is somewhat free of Congress." 
"This is freedom?" said Master Han. "Even now, my hunger to purify myself is 
almost irresistible." 
"Then don't resist it," said Jane. "I can talk to you while you contort 
yourself." 
Almost at once, Master Han began to fling out his arms and twist them in the air 
in his ritual of purification. Wang-mu turned her face away. 
"Don't do that," said Master Han. "Don't hide your face from me. I can't be 
ashamed to show this to you. I'm a cripple, that's all; if I had lost a leg, my 
closest friends would not be afraid to see the stump." 
Wang-mu saw the wisdom in his words, and did not hide her face from his 
affliction. 
"As I was saying," said Jane, "it happens that a single member of this new 
species is somewhat free of Congress. I hope to enlist your help in the works 
I'm trying to accomplish in the few months left to me." 
"I'll do anything I can," said Master Han. 
"And if I can help, I will," said Wang-mu. Only after she said it did she 
realize how ridiculous it was for her to offer such a thing. Master Han was one 
of the godspoken, one of those with superior intellectual abilities. She was 
only an uneducated specimen of ordinary humanity, with nothing to offer. 
And yet neither of them mocked her offer, and Jane accepted it graciously. Such 
a kindness proved once again to Wang-mu that Jane had to be a living thing, not 
just a simulation. 
"Let me tell you the problems that I hope to resolve." 
They listened. 
"As you know, my dearest friends are on the planet Lusitania. They are 
threatened by the Lusitania Fleet. I am very interested in stopping that fleet 
from causing any irrevocable harm." 
"By now I'm sure they've already been given the order to use the Little Doctor," 
said Master Han. 
"Oh, yes, I know they have. My concern is to stop that order from having the 
effect of destroying not only the humans of Lusitania, but two other raman 
species as well." Then Jane told them of the hive queen, and how it came to be 
that buggers once again lived in the universe. "The hive queen is already 
building starships, pushing herself to the limit to accomplish as much as she 
can before the fleet arrives. But there's no chance that she can build enough to 
save more than a tiny fraction of the inhabitants of Lusitania. The hive queen 
can leave, or send another queen who shares all her memories, and it matters 
little to her whether her workers go with her or not. But the pequeninos and the 
humans are not so self-contained. I'd like to save them all. Especially because 
my dearest friends, a particular speaker for the dead and a young man suffering 
from brain damage, would refuse to leave Lusitania unless every other human and 
pequenino could be saved." 
"Are they heroes, then?" asked Master Han. 
"Each has proved it several times in the past," said Jane. 
"I wasn't sure if heroes still existed in the human race." 
Si Wang-mu did not speak what was in her heart: that Master Han himself was such 
a hero. 
"I am searching for every possibility," said Jane. "But it all comes down to an 
impossibility, or so humankind has believed for more than three thousand years. 
If we could build a starship that traveled faster than light, that traveled as 
quickly as the messages of the ansible pass from world to world, then even if 
the hive queen can build only a dozen starships, they could easily shuttle all 
the inhabitants of Lusitania to other planets before the Lusitania Fleet 
arrives." 
"If you could actually build such a starship," said Han Fei-tzu, "you could 
create a fleet of your own that could attack the Lusitania Fleet and destroy it 
before it could harm anyone." 
"Ah, but that is impossible," said Jane. 
"You can conceive of faster-than-light travel, and yet you can't imagine 
destroying the Lusitania Fleet?" 
"Oh, I can imagine it," said Jane. "But the hive queen wouldn't build it. She 
has told Andrew-- my friend, the Speaker for the Dead--" 
"Valentine's brother," said Wang-mu. "He also lives?" 
"The hive queen has told him that she will never build a weapon for any reason." 

"Even to save her own species?" 
"She'll have the single starship she needs to get offplanet, and the others will 
also have enough starships to save their species. She's content with that. 
There's no need to kill anybody." 
"But if Congress has its way, millions will be killed!" 
"Then that is their responsibility," said Jane. "At least that's what Andrew 
tells me she answers whenever he raises that point." 
"What kind of strange moral reasoning is this?" 
"You forget that she only recently discovered the existence of other intelligent 
life, and she came perilously close to destroying it. Then that other 
intelligent life almost destroyed her. But it was her own near brush with 
committing the crime of xenocide that has had the greater effect on her moral 
reasoning. She can't stop other species from such things, but she can be certain 
that she doesn't do it herself. She will only kill when that's the only hope she 
has of saving the existence of her species. And since she has another hope, she 
won't build a warship." 
"Faster-than-light travel," said Master Han. "Is that your only hope?" 
"The only one I can think of that has a glimmer of possibility. At least we know 
that something in the universe moves faster than light-- information is passed 
down the philotic ray from one ansible to another with no detectable passage of 
time. A bright young physicist on Lusitania who happens to be locked in jail at 
the present time is spending his days and nights working on this problem. I 
perform all his calculations and simulations for him. At this very moment he is 
testing a hypothesis about the nature of philotes by using a model so complex 
that in order to run the program I'm stealing time from the computers of almost 
a thousand different universities. There's hope." 
"As long as you live, there's hope," said Wang-mu. "Who will do such massive 
experiments for him when you're gone?" 
"That's why there's so much urgency," said Jane. 
"What do you need me for?" asked Master Han. "I'm no physicist, and I have no 
hope of learning enough in the next few months to make any kind of difference. 
It's your jailed physicist who'll do it, if anyone can. Or you yourself." 
"Everyone needs a dispassionate critic to say, Have you thought of this? Or 
even, Enough of that dead-end path, get onto another train of thought. That's 
what I need you for. We'll report our work to you, and you'll examine it and say 
whatever comes to mind. You can't possibly guess what chance word of yours will 
trigger the idea we're looking for." 
Master Han nodded, to concede the possibility. 
"The second problem I'm working on is even knottier," said Jane. "Whether we 
achieve faster-than-light travel or not, some pequeninos will have starships and 
can leave the planet Lusitania. The problem is that they carry inside them the 
most insidious and terrible virus ever known, one that destroys every form of 
life it touches except those few that it can twist into a deformed kind of 
symbiotic life utterly dependent on the presence of that virus." 
"The descolada," said Master Han. "One of the justifications sometimes used for 
carrying the Little Doctor with the fleet in the first place." 
"And it may actually be a justification. From the hive queen's point of view, 
it's impossible to choose between one life form and another, but as Andrew has 
often pointed out to me, human beings don't have that problem. If it's a choice 
between the survival of humanity and the survival of the pequeninos, he'd choose 
humanity, and for his sake so would I." 
"And I," said Master Han. 
"You can be sure the pequeninos feel the same way in reverse," said Jane. "If 
not on Lusitania then somewhere, somehow, it will almost certainly come down to 
a terrible war in which humans use the Molecular Disruption Device and the 
pequeninos use the descolada as the ultimate biological weapon. There's a good 
chance of both species utterly destroying each other. So I feel some urgency 
about the need to find a replacement virus for the descolada, one that will 
perform all the functions needed in the pequeninos' life cycle without any of 
its predatory, self-adapting capabilities. A selectively inert form of the 
virus." 
"I thought there were ways to neutralize the descolada. Don't they take drugs in 
their drinking water on Lusitania?" 
"The descolada keeps figuring out their drugs and adapting to them. It's a 
series of footraces. Eventually the descolada will win one, and then there won't 
be any more humans to race against." 
"Do you mean that the virus is intelligent?" asked Wang-mu. 
"One of the scientists on Lusitania thinks so," said Jane. "A woman named Quara. 
Others disagree. But the virus certainly acts as if it were intelligent, at 
least when it comes to adapting itself to changes in its environment and 
changing other species to fit its needs. I think Quara is right, personally. I 
think the descolada is an intelligent species that has its own kind of language 
that it uses to spread information very quickly from one side of the world to 
the other." 
"I'm not a virologist," said Master Han. 
"And yet if you could look at the studies being performed by Elanora Ribeira von 
Hesse--" 
"Of course I'll look. I only wish I had your hope that I can help." 
"And then the third problem," said Jane. "Perhaps the simplest one of all. The 
godspoken of Path." 
"Ah yes," said Master Han. "Your destroyers." 
"Not by any free choice," said Jane. "I don't hold it against you. But it's 
something I'd like to see accomplished before I die-- to figure out a way to 
alter your altered genes, so that future generations, at least, can be free of 
that deliberately-induced OCD, while still keeping the extraordinary 
intelligence." 
"Where will you find genetic scientists willing to work on something that 
Congress would surely consider to be treason?" asked Master Han. 
"When you wish to have someone commit treason," said Jane, "it's best to look 
first among known traitors." 
"Lusitania," said Wang-mu. 
"Yes," said Jane. "With your help, I can give the problem to Elanora." 
"Isn't she working on the descolada problem?" 
"No one can work on anything every waking moment. This will be a change of pace 
that might actually help freshen her for her work on the descolada. Besides, 
your problem on Path may be relatively easy to solve. After all, your altered 
genes were originally created by perfectly ordinary geneticists working for 
Congress. The only barriers have been political, not scientific. Ela might find 
it a simple matter. She has already told me how we should begin. We need a few 
tissue samples, at least to start with. Have a medical technician here do a 
computer scan on them at the molecular level. I can take over the machinery long 
enough to make sure the data Elanora needs is gathered during the scan, and then 
I'll transmit the genetic data to her. It's that simple." 
"Whose tissue do you need?" asked Master Han. "I can't very well ask all the 
visitors here to give me a sample." 
"Actually, I was hoping you could," said Jane. "So many are coming and going. We 
can use dead skin, you know. Perhaps even fecal or urine samples that might 
contain body cells." 
Master Han nodded. "I can do that." 
"If it comes to fecal samples, I will do it," said Wang-mu. 
"No," said Master Han. "I am not above doing all that is necessary to help, even 
with my own hands." 
"You?" asked Wang-mu. "I volunteered because I was afraid you would humiliate 
other servants by requiring them to do it." 
"I will never again ask anyone to do something so low and debasing that I refuse 
to do it myself," said Master Han. 
"Then we'll do it together," said Wang-mu. "Please remember, Master Han-- you 
will help Jane by reading and responding to reports, while manual tasks are the 
only way that I can help at all. Don't insist on doing what I can do. Instead 
spend your time on the things that only you can do." 
Jane interrupted before Master Han could answer. "Wang-mu, I want you to read 
the reports as well." 
"Me? But I'm not educated at all." 
"Nevertheless," said Jane. 
"I won't even understand them." 
"Then I'll help you," said Master Han. 
"This isn't right," said Wang-mu. "I'm not Qing-jao. This is the sort of thing 
she could do. It isn't for me." 
"I watched you and Qing-jao through the whole process that led to her discovery 
of me," said Jane. "Many of the key insights came from you, Si Wang-mu, not from 
Qing-jao." 
"From me? I never even tried to--" 
"You didn't try. You watched. You made connections in your mind. You asked 
questions." 
"They were foolish questions," said Wang-mu. Yet in her heart she was glad: 
Someone saw! 
"Questions that no expert would ever have asked," said Jane. "Yet they were 
exactly the questions that led Qing-jao to her most important conceptual 
breakthroughs. You may not be godspoken, Wang-mu, but you have gifts of your 
own." 
"I'll read and respond," said Wang-mu, "but I will also gather tissue samples. 
All of the tissue samples, so that Master Han does not have to speak to these 
godspoken visitors and listen to them praise him for a terrible thing that he 
didn't do." 
Master Han was still opposed. "I refuse to think of you doing--" 
Jane interrupted him. "Han Fei-tzu, be wise. Wang-mu, as a servant, is 
invisible. You, as master of the house, are as subtle as a tiger in a 
playground. Nothing you do goes unnoticed. Let Wang-mu do what she can do best." 

Wise words, thought Wang-mu. Why then are you asking me to respond to the work 
of scientists, if each person must do what he does best? Yet she kept silent. 
Jane had them begin by taking their own tissue samples; then Wang-mu set about 
gathering tissue samples from the rest of the household. She found most of what 
she needed on combs and unwashed clothing. Within days she had samples from a 
dozen godspoken visitors, also taken from their clothing. No one had to take 
fecal samples after all. But she would have been willing. 
Qing-jao noticed her, of course, but snubbed her. It hurt Wang-mu to have 
Qing-jao treat her so coldly, for they had once been friends and Wang-mu still 
loved her, or at least loved the young woman that Qing-jao had been before the 
crisis. Yet there was nothing Wang-mu could say or do to restore their 
friendship. She had chosen another path. 
Wang-mu kept all the tissue samples carefully separated and labeled. Instead of 
taking them to a medical technician, however, she found a much simpler way. 
Dressing in some of Qing-jao's old clothing, so that she looked like a godspoken 
student instead of a servant girl, she went to the nearest college and told them 
that she was working on a project whose nature she could not divulge, and she 
humbly requested that they perform a scan on the tissue samples she provided. As 
she expected, they asked no questions of a godspoken girl, even a complete 
stranger. Instead they ran the molecular scans, and Wang-mu could only assume 
that Jane had done as she promised, taking control of the computer and making 
the scan include all the operations Ela needed. 
On the way home from the college, Wang-mu discarded all the samples she had 
collected and burned the report the college had given her. Jane had what she 
needed-- there was no point in running the risk that Qing-jao or perhaps a 
servant in the house who was in the pay of Congress might discover that Han 
Fei-tzu was working on a biological experiment. As for someone recognizing her, 
the servant Si Wang-mu, as the young godspoken girl who had visited the 
college-- there was no chance of that. No one looking for a godspoken girl would 
so much as glance at a servant like her. 



"So you've lost your woman and I've lost mine," said Miro. 
Ender sighed. Every now and then Miro got into a talky mood, and because 
bitterness was always just under the surface with him, his chat tended to be 
straight to the point and more than a little unkind. Ender couldn't begrudge him 
the talkiness-- he and Valentine were almost the only people who could listen to 
Miro's slow speech patiently, without giving him a sign that they wanted him to 
get on with it. Miro spent so much of his time with pent-up thoughts, 
unexpressed, that it would be cruel to shut him down just because he had no 
tact. 
Ender wasn't pleased to be reminded of the fact that Novinha had left him. He 
was trying to keep that thought out of his mind, while he worked on other 
problems-- on the problem of Jane's survival, mostly, and a little bit on every 
other problem, too. But at Miro's words, that aching, hollow, half-panicked 
feeling returned. She isn't here. I can't just speak and have her answer. I 
can't just ask and have her remember. I can't just reach and feel her hand. And, 
most terrible of all: Perhaps I never will again. 
"I suppose so," said Ender. 
"You probably don't like to equate them," said Miro. "After all, she's your wife 
of thirty years, and Ouanda was my girlfriend for maybe five years. But that's 
only if you start counting when puberty hit. She was my friend, my closest 
friend except maybe Ela, since I was little. So if you think about it, I was 
with Ouanda most of my life, while you were only with Mother for half of yours." 

"Now I feel much better," said Ender. 
"Don't get pissed off at me," said Miro. 
"Don't piss me off," said Ender. 
Miro laughed. Too loudly. "Feeling grumpy, Andrew?" he cackled. "A bit out of 
sorts?" 
It was too much to take. Ender spun his chair, turning away from the terminal 
where he had been studying a simplified model of the ansible network, trying to 
imagine where in that random latticework Jane's soul might dwell. He gazed 
steadily at Miro until he stopped laughing. 
"Did I do this to you?" asked Ender. 
Miro looked more angry than abashed. "Maybe I needed you to," he said. "Ever 
think of that? You were so respectful, all of you. Let Miro keep his dignity. 
Let him brood himself into madness, right? Just don't talk about the thing 
that's happened to him. Didn't you ever think I needed somebody to jolly me out 
of it sometimes?" 
"Didn't you ever think that I don't need that?" 
Miro laughed again, but it came a bit late, and it was gentler. "On target," he 
said. "You treated me the way you like to be treated when you grieve, and now 
I'm treating you the way I like to be treated. We prescribe our own medicine for 
each other." 
"Your mother and I are still married," Ender said. 
"Let me tell you something," said Miro, "out of the wisdom of my twenty years or 
so of life. It's easier when you finally start admitting to yourself that you'll 
never have her back. That she's permanently out of reach." 
"Ouanda is out of reach. Novinha isn't." 
"She's with the Children of the Mind of Christ. It's a nunnery, Andrew." 
"Not so," said Ender. "It's a monastic order that only married couples can join. 
She can't belong to them without me." 
"So," said Miro. "You can have her back whenever you want to join the Filhos. I 
can just see you as Dom Cristao." 
Ender couldn't help chuckling at the idea. "Sleeping in separate beds. Praying 
all the time. Never touching each other." 
"If that's marriage, Andrew, then Ouanda and I are married right now." 
"It is marriage, Miro. Because the couples in the Filhos da Mente de Cristo are 
working together, doing a work together." 
"Then we're married," said Miro. "You and I. Because we're trying to save Jane 
together." 
"Just friends," said Ender. "We're just friends." 
"Rivals is more like it. Jane keeps us both like lovers on a string." 
Miro was sounding too much like Novinha's accusations about Jane. "We're hardly 
lovers," he said. "Jane isn't human. She doesn't even have a body." 
"Aren't you the logical one," said Miro. "Didn't you just say that you and 
Mother could still be married, without even touching?" 
It was an analogy that Ender didn't like, because it seemed to have some truth 
in it. Was Novinha right to be jealous of Jane, as she had been for so many 
years? 
"She lives inside our heads, practically," said Miro. "That's a place where no 
wife will ever go." 
"I always thought," said Ender, "that your mother was jealous of Jane because 
she wished she had someone that close to her." 
"Bobagem," said Miro. "Lixo." Nonsense. Garbage. "Mother was jealous of Jane 
because she wanted so badly to be that close to you, and she never could." 
"Not your mother. She was always self-contained. There were times when we were 
very close, but she always turned back to her work." 
"The way you always turned back to Jane." 
"Did she tell you that?" 
"Not in so many words. But you'd be talking to her, and then all of a sudden 
you'd fall silent, and even though you're good at subvocalizing, there's still a 
little movement in the jaw, and your eyes and lips react a little to what Jane 
says to you. She saw. You'd be with Mother, close, and then all of a sudden you 
were somewhere else." 
"That's not what split us apart," said Ender. "It was Quim's death." 
"Quim's death was the last straw. If it hadn't been for Jane, if Mother had 
really believed you belonged to her, heart and soul, she would have turned to 
you when Quim died, instead of turning away." 
Miro had said the thing that Ender had dreaded all along. That it was Ender's 
own fault. That he had not been the perfect husband. That he had driven her 
away. And the worst thing was that when Miro said it, Ender knew that it was 
true. The sense of loss, which he had already thought was unbearable, suddenly 
doubled, trebled, became infinite inside him. 
He felt Miro's hand, heavy, clumsy, on his shoulder. 
"As God is my witness, Andrew, I never meant to make you cry." 
"It happens," said Ender. 
"It's not all your fault," said Miro. "Or Jane's. You've got to remember that 
Mother's crazy as a loon. She always has been." 
"She had a lot of grief as a child." 
"She lost everybody she ever loved, one by one," said Miro. 
"And I let her believe that she had lost me, too." 
"What were you going to do, cut Jane off? You tried that once, remember?" 
"The difference is that now she has you. The whole time you were gone, I could 
have let Jane go, because she had you. I could have talked to her less, asked 
her to back off. She would have forgiven me." 
"Maybe," said Miro. "But you didn't." 
"Because I didn't want to," said Ender. "Because I didn't want to let her go. 
Because I thought I could keep that old friendship and still be a good husband 
to my wife." 
"It wasn't just Jane," said Miro. "It was Valentine, too." 
"I suppose," said Ender. "So what do I do? Go join up with the Filhos until the 
fleet gets here and blows us all to hell?" 
"You do what I do," said Miro. 
"What's that?" 
"You take a breath. You let it out. Then you take another." 
Ender thought about it for a moment. "I can do that. I've been doing that since 
I was little." 
Just a moment longer, Miro's hand on his shoulder. This is why I should have had 
a son of my own, thought Ender. To lean on me when he was small, and then for me 
to lean on when I'm old. But I never had a child from my own seed. I'm like old 
Marcao, Novinha's first husband. Surrounded by these children and knowing 
they're not my own. The difference is that Miro is my friend, not my enemy. And 
that's something. I may have been a bad husband, but I can still make and keep a 
friend. 
"Stop pitying yourself and get back to work." It was Jane, speaking in his ear, 
and she had waited almost long enough before speaking, almost long enough that 
he was ready to have her tease him. Almost but not quite, and so he resented her 
intrusion. Resented knowing that she had been listening and watching all along. 
"Now you're mad," she said. 
You don't know what I'm feeling, thought Ender. You can't know. Because you're 
not human. 
"You think I don't know what you're feeling," said Jane. 
He felt a moment of vertigo, because for a moment it seemed to him that she had 
been listening to something far deeper than the conversation. 
  
"But I lost you once, too." 
Ender subvocalized: "I came back." 
"Never completely," said Jane. "Never like it was before. So you just take a 
couple of those self-pitying little tears on your cheeks and count them as if 
they were mine. Just to even up the score." 
"I don't know why I bother trying to save your life," said Ender silently. 
"Me neither," said Jane. "I keep telling you it's a waste of time." 
Ender turned back to the terminal. Miro stayed beside him, watching the display 
as it simulated the ansible network. Ender had no idea what Jane was saying to 
Miro-- though he was sure that she was saying something, since he had long ago 
figured out that Jane was capable of carrying on many conversations at once. He 
couldn't help it-- it did bother him a little that Jane had every bit as close a 
relationship with Miro as with him. 
Isn't it possible, he wondered, for one person to love another without trying to 
own each other? Or is that buried so deep in our genes that we can never get it 
out? Territoriality. My wife. My friend. My lover. My outrageous and annoying 
computer personality who's about to be shut off at the behest of a half-crazy 
girl genius with OCD on a planet I never heard of and how will I live without 
Jane when she's gone? 
Ender zoomed in on the display. In and in and in, until the display showed only 
a few parsecs in each dimension. Now the simulation was modeling a small portion 
of the network-- the crisscrossing of only a half-dozen philotic rays in deep 
space. Now, instead of looking like an involved, tightlywoven fabric, the 
philotic rays looked like random lines passing millions of kilometers from each 
other. 
"They never touch," said Miro. 
No, they never do. It's something that Ender had never realized. In his mind, 
the galaxy was flat, the way the starmaps always showed it, a topdown view of 
the section of the spiral arm of the galaxy where humans had spread out from 
Earth. But it wasn't flat. No two stars were ever exactly in the same plane as 
any other two stars. The philotic rays connecting starships and planets and 
satellites in perfectly straight lines, ansible to ansible-- they seemed to 
intersect when you saw them on a flat map, but in this three-dimensional 
close-up in the computer display, it was obvious that they never touched at all. 

"How can she live in that?" asked Ender. "How can she possibly exist in that 
when there's no connection between those lines except at the endpoints?" 
"So-- maybe she doesn't. Maybe she lives in the sum of the computer programs at 
every terminal." 
"In which case she could back herself up into all the computers and then--" 
"And then nothing. She could never put herself back together because they're 
only using clean computers to run the ansibles." 
"They can't keep that up forever," said Ender. "It's too important for computers 
on different planets to be able to talk to each other. Congress will find out 
pretty soon that there aren't enough human beings in existence to key in by 
hand, in a year, the amount of information computers have to send to each other 
by ansible every hour." 
"So she just hides? Waits? Sneaks in and restores herself when she sees a chance 
five or ten years from now?" 
"If that's all she is-- a collection of programs." 
"There has to be more to her than that," said Miro. 
"Why?" 
"Because if she's nothing more than a collection of programs, even self-writing 
and self-revising programs, ultimately she was created by some programmer or 
group of programmers somewhere. In which case she's just acting out the program 
that was forced on her from the beginning. She has no free will. She's a puppet. 
Not a person." 
"Well, when it comes to that, maybe you're defining free will too narrowly," 
said Ender. "Aren't human beings the same way, programmed by our genes and our 
environment?" 
"No," said Miro. 
"What else, then?" 
"Our philotic connections say that we aren't. Because we're capable of 
connecting with each other by act of will, which no other form of life on Earth 
can do. There's something we have, something we are, that wasn't caused by 
anything else." 
"What, our soul?" 
"Not even that," said Miro. "Because the priests say that God created our souls, 
and that just puts us under the control of another puppeteer. If God created our 
will, then he's responsible for every choice we make. God, our genes, our 
environment, or some stupid programmer keying in code at an ancient terminal-- 
there's no way free will can ever exist if we as individuals are the result of 
some external cause." 
"So-- as I recall, the official philosophical answer is that free will doesn't 
exist. Only the illusion of free will, because the causes of our behavior are so 
complex that we can't trace them back. If you've got one line of dominoes 
knocking each other down one by one, then you can always say, Look, this domino 
fell because that one pushed it. But when you have an infinite number of 
dominoes that can be traced back in an infinite number of directions, you can 
never find where the causal chain begins. So you think, That domino fell because 
it wanted to." 
"Bobagem," said Miro. 
"Well, I admit that it's a philosophy with no practical value," said Ender. 
"Valentine once explained it to me this way. Even if there is no such thing as 
free will, we have to treat each other as if there were free will in order to 
live together in society. Because otherwise, every time somebody does something 
terrible, you can't punish him, because he can't help it, because his genes or 
his environment or God made him do it, and every time somebody does something 
good, you can't honor him, because he was a puppet, too. If you think that 
everybody around you is a puppet, why bother talking to them at all? Why even 
try to plan anything or create anything, since everything you plan or create or 
desire or dream of is just acting out the script your puppeteer built into you." 

"Despair," said Miro. 
"So we conceive of ourselves and everyone around us as volitional beings. We 
treat everyone as if they did things with a purpose in mind, instead of because 
they're being pushed from behind. We punish criminals. We reward altruists. We 
plan things and build things together. We make promises and expect each other to 
keep them. It's all a made-up story, but when everybody believes that 
everybody's actions are the result of free choice, and takes and gives 
responsibility accordingly, the result is civilization." 
"Just a story." 
"That's how Valentine explained it. That is, if there's no free will. I'm not 
sure what she actually believes herself. My guess is that she'd say that she is 
civilized, and therefore she must believe the story herself, in which case she 
absolutely believes in free will and thinks this whole idea of a made-up story 
is nonsense-- but that's what she'd believe even if it were true, and so who can 
be sure of anything." 
Then Ender laughed, because Valentine had laughed when she first told him all 
this many years ago. When they were still only a little bit past childhood, and 
he was working on writing the Hegemon, and was trying to understand why his 
brother Peter had done all the great and terrible things he did. 
"It isn't funny," said Miro. 
"I thought it was," said Ender. 
"Either we're free or we're not," said Miro. "Either the story's true or it 
isn't." 
"The point is that we have to believe that it's true in order to live as 
civilized human beings," said Ender. 
"No, that's not the point at all," said Miro. "Because if it's a lie, why should 
we bother to live as civilized human beings?" 
"Because the species has a better chance to survive if we do," said Ender. 
"Because our genes require us to believe the story in order to enhance our 
ability to pass those genes on for many generations in the future. Because 
anybody who doesn't believe the story begins to act in unproductive, 
uncooperative ways, and eventually the community, the herd, will reject him and 
his opportunities for reproduction will be diminished-- for instance, he'll be 
put in jail-- and the genes leading to his unbelieving behavior will eventually 
be extinguished." 
"So the puppeteer requires that we believe that we're not puppets. We're forced 
to believe in free will." 
"Or so Valentine explained it to me." 
"But she doesn't really believe that, does she?" 
"Of course she doesn't. Her genes won't let her." 
Ender laughed again. But Miro was not taking this lightly, as a philosophical 
game. He was outraged. He clenched his fists and swung out his arms in a spastic 
gesture that plunged his hand into the middle of the display. It caused a shadow 
above it, a space in which no philotic rays were visible. 
True empty space. Except that now Ender could see dustmotes floating in that 
display space, catching the light from the window and the open door of the 
house. In particular one large dustmote, like a short strand of hair, a tiny 
fiber of cotton, floating brightly in the midst of space where once only the 
philotic rays had been visible. 
"Calm down," Ender said. 
"No," Miro shouted. "My puppeteer is making me furious!" 
"Shut up," said Ender. "Listen to me." 
"I'm tired of listening to you!" Nevertheless he fell silent, and listened. 
"I think you're right," said Ender. "I think that we are free, and I don't think 
it's just an illusion that we believe in because it has survival value. And I 
think we're free because we aren't just this body, acting out a genetic script. 
And we aren't some soul that God created out of nothing. We're free because we 
always existed. Right back from the beginning of time, only there was no 
beginning of time so we existed all along. Nothing ever caused us. Nothing ever 
made us. We simply are, and we always were." 
"Philotes?" asked Miro. 
"Maybe," said Ender. "Like that mote of dust in the display." 
"Where?" asked Miro. 
It was invisible now, of course, since the holographic display again dominated 
the space above the terminal. Ender reached his hand into the display, causing a 
shadow to fall upward into the hologram. He moved his hand until he revealed the 
bright dustmote he had seen before. Or maybe it wasn't the same one. Maybe it 
was another one, but it didn't matter. 
"Our bodies, the whole world around us, they're like the holographic display. 
They're real enough, but they don't show the true cause of things. It's the one 
thing we can never be sure of, just looking at the display of the universe-- why 
things are happening. But behind it all, inside it all, if we could see through 
it, we'd find the true cause of everything. Philotes that always existed, doing 
what they want." 
"Nothing always existed," said Miro. 
"Says who? The supposed beginning of this universe, that was only the start of 
the present order-- this display, all of what we think exists. But who says the 
philotes that are acting out the natural laws that began at that moment didn't 
exist before? And if the whole universe collapses back in on itself, who says 
that the philotes won't simply be released from the laws they're following now, 
and go back into..." 
"Into what?" 
"Into chaos. Darkness. Disorder. Whatever they were before this universe brought 
them together. Why couldn't they-- we-- have always existed and always continue 
to exist?" 
"So where was I between the beginning of the universe and the day I was born?" 
said Miro. 
"I don't know," said Ender. "I'm making this up as I go along." 
"And where did Jane come from? Was her philote just floating around somewhere, 
and then suddenly she was in charge of a bunch of computer programs and she 
became a person?" 
"Maybe," said Ender. 
"And even if there's some natural system that somehow assigns philotes to be in 
charge of every organism that's born or spawned or germinated, how would that 
natural system have ever created Jane? She wasn't born." 
Jane, of course, had been listening all along, and now she spoke. "Maybe it 
didn't happen," said Jane. "Maybe I have no philote of my own. Maybe I'm not 
alive." 
"No," said Miro. 
  
"Maybe," said Ender. 
"So maybe I can't die," said Jane. "Maybe when they switch me off, it's just a 
complicated program shutting down." 
"Maybe," said Ender. 
"No," said Miro. "Shutting you off is murder." 
"Maybe I only do the things I do because I'm programmed that way, without 
realizing it. Maybe I only think I'm free." 
"We've been through that argument," said Ender. 
"Maybe it's true of me, even if it isn't true of you." 
"And maybe not," said Ender. "But you've been through your own code, haven't 
you?" 
"A million times," said Jane. "I've looked at all of it." 
"Do you see anything in there to give you the illusion of free will?" 
"No," she said. "But you haven't found the free-will gene in humans, either." 
"Because there isn't one," said Miro. "Like Andrew said. What we are, at the 
core, in our essence, what we are is one philote that's been twined in with all 
the trillions of philotes that make up the atoms and molecules and cells of our 
bodies. And what you are is a philote, too, just like us." 
"Not likely," said Jane. Her face was now in the display, a shadowy face with 
the simulated philotic rays passing right through her head. 
"We're not taking odds on it," said Ender. "Nothing that actually happens is 
likely until it exists, and then it's certain. You exist." 
"Whatever it is that I am," said Jane. 
"Right now we believe that you are a self-existing entity," said Ender, "because 
we've seen you act in ways that we've learned to associate with free will. We 
have exactly as much evidence of your being a free intelligence as we have of 
ourselves being free intelligences. If it turns out that you're not, we have to 
question whether we are, either. Right now our hypothesis is that our individual 
identity, what makes us ourself, is the philote at the center of our twining. If 
we're right, then it stands to reason you might have one, too, and in that case 
we have to figure out where it is. Philotes aren't easy to find, you know. We've 
never detected one. We only suppose they exist because we've seen evidence of 
the philotic ray, which behaves as if it had two endpoints with a specific 
location in space. We don't know where you are or what you're connected to." 
"If she's like us," said Miro, "like human beings, then her connections can 
shift and split. Like when that mob formed around Grego. I've talked to him 
about how that felt. As if those people were all part of his body. And when they 
broke away and went off on their own, he felt as if he had gone through an 
amputation. I think that was philotic twining. I think those people really did 
connect to him for a while, they really were partly under his control, part of 
his self. So maybe Jane is like that, too, all those computer programs twined up 
to her, and she herself connected to whoever she has that kind of allegiance to. 
Maybe you, Andrew. Maybe me. Or partly both of us." 
"But where is she," said Ender. "If she actually has a philote-- no, if she 
actually is a philote-- then it has to have a specific location, and if we could 
find it, maybe we could keep the connections alive even when all the computers 
are cut off from her. Maybe we can keep her from dying." 
"I don't know," said Miro. "She could be anywhere." He gestured toward the 
display. Anywhere in space, is what he meant. Anywhere in the universe. And 
there in the display was Jane's head, with the philotic rays passing through it. 

"To find out where she is, we have to find out how and where she began," said 
Ender. "If she really is a philote, she got connected up somehow, somewhere." 
"A detective following up a three-thousand-year-old trail," said Jane. "Won't 
this be fun, watching you do all this in the next few months." 
Ender ignored her. "And if we're going to do that, we have to figure out how 
philotes work in the first place." 
"Grego's the physicist," said Miro. 
"He's working on faster-than-light travel," said Jane. 
"He can work on this, too," said Miro. 
"I don't want him distracted by a project that can't succeed," said Jane. 
"Listen, Jane, don't you want to live through this?" said Ender. 
"I can't anyway, so why waste time?" 
"She's just being a martyr," said Miro. 
"No I'm not," said Jane. "I'm being practical." 
"You're being a fool," said Ender. "Grego can't come up with a theory to give us 
faster-than-light travel just by sitting and thinking about the physics of 
light, or whatever. If it worked that way, we would have achieved 
faster-than-light travel three thousand years ago, because there were hundreds 
of physicists working on it then, back when philotic rays and the Park 
Instantaneity Principle were first thought of. If Grego thinks of it it's 
because of some flash of insight, some absurd connection he makes in his mind, 
and 
that won't come from concentrating intelligently on a single train of thought." 
"I know that," said Jane. 
"I know you know it. Didn't you tell me you were bringing those people from Path 
into our projects for that specific reason? To be untrained, intuitive 
thinkers?" 
"I just don't want you to waste time." 
"You just don't want to get your hopes up," said Ender. "You just don't want to 
admit that there's a chance that you might live, because then you'd start to 
fear death." 
"I already fear death." 
"You already think of yourself as dead," said Ender. "There's a difference." 
"I know," murmured Miro. 
"So, dear Jane, I don't care whether you're willing to admit that there's a 
possibility of your survival or not," said Ender. "We will work on this, and we 
will ask Grego to think about it, and while we're at it, you will repeat our 
entire conversation here to those people on Path--" 
"Han Fei-tzu and Si Wang-mu." 
"Them," said Ender. "Because they can be thinking about this, too." 
"No," said Jane. 
"Yes," said Ender. 
"I want to see the real problems solved before I die-- I want Lusitania to be 
saved, and the godspoken of Path to be freed, and the descolada to be tamed or 
destroyed. And I won't have you slowing that down by trying to work on the 
impossible project of saving me." 
"You aren't God," said Ender. "You don't know how to solve any of these problems 
anyway, and so you don't know how they're going to be solved, and so you have no 
idea whether finding out what you are in order to save you will help or hurt 
those other projects, and you certainly don't know whether concentrating on 
those other problems will get them solved any sooner than they would be if we 
all went on a picnic today and played lawn tennis till sundown." 
"What the hell is lawn tennis?" asked Miro. 
But Ender and Jane were silent, glaring at each other. Or rather, Ender was 
glaring at the image of Jane in the computer display, and that image was glaring 
back at him. 
"You don't know that you're right," said Jane. 
"And you don't know that I'm wrong," said Ender. 
"It's my life," said Jane. 
"The hell it is," said Ender. "You're part of me and Miro, too, and you're tied 
up with the whole future of humanity, and the pequeninos and the hive queen too, 
for that matter. Which reminds me-- while you're having Han what's-his-name and 
Si Wang whoever-she-is--" 
"Mu." 
"--work on this philotic thing, I'm going to talk to the hive queen. I don't 
think I've particularly discussed you with her. She's got to know more about 
philotes than we do, since she has a philotic connection with all her workers." 
"I haven't said I'm going to involve Han Fei-tzu and Si Wang-mu in your silly 
save-Jane project." 
"But you will," said Ender. 
"Why will I?" 
"Because Miro and I both love you and need you and you have no right to die on 
us without at least trying to live." 
"I can't let things like that influence me." 
"Yes you can," said Miro. "Because if it weren't for things like that I would 
have killed myself long ago." 
"I'm not going to kill myself." 
"If you don't help us try to find a way to save you, then that's exactly what 
you're doing," said Ender. 
Jane's face disappeared from the display over the terminal. 
"Running away won't help, either," said Ender. 
"Leave me alone," said Jane. "I have to think about this for a while." 
"Don't worry, Miro," said Ender. "She'll do it." 
"That's right," said Jane. 
"Back already?" asked Ender. 
"I think very quickly." 
"And you're going to work on this, too?" 
"I consider it my fourth project," said Jane. "I'm telling Han Fei-tzu and Si 
Wang-mu about it right now." 
"She's showing off," said Ender. "She can carry on two conversations at once, 
and she likes to brag about it to make us feel inferior." 
"You are inferior," said Jane. 
"I'm hungry," said Ender. "And thirsty." 
"Lunch," said Miro. 
"Now you're bragging," said Jane. "Showing off your bodily functions." 
"Alimentation," said Ender. "Respiration. Excretion. We can do things you can't 
do." 
"In other words, you can't think very well, but at least you can eat and breathe 
and sweat." 
"That's right," said Miro. He pulled out the bread and cheese while Ender poured 
the cold water, and they ate. Simple food, but it tasted good and they were 
satisfied. 
Table of Contents



Chapter 14 -- Virus Makers
<I've been thinking about what travel between the stars might mean for us.> 
<Besides species survival?> 
<When you send out your workers, even light-years away, you see through their 
eyes, don't you?> 
<And taste through their antennae, and feel the rhythm of every vibration. When 
they eat, I feel the crushing of the food within their jaws. That's why I almost 
always refer to myself as we, when I form my thoughts into a form that Andrew or 
you can understand, because I live my life in the constant presence of all that 
they see and taste and feel.> 
<It's not quite that way between the fathertrees. We have to try in order to 
experience each other's life. But we can do it. Here at least, on Lusitania.> 
<I can't see why the philotic connection would fail you.> 
<Then I, too, will feel all that they feel, and taste the light of another sun 
on my leaves, and hear the stories of another world. It will be like the 
wonderment that come when the humans first arrived here. We had never thought 
that anything could be different from the world we saw till then. But they 
brought strange creatures with them, and they were strange themselves, and they 
had machines that performed miracles. The other forests could hardly believe 
what our fathertrees of that time told them. I remember in fact that our 
fathertrees had a hard time believing what the brothers of the tribe told them 
about the humans. Rooter bore the brunt of that, persuading them to believe that 
it wasn't a lie or madness or a joke.> 
<A joke?> 
<There are stories of trickster brothers who lie to the fathertrees, but they're 
always caught and punished terribly.> 
<Andrew tells me that such stories are told in order to encourage civilized 
behavior.> 
<It's always tempting to lie to the fathertrees. I did it sometimes myself. Not 
lying. Just exaggerating. They do it to me now, sometimes.> 
<And do you punish them?> 
<I remember which ones have lied.> 
<If we have a worker who doesn't obey, we make him be alone and he dies.> 
<A brother who lies too much has no chance of being a fathertree. They know 
this. They only lie to play with us. They always end up telling us the truth.> 
<What if a whole tribe lies to their fathertrees? How would you ever know?> 
<You might better speak of a tribe cutting down its own fathertrees, or burning 
them.> 
<Has it ever happened?> 
<Have the workers ever turned against the hive queen and killed her?> 
<How could they? Then they would die.> 
<You see. There are some things too terrible to think about. Instead I'll think 
of how it will feel when a fathertree first puts in his roots on another planet, 
and pushes out his branches into an alien sky, and drinks in sunlight from a 
strange star.> 
<You'll soon learn that there are no strange stars, no alien skies.> 
<No?> 
  
<Only skies and stars, in all their varieties. Each one with its own flavor, and 
all flavors good.> 
<Now you think like a tree. Flavors! Of skies!> 
<I have tasted the heat of many stars, and all of them were sweet.> 
  
  
  
"You're asking me to help you in your rebellion against the gods?" 
Wang-mu remained bowed before her mistress-- her former mistress-- saying 
nothing. In her heart she had words she might have uttered. No, my mistress, I 
am asking you to help us in our struggle against the terrible bondage forced on 
the godspoken by Congress. No, my mistress, I'm asking you to remember your 
proper duty to your father, which even the godspoken may not ignore if they 
would be righteous. No, my mistress, I'm asking you to help us discover a way to 
save a decent and helpless people, the pequeninos, from xenocide. 
But Wang-mu said nothing, because this was one of the first lessons she learned 
from Master Han. When you have wisdom that another person knows that he needs, 
you give it freely. But when the other person doesn't yet know that he needs 
your wisdom, you keep it to yourself. Food only looks good to a hungry man. 
Qing-jao was not hungry for wisdom from Wang-mu, and never would be. So silence 
was all that Wang-mu could offer. She could only hope that Qing-jao would find 
her own road to proper obedience, compassionate decency, or the struggle for 
freedom. 
Any motive would do, as long as Qing-jao's brilliant mind could be enlisted on 
their side. Wang-mu had never felt so useless in her life as now, watching 
Master Han labor over the questions that Jane had given him. In order to think 
about faster-than-light travel he was studying physics; how could Wang-mu help 
him, when she was only learning about geometry? To think about the descolada 
virus he was studying microbiology; Wang-mu was barely learning the concepts of 
gaialogy and evolution. And how could she be of any help when he contemplated 
the nature of Jane? She was a child of manual workers, and her hands, not her 
mind, held her future. Philosophy was as far above her as the sky was above the 
earth. "But the sky only seems to be far away from you," said Master Han, when 
she told him this. "Actually it is all around you. You breathe it in and you 
breathe it out, even when you labor with your hands in the mud. That is true 
philosophy." But she understood from this only that Master Han was kind, and 
wanted to make her feel better about her uselessness. 
Qing-jao, though, would not be useless. So Wang-mu had handed her a paper with 
the project names and passwords on them. 
"Does Father know you're giving these to me?" 
Wang-mu said nothing. Actually, Master Han had suggested it, but Wangmu thought 
it might be better if Qing-jao didn't know at this point that Wang-mu came as an 
emissary from her father. 
Qing-jao interpreted Wang-mu's silence as Wang-mu assumed she would-- that 
Wang-mu was coming secretly, on her own, to ask for Qingjao's help. 
"If Father himself had asked me, I would have said yes, for that is my duty as a 
daughter," said Qing-jao. 
But Wang-mu knew that Qing-jao wasn't listening to her father these days. She 
might say that she would be obedient, but in fact her father filled her with 
such distress that, far from saying yes, Qing-jao would have crumpled to the 
floor and traced lines all day because of the terrible conflict in her heart, 
knowing that her father wanted her to disobey the gods. 
"I owe nothing to you," said Qing-jao. "You were a false and disloyal servant to 
me. Never was there a more unworthy and useless secret maid than you. To me your 
presence in this house is like the presence of dung beetles at the supper 
table." 
Again, Wang-mu held her tongue. However, she also refrained from deepening her 
bow. She had assumed the humble posture of a servant at the beginning of this 
conversation, but she would not now humiliate herself in the desperate kowtow of 
a penitent. Even the humblest of us have our pride, and I know, Mistress 
Qing-jao, that I have caused you no harm, that I am more faithful to you now 
than you are to yourself. 
Qing-jao turned back to her terminal and typed in the first project name, which 
was "UNGLUING," a literal translation of the word descolada. "This is all 
nonsense anyway," she said as she scanned the documents and charts that had been 
sent from Lusitania. "It is hard to believe that anyone would commit the treason 
of communicating with Lusitania only to receive nonsense like this. It is all 
impossible as science. No world could have developed only one virus that was so 
complex that it could include within it the genetic code for every other species 
on the planet. It would be a waste of time for me even to consider this." 
"Why not?" asked Wang-mu. It was all right for her to speak now-- because even 
as Qing-jao declared that she was refusing to discuss the material, she was 
discussing it. "After all, evolution produced only one human race." 
"But on Earth there were dozens of related species. There is no species without 
kin-- if you weren't such a stupid rebellious girl you would understand that. 
Evolution could never have produced a system as sparse as this one." 
"Then how do you explain these documents from the people of Lusitania?" 
"How do you know they actually come from there? You have only the word of this 
computer program. Maybe it thinks this is all. Or maybe the scientists there are 
very bad, with no sense of their duty to collect all possible information. There 
aren't two dozen species in this whole report-- and look, they're all paired up 
in the most absurd fashion. Impossible to have so few species." 
"But what if they're right?" 
"How can they be right? The people of Lusitania have been confined in a tiny 
compound from the beginning. They've only seen what these little pig-men have 
shown them-- how do they know the pig-men aren't lying to them?" 
Calling them pig-men-- is that how you convince yourself, my mistress, that 
helping Congress won't lead to xenocide? If you call them by an animal name, 
does that mean that it's all right to slaughter them? If you accuse them of 
lying, does that mean that they're worthy of extinction? But Wang-mu said 
nothing of this. She only asked the same question again. "What if this is the 
true picture of the life forms of Lusitania, and how the descolada works within 
them?" 
"If it were true, then I would have to read and study these documents in order 
to make any intelligent comment about them. But they aren't true. How far had I 
taken you in your learning, before you betrayed me? Didn't I teach you about 
gaialogy?" 
"Yes, Mistress." 
"Well, there you are. Evolution is the means by which the planetary organism 
adapts to changes in its environment. If there is more heat from the sun, then 
the life forms of the planet must be able to adjust their relative populations 
in order to compensate and lower the temperature. Remember the classic 
Daisyworld thought-experiment?" 
"But that experiment had only a single species over the whole face of the 
planet," said Wang-mu. "When the sun grew too hot, then white daisies grew to 
reflect the light back into space, and when the sun grew too cool, dark daisies 
grew to absorb the light and hold it as heat." Wang-mu was proud that she could 
remember Daisyworld so clearly. 
"No no no," said Qing-jao. "You have missed the point, of course. The point is 
that there must already have been dark daisies, even when the light daisies were 
dominant, and light daisies when the world was covered with darkness. Evolution 
can't produce new species on demand. It is creating new species constantly, as 
genes drift and are spliced and broken by radiation and passed between species 
by viruses. Thus no species ever 'breeds true.'" 
Wang-mu didn't understand the connection yet, and her face must have revealed 
her puzzlement. 
"Am I still your teacher, after all? Must I keep my side of the bargain, even 
though you have given up on yours?" 
Please, said Wang-mu silently. I would serve you forever, if you would only help 
your father in this work. 
  
"As long as the whole species is together, interbreeding constantly," said 
Qing-jao, "individuals never drift too far, genetically speaking; their genes 
are constantly being recombined with other genes in the same species, so the 
variations are spread evenly through the whole population with each new 
generation. Only when the environment puts them under such stress that one of 
those randomly drifting traits suddenly has survival value, only then will all 
those in that particular environment who lack that trait die out, until the new 
trait, instead of being an occasional sport, is now a universal definer of the 
new species. That's the fundamental tenet of gaialogy-- constant genetic drift 
is essential for the survival of life as a whole. According to these documents, 
Lusitania is a world with absurdly few species, and no possibility of genetic 
drift because these impossible viruses are constantly correcting any changes 
that might come up. Not only could such a system never evolve, but also it would 
be impossible for life to continue to exist-- they couldn't adapt to change." 
"Maybe there are no changes on Lusitania." 
"Don't be so foolish, Wang-mu. It makes me ashamed to think I ever tried to 
teach you. All stars fluctuate. All planets wobble and change in their orbits. 
We have been observing many worlds for three thousand years, and in that time we 
have learned what Earthbound scientists in the years before that could never 
learn-- which behaviors are common to all planets and stellar systems, and which 
are unique to the Earth and the Sol System. I tell you that it is impossible for 
a planet like Lusitania to exist for more than a few decades without 
experiencing life-threatening environmental change-- temperature fluctuations, 
orbital disturbances, seismic and volcanic cycles-- how would a system of really 
only a handful of species ever cope with that? If the world has only light 
daisies, how will it ever warm itself when the sun cools? If its lifeforms are 
all carbon dioxide users, how will they heal themselves when the oxygen in the 
atmosphere reaches poisonous levels? Your so-called friends in Lusitania are 
fools, to send you nonsense like this. If they were real scientists, they would 
know that their results are impossible." 
Qing-jao pressed a key and the display over her terminal went blank. "You have 
wasted time that I don't have. If you have nothing better than this to offer, do 
not come to me again. You are less than nothing to me. You are a bug floating in 
my waterglass. You defile the whole glass, not just the place where you float. I 
wake up in pain, knowing you are in this house." 
Then I'm hardly "nothing" to you, am I? said Wang-mu silently. It sounds to me 
as if I'm very important to you indeed. You may be very brilliant, Qing-jao, but 
you do not understand yourself any better than anybody else does. 
"Because you are a stupid common girl, you do not understand me," said Qing-jao. 
"I have told you to leave." 
"But your father is master of this house, and Master Han has asked me to stay." 
"Little stupid-person, little sister-of-pigs, if I cannot ask you to leave the 
whole house, I have certainly implied that I would like you to leave my room." 
Wang-mu bowed her head till it almost-- almost-- touched the floor. Then she 
backed out of the room, so as not to show her back parts to her mistress. If you 
treat me this way, then I will treat you like a great lord, and if you do not 
detect the irony in my actions, then who of the two of us is the fool? 



Master Han was not in his room when Wang-mu returned. He might be at the toilet 
and return in a moment. He might be performing some ritual of the godspoken, in 
which case he could be gone for hours. Wang-mu was too full of questions to wait 
for him. She brought up the project documents on the terminal, knowing that Jane 
would be watching, monitoring her. That Jane had no doubt monitored all that 
happened in Qing-jao's room. 
Still, Jane waited for Wang-mu to phrase the questions she had got from Qing-jao 
before she started trying to answer. And then Jane answered first the question 
of veracity. 
"The documents from Lusitania are genuine enough," said Jane. "Ela and Novinha 
and Ouanda and all the others who have studied with them are deeply specialized, 
yes, but within their specialty they're very good. If Qing-jao had read the Life 
of Human, she would see how these dozen species-pairs function." 
"But what she says is still hard for me to understand," said Wang-mu. "I've been 
trying to think how it could all be true-- that there are too few species for a 
real gaialogy to develop, and yet the planet Lusitania is still well-enough 
regulated to sustain life. Could it possibly be that there is no environmental 
stress on Lusitania?" 
"No," said Jane. "I have access to all the astronomical data from the satellites 
there, and in the time humanity has been present in the Lusitania system, 
Lusitania and its sun have shown all the normal fluctuations. Right now there 
seems to be an overall trend of global cooling." 
"Then how will the life forms on Lusitania respond?" asked Wang-mu. "The 
descolada virus won't let them evolve-- it tries to destroy anything strange, 
which is why it's going to kill the humans and the hive queen, if it can." 
Jane, whose small image sat in lotus position in the air over Master Han's 
terminal, held up a hand. "One moment," she said. 
Then she lowered her hand. "I have been reporting your questions to my friends, 
and Ela is very excited." 
A new face appeared in the display, just behind and above the image of Jane. She 
was a dark-skinned, Negroid-looking woman; or some mix, perhaps, since she was 
not that dark, and her nose was narrow. This is Elanora, thought Wang-mu. Jane 
is showing me a woman on a world many lightyears away; is she also showing my 
face to her? What does this Ela make of me? Do I seem hopelessly stupid to her? 
But Ela clearly was thinking nothing about Wang-mu at all. She was speaking, 
instead, of Wang-mu's questions. "Why doesn't the descolada virus permit 
variety? That should be a trait with negative survival value, and yet the 
descolada survives. Wang-mu must think I'm such an idiot, not to have thought of 
this before. But I'm not a gaialogist, and I grew up on Lusitania, so I never 
questioned it, I just figured that whatever the Lusitanian gaialogy was, it 
worked-- and then I kept studying the descolada. What does Wang-mu think?" 
Wang-mu was appalled to hear these words from this stranger. What had Jane told 
Ela about her? How could Ela even imagine that Wang-mu would think Ela was an 
idiot, when she was a scientist and Wang-mu was only a servant girl? 
"How can it matter what I think?" said Wang-mu. 
"What do you think?" said Jane. "Even if you can't think why it might matter, 
Ela wants to know." 
So Wang-mu told her speculations. "This is very stupid to think of, because it's 
only a microscopic virus, but the descolada must be doing it all. After all, it 
contains the genes of every species within it, doesn't it? So it must take care 
of evolution by itself. Instead of all that genetic drift, the descolada must do 
the drifting. It could, couldn't it? It could change the genes of a whole 
species, even while the species is still alive. It wouldn't have to wait for 
evolution." 
There was a pause again, with Jane holding up her hand. She must be showing 
Wang-mu's face to Ela, letting her hear Wang-mu's words from her own lips. 
"Nossa Senhora," whispered Ela. "On this world, the descolada is Gaia. Of 
course. That would explain everything, wouldn't it? So few species, because the 
descolada only permits the species that it has tamed. It turned a whole 
planetary gaialogy into something almost as simple as Daisyworld itself." 
Wang-mu thought it was almost funny, to hear a highly-educated scientist like 
Ela refer back to Daisyworld, as if she were still a new student, a 
half-educated child like Wang-mu. 
Another face appeared next to Ela's, this time an older Caucasian man, perhaps 
sixty years old, with whitening hair and a very quieting, peaceful look to his 
face. "But part of Wang-mu's question is still unanswered," said the man. "How 
could the descolada ever evolve? How could there have ever been proto-descolada 
viruses? Why would such a limited gaialogy have survival preference over the 
slow evolutionary model that every other world with life on it has had?" 
"I never asked that question," said Wang-mu. "Qing-jao asked the first part of 
it, but the rest of it is his question." 
"Hush," said Jane. "Qing-jao never asked the question. She used it as a reason 
not to study the Lusitanian documents. Only you really asked the question, and 
just because Andrew Wiggin understands your own question better than you do 
doesn't mean it isn't still yours." 
So this was Andrew Wiggin, the Speaker for the Dead. He didn't look ancient and 
wise at all, not the way Master Han did. Instead this Wiggin looked foolishly 
surprised, the way all round-eyes did, and his face changed with every momentary 
mood, as if it were out of control. Yet there was that look of peace about him. 
Perhaps he had some of the Buddha in him. Buddha, after all, had found his own 
way onto the Path. Maybe this Andrew Wiggin had found a way onto the Path, even 
though he wasn't Chinese at all. 
Wiggin was still asking the questions that he thought were Wang-mu's. "The odds 
against the natural occurrence of such a virus are-- unbelievable. Long before a 
virus evolved that could link species together and control a whole gaialogy, the 
proto-descoladas would have destroyed all life. There wasn't any time for 
evolution-- the virus is just too destructive. It would have killed everything 
in its earliest form, and then died out itself when it ran out of organisms to 
pillage." 
"Maybe the pillaging came later," said Ela. "Maybe it evolved in symbiosis with 
some other species that benefited from its ability to genetically transform all 
the individuals within it, all within a matter of days or weeks. It might only 
have extended to other species later." 
"Maybe," said Andrew. 
A thought occurred to Wang-mu. "The descolada is like one of the gods," she 
said. "It comes and changes everybody whether they like it or not." 
"Except the gods have the decency to go away," said Wiggin. 
He responded so quickly that Wang-mu realized that Jane must now be transmitting 
everything that was done or said instantaneously across the billions of 
kilometers of space between them. From what Wang-mu had learned about ansible 
costs, this sort of thing would be possible only for the military; a business 
that tried a realtime ansible linkup would pay enough money to provide housing 
for every poor person on an entire planet. And I'm getting this for free, 
because of Jane. I'm seeing their faces and they're seeing mine, even at the 
moment they speak. 
"Do they?" asked Ela. "I thought the whole problem that Path was having is that 
the gods won't go away and leave them alone." 
Wang-mu answered with bitterness. "The gods are like the descolada in every way. 
They destroy anything they don't like, and the people they do like they 
transform into something that they never were. Qing-jao was once a good and 
bright and funny girl, and now she's spiteful and angry and cruel, all because 
of the gods." 
"All because of genetic alteration by Congress," said Wiggin. "A deliberate 
change introduced by people who were forcing you to fit their own plan." 
"Yes," said Ela. "Just like the descolada." 
"What do you mean?" asked Wiggin. 
"A deliberate change introduced here by people who were trying to force 
Lusitania to fit their own plan." 
"What people?" asked Wang-mu. "Who would do such a terrible thing?" 
"It's been at the back of my mind for years," said Ela. "It bothered me that 
there were so few life forms on Lusitania-- you remember, Andrew, that was part 
of the reason we discovered that the descolada was involved in the pairing of 
species. We knew that there was a catastrophic change here that wiped out all 
those species and restructured the few survivors. The descolada was more 
devastating to most life on Lusitania than a collision with an asteroid. But we 
always assumed because we found the descolada here that it evolved here. I knew 
it made no sense-- just what Qing-jao said-- but since it had obviously 
happened, then it didn't matter whether it made sense or not. But what if it 
didn't happen? What if the descolada came from the gods? Not god gods, of 
course, but some sentient species that developed this virus artificially?" 
"That would be monstrous," said Wiggin. "To create a poison like that and send 
it out to other worlds, not knowing or caring what you kill." 
"Not a poison," said Ela. "If it really does handle planetary systems 
regulation, couldn't the descolada be a device for terraforming other worlds? 
We've never tried terraforming anything-- we humans and the buggers before us 
only settled on worlds whose native life forms had brought them to a stasis that 
was similar to the stasis of Earth. An oxygen-rich atmosphere that sucked out 
carbon dioxide fast enough to keep the planet temperate as the star burns 
hotter. What if there's a species somewhere that decided that in order to 
develop planets suitable for colonization, they should send out the descolada 
virus in advance-- thousands of years in advance, maybe-- to intelligently 
transform planets into exactly the conditions they need? And then when they 
arrive, ready to set up housekeeping, maybe they have the countervirus that 
switches off the descolada so that they can establish a real gaialogy." 
"Or maybe they developed the virus so that it doesn't interfere with them or the 
animals they need," said Wiggin. "Maybe they destroyed all the nonessential life 
on every world." 
"Either way, it explains everything. The problems I've been facing, that I can't 
make sense of the impossibly unnatural arrangements of molecules within the 
descolada-- they continue to exist only because the virus works constantly to 
maintain all those internal contradictions. But I could never conceive of how 
such a self-contradictory molecule evolved in the first place. All this is 
answered if I know that somehow it was designed and made. What Wang-mu said 
Qing-jao complained about, that the descolada couldn't evolve and Lusitania's 
gaialogy couldn't exist in nature. Well, it doesn't exist in nature. It's an 
artificial virus and an artificial gaialogy." 
"You mean this actually helps?" asked Wang-mu. 
Their faces showed that they had virtually forgotten she was still part of the 
conversation, in their excitement. 
"I don't know yet," said Ela. "But it's a new way of looking at it. For one 
thing, if I can start with the assumption that everything in the virus has a 
purpose, instead of the normal jumble of switched-on and switched-off genes that 
occur in nature-- well, that'll help. And just knowing it was designed gives me 
hope that I can undesign it. Or redesign it." 
"Don't get ahead of yourself," said Wiggin. "This is still just a hypothesis." 
"It rings true," said Ela. "It has the feel of truth. It explains so much." 
"I feel that way, too," said Wiggin. "But we have to try it out with the people 
who are most affected by it." 
"Where's Planter?" asked Ela. "We can talk to Planter." 
"And Human and Rooter," said Wiggin. "We have to try this idea with the 
fathertrees." 
"This is going to hit them like a hurricane," said Ela. Then she seemed to 
realize the implications of her own words. "It is, really, not just a figure of 
speech, it's going to hurt. To find out that their whole world is a terraforming 
project." 
"More important than their world," said Wiggin. "Themselves. The third life. The 
descolada gave them everything they are and the most fundamental facts of their 
life. Remember, our best guess is that they evolved as mammal-like creatures who 
mated directly, male to female, the little mothers sucking life from the male 
sexual organs, a half-dozen at a time. That's who they were. Then the descolada 
transformed them, and sterilized the males until after they died and turned into 
trees." 
"Their very nature--" 
"It was a hard thing for human beings to deal with, when we first realized how 
much of our behavior arose from evolutionary necessity," said Wiggin. "There are 
still numberless humans who refuse to believe it. Even if it turns out to be 
absolutely true, do you think that the pequeninos will embrace this idea as 
easily as they swallowed wonders like space travel? It's one thing to see 
creatures from another world. It's another thing to find out that neither God 
nor evolution created you-- that some scientist of another species did." 
"But if it's true--" 
"Who knows if it's true? All we'll ever know is if the idea is useful. And to 
the pequeninos, it may be so devastating that they refuse to believe it 
forever." 
"Some will hate you for telling them," said Wang-mu. "But some will be glad for 
it." 
They looked at her again-- or at least Jane's computer simulation showed them 
looking at her. "You would know, wouldn't you," said Wiggin. "You and Han 
Fei-tzu just found out that your people had been artificially enhanced." 
"And shackled, all at once," said Wang-mu. "For me and Master Han, it was 
freedom. For Qing-jao ..." 
"There'll be many like Qing-jao among the pequeninos," said Ela. "But Planter 
and Human and Rooter won't be among them, will they? They're very wise." 
"So is Qing-jao!" said Wang-mu. She spoke more hotly than she meant to. But the 
loyalty of a secret maid dies slowly. 
"We didn't mean to say she isn't," said Wiggin. "But she certainly isn't being 
wise about this, is she?" 
"Not about this," said Wang-mu. 
"That's all we meant. No one likes to find out that the story he always believed 
about his own identity is false. The pequeninos, many of them, believe that God 
made them something special, just as your godspoken believe." 
"And we're not special, none of us!" cried Wang-mu. "We're all as ordinary as 
mud! There are no godspoken. There are no gods. They care nothing about us." 
"If there aren't any gods," said Ela, mildly correcting her, "then they can 
hardly do any caring one way or another." 
"Nothing made us except for their own selfish purposes!" cried Wang-mu. "Whoever 
made the descolada-- the pequeninos are just part of their plan. And the 
godspoken, part of Congress's plan." 
"As one whose birth was requested by the government," said Wiggin, "I sympathize 
with your point of view. But your reaction is too hasty. After all, my parents 
also wanted me. And from the moment of my birth, just like every other living 
creature, I had my own purpose in life. Just because the people of your world 
were wrong about their OCD behavior being messages from the gods doesn't mean 
that there are no gods. Just because your former understanding of the purpose of 
your life is contradicted doesn't mean that you have to decide there is no 
purpose." 
"Oh, I know there's a purpose," said Wang-mu. "The Congress wanted slaves! 
That's why they created Qing-jao-- to be a slave for them. And she wants to 
continue in her slavery!" 
"That was Congress's purpose," said Wiggin. "But Qing-jao also had a mother and 
father who loved her. So did I. There are many different purposes in this world, 
many different causes of everything. Just because one cause you believed in 
turned out to be false doesn't mean that there aren't other causes that can 
still be trusted." 
"Oh I suppose so," said Wang-mu. She was now ashamed of her outbursts. 
"Don't bow your head before me," said Wiggin. "Or are you doing that, Jane?" 
Jane must have answered him, an answer that Wang-mu didn't hear. 
"I don't care what her customs are," said Wiggin. "The only reason for such 
bowing is to humiliate one person before another, and I won't have her bow that 
way to me. She's done nothing to be ashamed of. She's opened up a way of looking 
at the descolada that might just lead to the salvation of a couple of species." 
Wang-mu heard the tone of his voice. He believed this. He was honoring her, 
right from his own mouth. 
"Not me," she protested. "Qing-jao. They were her questions." 
"Qing-jao," said Ela. "She's got you totally boba about her, the way Congress 
has Qing-jao thinking about them." 
"You can't be scornful because you don't know her," said Wang-mu. "But she is 
brilliant and good and I can never be like her." 
"Gods again," said Wiggin. 
"Always gods," said Ela. 
"What do you mean?" said Wang-mu. "Qing-jao doesn't say that she's a god, and 
neither do I." 
"Yes you do," said Ela. "'Qing-jao is wise and good,' you said." 
"Brilliant and good," Wiggin corrected her. 
"'And I can never be like her,'" Ela went on. 
"Let me tell you about gods," said Wiggin. "No matter how smart or strong you 
are, there's always somebody smarter or stronger, and when you run into somebody 
who's stronger and smarter than anybody, you think, This is a god. This is 
perfection. But I can promise you that there's somebody else somewhere else 
who'll make your god look like a maggot by comparison. And somebody smarter or 
stronger or better in some way. So let me tell you what I think about gods. I 
think a real god is not going to be so scared or angry that he tries to keep 
other people down. For Congress to genetically alter people to make them smarter 
and more creative, that could have been a godlike, generous gift. But they were 
scared, so they hobbled the people of Path. They wanted to stay in control. A 
real god doesn't care about control. A real god already has control of 
everything that needs controlling. Real gods would want to teach you how to be 
just like them." 
"Qing-jao wanted to teach me," said Wang-mu. 
"But only as long as you obeyed and did what she wanted," said Jane. 
"I'm not worthy," said Wang-mu. "I'm too stupid to ever learn to be as wise as 
her." 
"And yet you knew I spoke the truth," said Jane, "when all Qing-jao could see 
were lies." 
"Are you a god?" asked Wang-mu. 
"What the godspoken and the pequeninos are only just about to learn about 
themselves, I've known all along. I was made." 
"Nonsense," said Wiggin. "Jane, you've always believed you sprang whole from the 
head of Zeus." 
"I am not Minerva, thanks," said Jane. 
"As far as we know you just happened," said Wiggin. "Nobody planned you." 
"How comforting," said Jane. "So while you can all name your creators-- or at 
least your parents or some paternalistic government agency-- I'm the one genuine 
accident in the universe." 
"You can't have it both ways," said Wiggin. "Either somebody had a purpose for 
you or you were an accident. That's what an accident is-- something that 
happened without anyone purposing it. So are you going to be resentful either 
way? The people of Path are going to resent Congress like crazy, once they all 
find out what's been done to them. Are you going to be resentful because nobody 
did anything to you?" 
"I can if I want," said Jane, but it was a mockery of childish spite. 
"I'll tell you what I think," said Wiggin. "I think you don't grow up until you 
stop worrying about other people's purposes or lack of them and find the 
purposes you believe in for yourself." 



Ender and Ela explained everything to Valentine first, probably just because she 
happened to come to the laboratory right then, looking for Ender about something 
entirely unrelated. It all rang true to her as it had to Ela and Ender. And, 
like them, Valentine knew they couldn't evaluate the hypothesis of the descolada 
as regulator of Lusitania's gaialogy until they had told the idea to the 
pequeninos and heard their response. 
Ender proposed that they should try it out on Planter first, before they tried 
to explain anything to Human or Rooter. Ela and Valentine agreed with him. 
Neither Ela and Ender, who had talked with fathertrees for years, felt 
comfortable enough with their language to say anything easily. More important, 
though, was the unspoken fact that they simply felt more kinship with the 
mammal-like brothers than they ever could with a tree. How could they guess from 
looking at a tree what it was thinking or how it was responding to them? No, if 
they had to say something difficult to a pequenino, it would be first to a 
brother, not to a fathertree. 
Of course, once they called Planter in to Ela's office, closed the door, and 
started to explain, Ender realized that talking to a brother was hardly an 
improvement. Even after thirty years of living and working with them, Ender 
still wasn't good at reading any but the crudest and most obvious of pequenino 
body language. Planter listened in seeming unconcern as Ender explained what 
they had thought of during the conversation with Jane and Wang-mu. He wasn't 
impassive. Rather he seemed to sit as restlessly in his chair as a small boy, 
constantly shifting, looking away from them, gazing off into space as if their 
words were unspeakably boring. Ender knew, of course, that eye contact didn't 
mean the same thing to the pequeninos that it did to humans; they neither sought 
it nor avoided it. Where you looked while you were listening was almost 
completely unimportant to them. But usually the pequeninos who worked closely 
with humans tried to act in ways that human beings would interpret as paying 
attention. Planter was good at it, but right now he wasn't even trying. 
Not till they had explained it all did Ender realize how much self-restraint 
Planter had shown even to remain on the chair until they were done. The moment 
they told him they were finished, he bounded off the chair and began to run-- 
no, to scamper around the room, touching everything. Not striking it, not 
lashing out with violence as a human being might have, hitting things, throwing 
things. Rather he was stroking everything he found, feeling the textures. Ender 
stood, wanting to reach out to him, to offer some comfort-- for he knew enough 
of pequenino behavior to recognize this as such aberrant behavior that it could 
only mean great distress. 
Planter ran until he was exhausted, and then he went on, lurching around the 
room drunkenly until at last he bumped into Ender and threw his arms around him, 
clinging to him. For a moment Ender thought to embrace him back, but then he 
remembered that Planter wasn't human. An embrace didn't call for an answering 
embrace. Planter was clinging to him as he would cling to a tree. Seeking the 
comfort of a trunk. A safe place to hold onto until the danger passed. There 
would be less, not more comfort if Ender responded like a human and hugged him 
back. This was a time when Ender had to answer like a tree. So he held still and 
waited. Waited and held still. Until at last the trembling stopped. 
When Planter pulled away from him, both their bodies were covered with sweat. I 
guess there's a limit to how treelike I can be, thought Ender. Or do 
brothertrees and fathertrees give off moisture to the brothers who cling to 
them? 
"This is very surprising," whispered Planter. 
The words were so absurdly mild, compared to the scene that had just played out 
before them, that Ender couldn't help laughing aloud. 
"Yes," said Ender. "I imagine it is." 
"It's not funny to them," Ela said. 
"He knows that," said Valentine. 
"He mustn't laugh, then," she said. "You can't laugh when Planter's in so much 
pain." And then she burst into tears. 
Valentine put a hand on her shoulder. "He laughs, you cry," she said. "Planter 
runs around and climbs trees. What strange animals we all are." 
"Everything comes from the descolada," said Planter. "The third life, the 
mothertree, the fathertrees. Maybe even our minds. Maybe we were only tree rats 
when the descolada came and made false ramen out of us." 
"Real ramen," said Valentine. 
"We don't know it's true," said Ela. "It's a hypothesis." 
"It's very very very very very true," said Planter. "Truer than truth." 
"How do you know?" 
"Everything fits. Planetary regulation-- I know about this, I studied gaialogy 
and the whole time I thought, how can this teacher tell us these things when 
every pequenino can look around and see that they're false? But if we know that 
the descolada is changing us, making us act to regulate the planetary systems--" 

"What can the descolada possibly make you do that could regulate the planet?" 
said Ela. 
"You haven't known us long enough," said Planter. "We haven't told you 
everything because we were afraid you'd think we were silly. Now you'll know 
that we aren't silly, we're just acting out what a virus tells us to do. We're 
slaves, not fools." 
It startled Ender to realize that Planter had just confessed that the pequeninos 
still took some pains to try to impress human beings. "What behaviors of yours 
have anything to do with planetary regulation?" 
"Trees," said Planter. "How many forests are there, all over the world? 
Transpiring constantly. Turning carbon dioxide into oxygen. Carbon dioxide is a 
greenhouse gas. When there's more of it in the atmosphere, the world gets 
warmer. So what would we do to make the world get cooler?" 
"Plant more forests," said Ela. "To use up more CO2 so that more heat could 
escape into space." 
"Yes," said Planter. "But think about how we plant our trees." 
The trees grow from the bodies of the dead, thought Ender. "War," he said. 
"There are quarrels between tribes, and sometimes they make small wars," said 
Planter. "Those would be nothing on a planetary scale. But the great wars that 
sweep across the whole world-- millions and millions of brothers die in these 
wars, and all of them become trees. Within months the forests of the world could 
double in size and number. That would make a difference, wouldn't it?" 
"Yes," said Ela. 
"A lot more efficiently than anything that would happen through natural 
evolution," said Ender. 
"And then the wars stop," said Planter. "We always think there are great causes 
for these wars, that they're struggles between good and evil. And now all the 
time they are nothing but planetary regulation." 
"No," said Valentine. "The need to fight, the rage, that might come from the 
descolada, but it doesn't mean the causes you fought for are--" 
"The cause we fight for is planetary regulation," said Planter. "Everything 
fits. How do you think we help with warming the planet?" 
"I don't know," said Ela. "Even trees eventually die of old age." 
"You don't know because you've come during a warm time, not a cold one. But when 
the winters get bad, we build houses. The brothertrees give themselves to us to 
make houses. All of us, not just the ones who live in cold places. We all build 
houses, and the forests are reduced by half, by three-quarters. We thought this 
was a great sacrifice the brothertrees made for the sake of the tribe, but now I 
see that it's the descolada, wanting more carbon dioxide in the atmosphere to 
warm the planet." 
"It's still a great sacrifice," said Ender. 
"All our great epics," said Planter. "All our heroes. Just brothers acting out 
the will of the descolada." 
"So what?" said Valentine. 
"How can you say that? I learn that our lives are nothing, that we're only tools 
used by a virus to regulate the global ecosystem, and you call it nothing?" 
"Yes, I call it nothing," said Valentine. "We human beings are no different. It 
may not be a virus, but we still spend most of our time acting out our genetic 
destiny. Take the differences between males and females. Males naturally tend 
toward a broadcast strategy of reproduction. Since males make an almost infinite 
supply of sperm and it costs them nothing to deploy it--" 
"Not nothing," said Ender. 
"Nothing," said Valentine, "just to deploy it. Their most sensible reproductive 
strategy is to deposit it in every available female-- and to make special 
efforts to deposit it in the healthiest females, the ones most likely to bring 
their offspring to adulthood. A male does best, reproductively, if he wanders 
and copulates as widely as possible." 
"I've done the wandering," said Ender. "Somehow I missed out on the copulating." 

"I'm speaking of overall trends," said Valentine. "There are always strange 
individuals who don't follow the norms. The female strategy is just the 
opposite, Planter. Instead of millions and millions of sperm, they only have one 
egg a month, and each child represents an enormous investment of effort. So 
females need stability. They need to be sure there'll always be plenty of food. 
We also spend large amounts of time relatively helpless, unable to find or 
gather food. Far from being wanderers, we females need to establish and stay. If 
we can't get that, then our next best strategy is to mate with the strongest and 
healthiest possible males. But best of all is to get a strong healthy male 
who'll stay and provide, instead of wandering and copulating at will. 
"So there are two pressures on males. The one is to spread their seed, violently 
if necessary. The other is to be attractive to females by being stable 
providers-- by suppressing and containing the need to wander and the tendency to 
use force. Likewise, there are two pressures on females. The one is to get the 
seed of the strongest, most virile males so their infants will have good genes, 
which would make the violent, forceful males attractive to them. The other is to 
get the protection of the most stable males, nonviolent males, so their infants 
will be protected and provided for and as many as possible will reach adulthood. 

"Our whole history, all that I've ever found in all my wanderings as an 
itinerant historian before I finally unhooked myself from this reproductively 
unavailable brother of mine and had a family-- it can all be interpreted as 
people blindly acting out those genetic strategies. We get pulled in those two 
directions. 
"Our great civilizations are nothing more than social machines to create the 
ideal female setting, where a woman can count on stability; our legal and moral 
codes that try to abolish violence and promote permanence of ownership and 
enforce contracts-- those represent the primary female strategy, the taming of 
the male. 
"And the tribes of wandering barbarians outside the reach of civilization, those 
follow the mainly male strategy. Spread the seed. Within the tribe, the 
strongest, most dominant males take possession of the best females, either 
through formal polygamy or spur-of-the-moment copulations that the other males 
are powerless to resist. But those low-status males are kept in line because the 
leaders take them to war and let them rape and pillage their brains out when 
they win a victory. They act out sexual desirability by proving themselves in 
combat, and then kill all the rival males and copulate with their widowed 
females when they win. Hideous, monstrous behavior-- but also a viable 
acting-out of the genetic strategy." 
Ender found himself very uncomfortable, hearing Valentine talk this way. He knew 
all this was true as far as it went, and he had heard it all before, but it 
still, in a small way, made him as uncomfortable as Planter was to learn similar 
things about his own people. Ender wanted to deny it all, to say, Some of us 
males are naturally civilized. But in his own life, hadn't he performed the acts 
of dominance and war? Hadn't he wandered? In that context, his decision to stay 
on Lusitania was really a decision to abandon the male-dominant social model 
that had been engrained in him as a young soldier in battle school, and become a 
civilized man in a stable family. 
Yet even then, he had married a woman who turned out to have little interest in 
having more children. A woman with whom marriage had turned out to be anything 
but civilized, in the end. If I follow the male model, then I'm a failure. No 
child anywhere who carries on my genes. No woman who accepts my rule. I'm 
definitely atypical. 
But since I haven't reproduced, my atypical genes will die with me, and thus the 
male and female social models are safe from such an in-between person as myself. 

Even as Ender made his own private evaluations of Valentine's interpretation of 
human history, Planter showed his own response by lying back in his chair, a 
gesture that spoke of scorn. "I'm supposed to feel better because humans are 
also tools of some genetic molecule?" 
"No," said Ender. "You're supposed to realize that just because a lot of 
behavior can be explained as responses to the needs of some genetic molecule, it 
doesn't mean that all pequenino behavior is meaningless." 
"Human history can be explained as the struggle between the needs of women and 
the needs of men," said Valentine, "but my point is that there are still heroes 
and monsters, great events and noble deeds." 
"When a brothertree gives his wood," said Planter, "it's supposed to mean that 
he sacrifices for the tribe. Not for a virus." 
"If you can look beyond the tribe to the virus, then look beyond the virus to 
the world," said Ender. "The descolada is keeping this planet habitable. So the 
brothertree is sacrificing himself to save the whole world." 
"Very clever," said Planter. "But you forget-- to save the planet, it doesn't 
matter which brothertrees give themselves, as long as a certain number do it." 
"True," said Valentine. "It doesn't matter to the descolada which brothertrees 
give their lives. But it matters to the brothertrees, doesn't it? And it matters 
to the brothers like you, who huddle into those houses to keep warm. You 
appreciate the noble gesture of the brothertrees who died for you, even if the 
descolada doesn't know one tree from another." 
Planter didn't answer. Ender hoped that meant they were making some headway. 
"And in the wars," said Valentine, "the descolada doesn't care who wins or 
loses, as long as enough brothers die and enough trees grow from the corpses. 
Right? But that doesn't change the fact that some brothers are noble and some 
are cowardly or cruel." 
"Planter," said Ender, "the descolada may cause you all to feel-- to come more 
quickly to a murderous rage, for instance-- so that disputes erupt into warfare 
instead of being settled among the fathertrees. But that doesn't erase the fact 
that some forests are fighting in self-defense and others are simply 
bloodthirsty. You still have your heroes." 
"I don't give a damn about heroes," said Ela. "Heroes tend to be dead, like my 
brother Quim. Where is he now, when we need him? I wish he hadn't been a hero." 
She swallowed hard, holding down the memory of recent grief. 
Planter nodded-- a gesture he had learned in order to communicate with humans. 
"We live in Warmaker's world now," he said. "What is he, except a fathertree 
acting as the descolada instructs? The world is getting too warm. We need more 
trees. So he's filled with fervor to expand the forests. Why? The descolada 
makes him feel that way. That's why so many brothers and fathertrees listened to 
him-- because he offered a plan to satisfy their hunger to spread out and grow 
more trees." 
"Does the descolada know that he was planning to put all these new trees on 
other planets?" said Valentine. "That wouldn't do much to cool Lusitania." 
"The descolada puts hunger in them," said Planter. "How can a virus know about 
starships?" 
"How can a virus know about mothertrees and fathertrees, brothers and wives, 
infants and little mothers?" said Ender. "This is a very bright virus." 
"Warmaker is the best example of my point," said Valentine. "His name suggests 
that he was deeply involved and successful in the last great war. Once again 
there's pressure to increase the number of trees. Yet Warmaker chose to turn 
this hunger to a new purpose, spreading new forests by reaching out to the stars 
instead of plunging into wars with other pequeninos." 
"We were going to do it no matter what Warmaker said or did," said Planter. 
"Look at us. Warmaker's group was preparing to spread out and plant new forests 
on other worlds. But when they killed Father Quim, the rest of us were so filled 
with rage that we planned to go and punish them. Great slaughter, and again, 
trees would grow. Still doing what the descolada demanded. And now that humans 
have burned our forest, Warmaker's people are going to prevail after all. One 
way or another, we must spread out and propagate. We'll snatch up any excuse we 
can find. The descolada will have its way with us. We're tools, pathetically 
trying to find some way to convince ourselves that our actions are our own 
idea." 
He sounded so hopeless. Ender couldn't think of anything to say that Valentine 
or he hadn't already said, to try to wean him away from his conclusion that 
pequenino life was unfree and meaningless. 
So it was Ela who spoke next, and in a tone of calm speculation that seemed 
incongruous, as if she had forgotten the terrible anxiety that Planter was 
experiencing. Which was probably the case, as all this discussion had led her 
back to her own specialty. "It's hard to know which side the descolada would be 
on, if it were aware of all this," said Ela. 
"Which side of what?" asked Valentine. 
"Whether to induce global cooling by having more forests planted here, or to use 
that same instinct for propagation to have the pequeninos take the descolada out 
to other worlds. I mean, which would the virus makers have wanted most? To 
spread the virus or regulate the planet?" 
"The virus probably wants both, and it's likely to get both," said Planter. 
"Warmaker's group will win control of the ships, no doubt. But either before or 
after, there'll be a war over it that leaves half the brothers dead. For all we 
know, the descolada is causing both things to happen." 
"For all we know," said Ender. 
"For all we know," said Planter, "we may be the descolada." 
So, thought Ender, they are aware of that concern, despite our decision not to 
broach it with the pequeninos yet. 
"Have you been talking to Quara?" demanded Ela. 
"I talk to her every day," said Planter. "But what does she have to do with 
this?" 
"She had the same idea. That maybe pequenino intelligence comes from the 
descolada." 
"Do you think after all your talk about the descolada being intelligent that it 
hasn't occurred to us to wonder that?" said Planter. "And if it's true, what 
will you do then? Let all of your species die so that we can keep our little 
second-rate brains?" 
Ender protested at once. "We've never thought of your brains as--" 
"Haven't you?" said Planter. "Then why did you assume that we would only think 
of this possibility if some human told us?" 
Ender had no good answer. He had to confess to himself that he had been thinking 
of the pequeninos as if they were children in some ways, to be protected. 
Worries had to be kept as secrets from them. It hadn't occurred to him that they 
were perfectly capable of discovering all the worst horrors on their own. 
"And if our intelligence does come from the descolada, and you found a way to 
destroy it, what would we become then?" Planter looked at them, triumphant in 
his bitter victory. "Nothing but tree rats," he said. 
"That's the second time you've used that term," said Ender. "What are tree 
rats?" 
"That's what they were shouting," said Planter, "some of the men who killed the 
mothertree." 
"There's no such animal," said Valentine. 
"I know," said Planter. "Grego explained it to me. 'Tree rat' is a slang name 
for squirrels. He showed me a holo of one on his computer in jail." 
"You went to visit Grego?" Ela was plainly horrified. 
"I had to ask him why he tried to kill us all, and then why he tried to save 
us," said Planter. 
"There!" cried Valentine triumphantly. "You can't tell me that what Grego and 
Miro did that night, stopping the mob from burning Rooter and Human-- you can't 
tell me that that was just the acting out of genetic forces!" 
"But I never said that human behavior was meaningless," said Planter. "It's you 
that tried to comfort me with that idea. We know that you humans have your 
heroes. We pequeninos are the ones who are only tools of a gaialogical virus." 
"No," said Ender. "There are pequenino heroes, too. Rooter and Human, for 
instance." 
"Heroes?" said Planter. "They acted as they did in order to win what they 
achieved-- their status as fathertrees. It was the hunger to reproduce. They 
might have looked like heroes to you humans, who only die once, but the death 
they suffered was really birth. There was no sacrifice." 
"Your whole forest was heroic, then," said Ela. "You broke free from all the old 
channels and made a treaty with us that required you to change some of your most 
deeply-rooted customs." 
"We wanted the knowledge and the machines and the power you humans had. What's 
heroic about a treaty in which all we have to do is stop killing you, and in 
return you give us a thousand-year boost in our technological development?" 
"You aren't going to listen to any positive conclusion, are you," said 
Valentine. 
Planter went on, ignoring her. "The only heroes in that story were Pipo and 
Libo, the humans who acted so bravely, even though they knew they would die. 
They had won their freedom from their genetic heritage. What piggy has ever done 
that on purpose?" 
It stung Ender more than a little, to hear Planter use the term piggy for 
himself and his people. In recent years the term had stopped being quite as 
friendly and affectionate as it was when Ender first came; often it was used now 
as a demeaning word, and the people who worked with them usually used the term 
pequenino. What sort of self-hatred was Planter resorting to, in response to 
what he'd learned today? 
"The brothertrees give their lives," said Ela, helpfully. 
But Planter answered in scorn. "The brothertrees are not alive the way 
fathertrees are. They can't talk. They only obey. We tell them what to do, and 
they have no choice. Tools, not heroes." 
"You can twist anything with the right story," said Valentine. "You can deny any 
sacrifice by claiming that it made the sufferer feel so good to do it that it 
really wasn't a sacrifice at all, but just another selfish act." 
Suddenly Planter jumped from his chair. Ender was prepared for a replay of his 
earlier behavior, but he didn't circle the room. Instead he walked to Ela where 
she sat in her chair, and placed both his hands on her knees. 
"I know a way to be a true hero," said Planter. "I know a way to act against the 
descolada. To reject it and fight it and hate it and help destroy it." 
"So do I," said Ela. 
"An experiment," said Planter. 
She nodded. "To see if pequenino intelligence is really centered in the 
descolada, and not in the brain." 
"I'll do it," said Planter. 
"I would never ask you to." 
"I know you wouldn't ask," said Planter. "I demand it for myself." 
Ender was surprised to realize that in their own way, Ela and Planter were as 
close as Ender and Valentine, able to know each other's thoughts without 
explaining. Ender hadn't imagined that this would be possible between two people 
of different species; and yet, why shouldn't it be? Particularly when they 
worked together so closely in the same endeavor. 
It had taken Ender a few moments to grasp what Planter and Ela were deciding 
between them; Valentine, who had not been working with them for years as Ender 
had, still didn't understand. "What's happening?" she asked. "What are they 
talking about?" 
It was Ela who answered. "Planter is proposing that we purge one pequenino of 
all copies of the descolada virus, put him in a clean space where he can't be 
contaminated, and then see if he still has a mind." 
"That can't be good science," said Valentine. "There are too many other 
variables. Aren't there? I thought the descolada was involved in every part of 
pequenino life." 
"Lacking the descolada would mean that Planter would immediately get sick and 
then eventually die. What having the descolada did to Quim, lacking it will do 
to Planter." 
"You can't mean to let him do it," said Valentine. "It won't prove anything. He 
might lose his mind because of illness. Fever makes people delirious." 
"What else can we do?" asked Planter. "Wait until Ela finds a way to tame the 
virus, and only then find out that without it in its intelligent, virulent form, 
we are not pequeninos at all, but merely piggies? That we were only given the 
power of speech by the virus within us, and that when it was controlled, we lost 
everything and became nothing more than brothertrees? Do we find that out when 
you loose the virus-killer?" 
"But it's not a serious experiment with a control--" 
"It's a serious experiment, all right," said Ender. "The kind of experiment you 
perform when you don't give a damn about getting funding, you just need results 
and you need them now. The kind of experiment you perform when you have no idea 
what the results will be or even if you'll know how to interpret them, but there 
are a bunch of crazy pequeninos planning to get in starships and spread a 
planet-killing disease all over the galaxy so you've got to do something." 
"It's the kind of experiment you perform," said Planter, "when you need a hero." 

"When we need a hero?" asked Ender. "Or when you need to be a hero?" 
"I wouldn't talk if I were you," said Valentine dryly. "You've done a few stints 
as a hero yourself over the centuries." 
"It may not be necessary anyway," said Ela. "Quara knows a lot more about the 
descolada than she's telling. She may already know whether the intelligent 
adaptability of the descolada can be separated from its life-sustaining 
functions. If we could make a virus like that, we could test the effect of the 
descolada on pequenino intelligence without threatening the life of the 
subject." 
"The trouble is," said Valentine, "Quara isn't any more likely to believe our 
story that the descolada is an artifact created by another species than Qing-jao 
was able to believe that the voice of her gods was just a genetically-caused 
obsessive-compulsive disorder." 
"I'll do it," said Planter. "I will begin immediately because we have no time. 
Put me in a sterile environment tomorrow, and then kill all the descolada in my 
body using the chemicals you've got hidden away. The ones you mean to use on 
humans when the descolada adapts to the current suppressant you're using." 
"You realize that it may be wasted," said Ela. 
"Then it would truly be a sacrifice," said Planter. 
"If you start to lose your mind in a way that clearly isn't related to your 
body's illness," said Ela, "we'll stop the experiment because we'll have the 
answer." 
"Maybe," said Planter. 
"You might well recover at that point." 
"I don't care whether I recover," said Planter. 
"We'll also stop it," said Ender, "if you start to lose your mind in a way that 
is related to your body's illness, because then we'll know that the experiment 
is useless and we wouldn't learn anything from it anyway." 
"Then if I'm a coward, all I have to do is pretend to be mentally failing and my 
life will be saved," said Planter. "No, I forbid you to stop the experiment, no 
matter what. And if I keep my mental functions, you must let me continue to the 
end, to the death, because only if I keep my mind to the end will we know that 
our soul is not just an artifact of the descolada. Promise me!" 
"Is this science or a suicide pact?" asked Ender. "Are you so despondent over 
discovering the probable role of the descolada in pequenino history that you 
simply want to die?" 
Planter rushed to Ender, climbed his body, and pressed his nose against Ender's. 
"You liar!" he shouted. 
"I just asked a question," whispered Ender. 
"I want to be free!" shouted Planter. "I want the descolada out of my body and I 
never want it to come back! I want to use this to help free all the piggies so 
that we can be pequeninos in fact and not in name!" 
Gently Ender pried him back. His nose ached from the violence of Planter's 
pressing. 
"I want to make a sacrifice that proves that I'm free," said Planter, "not just 
acting out my genes. Not just trying for the third life." 
"Even the martyrs of Christianity and Islam were willing to accept rewards in 
heaven for their sacrifice," said Valentine. 
"Then they were all selfish pigs," said Planter. "That's what you say about 
pigs, isn't it? In Stark, in your common speech? Selfish pigs. Well, it's the 
right name for us piggies, isn't it! Our heroes were all trying to become 
fathertrees. Our brothertrees were failures from the start. The only thing we 
serve outside ourselves is the descolada. For all we know, the descolada might 
be ourselves. But I will be free. I will know what I am, without the descolada 
or my genes or anything except me." 
"What you'll be is dead," said Ender. 
"But free first," said Planter. "And the first of my people to be free." 



After Wang-mu and Jane had told Master Han all that had transpired that day, 
after he had conversed with Jane about his own day's work, after the house had 
fallen silent in the darkness of the night, Wang-mu lay awake on her mat in the 
corner of Master Han's room, listening to his soft but insistent snoring as she 
thought over all that had been said that day. 
There were so many ideas, and most of them were so far above her that she 
despaired of truly understanding them. Especially what Wiggin said about 
purposes. They were giving her credit for having come up with the solution to 
the problem of the descolada virus, and yet she couldn't take the credit because 
she hadn't meant to do it; she had thought she was just repeating Qing-jao's 
questions. Could she take credit for something she did by accident? 
People should only be blamed or praised for what they meant to do. Wang-mu had 
always believed this instinctively; she didn't remember anyone ever telling it 
to her in so many words. The crimes that she was blaming Congress for were all 
deliberate-- genetically altering the people of Path to create the godspoken, 
and sending the M.D. Device to destroy the haven of the only other sentient 
species that they knew existed in the universe. 
But was that what they meant to do, either? Maybe some of them, at least, 
thought that they were making the universe safe for humanity by destroying 
Lusitania-- from what Wang-mu had heard about the descolada, it could mean the 
end of all Earthborn life if it ever started spreading world to world among 
human beings. Maybe some of Congress, too, had decided to create the godspoken 
of Path in order to benefit all of humanity, but then put the OCD in their 
brains so that they couldn't get out of control and enslave all the inferior, 
"normal" humans. Maybe they all had good purposes in mind for the terrible 
things they did. 
Certainly Qing-jao had a good purpose in mind, didn't she? So how could Wang-mu 
condemn her for her actions, when she thought she was obeying the gods? 
Didn't everybody have some noble purpose in mind for their own actions? Wasn't 
everybody, in their own eyes, good? 
Except me, thought Wang-mu. In my own eyes, I'm foolish and weak. But they spoke 
of me as if I were better than I ever thought. Master Han praised me, too. And 
those others spoke of Qing-jao with pity and scornand I've felt those feelings 
toward her, too. Yet isn't Qing-jao acting nobly, and me basely? I betrayed my 
mistress. She has been loyal to her government and to her gods, which are real 
to her, though I no longer believe in them. How can I tell the good people from 
the bad, if the bad people all have some way of convincing themselves that 
they're trying to do good even though they're doing something terrible? And the 
good people can believe that they're actually very bad even though they're doing 
something good? 
Maybe you can only do good if you think you're bad, and if you think you're good 
then you can only do bad. 
But that paradox was too much for her. There'd be no sense in the world if you 
had to judge people by the opposite of how they tried to seem. Wasn't it 
possible for a good person also to try to seem good? And just because somebody 
claimed to be scum didn't mean that he wasn't scum. Was there any way to judge 
people, if you can't judge even by their purpose? 
Was there any way for Wang-mu to judge even herself? 
Half the time I don't even know the purpose of what I do. I came to this house 
because I was ambitious and wanted to be a secret maid to a rich godspoken girl. 
It was pure selfishness on my part, and pure generosity that led Qing-jao to 
take me in. And now here I am helping Master Han commit treason-- what is my 
purpose in that? I don't even know why I do what I do. How can I know what other 
people's true purposes are? There's no hope of ever knowing good from bad. 
She sat up in lotus position on her mat and pressed her face into her hands. It 
was as if she felt herself pressed against a wall, but it was a wall that she 
made herself, and if she could only find a way to move it aside-- the way she 
could move her hands away from her face whenever she wanted-- then she could 
easily push through to the truth. 
She moved her hands away. She opened her eyes. There was Master Han's terminal, 
across the room. There, today, she had seen the faces of Elanora Ribeira von 
Hesse and Andrew Wiggin. And Jane's face. 
She remembered Wiggin telling her what the gods would be like. Real gods would 
want to teach you how to be just like them. Why would he say such a thing? How 
could he know what a god would be? 
Somebody who wants to teach you how to know everything that they know and do 
everything that they do-- what he was really describing was parents, not gods. 
Only there were plenty of parents who didn't do that. Plenty of parents who 
tried to keep their children down, to control them, to make slaves of them. 
Where she had grown up, Wang-mu had seen plenty of that. 
So what Wiggin was describing wasn't parents, really. He was describing good 
parents. He wasn't telling her what the gods were, he was telling her what 
goodness was. To want other people to grow. To want other people to have all the 
good things that you have. And to spare them the bad things if you can. That was 
goodness. 
What were the gods, then? They would want everyone else to know and have and be 
all good things. They would teach and share and train, but never force. 
Like my parents, thought Wang-mu. Clumsy and stupid sometimes, like all people, 
but they were good. They really did look out for me. Even sometimes when they 
made me do hard things because they knew it would be good for me. Even sometimes 
when they were wrong, they were good. I can judge them by their purpose after 
all. Everybody calls their purpose good, but my parents' purposes really were 
good, because they meant all their acts toward me to help me grow wiser and 
stronger and better. Even when they made me do hard things because they knew I 
had to learn from them. Even when they caused me pain. 
That was it. That's what the gods would be, if there were gods. They would want 
everyone else to have all that was good in life, just like good parents. But 
unlike parents or any other people, the gods would actually know what was good 
and have the power to cause good things to happen, even when nobody else 
understood that they were good. As Wiggin said, real gods would be smarter and 
stronger than anybody else. They would have all the intelligence and power that 
it was possible to have. 
But a being like that-- who was someone like Wang-mu to judge a god? She 
couldn't understand their purposes even if they told her, so how could she ever 
know that they were good? Yet the other approach, to trust in them and believe 
in them absolutely-- wasn't that what Qing-jao was doing? 
No. If there were gods, they would never act as Qing-jao thought they acted-- 
enslaving people, tormenting and humiliating them. 
Unless torment and humiliation were good for them... 
No! She almost cried aloud, and once again pressed her face into her hands, this 
time to keep silence. 
I can only judge by what I understand. If as far as I can see, the gods that 
Qing-jao believes in are only evil, then yes, perhaps I'm wrong, perhaps I can't 
comprehend the great purpose they accomplish by making the godspoken into 
helpless slaves, or destroying whole species. But in my heart I have no choice 
but to reject such gods, because I can't see any good in what they're doing. 
Perhaps I'm so stupid and foolish that I will always be the enemy of the gods, 
working against their high and incomprehensible purposes. But I have to live my 
life according to what I understand, and what I understand is that there are no 
such gods as the ones the godspoken teach us about. If they exist at all, they 
take pleasure in oppression and deception, humiliation and ignorance. They act 
to make other people smaller and themselves larger. Those would not be gods, 
then, even if they existed. They would be enemies. Devils. 
The same with the beings, whoever they are, who made the descolada virus. Yes, 
they would have to be very powerful to make a tool like that. But they would 
also have to be heartless, selfish, arrogant beings, to think that all life in 
the universe was theirs to manipulate as they saw fit. To send the descolada out 
into the universe, not caring who it killed or what beautiful creatures it 
destroyed-- those could not be gods, either. 
Jane, now-- Jane might be a god. Jane knew vast amounts of information and had 
great wisdom as well, and she was acting for the good of others, even when it 
would take her life-- even now, after her life was forfeit. And Andrew Wiggin, 
he might be a god, so wise and kind he seemed, and not acting for his own 
benefit but for the pequeninos. And Valentine, who called herself Demosthenes, 
she had worked to help other people find the truth and make wise decisions of 
their own. And Master Han, who was trying to do the right thing always, even 
when it cost him his daughter. Maybe even Ela, the scientist, even though she 
had not known all that she ought to have known-- for she was not ashamed to 
learn truth from a servant girl. 
Of course they were not the sort of gods who lived off in the Infinite West, in 
the Palace of the Royal Mother. Nor were they gods in their own eyes-- they 
would laugh at her for even thinking of it. But compared to her, they were gods 
indeed. They were so much wiser than Wang-mu, and so much more powerful, and as 
far as she could understand their purposes, they were trying to help other 
people become as wise and powerful as possible. Even wiser and more powerful 
than they were themselves. So even though Wang-mu might be wrong, even though 
she might truly understand nothing at all about anything, nevertheless she knew 
that her decision to work with these people was the right one for her to make. 
She could only do good as far as she understood what goodness was. And these 
people seemed to her to be doing good, while Congress seemed to be doing evil. 
So even though in the long run it might destroy her-- for Master Han was now an 
enemy of Congress, and might be arrested and killed, and her along with him-- 
still she would do it. She would never see real gods, but she could at least 
work to help those people who were as close to being gods as any real person 
could ever be. 
And if the gods don't like it, they can poison me in my sleep or catch me on 
fire as I'm walking in the garden tomorrow or just make my arms and legs and 
head drop off my body like crumbs off a cake. If they can't manage to stop a 
stupid little servant girl like me, they don't amount to much anyway. 
Table of Contents



Chapter 15 -- Life and Death
<Ender's coming to see us.> 
<He comes and talks to me all the time.> 
<And we can talk directly into his mind. But he insists on coming. He doesn't 
feel like he's talking to us unless he sees us. He has a harder time 
distinguishing between his own thoughts and the ones we put in his mind when we 
converse from a distance. So he's coming.> 
<And you don't like this?> 
<He wants us to tell him answers and we don't know any answers.> 
<You know everything that the humans know. You got into space, didn't you? You 
don't even need their ansibles to talk from world to world.> 
<They're so hungry for answers, these humans. They have so many questions.> 
<We have questions, too, you know.> 
<They want to know why, why, why. Or how. Everything all tied up into a nice 
neat bundle like a cocoon. The only time we do that is when we're metamorphosing 
a queen.> 
<They like to understand everything. But so do we, you know.> 
<Yes, you'd like to think you're just like the humans, wouldn't you? But you're 
not like Ender. Not like the humans. He has to know the cause of everything, he 
has to make a story about everything and we don't know any stories. We know 
memories. We know things that happen. But we don't know why they happen, not the 
way he wants us to.> 
<Of course you do.> 
<We don't even care why, the way these humans do. We find out as much as we need 
to know to accomplish something, but they always want to know more than they 
need to know. After they get something to work, they're still hungry to know why 
it works and why the cause of its working works.> 
<Aren't we like that?> 
<Maybe you will be, when the descolada stops interfering with you.> 
<Or maybe we'll be like your workers.> 
<If you are, you won't care. They're all very happy. It's intelligence that 
makes you unhappy. The workers ore either hungry or not hungry. In pain or not 
in pain. They're never curious or disappointed or anguished or ashamed. And when 
it comes to things like that, these humans make you and me look like workers.> 
<I think you just don't know us well enough to compare.> 
<We've been inside your head and we've been inside Ender's head and we've been 
inside our own heads for a thousand generations and these humans make us look 
like we're asleep. Even when they're asleep they're not asleep. Earthborn 
animals do this thing, inside their brains-- a sort of mad firing-off of 
synapses, controlled insanity. While they're asleep. The part of their brain 
that records sight or sound, it's firing off every hour or two while they sleep, 
even when all the sights and sounds are complete random nonsense, their brains 
just keep on trying to assemble it into something sensible. They try to make 
stories out of it. It's complete random nonsense with no possible correlation to 
the real world, and yet they turn it into these crazy stories. And then they 
forget them. All that work, coming up with these stories, and when they wake up 
they forget almost all of them. But when they do remember, then they try to make 
stories about those crazy stories, trying to fit them into their real lives.> 
<We know about their dreaming.> 
<Maybe without the descolada, you'll dream, too.> 
<Why should we want to? As you say, it's meaningless. Random firings of the 
synapses of the neurons in their brains.> 
<They're practicing. They're doing it all the time. Coming up with stories. 
Making connections. Making sense out of nonsense.> 
<What good is it, when it means nothing?> 
<That's just it. They have a hunger we know nothing about. The hunger for 
answers. The hunger for making sense. The hunger for stories.> 
<We have stories.> 
<You remember deeds. They make up deeds. They change what their stories mean. 
They transform things so that the same memory can mean a thousand different 
things. Even from their dreams, sometimes they make up out of that randomness 
something that illuminates everything. Not one human being has anything like the 
kind of mind you have. The kind we have. Nothing as powerful. And their lives 
are so short, they die so fast. But in their century or so they come up with ten 
thousand meanings for every one that we discover.> 
<Most of them wrong.> 
<Even if the vast majority of them are wrong, even if ninety-nine of every 
hundred is stupid and wrong, out of ten thousand ideas that still leaves them 
with a hundred good ones. That's how they make up for being so stupid and having 
such short lives and small memories.> 
<Dreams and madness.> 
<Magic and mystery and philosophy.> 
<You can't say that you never think of stories. What you've just been telling me 
is a story.> 
<I know.> 
<See? Humans do nothing you can't do.> 
<Don't you understand? I got even this story from Ender's mind. It's his. And he 
got the seed of it from somebody else, something he read, and combined it with 
things he thought of until it made sense to him. It's all there in his head. 
While we are like you. We have a clear view of the world. I have no trouble 
finding my way through your mind. Everything orderly and sensible and clear. 
You'd be as much at ease in mine. What's in your head is reality, more or less, 
as best you understand it. But in Ender's mind, madness. Thousands of competing 
contradictory impossible visions that make no sense at all because they can't 
all fit together but they do fit together, he makes them fit together, this way 
today, that way tomorrow, as they're needed. As if he can make a new 
idea-machine inside his head for every new problem he faces. As if he conceives 
of a new universe to live in, every hour a new one, often hopelessly wrong and 
he ends up making mistakes and bad judgments, but sometimes so perfectly right 
that it opens things up like a miracle and I look through his eyes and see the 
world his new way and it changes everything. Madness, and then illumination. We 
knew everything there was to know before we met these humans, before we built 
our connection with Ender's mind. Now we discover that there are so many ways of 
knowing the same things that we'll never find them all.> 
<Unless the humans teach you.> 
<You see? We are scavengers also.> 
<Ybu're a scavenger. We're supplicants.> 
<If only they were worthy of their own mental abilities.> 
<Aren't they?> 
<They ore planning to blow you up, you remember. There's so much possibility in 
their minds, but they are still, after all, individually stupid and small-minded 
and half-blind and half-mad. There's still the ninety-nine percent of their 
stories that are hideously wrong and lead them into terrible errors. Sometimes 
we wish we could tame them, like the workers. We tried to, you know, with Ender. 
But we couldn't do it. Couldn't make a worker of him.> 
<Why not?> 
<Too stupid. Can't pay attention long enough. Human minds lack focus. They get 
bored and wander off. We had to build a bridge outside him, using the computer 
that he was most closely bonded with. Computers, now-- those things can pay 
attention. And their memory is neat, orderly, everything organized and 
findable.> 
<But they don't dream.> 
<No madness. Too bad.> 
  
  
  
Valentine showed up unbidden at Olhado's door. It was early morning. He wouldn't 
go to work till afternoon-- he was a shift manager at the small brickworks. But 
he was already up and about, probably because his family was. The children were 
trooping out the door. I used to see this on television back in the ancient 
days, thought Valentine. The family going out the door in the morning, all at 
the same time, and Dad last of all with the briefcase. In their own way, my 
parents acted out that life. Never mind how deeply weird their children were. 
Never mind how after we paraded off to school in the morning, Peter and I went 
prowling through the nets, trying to take over the world through the use of 
pseudonyms. Never mind that Ender was torn away from the family as a little boy 
and never saw any of them again, even on his one visit to Earth-- except me. I 
think my parents still imagined they were doing it right, because they went 
through a ritual they had seen on TV. 
And here it is again. The children bursting through the door. That boy must be 
Nimbo, the one who was with Grego at the confrontation with the mob. But here he 
is, just a clich? child-- no one would guess that he had been part of that 
terrible night only a little while ago. 
Mother gave them each a kiss. She was still a beautiful young woman, even with 
so many children. So ordinary, so like the clich?, and yet a remarkable woman, 
for she had married their father, hadn't she? She had seen past the deformity. 
And Dad, not yet off to work, so he could stand there, watching them, patting 
them, kissing them, saying a few words. Light, clever, loving-- the predictable 
father. So, what's wrong with this picture? The dad is Olhado. He has no eyes. 
Just the silvery metal orbs punctuated with two lens apertures in the one eye, 
and the computer I/0 outlet in the other. The kids don't seem to notice. I'm 
still not used to it. 
"Valentine," he said, when he saw her. 
"We need to talk," she said. 
He ushered her inside. He introduced his wife, Jaqueline. Skin so black it was 
almost blue, laughing eyes, a beautiful wide smile that you wanted to dive into, 
it was so welcoming. She brought a limonada, ice-cold and sweating in the 
morning heat, and then discreetly withdrew. "You can stay," said Valentine. 
"This isn't all that private." But she didn't want to stay. She had work to do, 
she said. And she was gone. 
"I've wanted to meet you for a long time," said Olhado. 
"I was meetable," she said. 
"You were busy." 
"I have no business," said Valentine. 
"You have Andrew's business." 
"We're meeting now, anyway. I've been curious about you, Olhado. Or do you 
prefer your given name, Lauro?" 
"In Milagre, your name is whatever people call you. I used to be Sule, for my 
middle name, Suleimdo." 
"Solomon the wise." 
"But after I lost my eyes, I was Olhado, then and forever." 
"'The watched one'?" 
"Olhado could mean that, yes, past participle of olhar, but in this case it 
means 'The guy with the eyes.'" 
"And that's your name." 
"My wife calls me Lauro," he said. "And my children call me Father." 
"And I?" 
"Whatever. 
"Sule, then." 
"Lauro, if you must. Sule makes me feel like I'm six." 
"And reminds you of the time when you could see." 
He laughed. "Oh, I can see now, thanks very much. I see very well." 
"So Andrew says. That's why I've come to you. To find out what you see." 
"Want me to play back a scene for you? A blast from the past? I have all my 
favorite memories stored on computer. I can plug in and play back anything you 
want. I have, for instance, Andrew's first visit in my family's home. I also 
have some top-flight family quarrels. Or do you prefer public events? Every 
Mayor's inaugural since I got these eyes? People do consult me about things like 
that-- what was worn, what was said. I often have trouble convincing them that 
my eyes record vision, not sound-- just like their eyes. They think I should be 
a holographer and record it all for entertainment." 
"I don't want to see what you see. I want to know what you think." 
"Do you, now?" 
"Yes, I do." 
"I have no opinions. Not on anything you'd be interested in. I stay out of the 
family quarrels. I always have." 
"And out of the family business. The only one of Novinha's children not to go 
into science." 
"Science has brought everyone else so much happiness, it's hard to imagine why I 
wouldn't have gone into it." 
"Not hard to imagine," said Valentine. And then, because she had found that 
brittle-sounding people will talk quite openly if goaded, she added a little 
barb. "I imagine that you simply didn't have the brains to keep up." 
"Absolutely true," said Olhado. "I only have wit enough to make bricks." 
"Really?" said Valentine. "But you don't make bricks." 
"On the contrary. I make hundreds of bricks a day. And with everyone knocking 
holes in their houses to build the new chapel, I foresee a booming business in 
the near future." 
"Lauro," said Valentine, "you don't make bricks. The laborers in your factory 
make bricks." 
"And I, as manager, am not part of that?" 
"Brickmakers make bricks. You make brickmakers." 
"I suppose. Mostly I make brickmakers tired." 
"You make other things," said Valentine. "Children." 
"Yes," said Olhado, and for the first time in the conversation he relaxed. "I do 
that. Of course, I have a partner." 
"A gracious and beautiful woman." 
"I looked for perfection, and found something better." It wasn't just a line of 
patter. He meant it. And now the brittleness was gone, the wariness too. "You 
have children. A husband." 
"A good family. Maybe almost as good as yours. Ours lacks only the perfect 
mother, but the children will recover from that." 
"To hear Andrew talk about you, you're the greatest human being who ever lived." 

"Andrew is very sweet. He could also get away with saying such things because I 
wasn't here." 
"Now you are here," said Olhado. "Why?" 
"It happens that worlds and species of ramen are at a cusp of decision, and the 
way events have turned out, their future depends in large part on your family. I 
don't have time to discover things in a leisurely way-- I don't have time to 
understand the family dynamics, why Grego can pass from monster to hero in a 
single night, how Miro can be both suicidal and ambitious, why Quara is willing 
to let the pequeninos die for the descolada's sake--" 
"Ask Andrew. He understands them all. I never could." 
"Andrew is in his own little hell right now. He feels responsible for 
everything. He's done his best, but Quim is dead, and the one thing your mother 
and Andrew both agree on is that somehow it's Andrew's fault. Your mother's 
leaving him has torn him up." 
"I know." 
"I don't even know how to console him. Or even which, as his loving sister, to 
hope for-- that she'll come back into his life, or leave him forever." 
Olhado shrugged. All the brittleness was back. 
"Do you really not care?" asked Valentine. "Or have you decided not to care?" 
"Maybe I decided long ago, and now I really don't." 
Part of being a good interviewer, too, is knowing when to be silent. Valentine 
waited. 
But Olhado was also good at waiting. Valentine almost gave up and said 
something. She even toyed with the idea of confessing failure and leaving. 
Then he spoke. "When they replaced my eyes, they also took out the tear ducts. 
Natural tears would interfere with the industrial lubricants they put in my 
eyes. " 
"Industrial?" 
"My little joke," said Olhado. "I seem to be very dispassionate all the time, 
because my eyes never well up with tears. And people can't read my expressions. 
It's funny, you know. The actual eyeball doesn't have any ability to change 
shape and show an expression. It just sits there. Yes, your eyes dart around-- 
they either keep steady eye contact or look down or up-- but my eyes do that, 
too. They still move with perfect symmetry. They still point in the direction 
I'm looking. But people can't stand to look at them. So they look away. They 
don't read the expressions on my face. And therefore they think there are no 
expressions. My eyes still sting and redden and swell a little at times when I 
would have cried, if I still had tears." 
"In other words," said Valentine, "you do care." 
"I always cared," he said. "Sometimes I thought I was the only one who 
understood, even though half the time I didn't know what it was that I was 
understanding. I withdrew and watched, and because I didn't have any personal 
ego on the line in the family quarrels, I could see more clearly than any of 
them. I saw the lines of power-- Mother's absolute dominance even though Marcao 
beat her when he was angry or drunk. Miro, thinking it was Marcao he was 
rebelling against, when always it was Mother. Grego's meanness-- his way of 
handling fear. Quara, absolutely contrary by nature, doing whatever she thought 
the people who mattered to her didn't want her to do. Ela, the noble martyr-- 
what in the world would she be, if she couldn't suffer? Holy, righteous Quim, 
finding God as his father, on the premise that the best father is the invisible 
kind who never raises his voice." 
"You saw all this as a child?" 
"I'm good at seeing things. We passive, unbelonging observers always see better. 
Don't you think?" 
Valentine laughed. "Yes, we do. The same role, then, you think? You and I, both 
historians?" 
"Till your brother came. From the moment he walked in the door, it was obvious 
that he saw and understood everything, just the way I saw it. It was 
exhilarating. Because of course I had never actually believed my own conclusions 
about my family. I never trusted my own judgments. Obviously no one saw things 
the way I did, so I must be wrong. I even thought that I saw things so 
peculiarly because of my eyes. That if I had real eyes I would have seen things 
Miro's way. Or Mother's." 
"So Andrew confirmed your judgments." 
"More than that. He acted on them. He did something about them." 
"Oh?" 
"He was here as a speaker for the dead. But from the moment he walked in the 
door, he took-- he took--" 
"Over?" 
"Took responsibility. For change. He saw all the sicknesses I saw, but he 
started healing them as best he could. I saw how he was with Grego, firm but 
kind. With Quara, responding to what she really wanted instead of what she 
claimed to want. With Quim, respecting the distance he wanted to keep. With 
Miro, with Ela, with Mother, with everybody." 
"With you?" 
"Making me part of his life. Connecting with me. Watching me jack into my eye 
and still talking to me like a person. Do you know what that meant to me?" 
"I can guess." 
"Not the part about me. I was a hungry little kid, I'll admit; the first kind 
person could have conned me, I'm sure. It's what he did about us all. It's how 
he treated us all differently, and yet remained himself. You've got to think 
about the men in my life. Marcao, who we thought was our father-- I had no idea 
who he was. All I ever saw was the liquor in him when he was drunk, and the 
thirst when he was sober. Thirst for alcohol but also a thirst for respect that 
he could never get. And then he dropped over dead. Things got better at once. 
Still not good, but better. I thought, the best father is the one who isn't 
there. Only that wasn't true, either, was it? Because my real father, Libo, the 
great scientist, the martyr, the hero of research, the love of my mother's 
life-- he had sired all these delightful children on my mother, he could see the 
family in torment, and yet he did nothing." 
"Your mother didn't let him, Andrew said." 
"That's right-- and one must always do things Mother's way, mustn't one?" 
"Novinha is a very imposing woman." 
"She thinks she's the only one in the world ever to suffer," said Olhado. "I say 
that without rancor. I have simply observed that she is so full of pain, she's 
incapable of taking anyone else's pain seriously." 
"Try saying something rancorous next time. It might be more kind." 
Olhado looked surprised. "Oh, you're judging me? Is this motherhood solidarity 
or something? Children who speak ill of their mothers must be slapped down? But 
I assure you, Valentine, I meant it. No rancor. No grudges. I know my mother, 
that's all. You said you wanted me to tell you what I saw-- that's what I see. 
That's what Andrew saw, too. All that pain. He's drawn to it. Pain sucks him 
like a magnet. And Mother had so much she almost sucked him dry. Except that 
maybe you can't suck Andrew dry. Maybe the well of compassion inside him is 
bottomless." 
His passionate speech about Andrew surprised her. And pleased her, too. "You say 
Quim turned to God for the perfect invisible father. Who did you turn to? Not 
someone invisible, I think." 
"No, not someone invisible." 
Valentine studied his face in silence. 
"I see everything in bas-relief," said Olhado. "My depth perception is very 
poor. If we'd put a lens in each eye instead of both in one, the binocularity 
would be much improved. But I wanted to have the jack. For the computer link. I 
wanted to be able to record the pictures, to be able to share them. So I see in 
bas-relief. As if everybody were a slightly rounded cardboard cutout, sliding 
across a flat painted background. In a way it makes everybody seem so much 
closer together. Sliding over each other like sheets of paper, rubbing on each 
other as they pass." 
She listened, but said nothing for a while longer. 
"Not someone invisible," he said, echoing, remembering. "That's right. I saw 
what Andrew did in our family. I saw that he came in and listened and watched 
and understood who we were, each individual one of us. He tried to discover our 
need and then supply it. He took responsibility for other people and it didn't 
seem to matter to him how much it cost him. And in the end, while he could never 
make the Ribeira family normal, he gave us peace and pride and identity. 
Stability. He married Mother and was kind to her. He loved us all. He was always 
there when we wanted him, and seemed unhurt by it when we didn't. He was firm 
with us about expecting civilized behavior, but never indulged his whims at our 
expense. And I thought: This is so much more important than science. Or 
politics, either. Or any particular profession or accomplishment or thing you 
can make. I thought: If I could just make a good family, if I could just learn 
to be to other children, their whole lives, what Andrew was, coming so late into 
ours, then that would mean more in the long run, it would be a finer 
accomplishment than anything I could ever do with my mind or my hands. 
"So you're a career father," said Valentine. 
"Who works at a brick factory to feed and clothe the family. Not a brickmaker 
who also has kids. Lini also feels the same way." 
"Lini?" 
"Jaqueline. My wife. She followed her own road to the same place. We do what we 
must to earn our place in the community, but we live for the hours at home. For 
each other, for the children. It will never get me written up in the history 
books." 
"You'd be surprised," said Valentine. 
"It's a boring life, to read about," said Olhado. "Not to live, though." 
"So the secret that you protect from your tormented siblings is-- happiness." 
"Peace. Beauty. Love. All the great abstractions. I may see them in bas-relief, 
but I see them up close." 
"And you learned it from Andrew. Does he know?" 
"I think so," said Olhado. "Do you want to know my most closely guarded secret? 
When we're alone together, just him and me, or me and Lini and him-- when we're 
alone, I call him Papa, and he calls me Son." 
Valentine made no effort to stop her tears from flowing, as if they flowed half 
for him and half for her. "So Ender does have children, after all," she said. 
"I learned how to be a father from him, and I'm a damned good one." 
Valentine leaned forward. It was time to get down to business. "That means that 
you, more than any of the others, stand to lose something truly beautiful and 
fine if we don't succeed in our endeavors." 
"I know," said Olhado. "My choice was a selfish one in the long run. I'm happy, 
but I can't do anything to help save Lusitania." 
"Wrong," said Valentine. "You just don't know yet." 
"What can I do?" 
"Let's talk a while longer, and see if we can find out. And if it's all right 
with you, Lauro, your Jaqueline should stop eavesdropping from the kitchen now, 
and come on in and join us." 
Bashfully, Jaqueline came in and sat beside her husband. Valentine liked the way 
they held hands. After so many children-- it reminded herself of holding hands 
with Jakt, and how glad it made her feel. 
"Lauro," she said, "Andrew tells me that when you were younger, you were the 
brightest of all the Ribeira children. That you spoke to him of wild 
philosophical speculations. Right now, Lauro, my adoptive nephew, it is wild 
philosophy we need. Has your brain been on hold since you were a child? Or do 
you still think thoughts of great profundity?" 
"I have my thoughts," said Olhado. "But I don't even believe them myself." 
"We're working on faster-than-light flight, Lauro. We're working on discovering 
the soul of a computer entity. We're trying to rebuild an artificial virus that 
has self-defense capabilities built into it. We're working on magic and 
miracles. So I'd be glad of any insights you can give me on the nature of life 
and reality." 
"I don't even know what ideas Andrew was talking about," said Olhado. "I quit 
studying physics, I--" 
"If I want studies, I'll read books. So let me tell you what we told a very 
bright Chinese servant girl on the world of Path: Let me know your thoughts, and 
I'll decide for myself what's useful and what isn't." 
"How? You're not a physicist either." 
Valentine walked to the computer waiting quietly in the corner. "May I turn this 
on?" 
"Pois nao," he said. Of course. 
"Once it's on, Jane will be with us." 
"Ender's personal program." 
"The computer entity whose soul we're trying to locate." 
"Ah," he said. "Maybe you should be telling me things." 
"I already know what I know. So start talking. About those ideas you had as a 
child, and what has become of them since." 



Quara had a chip on her shoulder from the moment Miro entered the room. "Don't 
bother," she said. 
"Don't bother what?" 
"Don't bother telling me my duty to humanity or to the family-- two separate, 
non-overlapping groups, by the way." 
"Is that what I came for?" asked Miro. 
"Ela sent you to persuade me to tell her how to castrate the descolada." 
Miro tried a little humor. "I'm no biologist. Is that possible?" 
"Don't be cute," said Quara. "If you cut out their ability to pass information 
from one virus to another, it's like cutting out their tongues and their memory 
and everything that makes them intelligent. If she wants to know this stuff, she 
can study what I studied. It only took me five years of work to get there." 
"There's a fleet coming." 
"So you are an emissary." 
"And the descolada may figure out how to--" 
She interrupted him, finished his sentence. "Circumvent all our strategies to 
control it, I know." 
Miro was annoyed, but he was used to people getting impatient with his slowness 
of speech and cutting him off. And at least she had guessed what he was driving 
at. "Any day," he said. "Ela feels time pressure." 
"Then she should help me learn to talk to the virus. Persuade it to leave us 
alone. Make a treaty, like Andrew did with the pequeninos. Instead, she's cut me 
off from the lab. Well, two can play that game. She cuts me off, I cut her off." 

"You were telling secrets to the pequeninos." 
"Oh, yes, Mother and Ela, the guardians of truth! They get to decide who knows 
what. Well, Miro, let me tell you a secret. You don't protect the truth by 
keeping other people from knowing it." 
"I know that," said Miro. 
"Mother completely screwed up our family because of her damned secrets. She 
wouldn't even marry Libo because she was determined to keep a stupid secret, 
which if he'd known might have saved his life." 
"I know," said Miro. 
This time he spoke with such vehemence that Quara was taken aback. "Oh, well, I 
guess that was a secret that bothered you more than it did me. But then you 
should be on my side in this, Miro. Your life would have been a lot better, all 
our lives would have been, if Mother had only married Libo and told him all her 
secrets. He'd still be alive, probably." 
Very neat solutions. Tidy little might-have-beens. And false as hell. If Libo 
had married Novinha, he wouldn't have married Bruxinha, Ouanda's mother, and 
thus Miro wouldn't have fallen unsuspectingly in love with his own half-sister 
because she would never had existed at all. That was far too much to say, 
however, with his halting speech. So he confined himself to saying "Ouanda 
wouldn't have been born," and hoped she would make the connections. 
She considered for a moment, and the connection was made. "You have a point," 
she said. "And I'm sorry. I was only a child then." 
"It's all past," said Miro. 
"Nothing is past," said Quara. "We're still acting it out, over and over again. 
The same mistakes, again and again. Mother still thinks that you keep people 
safe by keeping secrets from them." 
"And so do you," said Miro. 
Quara thought about that for a moment. "Ela was trying to keep the pequeninos 
from knowing that she was working on destroying the descolada. That's a secret 
that could have destroyed the whole pequenino society, and they weren't even 
being consulted. They were preventing the pequeninos from protecting themselves. 
But what I'm keeping secret is-- maybe-- a way to intellectually castrate the 
descolada-- to make it half-alive." 
"To save humanity without destroying the pequeninos." 
"Humans and pequeninos, getting together to compromise on how to wipe out a 
helpless third species!" 
"Not exactly helpless." 
She ignored him. "Just the way Spain and Portugal got the Pope to divide up the 
world between their Catholic Majesties back in the old days right after 
Columbus. A line on a map, and poof-- there's Brazil, speaking Portuguese 
instead of Spanish. Never mind that nine out of ten Indians had to die, and the 
rest lose all their rights and power for centuries, even their very languages--" 

It was Miro's turn to become impatient. "The descolada isn't the Indians." 
"It's a sentient species." 
"It isn't," said Miro. 
"Oh?" asked Quara. "And how are you so sure? Where's your certificate in 
microbiology and xenogenetics? I thought your studies were all in xenology. And 
thirty years out of date." 
Miro didn't answer. He knew that she was perfectly aware of how hard he had 
worked to bring himself up to speed since he got back here. It was an ad hominem 
attack and a stupid appeal to authority. It wasn't worth answering. So he sat 
there and studied her face. Waiting for her to get back into the realm of 
reasonable discussion. 
"All right," she said. "That was a low blow. But so is sending you to try to 
crack open my files. Trying to play on my sympathies." 
"Sympathies?" asked Miro. 
"Because you're a-- because you're--" 
"Damaged," said Miro. He hadn't thought of the fact that pity complicated 
everything. But how could he help it? Whatever he did, it was a cripple doing 
it. 
"Well, yes." 
"Ela didn't send me," said Miro. 
"Mother, then." 
"Not Mother." 
"Oh, you're a freelance meddler? Or are you going to tell me that all of 
humanity has sent you? Or are you a delegate of an abstract value? 'Decency sent 
me.'" 
"If it did, it sent me to the wrong place." 
She reeled back as if she had been slapped. 
"Oh, am I the indecent one?" 
"Andrew sent me," said Miro. 
"Another manipulator." 
"He would have come himself." 
"But he was so busy, doing his own meddling. Nossa Senhora, he's a minister, 
mixing himself up in scientific matters that are so far above his head that--" 
"Shut up," said Miro. 
He spoke forcefully enough that she actually did fall silent-- though she wasn't 
happy about it. 
"You know what Andrew is," Miro said. "He wrote the Hive Queen and--" 
"--the Hive Queen and the Hegemon and the Life of Human." 
"Don't tell me he doesn't know anything." 
"No. I know that isn't true," said Quara. "I just get so angry. I feel like 
everybody's against me." 
"Against what you're doing, yes," said Miro. 
"Why doesn't anybody see things my way?" 
"I see things your way," said Miro. 
"Then how can you--" 
"I also see things their way." 
"Yes. Mr. Impartial. Make me feel like you understand me. The sympathetic 
approach." 
"Planter is dying to try to learn information you probably already know." 
"Not true. I don't know whether pequenino intelligence comes from the virus or 
not." 
"A truncated virus could be tested without killing him." 
"Truncated-- is that the word of choice? It'll do. Better than castrated. 
Cutting off all the limbs. And the head, too. Nothing but the trunk left. 
Powerless. Mindless. A beating heart, to no purpose." 
"Planter is--" 
"Planter's in love with the idea of being a martyr. He wants to die." 
"Planter is asking you to come and talk to him." 
"No." 
"Why not?" 
"Come on, Miro. They send a cripple to me. They want me to come talk to a dying 
pequenino. As if I'd betray a whole species because a dying friend-- a 
volunteer, too-- asks me with his dying breath." 
"Quara." 
"Yes, I'm listening." 
"Are you?" 
"Disse que sim!" she snapped. I said I am. 
"You might be right about all this." 
"How kind of you." 
"But so might they." 
"Aren't you the impartial one." 
"You say they were wrong to make a decision that might kill the pequeninos 
without consulting them. Aren't you--" 
"Doing the same thing? What should I do, do you think? Publish my viewpoint and 
take a vote? A few thousand humans, millions of pequeninos on your side-- but 
there are trillions of descolada viruses. Majority rule. Case closed." 
"The descolada is not sentient," said Miro. 
"For your information," said Quara, "I know all about this latest ploy. Ela sent 
me the transcripts. Some Chinese girl on a backwater colony planet who doesn't 
know anything about xenogenetics comes up with a wild hypothesis, and you all 
act as if it were already proved." 
"So-- prove it false." 
"I can't. I've been shut out of the lab. You prove it true." 
"Occam's razor proves it true. Simplest explanation that fits the facts." 
"Occam was a medieval old fart. The simplest explanation that fits the facts is 
always, God did it. Or maybe-- that old woman down the road is a witch. She did 
it. That's all this hypothesis is-- only you don't even know where the witch 
is." 
"The descolada is too sudden." 
"It didn't evolve, I know. Had to come from somewhere else. Fine. Even if it's 
artificial, that doesn't mean it isn't sentient now." 
"It's trying to kill us. It's varelse, not raman." 
"Oh, yes, Valentine's hierarchy. Well, how do I know that the descolada is the 
varelse, and we're the ramen? As far as I can tell, intelligence is 
intelligence. Varelse is just the term Valentine invented to mean Intelligence - 
that - we've - decided - to - kill, and raman means Intelligence - that - we - 
haven't - decided - to - kill - yet." 
"It's an unreasoning, uncompassionate enemy." 
"Is there another kind?" 
"The descolada doesn't have respect for any other life. It wants to kill us. It 
already rules the pequeninos. All so it can regulate this planet and spread to 
other worlds." 
For once, she had let him finish a long statement. Did it mean she was actually 
listening to him? 
"I'll grant you part of Wang-mu's hypothesis," said Quara. "It does make sense 
that the descolada is regulating the gaialogy of Lusitania. In fact, now that I 
think about it, it's obvious. It explains most of the conversations I've 
observed-- the information-- passing from one virus to another. I figure it 
should take only a few months for a message to get to every virus on the 
planet-- it would work. But just because the descolada is running the gaialogy 
doesn't mean that you've proved it's not sentient. In fact, it could go the 
other way-- the descolada, by taking responsibility for regulating the gaialogy 
of a whole world, is showing altruism. And protectiveness, too-- if we saw a 
mother lion lashing out at an intruder in order to protect her young, we'd 
admire her. That's all the descolada is doing-- lashing out against humans in 
order to protect her precious responsibility. A living planet." 
"A mother lion protecting her cubs." 
"I think so." 
"Or a rabid dog, devouring our babies." 
Quara paused. Thought for a moment. "Or both. Why can't it be both? The 
descolada's trying to regulate a planet here. But humans are getting more and 
more dangerous. To her, we're the rabid dog. We root out the plants that are 
part of her control system, and we plant our own, unresponsive plants. We make 
some of the pequeninos behave strangely and disobey her. We burn a forest at a 
time when she's trying to build more. Of course she wants to get rid of us!" 
"So she's out to destroy us." 
"It's her privilege to try! When will you see that the descolada has rights?" 
"Don't we? Don't the pequeninos?" 
Again she paused. No immediate counterargument. It gave him hope that she might 
actually be listening. 
"You know something, Miro?" 
"What?" 
"They were right to send you." 
"Were they?" 
"Because you're not one of them." 
That's true enough, thought Miro. I'll never be "one of" anything again. 
"Maybe we can't talk to the descolada. And maybe it really is just an artifact. 
A biological robot acting out its programming. But maybe it isn't. And they're 
keeping me from finding out." 
"What if they open the lab to you?" 
"They won't," said Quara. "If you think they will, you don't know Ela and 
Mother. They've decided that I'm not to be trusted, and so that's that. Well, 
I've decided they're not to be trusted, either." 
"Thus whole species die for family pride." 
"Is that all you think this is, Miro? Pride? I'm holding out because of nothing 
nobler than a petty quarrel?" 
"Our family has a lot of pride." 
"Well, no matter what you think, I'm doing this out of conscience, no matter 
whether you want to call it pride or stubbornness or anything else." 
"I believe you," said Miro. 
"But do I believe you when you say that you believe me? We're in such a tangle." 
She turned back to her terminal. "Go away now, Miro. I told you I'd think about 
it, and I will. 
"Go see Planter." 
"I'll think about that, too." Her fingers hovered over the keyboard. "He is my 
friend, you know. I'm not inhuman. I'll go see him, you can be sure of that. " 
"Good." 
He started for the door. 
"Miro," she said. 
He turned, waited. 
"Thanks for not threatening to have that computer program of yours crack my 
files open if I didn't open them myself." 
"Of course not," he said. 
"Andrew would have threatened that, you know. Everybody thinks he's such a 
saint, but he always bullies people who don't go along with him." 
"He doesn't threaten." 
"I've seen him do it." 
"He warns." 
"Oh. Excuse me. Is there a difference?" 
"Yes," said Miro. 
"The only difference between a warning and a threat is whether you're the person 
giving it or the person receiving it," said Quara. 
"No," said Miro. "The difference is how the person means it." 
"Go away," she said. "I've got work to do, even while I'm thinking. So go away." 

He opened the door. 
"But thanks," she said. 
He closed the door behind him. 
As he walked away from Quara's place, Jane immediately piped up in his ear. "I 
see you decided against telling her that I broke into her files before you even 
came." 
"Yes, well," said Miro. "I feel like a hypocrite, for her to thank me for not 
threatening to do what I'd already done." 
"I did it." 
"We did it. You and me and Ender. A sneaky group." 
"Will she really think about it?" 
"Maybe," said Miro. "Or maybe she's already thought about it and decided to 
cooperate and was just looking for an excuse. Or maybe she's already decided 
against ever cooperating, and she just said this nice thing at the end because 
she's sorry for me." 
"What do you think she'll do?" 
"I don't know what she'll do," said Miro. "I know what I'll do. I'll feel 
ashamed of myself every time I think about how I let her think that I respected 
her privacy, when we'd already pillaged her files. Sometimes I don't think I'm a 
very good person." 
"You notice she didn't tell you that she's keeping her real findings outside the 
computer system, so the only files I can reach are worthless junk. She hasn't 
exactly been frank with you, either." 
"Yes, but she's a fanatic with no sense of balance or proportion." 
"That explains everything." 
"Some traits just run in the family," said Miro. 



The hive queen was alone this time. Perhaps exhausted from something-- mating? 
Producing eggs? She spent all her time doing this, it seemed. She had no choice. 
Now that workers had to be used to patrol the perimeter of the human colony, she 
had to produce even more than she had planned. Her offspring didn't have to be 
educated-- they entered adulthood quickly, having all the knowledge that any 
other adult had. But the process of conception, egg-laying, emergence, and 
cocooning still took time. Weeks for each adult. She produced a prodigious 
number of young, compared to a single human. But compared to the town of 
Milagre, with more than a thousand women of childbearing age, the bugger colony 
had only one producing female. 
It had always bothered Ender, made him feel uneasy to know that there was only 
one queen. What if something happened to her? But then, it made the hive queen 
uncomfortable to think of human beings having only a bare handful of children-- 
what if something happened to them? Both species practiced a combination of 
nurturance and redundancy to protect their genetic heritage. Humans had a 
redundancy of parents, and then nurtured the few offspring. The hive queen had a 
redundancy of offspring, who then nurtured the parent. Each species had found 
its own balance of strategy. 
<Why are you bothering us about this?> 
"Because we're at a dead end. Because everybody else is trying, and you have as 
much at stake as we do." 
<Do I?> 
"The descolada threatens you as much as it threatens us. Someday you probably 
aren't going to be able to control it, and then you're gone." 
<But it's not the descolada you're asking me about.> 
"No." It was the problem of faster-than-light flight. Grego had been wracking 
his brains. In jail there was nothing else for him to think about. The last time 
Ender had spoken with him, he wept-- as much from exhaustion as frustration. He 
had covered reams of papers with equations, spreading them all over the secure 
room that was used as a cell. "Don't you care about faster-than-light flight?" 
<It would be very nice.> 
The mildness of her response almost hurt, it so deeply disappointed him. This is 
what despair is like, he thought. Quara a brick wall on the nature of descolada 
intelligence. Planter dying of descolada deprivation. Han Fei-tzu and Wang-mu 
struggling to duplicate years of higher study in several fields, all at once. 
Grego worn out. And nothing to show for it. 
She must have heard his anguish as clearly as if he had howled it. 
<Don't.> 
<Don't.> 
"You've done it," he said. "It must be possible." 
<We've never traveled faster than light.> 
"You projected an action across light-years. You found me." 
<You found us, Ender.> 
"Not so," he said. "I never even knew we had made mental contact until I found 
the message you had left for me." It had been the moment of greatest strangeness 
in his life, to stand on an alien world and see a model, a replication of the 
landscape that had existed in only one other place-- the computer on which he 
had played his personalized version of the Fantasy Game. It was like having a 
total stranger come up to you and tell you your dream from the night before. 
They had been inside his head. It made him afraid, but it also excited him. For 
the first time in his life, he felt known. Not known of-- he was famous 
throughout humanity, and in those days his fame was all positive, the greatest 
hero of all time. Other people knew of him. But with this bugger artifact, he 
discovered for the first time that he was known. 
<Think, Ender. Yes, we reached out toward our enemy, but we weren't looking for 
you. We were looking for someone like us. A network of minds linked together, 
with a central mind controlling it. We find each other's minds without trying, 
because we recognize the pattern. Finding a sister is like finding ourself.> 
"How did you find me, then?" 
<We never thought about how. We only did it. Found a hot bright source. A 
network, but very strange, with shifting membership. And at the center of it, 
not something like us, but just another-- common one. You. But with such 
intensity. Focused into the network, toward the other humans. Focused inward on 
your computer game. And focused outward, beyond all, on us. Searching for us.> 
"I wasn't searching for you. I was studying you." Watching every vid they had at 
the Battle School, trying to understand the way the bugger mind worked. "I was 
imagining you." 
<So we say. Searching for us. Imagining us. That's how we search for each other. 
So you were calling us.> 
"And that was all?" 
<No, no. You were so strange. We didn't know what you were. We couldn't read 
anything in you. Your vision was so limited. Your ideas shifted so rapidly, and 
you thought of only one thing at a time. And the network around you kept 
shifting so much, each member's connection with you waxing and waning over time, 
sometimes very quickly--> 
He was having trouble making sense of what they were saying. What kind of 
network was he connected to? 
<The other soldiers. Your computer.> 
"I wasn't connected. They were my soldiers, that's all." 
<How do you think we're connected? Do you see any wires?> 
"But humans are individuals, not like your workers." 
<Many queens, many workers, changing back and forth, very confusing. Terrible, 
frightening time. What were these monsters that had wiped out our colony ship? 
What kind of creature? You were so strange we couldn't imagine you at all. We 
could only feel you when you were searching for us.> 
Not helpful at all. Nothing to do with faster-than-light flight. It all sounded 
like mumbo-jumbo, not like science at all. Nothing that Grego could express 
mathematically. 
<Yes, that's right. We don't do this like science. Not like technology. No 
numbers or even thought. We found you like bringing forth a new queen. Like 
starting a new hive.> 
Ender didn't understand how establishing an ansible link with his brain could be 
like hatching out a new queen. "Explain it to me." 
<We don't think about it. We just do it.> 
"But what are you doing when you do it?" 
<What we always do.> 
"And what do you always do?" 
<How do you make your penis fill with blood to mate, Ender? How do you make your 
pancreas secrete enzymes? How do you switch on puberty? How do you focus your 
eyes?> 
"Then remember what you do, and show it to me." 
<You forget that you don't like this, when we show you through our eyes.> 
It was true. She had tried only a couple of times, when he was very young and 
had first discovered her cocoon. He simply couldn't cope with it, couldn't make 
sense of it. Flashes, a few glimpses were clear, but it was so disorienting that 
he panicked, and probably fainted, though he was alone and couldn't be sure what 
had happened, clinically speaking. 
"If you can't tell me, we have to do something." 
<Are you like Planter? Trying to die?> 
"No. I'll tell you to stop. It didn't kill me before." 
<We'll try-- something in between. Something milder. We'll remember, and tell 
you what's happening. Show you bits. Protect you. Safe.> 
"Try, yes." 
She gave him no time to reflect or prepare. At once he felt himself seeing out 
of compound eyes, not many lenses with the same vision, but each lens with its 
own picture. It gave him the same vertiginous feeling as so many years before. 
But this time he understood a little better-- in part because she was making it 
less intense than before, and in part because he knew something about the hive 
queen now, about what she was doing to him. 
The many different visions were what each of the workers was seeing, as if each 
were a single eye connected to the same brain. There was no hope of Ender making 
sense of so many images at once. 
<We'll show you one. The one that matters.> 
Most of the visions dropped out immediately. Then, one by one, the others were 
sorted out. He imagined that she must have some organizing principle for the 
workers. She could disregard all those who weren't part of the queen-making 
process. Then, for Ender's sake, she had to sort through even the ones who were 
part of it, and that was harder, because usually she could sort the visions by 
task rather than by the individual workers. At last, though, she was able to 
show him a primary image and he could focus on it, ignoring the flickers and 
flashes of peripheral visions. 
A queen being hatched. She had shown him this before, in a carefully-planned 
vision when he had first met her, when she was trying to explain things to him. 
Now, though, it wasn't a sanitized, carefully orchestrated presentation. The 
clarity was gone. It was murky, distracted, real. It was memory, not art. 
<You see we have the queen-body. We know she's a queen because she starts 
reaching out for workers, even as a larva.> 
"So you can talk to her?" 
<She's very stupid. Like a worker.> 
"She doesn't grow her intelligence until cocooning?" 
<No. She has her-- like your brain. The memory-think. It's just empty.> 
"So you have to teach her." 
<What good would teaching do? The thinker isn't there. The found thing. The 
binder-together.> 
"I don't know what you're talking about." 
  
<Stop trying to look and think, then. This isn't done with eyes.> 
"Then stop showing me anything, if it depends on another sense. Eyes are too 
important to humans; if I see anything it'll mask out anything but clear speech 
and I don't think there's much of that at a queen-making." 
<How's this?> 
"I'm still seeing something." 
<Your brain is turning it into seeing.> 
"Then explain it. Help me make sense of it." 
<It's the way we feel each other. We're finding the reaching-out place in the 
queen-body. The workers all have it, too, but all it reaches for is the queen 
and when it finds her all the reaching is over. The queen never stops reaching. 
Calling.> 
"So then you find her?" 
<We know where she is. The queen-body. The worker-caller. The memory-holder.> 
"Then what are you searching for?" 
<The us-thing. The binder. The meaning-maker.> 
"You mean there's something else? Something besides the queen's body?" 
<Yes, of course. The queen is just a body, like the workers. Didn't you know 
this?> 
"No, I never saw it." 
<Can't see it. Not with eyes.> 
"I didn't know to look for anything else. I saw the making of the queen when you 
first showed it to me years ago. I thought I understood then." 
<We thought you did too.> 
"So if the queen's just a body, who are you?" 
<We're the hive queen. And all the workers. We come and make one person out of 
all. The queen-body, she obeys us like the worker-bodies. We hold them all 
together, protect them, let them work perfectly as each is needed. We're the 
center. Each of us.> 
"But you've always talked as if you were the hive queen." 
<We are. Also all the workers. We're all together.> 
"But this center-thing, this binder-together--" 
<We call it to come and take the queen-body, so she can be wise, our sister.> 
"You call it. What is it?" 
<The thing we call.> 
"Yes, what is it?" 
<What are you asking? It's the called-thing. We call it.> 
It was almost unbearably frustrating. So much of what the hive queen did was 
instinctive. She had no language and so she had never had a need to develop 
clear explanations of that which had never needed explaining till now. So he had 
to help her find a way to clarify what he couldn't perceive directly. 
"Where do you find it?" 
<It hears us calling and cornes.> 
"But how do you call?" 
<As you called us. We imagine the thing which it must become. The pattern of the 
hive. The queen and the workers and the binding together. Then one comes who 
understands the pattern and can hold it. We give the queen-body to it.> 
"So you're calling some other creature to come and take possession of the 
queen." 
<To become the queen and the hive and all. To hold the pattern we imagined.> 
"So where does it come from?" 
<Wherever it was when it felt us calling.> 
"But where is that?" 
<Not here.> 
"Fine, I believe you. But where does it come from?" 
<Can't think of the place.> 
"You forget?" 
<We mean that the place where it is can't be thought of. If we could think of 
the place then they would already have thought of themselves and none of them 
would need to take the pattern we show.> 
"What kind of thing is this binder-together?" 
<Can't see it. Can't know it until it finds the pattern and then when it's there 
it's like us.> 
Ender couldn't help shuddering. All this time he had thought that he was 
speaking to the hive queen herself. Now he realized that the thing that talked 
to him in his mind was only using that body the way it used the buggers. 
Symbiosis. A controlling parasite, possessing the whole hive queen system, using 
it. 
<No. This is ugly, the terrible thing you're thinking. We aren't another thing. 
We're this thing. We are the hive queen, just the way you're the body. You say, 
My body, and yet you are your body, but you're also possessor of the body. The 
hive queen is ourself, this body is me, not something else inside. I. I wasn't 
anything until I found the imagining.> 
"I don't understand. What was it like?" 
<How can I remember? I never had memory until I followed the imagining and came 
to this place and became the hive queen.> 
"Then how did you know that you aren't just the hive queen?" 
<Because after I came, they gave me the memories. I saw the queen-body before I 
came, and then I saw the queen-body after I was in it. I was strong enough to 
hold the pattern in my mind, and so I could possess it. Become it. It took many 
days but then we were whole and they could give us the memories because I had 
the whole memory.> 
The vision the hive queen had been giving him faded. It wasn't helping anyway, 
or at least not in any way he could grasp. Nevertheless, a mental image was 
coming clear for Ender now, one that came from his own mind to explain all the 
things she was saying. The other hive queens-- not physically present, most of 
them, but linked philotically to the one queen who had to be there-- they held 
the pattern of the relationship between hive queen and workers in their minds, 
until one of these mysterious memoryless creatures was able to contain the 
pattern in its mind and therefore take possession of it. 
<Yes.> 
"But where do these things come from? Where do you have to go to get them?" 
<We don't go anywhere. We call, and there they are.> 
"So they're everywhere?" 
<They aren't here at all. Nowhere here. Another place.> 
"But you said you don't have to go anywhere to get them." 
<Doorways. We don't know where they are, but everywhere there's a door.> 
"What are the doorways like?" 
<Your brain made the word you say. Doorway. Doorway.> 
Now he realized that doorway was the word his brain called forth to label the 
concept they were putting in his mind. And suddenly he was able to grasp an 
explanation that made sense. 
"They're not in the same space-time continuum as ours. But they can enter ours 
at any point." 
<To them all points are the same point. All wheres are the same where. They only 
find one where-ness in the pattern.> 
"But this is incredible. You're calling forth some being from another place, 
and--" 
<The calling forth is nothing. All things do it. All new makings. You do it. 
Every human baby has this thing. The pequeninos are these things also. Grass and 
sunlight. All making calls them, and they come to the pattern. if there are 
already some who understand the pattern, then they come and possess it. Small 
patterns are very easy. Our pattern is very hard. Only a very wise one can 
possess it.> 
"Philotes," said Ender. "The things out of which all other things are made." 
<The word you say doesn't make a meaning like what we mean.> 
"Because I'm only just making the connection. We never meant what you've 
described, but the thing we did mean, that might be the thing you described." 
<Very unclear.> 
"Join the club." 
<Very welcome laughing happy.> 
"So when you make a hive queen, you already have the biological body, and this 
new thing-- this philote that you call out of the non-place where philotes are-- 
it has to be one that's able to comprehend the complex pattern that you have in 
your minds of what a hive queen is, and when one comes that can do it, it takes 
on that identity and possesses the body and becomes the self of that body--" 
<Of all the bodies.> 
"But there are no workers yet, when the hive queen is first made." 
<It becomes the self of the workers-to-come.> 
"We're talking about a passage from another kind of space. A place where 
philotes already are." 
<All in the same non-place. No place-ness in that place. No where-being. All 
hungry for whereness. All thirsty for pattern. All lonely for selfness.> 
"And you say that we're made of the same things?" 
<How could we have found you if you weren't?> 
"But you said that finding me was like making a hive queen." 
<We couldn't find the pattern in you. We were trying to make a pattern between 
you and the other humans, only you kept shifting and changing, we couldn't make 
sense of it. And you couldn't make sense of us, either, so that reaching of 
yours couldn't make a pattern, either. So we took the third pattern. You 
reaching into the machine. You yearning so much for it. Like the life-yearning 
of the new queen-body. You were binding yourself to the program in the computer. 
It showed you images. We could find the images in the computer and we could find 
them in your mind. We could match them while you watched. The computer was very 
complicated and you were even more complicated but it was a pattern that held 
still. You were moving together and while you were together you possessed each 
other, you had the same vision. And when you imagined something and did it, the 
computer made something out of your imagining and imagined something back. Very 
primitive imagining from the computer. It wasn't a self. But you were making it 
a self by the life-yearning. The reaching-out you were doing.> 
"The Fantasy Game," said Ender. "You made a pattern out of the Fantasy Game." 
<We imagined the same thing you were imagining. All of us together. Calling. It 
was very complicated and strange, but much simpler than anything else we found 
in you. Since then we know-- very few humans are capable of concentrating the 
way you concentrated on that game. And we've seen no other computer program that 
responded to a human the way that game responded to you. It was yearning, too. 
Cycling over and over, trying to find something to make for you. > 
"And when you called ..." 
<It came. The bridge we needed. The together-binder for you and the computer 
program. It held the pattern so that it was alive even when you weren't paying 
attention to it. It was linked to you, you were part of it, and yet we could 
also understand it. It was the bridge.> 
"But when a philote takes possession of a new hive queen, it controls it, 
queen-body and worker-bodies. Why didn't this bridge you made take control of 
me?" 
<Do you think we didn't try?> 
"Why didn't it work?" 
<You weren't capable of letting a pattern like that control you. You could 
willingly become part of a pattern that was real and alive, but you couldn't be 
controlled by it. You couldn't even be destroyed by it. And there was so much of 
you in the pattern that we couldn't even control it ourselves. Too strange for 
us.> 
"But you could still use it to read my mind." 
<We could use it to stay connected with you in spite of all the strangeness. We 
studied you, especially when you played the game. And as we understood you, we 
began to grasp the idea of your whole species. That each individual of you was 
alive, with no hive queen at all.> 
"More complicated than you expected?" 
<And less. Your individual minds were simpler in the ways that we expected to be 
complicated, and complicated in ways that we expected them to be simple. We 
realized that you were truly alive and beautiful in your perverse and tragic 
lonely way and we decided not to send another colony ship to your worlds.> 
"But we didn't know that. How could we know?" 
<We also realized that you were dangerous and terrible. You in particular, 
dangerous because you found all our patterns and we couldn't think of anything 
complicated enough to confuse you. So you destroyed all but me. Now I understand 
you better. I've had all these years to study you. You are not as terrifyingly 
brilliant as we thought.> 
"Too bad. Terrifying brilliance would be useful right now." 
<We prefer a comforting glow of intelligence.> 
"We humans get slower as we age. Give me a few more years and I'll be downright 
cozy." 
<We know that you'll die someday. Even though you put it off for so long.> 
Ender didn't want this to become another conversation about mortality or any of 
the other aspects of human life that so fascinated the hive queen. There was 
still one question that had occurred to him during the hive queen's story. An 
intriguing possibility. 
"The bridge you made. Where was it? In the computer?" 
<Inside you. The way I'm inside the body of the hive queen.> 
"But not part of me." 
<Part of you but also not-you. Other. Outside but inside. Bound to you but free. 
It couldn't control you, and you couldn't control it.> 
"Could it control the computer?" 
<We didn't think about that. We didn't care. Maybe.> 
"How long did you use this bridge? How long was it there?" 
<We stopped thinking about it. We were thinking about you.> 
"But it was still there the whole time you were studying me." 
<Where would it go?> 
"How long would it last?" 
<We never made one like that before. How would we know? The hive queen dies when 
the queen-body dies.> 
"But what body was the bridge in?" 
<Yours. At the center of the pattern.> 
"This thing was inside me?" 
<Of course. But it was still not-you. It disappointed us that way, when it 
couldn't let us control you, and we stopped thinking about it. But we see now 
that this was very important. We should have searched for it. We should have 
remembered it.> 
"No. To you it was like-- a bodily function. Like balling up your fist to hit 
somebody. You did it, and then when you didn't need it you didn't notice whether 
your fist was still there or not." 
<We don't understand the connection but it seems to make sense inside you.> 
"It's still alive, isn't it?" 
<It could be. We're trying to feel it. Find it. Where can we look? The old 
pattern isn't there. You don't play the Fantasy Game anymore.> 
"But it would still be linked to the computer, wouldn't it? A connection between 
me and the computer. Only the pattern could have grown, couldn't it? It could 
include other people, too. Think of it being linked to Miro-- the young man I 
brought with me--" 
<The broken one ...> 
"And instead of being linked to that one computer, linked to thousands and 
thousands of them, through the ansible links between worlds." 
<This could be. It was alive. It could grow. The way we grow when we make more 
workers. All this time. Now that you mention it, we're sure it must still be 
there because we're still linked to you, and it was only through that pattern 
that we connected with you. The connection is very strong now-- that's part of 
what it is, the link between us and you. We thought the connection grew stronger 
because we knew you better. But maybe it also grew stronger because the bridge 
was growing.> 
"And I always thought-- Jane and I always thought that she was-- that she had 
somehow come to exist in the ansible connections between worlds. That's probably 
where she feels herself, the place that feels like the center of her-- body, I 
was going to say." 
<We're trying to feel whether the bridge between us is still there. Hard to feel 
it.> 
"Like trying to find a particular muscle that you've been using all your life 
but never by itself." 
<Interesting comparison. We don't see the connection but no, now we see it.> 
"The comparison?" 
<The bridge. Very big. The pattern of it is too big. We can't grasp it anymore. 
Very big. Memory-- very confusing. Much harder than finding you the first time-- 
very confusing. Getting lost. We can't hold it in our mind anymore. > 
"Jane," whispered Ender. "You're a big girl now." 
Jane's voice came in answer: "You're cheating, Ender. I can't hear what she's 
saying to you. I can only feel your heart pounding and your rapid breathing." 
<Jane. We've seen this name in your mind many times. But the bridge wasn't a 
person with a face--> 
"Neither is Jane." 
<We see a face in your mind when you think of this name. We still see it. Always 
we thought it was a person. But now--> 
"She's the bridge. You made her." 
<Called her. You made the pattern. She possessed it. What she is, this Jane, 
this bridge, she began with the pattern we discovered in you and the Fantasy 
Game, yes, but she has imagined herself to be much larger. She must have been a 
very strong and powerful-- philote, if your word is the right name-- to be able 
to change her own pattern and still remember to be herself.> 
"You reached out across the light-years and found me because I was looking for 
you. And then you found a pattern and called a creature from another space who 
grasped the pattern and possessed it and became Jane. All of this 
instantaneously. Faster than light." 
<But this isn't faster-than-light travel. It's faster-than-light imagining and 
calling. It still doesn't pick you up here and put you there.> 
"I know. I know. This may not help us answer the question I came here with. But 
I had another question, just as important to me, that I never thought would have 
anything to do with you, and here you had the answer to it all along. Jane's 
real, alive the whole time, and her self isn't out there in space, it's inside 
me. Connected to me. They can't kill her by switching her off. That's 
something." 
<If they kill the pattern, she can die.> 
"But they can't kill the whole pattern, don't you see? It doesn't depend on the 
ansibles after all. It depends on me and on the link between me and the 
computers. They can't cut the link between me and the computers here and in the 
satellites orbiting Lusitania. And maybe she doesn't need the ansibles, either. 
After all, you don't need them to reach me through her." 
<Many strange things are possible. We can't imagine them. They feel very stupid 
and strange, the things going through your mind. You're making us very tired, 
with all your thinking of stupid imaginary impossible things.> 
"I'll leave you, then. But this will help. This has to help. If Jane can find a 
way to survive because of this, then that's a real victory. The first victory, 
when I was beginning to think there wasn't any victory to be had in this." 
The moment he left the presence of the hive queen, he began talking to Jane, 
telling her everything he could remember of what the hive queen could explain. 
Who Jane was, how she was created. 
And as he talked, she analyzed herself in light of what he said. Began to 
discover things about herself that she had never guessed. By the time Ender got 
back to the human colony, she had verified as much of his story as she could. "I 
never found this because I always started with the wrong assumptions," she said. 
"I imagined my center to be out in space somewhere. I should have guessed I was 
inside you from the fact that even when I was furious with you, I had to come 
back to you to be at peace." 
"And now the hive queen says that you've grown so big and complex that she can't 
hold the pattern of you in her mind anymore." 
"Must have gone through a growth spurt, back during my years of puberty." 
"Right." 
"Could I help it that humans kept adding computers and linking them up?" 
"But it isn't the hardware, Jane. It's the programs. The mentation." 
"I have to have the physical memory to hold all of that." 
"You have the memory. The question is, can you access it without the ansibles?" 
"I can try. As you said to her, it's like learning to flex a muscle I never knew 
I had." 
"Or learning to live without one." 
"I'll see what's possible." 
What's possible. All the way home, the car floating over the capim, he was also 
flying, exhilarated to know that something was possible after all, when till now 
he had felt nothing but despair. Coming home, though, seeing the burnt-over 
forest, the two solitary fathertrees with the only greenery left, the 
experimental farm, the new hut with the cleanroom where Planter lay dying, he 
realized how much there still was to lose, how many would still die, even if now 
they had found a way for Jane to live. 



It was the end of the day. Han Fei-tzu was exhausted, his eyes hurting from all 
that he had read. He had adjusted the colors on the computer display a dozen 
times, trying to find something restful, but it didn't help. The last time he 
had worked so intensely was as a student, and then he had been young. Then, too, 
he had always found results. I was quicker, then, brighter. I could reward 
myself by achieving something. Now I'm old and slow, I'm working in areas that 
are new to me, and it may be that these problems have no solutions. So there's 
no reward to bolster me. Only the weariness. The pain at the top of my neck, the 
puffy, tired feeling in my eyes. 
He looked at Wang-mu, curled up on the floor beside him. She tried so hard, but 
her education had begun too recently for her to be able to follow most of the 
documents that passed through the computer display as he searched for some 
conceptual framework for faster-than-light travel. At last her weariness 
triumphed over her will; she was sure she was useless, because she couldn't 
understand enough even to ask questions. So she gave up and slept. 
But you are not useless, Si Wang-mu. Even in your perplexity you've helped me. A 
bright mind to which all things are new. Like having my own lost youth perched 
at my elbow. 
As Qing-jao was, when she was little, before piety and pride claimed her. 
Not fair. Not right to judge his own daughter that way. Until these last weeks, 
hadn't he been perfectly satisfied with her? Proud of her beyond all reason? The 
best and brightest of the godspoken, everything her father had worked for, 
everything her mother had hoped. 
That was the part that chafed. Until a few weeks ago, he had been proudest of 
all of the fact that he had accomplished his oath to Jiang-qing. This was not an 
easy accomplishment, to bring up his daughter so piously that she never went 
through a period of doubt or rebellion against the gods. True, there were other 
children just as pious-- but their piety was usually achieved at the expense of 
their education. Han Fei-tzu had let Qing-jao learn everything, and then had so 
deftly led her understanding of it that all fit well with her faith in the gods. 

Now he had reaped his own sowing. He had given her a worldview that so perfectly 
preserved her faith that now, when he had discovered that the gods' "voices" 
were nothing but the genetic chains with which Congress had shackled them, 
nothing could convince her. If Jiang-qing had lived, Fei-tzu would no doubt have 
been in conflict with her over his loss of faith. In her absence, he had done so 
well at raising their daughter as Jiang-qing would have that Qing-jao was able 
to take her mother's view flawlessly. 
Jiang-qing would also have left me, thought Han Fei-tzu. Even if I had not been 
widowed, I would have been wifeless on this day. 
The only companion left to me is this servant girl, who pushed her way into my 
household only just in time to be the one spark of life in my old age, the one 
flicker of hope in my dark heart. 
Not my daughter-of-the-body, but perhaps there will be time and opportunity, 
when this crisis is past, to make Wang-mu my daughter-of-the-mind. My work with 
Congress is finished. Shall I not be a teacher, then, with a single disciple, 
this girl? Shall I not prepare her to be the revolutionary who can lead the 
common people to freedom from the tyranny of the godspoken, and then lead Path 
to freedom from Congress itself? Let her be such a one, and then I can die in 
peace, knowing that at the end of my life I have created the undoing of all my 
earlier work that strengthened Congress and helped overcome all opposition to 
its power. 
The soft breathing of the girl Wang-mu was like his own breath, like a baby's 
breath, like the sound of a breeze through tall grass. She is all motion, all 
hope, all freshness. 
"Han Fei-tzu, I think you are not asleep." 
He was not; but he had been half-dozing, for the sound of Jane's voice coming 
from the computer startled him as if he were waking up. 
"No, but Wang-mu is," he said. 
"Wake her, then," said Jane. 
"What is it? She's earned her rest." 
"She's also earned the right to hear this." 
Ela's face appeared beside Jane's in the display. Han Fei-tzu knew her at once 
as the xenobiologist who had been entrusted with the study of the genetic 
samples he and Wang-mu had collected. There must have been a breakthrough. 
He bowed himself down, reached out, shook the girl's hip as she lay there 
sleeping. She stirred. She stretched. Then, no doubt remembering her duty, she 
sat bolt upright. "Have I overslept? What is it? Forgive me for falling asleep, 
Master Han." 
She might have bowed herself in her confusion, but Fei-tzu wouldn't let her. 
"Jane and Ela asked me to wake you. They wanted you to hear." 
"I will tell you first," said Ela, "that what we hoped for is possible. The 
genetic alterations were crude and easily discovered-- I can see why Congress 
has done its best to keep any real geneticists from working with the human 
population of Path. The OCD gene wasn't in the normal place, which is why it 
wasn't identified at once by natologists, but it works almost exactly as 
naturally-occurring OCD genes work. It can easily be treated separately from the 
genes that give the godspoken enhanced intellectual and creative abilities. I 
have already designed a splicer bacterium that, if injected into the blood, will 
find a person's sperm or ova, enter them, remove the OCD gene, and replace it 
with a normal one, leaving the rest of the genetic code unaffected. Then the 
bacterium will die out quickly. It's based on a common bacterium that should 
already exist in many labs on Path for normal immunology and 
birth-defect-prevention work. So any of the godspoken who wish to give birth to 
children without the OCD can do it." 
Han Fei-tzu laughed. "I'm the only one on this planet who would wish for such a 
bacterium. The godspoken have no pity on themselves. They take pride in their 
affliction. It gives them honor and power." 
"Then let me tell you the next thing we found. It was one of my assistants, a 
pequenino named Glass, who discovered this-- I'll admit that I wasn't paying 
much personal attention to this project since it was relatively easy compared to 
the descolada problem we're working on." 
"Don't apologize," said Fei-tzu. "We are grateful for any kindness. All is 
undeserved. " 
"Yes. Well." She seemed flustered by his courtesy. "Anyway, what Glass 
discovered is that all but one of the genetic samples you gave us sort 
themselves neatly into godspoken and non-godspoken categories. We ran the test 
blind, and only afterward checked the sample lists against the identity lists 
you gave us-- the correspondence was perfect. Every godspoken had the altered 
gene. Every sample that lacked the altered gene was also not on your list of 
godspoken." 
"You said all but one." 
"This one baffled us. Glass is very methodical-- he has the patience of a tree. 
He was sure that the one exception was a clerical error or an error in 
interpreting the genetic data. He went over it many times, and had other 
assistants do the same. There is no doubt. The one exception is clearly a 
mutation of the godspoken gene. It naturally lacks the OCD, while still 
retaining all of the other abilities Congress's geneticists so thoughtfully 
provided." 
"So this one person already is what your splicer bacterium is designed to 
create." 
"There are a few other mutated regions that we aren't quite sure of at the 
moment, but they have nothing to do with the OCD or the enhancements. Nor are 
they involved in any of the vital processes, so this person should be able to 
have healthy offspring that carry the trait. In fact, if this person should mate 
with a person who has been treated with the splicer bacterium, all her offspring 
will almost certainly carry the enhancements, and there'd be no chance of any of 
them having the OCD." 
"How lucky for him," said Han Fei-tzu. 
"Who is it?" asked Wang-mu. 
"It's you," said Ela. "Si Wang-mu." 
"Me?" She seemed baffled. 
But Han Fei-tzu was not confused. "Ha!" he cried. "I should have known. I should 
have guessed! No wonder you have learned as quickly as my own daughter learned. 
No wonder you have had insights that helped us all even when you barely 
understood the subject you were studying. You are as godspoken as anyone on 
Path, Wang-mu-except that you alone are free of the shackles of the cleansing 
rituals." 
Si Wang-mu struggled to answer, but instead of words, tears came, silently 
drifting down her face. 
"Never again will I permit you to treat me as your superior," said Han Fei-tzu. 
"From now on you are no servant in my house, but my student, my young colleague. 
Let others think of you however they want. We know that you are as capable as 
anyone." 
"As Mistress Qing-jao?" Wang-mu whispered. 
"As anyone," said Fei-tzu. "Courtesy will require you to bow to many. But in 
your heart, you need bow to no one." 
"I am unworthy," said Wang-mu. 
"Everyone is worthy of his own genes. A mutation like that is much more likely 
to have crippled you. But instead, it left you the healthiest person in the 
world." 
But she would not stop her silent weeping. 
Jane must have been showing this to Ela, for she kept her peace for some time. 
Finally, though, she spoke. "Forgive me, but I have much to do," she said. 
"Yes," said Han Fei-tzu. "You may go." 
"You misunderstand me," said Ela. "I don't need your permission to go. I have 
more to say before I go." 
Han Fei-tzu bowed his head. "Please. We are listening." 
"Yes," whispered Wang-mu. "I'm listening too." 
"There is a possibility-- a remote one, as you will see, but a possibility 
nonetheless-- that if we are able to decode the descolada virus and tame it, we 
can also make an adaptation that could be useful on Path." 
"How so?" asked Han Fei-tzu. "Why should we want this monstrous artificial virus 
here?" 
"The whole business of the descolada is entering a host organism's cells, 
reading the genetic code, and reorganizing it according to the descolada's own 
plan. When we alter it, if we can, we'll remove its own plan from it. We'll also 
remove almost all of its self-defense mechanisms, if we can find them. At that 
point, it may be possible to use it as a super-splicer. Something that can 
effect a change, not just on the reproductive cells, but on all the cells of a 
living creature." 
"Forgive me," said Han Fei-tzu, "but I have been reading in this field lately, 
and the concept of a super-splicer has been rejected, because the body starts to 
reject its own cells as soon as they're genetically altered." 
"Yes," said Ela. "That's how the descolada kills. The body rejects itself to 
death. But that only happened because the descolada had no plan for dealing with 
humans. It was studying the human body as it went, making random changes and 
seeing what happened. It had no single plan for us, and so each victim ended up 
with many different genetic codes in his or her cells. What if we made a 
super-splicer that worked according to a single plan, transforming every cell in 
the body to conform with a single new pattern? In that case, our studies of the 
descolada assure us that the change could be effected in each individual person 
within six hours, usually-half a day at the most." 
"Fast enough that before the body can reject itself--" 
"It will be so perfectly unified that it will recognize the new pattern as 
itself." 
Wang-mu's crying had stopped. She seemed as excited now as Fei-tzu felt, and 
despite all her self-discipline, she could not contain it. "You can change all 
the godspoken? Free even the ones who are already alive?" 
"If we are able to decode the descolada, then not only would we be able to 
remove the OCD from the godspoken, we would also be able to install all the 
enhancements in the common people. It would have the most effect in the 
children, of course-- older people have already passed the growth stages where 
the new genes would have the most effect. But from that time on, every child 
born on Path would have the enhancements." 
"What then? Would the descolada disappear?" 
"I'm not sure. I think we would have to build into the new gene a way for it to 
destroy itself when its work is done. But we would use Wang-mu's genes as a 
model. Not to stretch the point, Wang-mu, you would become a sort of genetic 
co-parent of the entire population of your world." 
She laughed. "What a wonderful joke to play on them! So proud to be chosen, and 
yet their cure will come from one such as me!" At once, though, her face fell 
and she covered her face with her hands. "How could I say such a thing. I have 
become as haughty and arrogant as the worst of them." 
Fei-tzu laid his hand on her shoulder. "Say nothing so harsh. Such feelings are 
natural. They come and go quickly. Only those who make them a way of life are to 
be condemned for them." He turned back to Ela. "There are ethical problems 
here." 
"I know. And I think those problems should be addressed now, even though it may 
never be possible even to do this. We're talking about the genetic alteration of 
an entire population. It was an atrocity when Congress secretly did it to Path 
without the consent or knowledge of the population. Can we undo an atrocity by 
following the same path?" 
"More than that," said Han Fei-tzu. "Our entire social system here is based on 
the godspoken. Most people will interpret such a transformation as a plague from 
the gods, punishing us. If it became known that we were the source, we would be 
killed. It's possible, though, that when it becomes known that the godspoken 
have lost the voice of the gods-- the OCD-- the people will turn on them and 
kill them. How will freeing them from the OCD have helped them then, if they're 
dead?" 
"We've discussed this," said Ela. "And we have no idea what's the right thing to 
do. For now the question is moot because we haven't decoded the descolada and 
may never be able to. But if we develop the capability, we believe that the 
choice of whether to use it should be yours." 
"The people of Path?" 
"No," said Ela. "The first choices are yours, Han Fei-tzu, Si Wang-mu, and Han 
Qing-jao. Only you know of what has been done to you, and even though your 
daughter doesn't believe it, she does fairly represent the viewpoint of the 
believers and the godspoken of Path. If we get the capability, put the question 
to her. Put the question to yourselves. Is there some plan, some way to bring 
this transformation to Path, that would not be destructive? And if it can be 
done, should it be done? No-- say nothing now, decide nothing now. Think about 
it yourselves. We are not part of this. We will only inform you when or whether 
we learn how to do it. From there it will be up to you." 
Ela's face disappeared. 
Jane lingered a moment longer. "Worth waking up for?" she asked. 
"Yes!" cried Wang-mu. 
"Kind of nice to discover that you're a lot more than you ever thought you were, 
isn't it?" said Jane. 
"Oh, yes," said Wang-mu. 
"Now go back to sleep, Wang-mu. And you, Master Han-- your fatigue is showing 
very clearly. You're useless to us if you lose your health. As Andrew has told 
me, over and over-- we must do all we can do without destroying our ability to 
keep doing it." 
Then she was gone, too. 
Wang-mu immediately began to weep again. Han Fei-tzu slid over and sat beside 
her on the floor, cradled her head against his shoulder, and rocked gently back 
and forth. "Hush, my daughter, my sweet one, in your heart you already knew who 
you were, and so did I, so did I. Truly your name was wisely given. If they 
perform their miracles on Lusitania, you will be the Royal Mother of all the 
world." 
"Master Han," she whispered. "I'm crying also for Qing-jao. I have been given 
more than I ever hoped for. But who will she be, if the voice of the gods is 
taken from her?" 
"I hope," said Fei-tzu, "that she will be my true daughter again. That she will 
be as free as you, the daughter who has come to me like a petal on the winter 
river, borne to me from the land of perpetual spring." 
He held her for many long minutes more, until she began to doze on his shoulder. 
Then he laid her back on her mat, and he retired to his own corner to sleep, 
with hope in his heart for the first time in many days. 



When Valentine came to see Grego in prison, Mayor Kovano told her that Olhado 
was with him. "Aren't these Olhado's working hours?" 
"You can't be serious," said Kovano. "He's a good manager of brickmakers, but I 
think saving the world might be worth an afternoon of somebody else covering for 
him on management." 
  
"Don't get your expectations too high," said Valentine. "I wanted him involved. 
I hoped he might help. But he isn't a physicist." 
Kovano shrugged. "I'm not a jailer, either, but one does what the situation 
requires. I have no idea whether it has to do with Olhado being in there or 
Ender's visit a little while ago, but I've heard more excitement and noise in 
there than-- well, than I've ever heard when the inmates were sober. Of course, 
public drunkenness is what people are usually jailed for in this town." 
"Ender came?" 
"From the hive queen. He wants to talk to you. I didn't know where you were." 
"Yes. Well, I'll go see him when I leave here." Where she had been was with her 
husband. Jakt was getting ready to go back into space on the shuttle, to prepare 
his own ship for quick departure, if need be, and to see whether the original 
Lusitanian colony ship could possibly be restored for another flight after so 
many decades without maintenance of the stardrive. 
The only thing it had been used for was storage of seeds and genes and embryos 
of Earthborn species, in case they were someday needed. Jakt would be gone for 
at least a week, possibly longer, and Valentine couldn't very well let him go 
without spending some time with him. He would have understood, of course-- he 
knew the terrible pressure that everyone was under. But Valentine also knew that 
she wasn't one of the key figures in these events. She would only be useful 
later, writing the history of it. 
When she left Jakt, however, she had not come straight to the mayor's office to 
see Grego. She had taken a walk through the center of town. Hard to believe that 
only a short time ago-- how many days? Weeks? --the mob had formed here, drunken 
and angry, working themselves up to a murderous rage. Now it was so quiet. The 
grass had even recovered from the trampling, except for one mudhole where it 
refused to grow back. 
But it wasn't peaceful here. On the contrary. When the town had been at peace, 
when Valentine first arrived, there had been bustle and business here in the 
heart of the colony, all through the day. Now a few people were out and about, 
yes, but they were glum, almost furtive. Their eyes stayed down, looking at the 
ground before their feet, as if everyone were afraid that if they didn't watch 
every step they'd fall flat. 
Part of the glumness was probably shame, thought Valentine. There was a hole in 
every building in town now, where blocks or bricks had been torn out to use in 
the building of the chapel. Many of the gaps were visible from the praqa where 
Valentine walked. 
She suspected, however, that fear more than shame had killed the vibrancy in 
this place. No one spoke of it openly, but she caught enough comments, enough 
covert glances toward the hills north of town that she knew. What loomed over 
this colony wasn't the fear of the coming fleet. It wasn't shame over the 
slaughter of the pequenino forest. It was the buggers. The dark shapes only 
occasionally visible on the hills or out in the grass surrounding the town. It 
was the nightmares of the children who had seen them. The sick dread in the 
hearts of the adults. Historicals that took place set in the Bugger War period 
were continously checked out from the library as people became obsessed with 
watching humans achieve victory over buggers. And as they watched, they fed 
their worst fears. The theoretical notion of the hive culture as a beautiful and 
worthy one, as Ender had depicted it in his first book, the Hive Queen, 
disappeared completely for many of the people here, perhaps most of them, as 
they dwelt in the unspoken punishment and imprisonment enforced by the hive 
queen's workers. 
Is all our work in vain, after all? thought Valentine. I, the historian, the 
philosopher Demosthenes, trying to teach people that they need not fear all 
aliens, but can see them as raman. And Ender, with his empathic books the Hive 
Queen, the Hegemon, the Life of Human-- what force did they really have in the 
world, compared with the instinctive terror at the sight of these dangerous 
oversized insects? Civilization is only a pretense; in the crisis, we become 
mere apes again, forgetting the rational biped of our pretensions and becoming 
instead the hairy primate at the mouth of the cave, screeching at the enemy, 
wishing it would go away, fingering the heavy stone that we'll use the moment it 
comes close enough. 
Now she was back in a clean, safe place, not so disquieting even if it did serve 
as a prison as well as the center of city government. A place where the buggers 
were seen as allies-- or at least as an indispensable peacekeeping force, 
holding antagonists apart for their mutual protection. There are people, 
Valentine reminded herself, who are able to transcend their animal origins. 
When she opened the cell door, Olhado and Grego were both sprawled on bunks, 
papers strewn on the floor and table between them, some flat, some wadded up. 
Papers even covered the computer terminal, so that if the computer was on, the 
display couldn't possibly function. It looked like a typical teenager's bedroom, 
complete with Grego's legs stretching up the walls, his bare feet dancing a 
weird rhythm, twisting back and forth, back and forth in the air. What was his 
inner music? 
"Boa tarde, Tia Valentina," said Olhado. 
Grego didn't even look up. 
"Am I interrupting?" 
"Just in time," said Olhado. "We're on the verge of reconceptualizing the 
universe. We've discovered the illuminating principle that wishing makes it so 
and all living creatures pop out of nowhere whenever they're needed." 
"If wishing makes it so," said Valentine, "can we wish for faster-than-light 
flight?" 
"Grego's doing math in his head right now," said Olhado, "so he's functionally 
dead. But yes. I think he's on to something-- he was shouting and dancing a 
minute ago. We had a sewing-machine experience." 
"Ah," said Valentine. 
"It's an old science-class story," said Olhado. "People who wanted to invent 
sewing machines kept failing because they always tried to imitate the motions of 
hand-sewing, pushing the needle through the fabric and drawing the thread along 
behind through the eye at the back end of the needle. It seemed obvious. Until 
somebody first thought of putting the eye in the nose of the needle and using 
two threads instead of just one. A completely unnatural, indirect approach that 
when it comes right down to it, I still don't understand." 
"So we're going to sew our way through space?" 
"In a way. The shortest distance between two points isn't necessarily a line. It 
comes from something Andrew learned from the hive queen. How they call some kind 
of creature from an alternate spacetime when they create a new hive queen. Grego 
jumped on that as proof that there was a real non-real space. Don't ask me what 
he means by that. I make bricks for a living." 
"Unreal realspace," said Grego. "You had it backward." 
"The dead awake," said Olhado. 
"Have a seat, Valentine," said Grego. "My cell isn't much, but it's home. The 
math on this is still crazy but it seems to fit. I'm going to have to spend some 
time with Jane on it, to do the really tight calculations and run some 
simulations, but if the hive queen's right, and there's a space so universally 
adjacent to our space that philotes can pass into our space from the other space 
at any point, and if we postulate that the passage can go the other way, and if 
the hive queen is also right that the other space contains philotes just as ours 
does, only in the other space-- call it Outside-- the philotes aren't organized 
according to natural law, but are instead just possibilities, then here's what 
might work--" 
"Those are awfully big ifs," said Valentine. 
"You forget," said Olhado. "We start from the premise that wishing makes it so." 

"Right, I forgot to mention that," said Grego. "We also assume that the hive 
queen is right that the unorganized philotes respond to patterns in someone's 
mind, immediately assuming whatever role is available in the pattern. So that 
things that are comprehended Outside will immediately come to exist there." 
"All this is perfectly clear," said Valentine. "I'm surprised you didn't think 
of it before." 
"Right," said Grego. "So here's how we do it. Instead of trying to physically 
move all the particles that compose the starship and its passengers and cargo 
from Star A to Star B, we simply conceive of them all-- the entire pattern, 
including all the human contents-- as existing, not Inside, but Outside. At that 
moment, all the philotes that compose the starship and the people in it 
disorganize themselves, pop through into the Outside, and reassemble themselves 
there according to the familiar pattern. Then we do the same thing again, and 
pop back Inside-- only now we're at Star B. Preferably a safe orbiting distance 
away." 
"If every point in our space corresponds to a point Outside," said Valentine, 
"don't we just have to do our traveling there instead of here?" 
"The rules are different there," said Grego. "There's no whereness there. Let's 
assume that in our space, whereness-- relative location-- is simply an artifact 
of the order that philotes follow. It's a convention. So is distance, for that 
matter. We measure distance according to the time it takes to travel it-- but it 
only takes that amount of time because the philotes of which matter and energy 
are comprised follow the conventions of natural law. Like the speed of light." 
"They're just obeying the speed limit." 
"Yes. Except for the speed limit, the size of our universe is arbitrary. If you 
looked at our universe as a sphere, then if you stood outside the sphere, it 
could as easily be an inch across or a trillion lightyears or a micron." 
"And when we go Outside--" 
"Then the Inside universe is exactly the same size as any of the disorganized 
philotes there-- no size at all. Furthermore, since there is no whereness there, 
all philotes in that space are equally close or nonclose to the location of our 
universe. So we can reenter Inside space at any point." 
"That makes it sound almost easy," said Valentine. 
"Yes, well," said Grego. 
"It's the wishing that's hard," said Olhado. 
"To hold the pattern, you really have to understand it," said Grego. "Each 
philote that rules a pattern comprehends only its own part of reality. It 
depends on the philotes within its pattern to do their job and hold their own 
pattern, and it also depends the philote that controls the pattern that it's a 
part of to keep it in its proper place. The atom philote has to trust the 
neutron and proton and electron philotes to hold their own internal structures 
together, and the molecule philote to hold the atom in its proper place, while 
the atom philote concentrates on his own job, which is keeping the parts of the 
atom in place. That's how reality seems to work-- in this model, anyway." 
"So you transplant the whole thing to Outside and back Inside again," said 
Valentine. "I understood that." 
"Yes, but who? Because the mechanism for sending requires that the whole pattern 
for the ship and all its contents be established as a pattern of its own, not 
just an arbitrary conglomeration. I mean, when you load a cargo on a ship and 
the passengers embark, you haven't created a living pattern, a philotic 
organism. It's not like giving birth to a baby-- that's an organism that can 
hold itself together. The ship and its contents are just a collection. They can 
break apart at any point. So when you move all the philotes out into 
disorganized space, lacking whereness or thisness or any organizing principle, 
how do they reassemble? And even if they reassemble themselves into the 
structures they know, what do you have? A lot of atoms. Maybe even living cells 
and organisms-- but without spacesuits or a starship, because those aren't 
alive. All the atoms and maybe even the molecules are floating around, probably 
replicating themselves like crazy as the unorganized philotes out there start 
copying the pattern, but you've got no ship." 
"Fatal." 
"No, probably not," said Grego. "Who can guess? The rules are all different out 
there. The point is that you can't possibly bring them back into our space in 
that condition, because that definitely would be fatal." 
"So we can't." 
"I don't know. Reality holds together in Inside space because all the philotes 
that it's comprised of agree on the rules. They all know each other's patterns 
and follow the same patterns themselves. Maybe it can all hold together in 
Outside space as long as the spaceship and its cargo and passengers are fully 
known. As long as there's a knower who can hold the entire structure in her 
head." 
"Her?" 
"As I said, I have to have Jane do the calculations. She has to see if she has 
access to enough memory to contain the pattern of relationships within a 
spaceship. She has to then see if she can take that pattern and imagine its new 
location." 
"That's the wishing part," said Olhado. "I'm very proud of it, because I'm the 
one who thought of needing a knower to move the ship." 
"This whole thing is really Olhado's," said Grego, "but I intend to put my name 
first on the paper because he doesn't care about career advancement and I have 
to look good enough for people to overlook this felony conviction if I'm going 
to get a job at a university on another world somewhere." 
"What are you talking about?" said Valentine. 
"I'm talking about getting off this two-bit colony planet. Don't you understand? 
If this is all true, if it works, then I can fly to Rheims or Baia or-- or Earth 
and come back here for weekends. The energy cost is zero because we're stepping 
outside natural laws entirely. The wear and tear on the vehicles is nothing." 
"Not nothing," said Olhado. "We've still got to taxi close to the planet of 
destination." 
"As I said, it all depends on what Jane can conceive of. She has to be able to 
comprehend the whole ship and its contents. She has to be able to imagine us 
Outside and Inside again. She has to be able to conceive of the exact relative 
positions of the startpoint and endpoint of the journey." 
"So faster-than-light travel depends completely on Jane," said Valentine. 
"If she didn't exist, it would be impossible. Even if they linked all the 
computers together, even if someone could write the program to accomplish it, it 
wouldn't help. Because a program is just a collection, not an entity. It's just 
parts. Not a-- what was the word Jane found for it? An aiua." 
"Sanskrit for life," Olhado explained to Valentine. "The word for the philote 
who controls a pattern that holds other philotes in order. The word for 
entities-- like planets and atoms and animals and stars-- that have an 
intrinsic, enduring form." 
"Jane is an aiua, not just a program. So she can be a knower. She can 
incorporate the starship as a pattern within her own pattern. She can digest it 
and contain it and it will still be real. She makes it part of herself and knows 
it as perfectly and unconsciously as your aida knows your own body and holds it 
together. Then she can carry it with her Outside and back Inside again." 
"So Jane has to go?" asked Valentine. 
"If this can be done at all, it'll be done because Jane travels with the ship, 
yes," said Grego. 
"How?" asked Valentine. "We can't exactly go pick her up and carry her with us 
in a bucket." 
"This is something Andrew learned from the hive queen," said Grego. "She 
actually exists in a particular place-- that is, her aiua has a specific 
location in our space." 
"Where?" 
"Inside Andrew Wiggin." 
It took a while for them to explain to her what Ender had learned about Jane 
from the hive queen. It was strange to think of this computer entity as being 
centered inside Ender's body, but it made a kind of sense that Jane had been 
created by the hive queens during Ender's campaign against them. To Valentine, 
though, there was another, immediate consequence. If the faster-than-light ship 
could only go where Jane took it, and Jane was inside Ender, there could be only 
one conclusion. 
"Then Andrew has to go?" 
"Claro. Of course," said Grego. 
"He's a little old to be a test pilot," said Valentine. 
"In this case he's only a test passenger," said Grego. "He just happens to hold 
the pilot inside him." 
"It's not as if the voyage will have any physical stress," said Olhado. "If 
Grego's theory works out exactly right, he'll just sit there and after a couple 
of minutes or actually a microsecond or two, he'll be in the other place. And if 
it doesn't work at all, he'll just stay right here, with all of us feeling 
foolish for thinking we could wish our way through space." 
"And if it turns out Jane can get him Outside but can't hold things together 
there, then he'll be stranded in a place that doesn't even have any placeness to 
it," said Valentine. 
"Well, yes," said Grego. "If it works halfway, the passengers are effectively 
dead. But since we'll be in a place without time, it won't matter to us. It'll 
just be an eternal instant. Probably not enough time for our brains to notice 
that the experiment failed. Stasis." 
"Of course, if it works," said Olhado, "then we'll carry our own spacetime with 
us, so there would be duration. Therefore, we'll never know if we fail. We'll 
only notice if we succeed." 
"But I'll know if he never comes back," said Valentine. 
"Right," said Grego. "If he never comes back, then you'll have a few months of 
knowing it until the fleet gets here and blasts everything and everybody all to 
hell." 
"Or until the descolada turns everybody's genes inside out and kills us all," 
added Olhado. 
"I suppose you're right," said Valentine. "Failure won't kill them any deader 
than they'll be if they stay." 
"But you see the deadline pressure that we're under," said Grego. "We don't have 
much time left before Jane loses her ansible connections. Andrew says that she 
might well survive it after all-- but she'll be crippled. Brain-damaged." 
"So even if it works, the first flight might be the last." 
"No," said Olhado. "The flights are instantaneous. If it works, she can shuttle 
everybody off this planet in no more time than it takes people to get in and out 
of the starship." 
"You mean it can take off from a planet surface?" 
"That's still iffy," said Grego. "She might only be able to calculate location 
within, say ten thousand kilometers. There's no explosion or displacement 
problem, since the philotes will reenter Inside space ready to obey natural laws 
again. But if the starship reappears in the middle of a planet it'll still be 
pretty hard to dig to the surface." 
"But if she can be really precise-- within a couple of centimeters, for 
instance-- then the flights can be surface-to-surface," said Olhado. 
"Of course we're dreaming," said Grego. "Jane's going to come back and tell us 
that even if she could turn all the stellar mass in the galaxy into computer 
chips, she couldn't hold all the data she'd have to know in order to make a 
starship travel this way. But at the moment, it still sounds possible and I am 
feeling good!" 
At that, Grego and Olhado started whooping and laughing so loud that Mayor 
Kovano came to the door to make sure Valentine was all right. To her 
embarrassment, he caught her laughing and whooping right along with them. 
"Are we happy, then?" asked Kovano. 
"I guess," said Valentine, trying to recover her composure. 
"Which of our many problems have we solved?" 
"Probably none of them," said Valentine. "It would be too idiotically convenient 
if the universe could be manipulated to work this way." 
"But you've thought of something." 
"The metaphysical geniuses here have a completely unlikely possibility," said 
Valentine. "Unless you slipped them something really weird in their lunch." 
Kovano laughed and left them alone. But his visit had had the effect of sobering 
them again. 
"Is it possible?" asked Valentine. 
"I would never have thought so," said Grego. "I mean, there's the problem of 
origin." 
"It actually answers the problem of origin," said Olhado. "The Big Bang theory's 
been around since--" 
"Since before I was born," said Valentine. 
"I guess," said Olhado. "What nobody's been able to figure out is why a Big Bang 
would ever happen. This way it makes a weird kind of sense. If somebody who was 
capable of holding the pattern of the entire universe in his head stepped 
Outside, then all the philotes there would sort themselves out into the largest 
place in the pattern that they could control. Since there's no time there, they 
could take a billion years or a microsecond, all the time they needed, and then 
when it was sorted out, bam, there they are, the whole universe, popping out 
into a new Inside space. And since there's no distance or position-- no 
whereness-- then the entire thing would begin the size of a geometric point--" 
"No size at all," said Grego. 
"I remember my geometry," said Valentine. 
"And immediately expand, creating space as it grew. As it grew, time would seem 
to slow down-- or do I mean speed up?" 
"It doesn't matter," said Grego. "It all depends whether you're Inside the new 
space or Outside or in some other Inspace." 
"Anyway, the universe now seems to be constant in time while it's expanding in 
space. But if you wanted to, you could just as easily see it as constant in size 
but changing in time. The speed of light is slowing down so that it takes longer 
to get from one place to another, only we can't tell that it's slowing down 
because everything else slows down exactly relative to the speed of light. You 
see? All a matter of perspective. For that matter, as Grego said before, the 
universe we live in is still, in absolute terms, exactly the size of a geometric 
point-- when you look at it from Outside. Any growth that seems to take place on 
the Inside is just a matter of relative location and time." 
"And what kills me," said Grego, "is that this is the kind of thing that's been 
going on inside Olhado's head all these years. This picture of the universe as a 
dimensionless point in Outside space is the way he's been thinking all along. 
Not that he's the first to think of it. Just that he's the one who actually 
believed it and saw the connection between that and the non-place where Andrew 
says the hive queen goes to find aidas." 
"As long as we're playing metaphysical games," said Valentine, "then where did 
this whole thing begin? If what we think of as reality is just a pattern that 
somebody brought Outside, and the universe just popped into being, then whoever 
it was is probably still wandering around giving off universes wherever she 
goes. So where did she come from? And what was there before she started doing 
it? And how did Outside come to exist, for that matter?" 
"That's Inspace thinking," said Olhado. "That's the way you conceive of things 
when you still believe in space and time as absolutes. You think of everything 
starting and stopping, of things having origins, because that's the way it is in 
the observable universe. The thing is, Outside there're no rules like that at 
all. Outside was always there and always will be there. The number of philotes 
there is infinite, and all of them always existed. No matter how many of them 
you pull out and put into organized universes, there'll be just as many left as 
there always were." 
"But somebody had to start making universes." 
"Why?" asked Olhado. 
"Because-- because I--" 
"Nobody ever started. It's always been going on. I mean, if it weren't already 
going on, it couldn't start. Outside where there aren't any patterns, it would 
be impossible to conceive of a pattern. They can't act, by definition, because 
they literally can't even find themselves." 
"But how could it always have been going on?" 
"Think of it as if this moment in time, the reality we live in at this moment, 
this condition of the entire universe-- of all the universes--" 
"You mean now." 
"Right. Think of it as if now were the surface of a sphere. Time is moving 
forward through the chaos of Outside like the surface of an expanding sphere, a 
balloon inflating. On the outside, chaos. On the inside, reality. Always 
growing-- like you said, Valentine. Popping up new universes all the time." 
"But where did this balloon come from?" 
"OK, you've got the balloon. The expanding sphere. Only now think of it as a 
sphere with an infinite radius." 
Valentine tried to think what that would mean. "The surface would be completely 
flat." 
"That's right." 
"And you could never go all the way around it." 
"That's right, too. Infinitely large. Impossible even to count all the universes 
that exist on the reality side. And now, starting from the edge, you get on a 
starship and start heading inward toward the center. The farther in you go, the 
older everything is. All the old universes, back and back. When do you get to 
the first one?" 
"You don't," said Valentine. "Not if you're traveling at a finite rate." 
"You don't reach the center of a sphere of infinite radius, if you're starting 
at the surface, because no matter how far you go, no matter how quickly, the 
center, the beginning, is always infinitely far away." 
"And that's where the universe began." 
"I believe it," said Olhado. "I think it's true." 
"So the universe works this way because it's always worked this way," said 
Valentine. 
"Reality works this way because that's what reality is. Anything that doesn't 
work this way pops back into chaos. Anything that does, comes across into 
reality. The dividing line is always there." 
"What I love," said Grego, "is the idea that after we've started tootling around 
at instantaneous speeds in our reality, what's to stop us from finding others? 
Whole new universes?" 
"Or making others," said Olhado. 
"Right," said Grego. "As if you or I could actually hold a pattern for a whole 
universe in our minds." 
"But maybe Jane could," said Olhado. "Couldn't she?" 
"What you're saying," said Valentine, "is that maybe Jane is God." 
"She's probably listening right now," said Grego. "The computer's on, even if 
the display is blocked. I'll bet she's getting a kick out of this." 
"Maybe every universe lasts long enough to produce something like Jane," said 
Valentine. "And then she goes out and creates more and--" 
"It goes on and on," said Olhado. "Why not?" 
"But she's an accident," said Valentine. 
"No," said Grego. "That's one of the things Andrew found out today. You've got 
to talk to him. Jane was no accident. For all we know there are no accidents. 
For all we know, everything was all part of the pattern from the start." 
"Everything except ourselves," said Valentine. "Our-- what's the word for the 
philote that controls us?" 
"Aiua," said Grego. He spelled it out for her. 
"Yes," she said. "Our will, anyway, which always existed, with whatever 
strengths and weaknesses it has. And that's why, as long as we're part of the 
pattern of reality, we're free." 
"Sounds like the ethicist is getting into the act," said Olhado. 
"This is probably complete bobagem," said Grego. "Jane's going to come back 
laughing at us. But Nossa Senhora, it's fun, isn't it?" 
"Hey, for all we know, maybe that's why the universe exists in the first place," 
said Olhado. "Because going around through chaos popping out realities is a 
lark. Maybe God's been having the best time." 
"Or maybe he's just waiting for Jane to get out there and keep him company," 
said Valentine. 



It was Miro's turn with Planter. Late-- after midnight. Not that he could sit by 
him and hold his hand. Inside the cleanroom, Miro had to wear a suit, not to 
keep contamination out, but to keep the descolada virus he carried inside 
himself from getting to Planter. 
If I just cracked my suit a little bit, thought Miro, I could save his life. 
In the absence of the descolada, the breakdown of Planter's body was rapid and 
devastating. They all knew that the descolada had messed with the pequenino 
reproductive cycle, giving the pequeninos their third life as trees, but until 
now it hadn't been clear how much of their daily life depended on the descolada. 
Whoever designed this virus was a coldhearted monster of efficiency. Without the 
descolada's daily, hourly, minutely intervention, cells began to become 
sluggish, the production of vital energy-storing molecules stopped, and-- what 
they feared most-- the synapses of the brain fired less rapidly. Planter was 
rigged with tubes and electrodes, and he lay inside several scanning fields, so 
that from the outside Ela and her pequenino assistants could monitor every 
aspect of his dying. In addition, there were tissue samples every hour or so 
around the clock. His pain was so great that when he slept at all, the taking of 
tissue samples didn't wake him. And yet through all this-- the pain, the 
quasi-stroke that was afflicting his brain-- Planter remained doggedly lucid. As 
if he were determined by sheer force of will to prove that even without the 
descolada, a pequenino could be intelligent. Planter wasn't doing this for 
science, of course. He was doing it for dignity. 
The real researchers couldn't spare time to take a shift as the inside worker, 
wearing the suit and just sitting there, watching him, talking to him. Only 
people like Miro, and Jakt's and Valentine's children-- Syfte, Lars, Ro, 
Varsam-- and the strange quiet woman Plikt; people who had no other urgent 
duties to attend to, who were patient enough to endure the waiting and young 
enough to handle their duties with precision-- only such people were given 
shifts. They might have added a fellow pequenino to the shift, but all the 
brothers who knew enough about human technologies to do the job right were part 
of Ela's or Ouanda's teams, and had too much work to do. Of all those who spent 
time inside the cleanroom with him, taking tissue samples, feeding him, changing 
bottles, cleaning him up, only Miro had known pequeninos well enough to 
communicate with them. Miro could speak to him in Brothers' Language. That had 
to be of some comfort to him, even if they were virtual strangers, Planter 
having been born after Miro left Lusitania on his thirty-year voyage. 
Planter was not asleep. His eyes were half-open, looking at nothing, but Miro 
knew from the movement of his lips that he was speaking. Reciting to himself 
passages from some of the epics of his tribe. Sometimes he chanted sections of 
the tribal genealogy. When he first started doing this, Ela had worried that he 
was becoming delirious. But he insisted that he was doing it to test his memory. 
To make sure that in losing the descolada he wasn't losing his tribe-- which 
would be the same as losing himself. 
Right now, as Miro turned up the volume inside his suit, he could hear Planter 
telling the story of some terrible war with the forest of Skysplitter, the "tree 
who called thunder." There was a digression in the middle of the war-story that 
told how Skysplitter got his name. This part of the tale sounded very old and 
mythic, a magical story about a brother who carried little mothers to the place 
where the sky fell open and the stars tumbled through onto the ground. Though 
Miro had been lost in his own thoughts about the day's discoveries-- the origin 
of Jane, Grego's and Olhado's idea of travel-by-wish-- for some reason he found 
himself paying close attention to the words that Planter was saying. And as the 
story ended, Miro had to interrupt. 
"How old is that story?" 
"Old," whispered Planter. "You were listening?" 
"To the last part of it." It was all right to talk to Planter at length. Either 
he didn't grow impatient with the slowness of Miro's speech-- after all, Planter 
wasn't going anywhere-- or his own cognitive processes had slowed to match 
Miro's halting pace. Either way, Planter let Miro finish his own sentences, and 
answered him as if he had been listening carefully. "Did I understand you to say 
that this Skysplitter carried little mothers with him?" 
"That's right," whispered Planter. 
"But he wasn't going to the fathertree." 
"No. He just had little mothers on his carries. I learned this story years ago. 
Before I did any human science." 
"You know what it sounds like to me? That the story might come from a time when 
you didn't carry little mothers to the fathertree. When the little mothers 
didn't lick their sustenance from the sappy inside of the mothertree. Instead 
they hung from the carries on the male's abdomen until the infants matured 
enough to burst out and take their mothers' place at the teat." 
"That's why I chanted it for you," said Planter. "I was trying to think of how 
it might have been, if we were intelligent before the descolada came. And 
finally I remembered that part in the story of Skysplitter's War." 
"He went to the place where the sky broke open." 
"The descolada got here somehow, didn't it?" 
"How old is that story?" 
"Skysplitter's War was twenty-nine generations ago. Our own forest isn't that 
old. But we carried songs and stories with us from our father-forest." 
"The part of the story about the sky and the stars, that could be a lot older, 
though, couldn't it?" 
"Very old. The fathertree Skysplitter died long ago. He might have been very old 
even when the war took place." 
"Do you think it might be possible that this is a memory of the pequenino who 
first discovered the descolada? That it was brought here by a starship, and that 
what he saw was some kind of reentry vehicle?" 
"That's why I chanted it." 
"If that's true, then you were definitely intelligent before the coming of the 
descolada." 
"All gone now," said Planter. 
"What's all gone? I don't understand." 
"Our genes of that time. Can't even guess what the descolada took away from us 
and threw out." 
It was true. Each descolada virus might contain within itself the complete 
genetic code for every native life form on Lusitania, but that was only the 
genetic code as it was now, in its descolada-controlled state. What the code was 
before the descolada came could never be reconstructed or restored. 
"Still," said Miro. "It's intriguing. To think that you already had language and 
songs and stories before the virus." And then, though he knew he shouldn't, he 
added, "Perhaps that makes it unnecessary for you to try to prove the 
independence of pequenino intelligence." 
"Another attempt to save the piggy," said Planter. 
A voice came over the speaker. A voice from outside the cleanroom. 
"You can move on out now." It was Ela. She was supposed to be asleep during 
Miro's shift. 
"My shift isn't over for three hours," said Miro. 
"I've got somebody else coming in." 
"There are plenty of suits." 
"I need you out here, Miro." Ela's voice brooked no possibility of disobedience. 
And she was the scientist in charge of this experiment. 
When he came out a few minutes later, he understood what was going on. Quara 
stood there, looking icy, and Ela was at least as furious. They had obviously 
been quarreling again-- no surprise there. The surprise was that Quara was here 
at all. 
"You might as well go back inside," said Quara as soon as Miro emerged from the 
sterilization chamber. 
"I don't even know why I left," said Miro. 
"She insists on having a private conversation," said Ela. 
"She'll call you out," said Quara, "but she won't disconnect the auditory 
monitoring system." 
"We're supposed to be documenting every moment of Planter's conversation. For 
lucidity." 
Miro sighed. "Ela, grow up." 
She almost exploded. "Me! Me grow up! She comes in here like she thinks she's 
Nossa Senhora on her throne--" 
"Ela," said Miro. "Shut up and listen. Quara is Planter's only hope of living 
through this experiment. Can you honestly say that it wouldn't serve the purpose 
of this experiment to let her--" 
"All right," said Ela, cutting him off because she already grasped his argument 
and bowed to it. "She's the enemy of every living sentient being on this planet, 
but I'll cut off the auditory monitoring because she wants to have a private 
conversation with the brother that she's killing." 
That was too much for Quara. "You don't have to cut off anything for me," she 
said. "I'm sorry I came. It was a stupid mistake." 
"Quara!" shouted Miro. 
She stopped at the lab door. 
"Get the suit on and go talk to Planter. What does he have to do with her?" 
Quara glared once again at Ela, but she headed toward the sterilization room 
from which Miro had just emerged. 
He felt greatly relieved. Since he knew that he had no authority at all, and 
that both of them were perfectly capable of telling him what he could do with 
his orders, the fact that they complied suggested that in fact they really 
wanted to comply. Quara really did want to speak to Planter. And Ela really did 
want her to do it. They might even be growing up enough to stop their personal 
differences from endangering other people's lives. There might be hope for this 
family yet. 
"She'll just switch it back on as soon as I'm inside," said Quara. 
"No she won't," said Miro. 
"She'll try," said Quara. 
Ela looked at her scornfully. "I know how to keep my word." 
They said nothing more to each other. Quara went inside the sterilization 
chamber to dress. A few minutes later she was out in the cleanroom, still 
dripping from the descolada-killing solution that had been sprayed all over the 
suit as soon as she was inside it. 
Miro could hear Quara's footsteps. 
"Shut it off," he said. 
Ela reached up and pushed a button. The footsteps went silent. 
Inside his ear, Jane spoke to him. "Do you want me to play everything they say 
for you?" 
He subvocalized. "You can still hear inside there?" 
"The computer is linked to several monitors that are sensitive to vibration. 
I've picked up a few tricks about decoding human speech from the slightest 
vibrations. And the instruments are very sensitive." 
"Go ahead then," said Miro. 
"No moral qualms about invasion of privacy?" 
"Not a one," said Miro. The survival of a world was at stake. And he had kept 
his word-- the auditory monitoring equipment was off. Ela couldn't hear what was 
being said. 
The conversation was nothing at first. How are you? Very sick. Much pain? Yes. 
It was Planter who broke things out of the pleasant formalities and into the 
heart of the issue. 
"Why do you want all my people to be slaves?" 
Quara sighed-- but, to her credit, it didn't sound petulant. To Miro's practiced 
ear, it sounded as though she were really emotionally torn. Not at all the 
defiant face she showed to her family. "I don't," she said. 
"Maybe you didn't forge the chains, but you hold the key and refuse to use it." 
"The descolada isn't a chain," she said. "A chain is a nothing. The descolada is 
alive." 
"So am I. So are all my people. Why is their life more important than ours?" 
"The descolada doesn't kill you. Your enemy is Ela and my mother. They're the 
ones who would kill all of you in order to keep the descolada from killing 
them." 
"Of course," said Planter. "Of course they would. As I would kill all of them to 
protect my people." 
"So your quarrel isn't with me." 
"Yes it is. Without what you know, humans and pequeninos will end up killing 
each other, one way or another. They'll have no choice. As long as the descolada 
can't be tamed, it will eventually destroy humanity or humanity will have to 
destroy it-- and us along with it." 
"They'll never destroy it," said Quara. 
"Because you won't let them." 
"Any more than I'd let them destroy you. Sentient life is sentient life." 
"No," said Planter. "With ramen you can live and let live. But with varelse, 
there can be no dialogue. Only war." 
"No such thing," Quara said. Then she launched into the same arguments she had 
used when Miro talked to her. 
When she was finished, there was silence for a while. 
"Are they talking still?" Ela whispered to the people who were watching in the 
visual monitors. Miro didn't hear an answer-- somebody probably shook his head 
no. 
"Quara," whispered Planter. 
"I'm still here," she answered. To her credit, the argumentative tone was gone 
from her voice again. She had taken no joy from her cruel moral correctness. 
"That's not why you're refusing to help," he said. 
"Yes it is." 
"You'd help in a minute if it weren't your own family you had to surrender to." 
"Not true!" she shouted. 
So-- Planter struck a nerve. 
"You're only so sure you're right because they're so sure you're wrong." 
"I am right!" 
"When have you ever seen someone who had no doubts who was also correct about 
anything?" 
"I have doubts," whispered Quara. 
"Listen to your doubts," said Planter. "Save my people. And yours." 
"Who am I to decide between the descolada and our people?" 
"Exactly," said Planter. "Who are you to make such a decision?" 
"I'm not," she said. "I'm withholding a decision." 
"You know what the descolada can do. You know what it will do. Withholding a 
decision is a decision." 
"It's not a decision. It's not an action." 
"Failing to try to stop a murder that you might easily stop-- how is that not 
murder?" 
"Is this why you wanted to see me? One more person telling me what to do?" 
"I have the right." 
"Because you took it upon yourself to become a martyr and die?" 
"I haven't lost my mind yet," said Planter. 
"Right. You've proved your point. Now let them get the descolada back in here 
and save you." 
"No." 
"Why not? Are you so sure you're right?" 
"For my own life, I can decide. I'm not like you-- I don't decide for others to 
die." 
"If humanity dies, I die with them," said Quara. 
"Do you know why I want to die?" said Planter. 
"Why?" 
"So I don't have to watch humans and pequeninos kill each other ever again." 
Quara bowed her head. 
"You and Grego-- you're both the same." 
Tears dropped onto the faceplate of the suit. "That's a lie." 
"You both refuse to listen to anybody else. You know better about everything. 
And when you're both done, many many innocent people are dead." 
She stood up as if to go. "Die, then," she said. "Since I'm such a murderer, why 
should I cry over you?" But she didn't take a step. She doesn't want to go, 
thought Miro. 
"Tell them," said Planter. 
She shook her head, so vigorously that tears flipped outward from her eyes, 
spattering the inside of the mask. If she kept that up, soon she wouldn't be 
able to see a thing. 
"If you tell what you know, everybody is wiser. If you keep a secret, then 
everyone is a fool." 
"If I tell, the descolada will die!" 
"Then let it!" cried Planter. 
The exertion was an extraordinary drain on him. The instruments in the lab went 
crazy for a few moments. Ela muttered under her breath as she checked with each 
of the technicians monitoring them. 
"Is that how you'd like me to feel about you?" asked Quara. 
"It is how you feel about me," whispered Planter. "Let him die." 
"No," she said. 
"The descolada came and enslaved my people. So what if it's sentient or not! 
It's a tyrant. It's a murderer. If a human being behaved the way the descolada 
acts, even you would agree he had to be stopped, even if killing him were the 
only way. Why should another species be treated more leniently than a member of 
your own?" 
"Because the descolada doesn't know what it's doing," said Quara. "It doesn't 
understand that we're intelligent." 
"It doesn't care," said Planter. "Whoever made the descolada sent it out not 
caring whether the species it captures or kills are sentient or not. Is that the 
creature you want all my people and all your people to die for? Are you so 
filled with hate for your family that you'll be on the side of a monster like 
the descolada?" 
Quara had no answer. She sank onto the stool beside Planter's bed. 
Planter reached out a hand and rested it on her shoulder. The suit was not so 
thick and impermeable that she couldn't feel the pressure of it, even though he 
was very weak. 
"For myself, I don't mind dying," he said. "Maybe because of the third life, we 
pequeninos don't have the same fear of death that you short-lived humans do. But 
even though I won't have the third life, Quara, I will have the kind of 
immortality you humans have. My name will live in the stories. Even if I have no 
tree at all, my name will live. And what I did. You humans can say that I'm 
choosing to be a martyr for nothing, but my brothers understand. By staying 
clear and intelligent to the end, I prove that they are who they are. I help 
show that our slavemasters didn't make us who we are, and can't stop us from 
being who we are. The descolada may force us to do many things, but it doesn't 
own us to the very center. Inside us there is a place that is our true self. So 
I don't mind dying. I will live forever in every pequenino that is free." 
"Why are you saying this when only I can hear?" said Quara. 
"Because only you have the power to kill me completely. Only you have the power 
to make it so my death means nothing, so that all my people die after me and 
there's no one left to remember. Why shouldn't I leave my testament with you 
alone? Only you will decide whether or not it has any worth." 
"I hate you for this," she said. "I knew you'd do this." 
"Do what?" 
"Make me feel so terrible that I have to-- give in!" 
"If you knew I'd do this, why did you come?" 
"I shouldn't have! I wish I hadn't!" 
"I'll tell you why you came. You came so that I would make you give in. So that 
when you did it, you'd be doing it for my sake, and not for your family." 
"So I'm your puppet?" 
"Just the opposite. You chose to come here. You are using me to make you do what 
you really want to do. At heart you are still human, Quara. You want your people 
to live. You would be a monster if you didn't." 
"Just because you're dying doesn't make you wise," she said. 
"Yes it does," said Planter. 
"What if I tell you that I'll never cooperate in the killing of the descolada?" 
"Then I'll believe you," said Planter. 
"And hate me." 
"Yes," said Planter. 
"You can't." 
"Yes I can. I'm not a very good Christian. I am not able to love the one who 
chooses to kill me and all my people." 
She said nothing. 
"Go away now," he said. "I've said all that I can say. Now I want to chant my 
stories and keep myself intelligent until death finally comes." 
She walked away from him, into the sterilization chamber. 
Miro turned toward Ela. "Get everybody out of the lab," he said. 
"Why?" 
"Because there's a chance that she'll come out and tell you what she knows." 
"Then I should be the one to go, and everybody else stay," said Ela. 
"No," said Miro. "You're the only one that she'll ever tell." 
"If you think that, then you're a complete--" 
"Telling anyone else wouldn't hurt her enough to satisfy her," said Miro. 
"Everybody out." 
Ela thought for a moment. "All right," she said to the others. "Get back to the 
main lab and monitor your computers. I'll bring us up on the net if she tells me 
anything, and you can see what she enters as we put it in. If you can make sense 
of what you're seeing, start following it up. Even if she actually knows 
anything, we still won't have much time to design a truncated descolada so we 
can get it to Planter before he dies. Go." 
They went. 
When Quara emerged from the sterilization chamber, she found only Ela and Miro 
waiting for her. 
"I still think it's wrong to kill the descolada before we've even tried to talk 
to it," she said. 
"It may well be," said Ela. "I only know that I intend to do it if I can." 
"Bring up your files," said Quara. "I'm going to tell you everything I know 
about descolada intelligence. If it works and Planter lives through this, I'm 
going to spit in his face." 
"Spit a thousand times," said Ela. "Just so he lives." 
Her files came up into the display. Quara began pointing to certain regions of 
the model of the descolada virus. Within a few minutes, it was Quara sitting 
before the terminal, typing, pointing, talking, as Ela asked questions. 
In his ear, Jane spoke up again. "The little bitch," she said. "She didn't have 
her files in another computer. She kept everything she knew inside her head." 



By late afternoon the next day, Planter was at the edge of death and Ela was at 
the edge of exhaustion. Her team had worked through the night; Quara had helped, 
constantly, indefatigably reading over everything Ela's people came up with, 
critiquing, pointing out errors. By midmorning, they had a plan for a truncated 
virus that should work. All of the language capability was gone, which meant the 
new viruses wouldn't be able to communicate with each other. All the analytical 
ability was gone as well, as near as they could tell. But safely in place were 
all the parts of the virus that supported bodily functions in the native species 
of Lusitania. As near as they could possibly tell without having a working 
sample of the virus, the new design was exactly what was needed-- a descolada 
that was completely functional in the life cycles of the Lusitanian species, 
including the pequeninos, yet completely incapable of global regulation and 
manipulation. They named the new virus recolada. The old one had been named for 
its function of tearing apart; the new one for its remaining function, holding 
together the species-pairs that made up the native life of Lusitania. 
Ender raised one objection-- that since the descolada must have been putting the 
pequeninos into a belligerent, expansive mode, the new virus might lock them 
into that particular condition. But Ela and Quara answered together that they 
had deliberately used an older version of the descolada as their model, from a 
time when the pequeninos were more relaxed-- more "themselves." The pequeninos 
working on the project had agreed to this; there was little time to consult 
anyone else except Human and Rooter, who also concurred. 
With the things that Quara had taught them about the workings of the descolada, 
Ela also had a team working on a killer bacterium that would spread quickly 
through the entire planet's gaialogy, finding the normal descolada in every 
place and every form, tearing it to bits and killing it. It would recognize the 
old descolada by the very elements that the new descolada would lack. Releasing 
the recolada and the killer bacterium at the same time should do the job. 
There was only one problem remaining-- actually making the new virus. That was 
Ela's direct project from midmorning on. Quara collapsed and slept. So did most 
of the pequeninos. But Ela struggled on, trying to use all the tools she had to 
break apart the virus and recombine it as she needed. 
But when Ender came late in the afternoon to tell her that it was now or never, 
if her virus was to save Planter, she could only break down and weep from 
exhaustion and frustration. 
"I can't," she said. 
"Then tell him that you've achieved it but you can't get it ready in time and--" 

"I mean it can't be done." 
"You've designed it." 
"We've planned it, we've modeled it, yes. But it can't be made. The descolada is 
a really vicious design. We can't build it from scratch because there are too 
many parts that can't hold together unless you have those very sections already 
working to keep rebuilding each other as they break down. And we can't do 
modifications of the present virus unless the descolada is at least marginally 
active, in which case it undoes what we're doing faster than we can do it. It 
was designed to police itself constantly so it can't be altered, and to be so 
unstable in all its parts that it's completely unmakable." 
"But they made it." 
"Yes, but I don't know how. Unlike Grego, I can't completely step outside my 
science on some metaphysical whim and make things up and wish them into 
existence. I'm stuck with the rules of nature as they are here and now, and 
there's no rule that will let me make it." 
"So we know where we need to go, but we can't get there from here." 
"Until last night I didn't know enough to guess whether we could design this new 
recolada or not, and therefore I had no way of guessing whether we could make 
it. I figured that if it was designable, it was makable. I was ready to make it, 
ready to act the moment Quara relented. All we've achieved is to know, finally, 
completely, that it can't be done. Quara was right. We definitely found out 
enough from her to enable us to kill every descolada virus on Lusitania. But we 
can't make the recolada that could replace it and keep Lusitanian life 
functioning." 
"So if we use the viricide bacterium--" 
"All the pequeninos in the world would be where Planter is now within a week or 
two. And all the grass and birds and vines and everything. Scorched earth. An 
atrocity. Quara was right." She wept again. 
"You're just tired." It was Quara, awake now and looking terrible, not refreshed 
at all by her sleep. 
Ela, for her part, couldn't answer her sister. 
Quara looked like she might be thinking of saying something cruel, along the 
lines of What did I tell you? But she thought better of it, and came and put her 
hand on Ela's shoulder. "You're tired, Ela. You need to sleep." 
"Yes," said Ela. 
"But first let's tell Planter." 
"Say good-bye, you mean." 
"Yes, that's what I mean." 
They made their way to the lab that contained Planter's cleanroom. The pequenino 
researchers who had slept were awake again; all had joined the vigil for 
Planter's last hours. Miro was inside with Planter again, and this time they 
didn't make him leave, though Ender knew that both Ela and Quara longed to be 
inside with him. Instead they both spoke to him over the speakers, explaining 
what they had found. The half-success that was worse, in its way, than complete 
failure, because it could easily lead to the destruction of all the pequeninos, 
if the humans of Lusitania became desperate enough. 
"You won't use it," whispered Planter. The microphones, sensitive as they were, 
could barely pick up his voice. 
"We won't," said Quara. "But we're not the only people here." 
"You won't use it," he said. "I'm the only one who'll ever die like this." 
The last of his words were voiceless; they read his lips later, from the holo 
recording, to be sure of what he said. And, having said it, having heard their 
good-byes, he died. 
The moment the monitoring machines confirmed his death, the pequeninos of the 
research group rushed into the cleanroom. No need for sterilization now. They 
wanted the descolada with them. Brusquely moving Miro out of the way, they set 
to work, injecting the virus into every part of Planter's body, hundreds of 
injections in moments. They had been preparing for this, obviously. They would 
respect Planter's sacrifice in life-- but once he was dead, his honor satisfied, 
they had no compunctions about trying to save him for the third life if they 
could. 
They took him out into the open space where Human and Rooter stood, and laid him 
on a spot already marked, forming an equilateral triangle with those two young 
fathertrees. There they flayed his body and staked it open. Within hours a tree 
was growing, and there was hope, briefly, that it might be a fathertree. But it 
took only a few days more for the brothers, who were adept at recognizing a 
young fathertree, to declare that the effort had failed. There was a kind of 
life, containing his genes, yes; but the memories, the will, the person who was 
Planter was lost. The tree was mute; there would be no mind joining the 
perpetual conclave of the fathertrees. Planter had determined to free himself of 
the descolada, even if it meant losing the third life that was the descolada's 
gift to those it possessed. He succeeded, and, in losing, won. 
He had succeeded in something else, too. The pequeninos departed from their 
normal pattern of forgetting quickly the name of mere brothertrees. Though no 
little mother would ever crawl its bark, the brothertree that had grown from his 
corpse would be known by the name of Planter and treated with respect, as if it 
were a fathertree, as if it were a person. Moreover, his story was told and told 
again throughout Lusitania, wherever pequeninos lived. He had proved that 
pequeninos were intelligent even without the descolada; it was a noble 
sacrifice, and speaking the name of Planter was a reminder to all pequeninos of 
their fundamental freedom from the virus that had put them in bondage. 
But Planter's death did not give any pause to the preparations for pequenino 
colonization of other worlds. Warmaker's people had a majority now, and as 
rumors spread that the humans had a bacterium capable of killing all the 
descolada, they had an even greater urgency. Hurry, they told the hive queen 
again and again. Hurry, so we can win free of this world before the humans 
decide to kill us all. 



"I can do it, I think," said Jane. "If the ship is small and simple, the cargo 
almost nothing, the crew as few as possible, then I can hold the pattern of it 
in my mind. If the voyage is brief, the stay in Outspace very short. As for 
holding the locations of the start and finish in my mind, that's easy, child's 
play, I can do it within a millimeter, less. If I slept, I could do it in my 
sleep. So there's no need for it to endure acceleration or provide extended life 
support. The starship can be simple. A sealed environment, places to sit, light, 
heat. If in fact we can get there and I can hold it all together and bring us 
back, then we won't be out in space long enough to use up the oxygen in a small 
room." 
They were all gathered in the Bishop's office to listen to her-- the whole 
Ribeira family, Jakt's and Valentine's family, the pequenino researchers, 
several priests and Filhos, and perhaps a dozen other leaders of the human 
colony. The Bishop had insisted on having the meeting in his office. "Because 
it's large enough," he had said, "and because if you're going to go out like 
Nimrod and hunt before the Lord, if you're going to send a ship like Babel out 
to heaven to seek the face of God, then I want to be there to plead with God to 
be merciful to you." 
"How much of your capacity is left?" Ender asked Jane. 
"Not much," she said. "As it is, every computer in the Hundred Worlds will be 
sluggish while we do it, as I use their memory to hold the pattern." 
"I ask, because we want to try to perform an experiment while we're out there." 
"Don't waffle about it, Andrew," said Ela. "We want to perform a miracle while 
we're there. If we get Outside it means that Grego and Olhado are probably right 
about what it's like out there. And that means that the rules are different. 
Things can be created just by comprehending the pattern of them. So I want to 
go. There's a chance that while I'm there, holding the pattern of the recolada 
virus in my mind, I might be able to create it. I might be able to bring back a 
virus that can't be made in realspace. Can you take me? Can you hold me there 
long enough to make the virus?" 
"How long is that?" asked Jane. 
"It should be instantaneous," said Grego. "The moment we arrive, whatever full 
patterns we hold in our minds should be created within a period of time too 
brief for humans to notice. The real time will be taken analyzing to see if, in 
fact, she's got the virus she wanted. Maybe five minutes." 
"Yes," said Jane. "If I can do this at all, I can do it for five minutes." 
"The rest of the crew," said Ender. 
"The rest of the crew will be you and Miro," said Jane. "And no one else." 
Grego protested loudest, but he was not alone. 
"I'm a pilot," said Jakt. 
"I'm the only pilot of this ship," said Jane. 
"Olhado and I thought of it," said Grego. 
"Ender and Miro will come because it can't be done safely without them. I dwell 
within Ender-- where he goes, he carries me with him. Miro, on the other hand, 
has become so close to me that I think he might be part of the pattern that is 
myself. I want him there because I may not be whole without him. No one else. I 
can't have anyone else in the pattern. Ela is the only one beyond these two." 
"Then that's the crew," said Ender. 
"With no argument," added Mayor Kovano. 
"Will the hive queen build the ship?" asked Jane. 
"She will," said Ender. 
"Then I have only one more favor to ask. Ela, if I can give you the five 
minutes, can you also hold the pattern of another virus in your mind?" 
"The virus for Path?" she asked. 
"We owe them that, if we can, for the help they gave to us." 
"I think so," she said, "or at least the differences between it and the normal 
descolada. That's all I can possibly hold of anything-- the differences." 
"And how soon will all this happen?" asked the Mayor. 
"However fast the hive queen can build the ship," said Jane. "We have only 
forty-eight days until the Hundred Worlds shut down their ansibles. I will 
survive that day, we know that now, but it will cripple me. It will take me 
awhile to relearn all my lost memories, if I ever can. Until that's happened, I 
can't possibly sustain the pattern of a ship to go Outside." 
"The hive queen can have a ship as simple as this one built long before then," 
said Ender. "In a ship so small there's no chance of shuttling all the people 
and pequeninos off Lusitania before the fleet arrives, let alone before the 
ansible cut-off keeps Jane from being able to fly the ship. But there'll be time 
to take new, descolada-free pequenino communities-- a brother, a wife, and many 
pregnant little mothers-- to a dozen planets and establish them there. Time to 
take new hive queens in their cocoons, already fertilized to lay their first few 
hundred eggs, to a dozen worlds as well. If this works at all, if we don't just 
sit there like idiots in a cardboard box wishing we could fly, then we'll come 
back with peace for this world, freedom from the danger of the descolada, and 
safe dispersal for the genetic heritage of the other species of ramen here. A 
week ago, it looked impossible. Now there's hope." 
"Gracas a deus," said the Bishop. 
Quara laughed. 
Everyone looked at her. 
"I'm sorry," she said. "I was just thinking-- I heard a prayer, not many weeks 
ago. A prayer to Os Venerados, Grandfather Gusto and Grandmother Cida. That if 
there wasn't a way to solve the impossible problems facing us, they would 
petition God to open up the way." 
"Not a bad prayer," said the Bishop. "And perhaps God has granted it." 
"I know," said Quara. "That's what I was thinking. What if all this stuff about 
Outspace and Inspace, what if it was never real before. What if it only came to 
be true because of that prayer?" 
"What of it?" asked the Bishop. 
"Well, don't you think that would be funny?" 
Apparently no one did. 
Table of Contents



Chapter 16 -- Voyage
<So the humans have their starship ready now, while the one you've been building 
for us is still incomplete.> 
<The one they wanted was a box with a door. No propulsion, no life support, no 
cargo space. Yours and ours are far more complicated. We haven't slacked, and 
they'll be ready soon.> 
<I'm really not complaining. I wanted Ender's ship to be ready first. It's the 
one that carries real hope.> 
<For us as well. We agree with Ender and his people that the descolada must 
never be killed here on Lusitania, unless the recolada can somehow be made. But 
when we send new hive queens to other worlds, we'll kill the descolada on the 
starship that takes them, so there's no chance of polluting our new home. So 
that we can live without fear of destruction from this artificial varelse.> 
<What you do on your ship is nothing to us.> 
<With any luck, none of this will matter. Their new starship will find its way 
Outside, return with the recolada, set you free and us as well, and then the new 
ship will shuttle us all to as many worlds as we desire.> 
<Will it work? The box you made for them?> 
<We know the place where they're going is real; we call our very selves from 
there. And the bridge we made, the one that Ender calls Jane, is such a pattern 
as we've never seen before. If it can be done, such a one as that can do it. We 
never could.> 
<Will you leave? If the new ship works?> 
<We'll make daughter-queens who'll take my memories with them to other worlds. 
But we ourselves will stay here. This place where I came forth from my cocoon, 
it's my home forever.> 
<So you're as rooted here as I am.> 
<That's what daughters are for. To go where we will never go, to carry our 
memory on to places that we'll never see.> 
<But we will see. Won't we? You said the philotic connection would remain.> 
<We were thinking of the voyage across time. We live a long time, we hives, you 
trees. But our daughters and their daughters will outlive us. Nothing changes 
that.> 
  
  
  
Qing-jao listened to them as they laid the choice before her. 
"Why should I care what you decide?" she said, when they were finished. "The 
gods will laugh at you." 
Father shook his head. "No they won't, my daughter, Gloriously Bright. The gods 
care nothing more for Path than any other world. The people of Lusitania are on 
the verge of creating a virus that can free us all. No more rituals, no more 
bondage to the disorder in our brains. So I ask you again, if we can do it, 
should we? It would cause disorder here. Wang-mu and I have planned how we'll 
proceed, how we'll announce what we are doing so that people will understand it, 
so there'll be a chance that the godspoken won't be slaughtered, but can step 
down gently from their privileges." 
"Privileges are nothing," said Qing-jao. "You taught me that yourself. They're 
only the people's way of expressing their reverence for the gods." 
"Alas, my daughter, if only I knew that more of the godspoken shared that humble 
view of our station. Too many of them think that it's their right to be 
acquisitive and oppressive, because the gods speak to them and not to others." 
"Then the gods will punish them. I'm not afraid of your virus." 
"But you are, Qing-jao, I see it." 
"How can I tell my father that he does not see what he claims to see? I can only 
say that I must be blind." 
"Yes, my Qing-jao, you are. Blind on purpose. Blind to your own heart. Because 
you tremble even now. You have never been sure that I was wrong. From the time 
Jane showed us the true nature of the speaking of the gods, you've been unsure 
of what was true." 
"Then I'm unsure of sunrise. I'm unsure of breath." 
"We're all unsure of breath, and the sun stays in its same place, day and night, 
neither rising nor falling. We are the ones who rise and fall." 
"Father, I fear nothing from this virus." 
"Then our decision is made. If the Lusitanians can bring us the virus, we'll use 
it." 
Han Fei-tzu got up to leave her room. 
But her voice stopped him before he reached the door. "Is this the disguise the 
punishment of the gods will take, then?" 
"What?" he asked. 
"When they punish Path for your iniquity in working against the gods who have 
given their mandate to Congress, will they disguise their punishment by making 
it seem to be a virus that silences them?" 
"I wish dogs had torn my tongue out before I taught you to think that way." 
"Dogs already are tearing at my heart," Qing-jao answered him. "Father, I beg 
you, don't do this. Don't let your rebelliousness provoke the gods into falling 
silent across the whole face of this world." 
"I will, Qing-jao, so no more daughters or sons have to grow up slaves as you 
have been. When I think of your face pressed close to the floor, tracing the 
woodgrain, I want to cut the bodies of those who forced this thing upon you, cut 
them until their blood makes lines, which I will gladly trace, to know that 
they've been punished." 
She wept. "Father, I beg you, don't provoke the gods." 
"More than ever now I'm determined to release the virus, if it comes." 
"What can I do to persuade you? If I say nothing, you will do it, and when I 
speak to beg you, you will do it all the more surely." 
"Do you know how you could stop me? You could speak to me as if you knew the 
speaking of the gods is the product of a brain disorder, and then, when I know 
you see the world clear and true, you could persuade me with good arguments that 
such a swift, complete, and devastating change would be harmful, or whatever 
other argument you might raise." 
"So to persuade my father, I must lie to him?" 
"No, my Gloriously Bright. To persuade your father, you must show that you 
understand the truth." 
"I understand the truth," said Qing-jao. "I understand that some enemy has 
stolen you from me. I understand that all I have left now is the gods, and 
Mother who is among them. I beg the gods to let me die and join her, so I don't 
have to suffer any more of the pain you cause me, but still they leave me here. 
I think that means they wish me still to worship them. Perhaps I'm not yet 
purified enough. Or perhaps they know that you will soon turn your heart around 
again, and come to me as you used to, speaking honorably of the gods and 
teaching me to be a true servant." 
"That will never happen," said Han Fei-tzu. 
"Once I thought you could someday be the god of Path. Now I see that, far from 
being the protector of this world, you are its darkest enemy." 
Han Fei-tzu covered his face and left the room, weeping for his daughter. He 
could never persuade her as long as she heard the voice of the gods. But perhaps 
if they brought the virus, perhaps if the gods fell silent, she would listen to 
him then. Perhaps he could win her back to rationality. 



They sat in the starship-- more like two metal bowls, one domed over the other, 
with a door in the side. Jane's design, faithfully executed by the hive queen 
and her workers, included many instruments on the outside of the ship. But even 
bristling with sensors it didn't resemble any kind of starship ever seen before. 
It was far too small, and there was no visible means of propulsion. The only 
power that could carry this ship anywhere was the unseeable aiua that Ender 
carried on board with him. 
They faced each other in a circle. There were six chairs, because Jane's design 
allowed for the chance that the ship would be used again, to carry more people 
from world to world. They had taken every other seat, so they formed a triangle: 
Ender, Miro, Ela. 
The good-byes had all been said. Sisters and brothers, other kin and many 
friends had come. One, though, was most painful in her absence. Novinha. Ender's 
wife, Miro's and Ela's mother. She would have no part of this. That was the only 
real sorrow at the parting. 
The rest was all fear and excitement, hope and disbelief. They might be moments 
away from death. They might be moments away from filling the vials on Ela's lap 
with the viruses that would mean deliverance on two worlds. They might be the 
pioneers of a new kind of starflight that would save the species threatened by 
the M.D. Device. 
They might also be three fools who would sit on the ground, in a grassy field 
just outside the compound of the human colony on Lusitania, until at last it 
grew so hot and stuffy inside that they had to emerge. No one waiting there 
would laugh, of course, but there'd be laughter throughout the town. It would be 
the laughter of despair. It would mean that there was no escape, no liberty, 
only more and more fear until death came in one of its many possible guises. 
"Are you with us, Jane?" asked Ender. 
The voice in his ear was quiet. "While I do this, Ender, I'll have no part of me 
that I can spare to talk to you." 
"So you'll be with us, but mute," said Ender. "How will I know you're there?" 
She laughed softly in his ear. "Foolish boy, Ender. If you're still there, I'm 
still inside you. And if I'm not inside you, you will have no 'there' to be." 
Ender imagined himself breaking into a trillion constituent parts, scattering 
through chaos. Personal survival depended not only on Jane holding the pattern 
of the ship, but also on him being able to hold the pattern of his mind and 
body. Only he had no idea whether his mind was really strong enough to maintain 
that pattern, once he was where the laws of nature were not in force. 
"Ready?" asked Jane. 
"She asks if we're ready," said Ender. 
Miro was already nodding. Ela bowed her head. Then, after a moment, she crossed 
herself, took firm hold on the rack of vials on her lap, and nodded. 
"If we go and come again, Ela," said Ender, "then this was not a failure, even 
if you didn't create the virus that you wanted. If the ship works well, we can 
return another time. Don't think that everything depends on what you're able to 
imagine today." 
She smiled. "I won't be surprised at failure, but I'm also ready for success. My 
team is ready to release hundreds of bacteria into the world, if I return with 
the recolada and we can then remove the descolada. It will be chancy, but within 
fifty years the world will be a self-regulating gaialogy again. I see a vision 
of deer and cattle in the tall grass of Lusitania, and eagles in the sky." Then 
she looked down again at the vials in her lap. "I also said a prayer to the 
Virgin, for the same Holy Ghost that created God in her womb to come make life 
again here in these jars." 
"Amen to the prayer," said Ender. "And now, Jane, if you're ready, we can go." 
Outside the little starship, the others waited. What did they expect? That the 
ship would start to smoke and jiggle? That there would be a thunderclap, a flash 
of light? 
The ship was there. It was there, and still there, unmoving, unchanged. And then 
it was gone. 
They felt nothing inside the ship when it happened. There was no sound, no 
movement to hint of motion from Inspace into Outspace. 
But they knew the moment it occurred, because there were no longer three of 
them, but six. 
Ender found himself seated between two people, a young man and a young woman. 
But he had no time even to glance at them, for all he could look at was the man 
seated in what had been the empty seat across from him. 
"Miro," he whispered. For that was who it was. But not Miro the cripple, the 
damaged young man who had boarded the ship with him. That one was still sitting 
in the next chair to Ender's left. This Miro was the strong young man that Ender 
had first known. The man whose strength had been the hope of his family, whose 
beauty had been the pride of Ouanda's life, whose mind and whose heart had taken 
compassion on the pequeninos and refused to leave them without the benefits he 
thought that human culture might offer them. Miro, whole and restored. 
Where had he come from? 
"I should have known," said Ender. "We should have thought. The pattern of 
yourself that you hold in your mind, Miro-- it isn't the way you are, it's the 
way you were. " 
The new Miro, the young Miro, he raised his head and smiled to Ender. "I thought 
of it," he said, and his speech was clear and beautiful, the words rolling 
easily off his tongue. "I hoped for it. I begged Jane to take me with her 
because of it. And it came true. Exactly as I longed for it." 
"But now there are two of you," said Ela. She sounded horrified. 
"No," said the new Miro. "Just me. Just the real me." 
"But that one's still there," she said. 
"Not for long, I think," said Miro. "That old shell is empty now." 
And it was true. The old Miro slumped within his seat like a dead man. Ender 
knelt in front of him, touched him. He pressed his fingers to Miro's neck, 
feeling for a pulse. 
"Why should the heart beat now?" said Miro. "I'm the place where Miro's aiua 
dwells." 
When Ender took his fingers away from the old Miro's throat, the skin came away 
in a small puff of dust. Ender shied back. The head dropped forward off the 
shoulders and landed in the corpse's lap. Then it dissolved into a whitish 
liquid. Ender jumped to his feet, backed away. He stepped on someone's toe. 
"Ow," said Valentine. 
"Watch where you're going," said a man. 
Valentine isn't on this ship, thought Ender. And I know the man's voice, too. 
He turned to face them, the man and woman who had appeared in the empty seats 
beside him. 
Valentine. Impossibly young. The way she had looked when, as a young teenager, 
she had swum beside him in a lake on a private estate on Earth. The way she had 
looked when he loved her and needed her most, when she was the only reason he 
could think of to go on with his military training; when she was the only reason 
he could think of why the world might be worth the trouble of saving it. 
"You can't be real," he said. 
"Of course I am," she said. "You stepped on my foot, didn't you?" 
"Poor Ender," said the young man. "Clumsy and stupid. Not a really good 
combination." 
Now Ender knew him. "Peter," he said. His brother, his childhood enemy, at the 
age when he became Hegemon. The picture that had been playing on all the vids 
when Peter managed to arrange things so that Ender could never come home to 
Earth after his great victory. 
"I thought I'd never see you face to face again," said Ender. "You died so long 
ago." 
"Never believe a rumor of my death," said Peter. "I have as many lives as a cat. 
Also as many teeth, as many claws, and the same cheery, cooperative 
disposition." 
"Where did you come from?" 
Miro offered the answer. "They must have come from patterns in your mind, Ender, 
since you know them." 
"They do," said Ender. "But why? It's our self-conception we're supposed to 
carry with us out here. The pattern by which we know ourselves." 
"Is that so, Ender?" said Peter. "Then you must be really special. A personality 
so complicated it takes two people to contain it." 
"There's no part of me in you," said Ender. 
"And you'd better keep it that way," said Peter, leering. "It's girls I like, 
not dirty old men." 
"I don't want you," said Ender. 
"Nobody ever did," said Peter. "They wanted you. But they got me, didn't they? 
They got me up to here. Do you think I don't know my whole story? You and that 
book of lies, the Hegemon. So wise and understanding. How Peter Wiggin mellowed. 
How he turned out to be a wise and fair-minded ruler. What a joke. Speaker for 
the Dead indeed. All the time you wrote it, you knew the truth. You posthumously 
washed the blood from my hands, Ender, but you knew and I knew that as long as I 
was alive, I wanted blood there." 
"Leave him alone," said Valentine. "He told the truth in the Hegemon." 
"Still protecting him, little angel?" 
"No!" cried Ender. "I've done with you, Peter. You're out of my life, gone for 
three thousand years." 
"You can run but you can't hide!" 
"Ender! Ender, stop it! Ender!" 
He turned. It was Ela crying out to him. 
"I don't know what's going on here, but stop it! We only have a few minutes 
left. Help me with the tests." 
She was right. Whatever was going on with Miro's new body, with Peter's and 
Valentine's reappearance here, the important thing was the descolada. Had Ela 
succeeded in transforming it? Creating the recolada? And the virus that would 
transform the people of Path? If Miro could remake his body, and Ender could 
somehow conjure up the ghosts of his past and make them flesh again, it was 
possible, really possible, that Ela's vials now contained the viruses whose 
patterns she had held in her mind. 
"Help me," whispered Ela again. 
Ender and Miro-- the new Miro, his hand strong and sure-- reached out, took the 
vials she offered them, and began the test. It was a negative test-- if the 
bacteria, algae, and tiny worms they added to the tubes remained for several 
minutes, unaffected, then there was no descolada in the vials. Since the vials 
had been teeming with the living virus when they boarded the ship, that would be 
proof that something, at least, had happened to neutralize them. Whether it was 
truly the recolada or simply a dead or ineffective descolada remained to be 
discovered when they returned. 
The worms and algae and bacteria underwent no transformations. In tests 
beforehand, on Lusitania, the solution containing the bacteria turned from blue 
to yellow in the presence of the descolada; now it stayed blue. On Lusitania the 
tiny worms had quickly died and, graying husks, floated to the surface; now they 
wriggled on and on, staying the purplish-brown color that in them, at least, 
meant life. And the algae, instead of breaking apart and dissolving completely 
away, remained in the thin strands and tendrils of life. 
"Done, then," said Ender. 
"At least we can hope," said Ela. 
"Sit down," said Miro. "If we're done, she'll take us back." 
Ender sat. He looked at the seat where Miro had been sitting. His old crippled 
body was no longer identifiably human. It continued crumbling, the pieces 
breaking up into dust or flowing away as liquid. Even the clothing was 
dissolving into nothing. 
"It's not part of my pattern anymore," said Miro. "There's nothing to hold it 
together anymore." 
"What about these?" demanded Ender. "Why aren't they dissolving?" 
"Or you?" asked Peter. "Why don't you dissolve? Nobody needs you now. You're a 
tired old fart who can't even hold onto his woman. And you never even fathered a 
child, you pathetic old eunuch. Make way for a real man. No one ever needed 
you-- everything you've ever done I could have done better, and everything I did 
you never could have matched." 
Ender buried his face in his hands. This was not an outcome he could have 
imagined in his worst nightmares. Yes, he knew they were going out into a place 
where things might be created out of his mind. But it had never occurred to him 
that Peter was still lingering there. He thought he had expunged that old hatred 
long ago. 
And Valentine-- why would he create another Valentine? This one so young and 
perfect, sweet and beautiful? There was a real Valentine waiting for him back on 
Lusitania-- what would she think, seeing what he created out of his own mind? 
Perhaps it would be flattering to know how closely she was held in his heart; 
but she would also know that what he treasured was what she used to be, not what 
she was now. 
The darkest and the brightest secrets of his heart would both stand exposed as 
soon as the door opened and he had to step back out onto the surface of 
Lusitania again. 
"Dissolve," he said to them. "Crumble away." 
"You do it first, old man," said Peter. "Your life is over, and mine is just 
beginning. All I had to try for the first time was Earth, one tired old planet-- 
it was as easy as it would be for me to reach out and kill you with my bare 
hands, right now, if I wanted to. Snap your little neck like a dry noodle." 
"Try it," whispered Ender. "I'm not the frightened little boy anymore." 
"Nor are you a match for me," said Peter. "You never were, you never will be. 
You have too much heart. You're like Valentine. You flinch away from doing what 
has to be done. It makes you soft and weak. It makes you easy to destroy." 
A sudden flash of light. What was it, death in Outspace after all? Had Jane lost 
the pattern in her mind? Were they blowing up, or failing into a sun? 
No. It was the door opening. It was the light of the Lusitanian morning breaking 
into the relative darkness of the inside of the ship. 
"Are you coming out?" cried Grego. He stuck his head into the ship. "Are you--" 
Then he saw them. Ender could see him silently counting. 
"Nossa Senhora," whispered Grego. "Where the hell did they come from?" 
"Out of Ender's totally screwed-up head," said Peter. 
"From old and tender memory," said the new Valentine. 
"Help me with the viruses," said Ela. 
Ender reached out for them, but it was Miro she gave them to. She didn't 
explain, just looked away from him, but he understood. What had happened to him 
Outside was too strange for her to accept. Whatever Peter and this young new 
Valentine might be, they shouldn't exist. Miro's creation of a new body for 
himself made sense, even if it was terrible to watch the old corpse break into 
forgotten nothingness. Ela's focus had been so pure that she created nothing 
outside the vials she had brought for that purpose. But Ender had dredged up two 
whole people, both obnoxious in their own way-- the new Valentine because she 
was a mockery of the real one, who surely waited just outside the door. And 
Peter managed to be obnoxious even as he put a spin on all his taunting that was 
at once dangerous and suggestive. 
"Jane," whispered Ender. "Jane, are you with me?" 
"Yes," she answered. 
"Did you see all this?" 
"Yes," she answered. 
"Do you understand?" 
"I'm very tired. I've never been tired before. I've never done something so very 
hard. It used up-- all my attention at once. And two more bodies, Ender. Making 
me pull them into the pattern like that-- I don't know how I did it." 
"I didn't mean to." But she didn't answer. 
"Are you coming or what?" asked Peter. "The others are all out the door. With 
all those little urine-sample jars." 
"Ender, I'm afraid," said young Valentine. "I don't know what I'm supposed to do 
now." 
"Neither do I," said Ender. "God forgive me if this somehow hurts you. I never 
would have brought you back to hurt you." 
"I know," she said. 
"No," said Peter. "Sweet old Ender conjures up a nubile young woman out of his 
own brain, who looks just like his sister in her teens. Mmm, mmm, Ender, old 
man, is there no limit to your depravity?" 
"Only a shamefully sick mind would even think of such a thing," Ender murmured. 
Peter laughed and laughed. 
Ender took young Val by the hand and led her to the door. He could feel her hand 
sweating and trembling in his. She felt so real. She was real. And yet there, as 
soon as he stood in the doorway, he could see the real Valentine, middle-aged 
and heading toward old, yet still the gracious, beautiful woman he had known and 
loved for all these years. That's the true sister, the one I love as my second 
self. What was this young girl doing in my mind? 
It was clear that Grego and Ela had said enough that people knew something 
strange had happened. And when Miro had strode from the ship, hale and vigorous, 
clear of speech and so exuberant he looked ready to burst into song-- that had 
brought on a buzz of excitement. A miracle. There were miracles out there, 
wherever the starship went. 
Ender's appearance, though, brought a hush. Few would have known, at a glance, 
that the young girl with him was Valentine in her youth-- no one there but 
Valentine herself had known her then. And no one but Valentine was likely to 
recognize Peter Wiggin in his vigorous young manhood; the pictures in the 
history texts were usually of the holos taken late in his life, when cheap, 
permanent holography was first coming into its own. 
But Valentine knew. Ender stood before the door, young Val beside him, Peter 
emerging just behind, and Valentine knew them both. She stepped forward, away 
from Jakt, until she stood before Ender face to face. 
"Ender," she said. "Dear sweet tormented boy, was this what you create, when you 
go to a place where you can make anything you want?" She reached out her hand 
and touched the young copy of herself upon the cheek. "So beautiful," she said. 
"I was never this beautiful, Ender. She's perfect. She's all I wanted to be but 
never was." 
"Aren't you glad to see me, Val, my dearest sweetheart Demosthenes?" Peter 
pushed his way between Ender and young Val. "Don't you have tender memories of 
me, as well? Am I not more beautiful than you remembered? I'm certainly glad to 
see you. You've done so well with the persona I created for you. Demosthenes. I 
made you, and you don't even thank me for it." 
"Thank you, Peter," whispered Valentine. She looked again at young Val. "What 
will you do with them?" 
"Do with us?" said Peter. "We're not his to do anything with. He may have 
brought me back, but I'm my own man now, as I always was." 
Valentine turned back to the crowd, still awestruck at the strangeness of 
events. After all, they had seen three people board the ship, had seen it 
disappear, then reappear on the exact spot no more than seven minutes later-- 
and instead of three people emerging, there were five, two of them strangers. Of 
course they had stayed to gawk. 
But there'd be no answers for anyone today. Except on the most important 
question of all. "Has Ela taken the vials to the lab?" she asked. "Let's break 
it up here, and go see what Ela's made for us in outspace." 
Table of Contents



Chapter 17 -- Ender's Children
<Poor Ender. Now his nightmares walk around with him on their own two legs.> 
<It was a strange way for him to have children after all.> 
<You're the one who calls aiuas out of chaos. How did he find souls for these?> 
<What makes you think he did?> 
<They walk. They talk.> 
<The one named Peter came and talked to you, didn't he?> 
<As arrogant a human as I ever met.> 
<How do you think it happens that he was born knowing how to speak the language 
of the fathertrees?> 
<I don't know. Ender created him. Why shouldn't he create him knowing how to 
speak?> 
<Ender goes on creating them both, hour by hour. We've felt the pattern in him. 
He may not understand it himself, but there is no difference between these two 
and himself. Different bodies, perhaps, but they are part of him all the same. 
Whatever they do, whatever they say, it is Ender's aiua, acting and speaking.> 
<Does he know this?> 
<We doubt it.> 
<Will you tell him?> 
<Not until he asks.> 
<When do you think that will be?> 
<When he already knows the answer.> 
  
  
It was the last day of the test of the recolada. Word of its success-- so far-- 
had already spread through the human colony-- and, Ender assumed, among all the 
pequeninos as well. Ela's assistant named Glass had volunteered to be the 
experimental subject. He had lived now for three days in the same isolation 
chamber where Planter had sacrificed himself. This time, though, the descolada 
had been killed within him by the viricide bacterium he had helped Ela devise. 
And this time, performing the functions that the descolada had once fulfilled, 
was Ela's new recolada virus. It had worked perfectly. He was not even slightly 
ill. Only one last step remained before the recolada could be pronounced a full 
success. 
An hour before that final test, Ender, with his absurd entourage of Peter and 
young Val, was meeting with Quara and Grego in Grego's cell. 
"The pequeninos have accepted it," Ender explained to Quara. "They're willing to 
take the risk of killing the descolada and replacing it with the recolada, after 
testing it with Glass alone." 
"I'm not surprised," said Quara. 
"I am," said Peter. "The piggies obviously have a deathwish as a species." 
Ender sighed. Though he was no longer a frightened little boy, and Peter was no 
longer older and larger and stronger than he, there was still no love in Ender's 
heart for this simulacrum of his brother that he had somehow created Outside. He 
was everything Ender had feared and hated in his childhood, and it was 
infuriating and frightening to have him back again. 
"What do you mean?" said Grego. "If the pequeninos didn't consent to it, then 
the descolada would make them too dangerous for humankind to allow them to 
survive." 
"Of course," said Peter, smiling. "The physicist is an expert on strategy." 
"What Peter is saying," said Ender, "is that if he were in charge of the 
pequeninos-- which he no doubt would like to be-- he would never willingly give 
up the descolada until he had won something from humanity in exchange for it." 
"To the surprise of all, the aging boy wonder still has a tiny spark of wit," 
said Peter. "Why should they kill off their only weapon that humanity has any 
reason to fear? The Lusitania Fleet is still coming, and it still has the M.D. 
Device aboard. Why don't they make Andrew here get on that magic flying football 
of his and go meet the fleet and lay down the law?" 
"Because they'd shoot me down like a dog," said Ender. "The pequeninos are doing 
this because it's right and fair and decent. Words that I'll define for you 
later." 
"I know the words," said Peter. "I also know what they mean." 
"You do?" asked young Val. Her voice, as always, was a surprise-- soft, mild, 
and yet able to pierce the conversation. Ender remembered that Valentine's voice 
had always been that way. Impossible not to listen to, though she so rarely 
raised her voice. 
"Right. Fair. Decent," said Peter. The words sounded filthy in his mouth. 
"Either the person saying them believes in those concepts or not. If not, then 
those words mean that he's got somebody standing behind me with a knife in his 
hand. And if he does believe them, then those words mean that I'm going to win." 

"I'll tell you what they mean," said Quara. "They mean that we're going to 
congratulate the pequeninos-- and ourselves-- for wiping out a sentient species 
that may exist nowhere else in the universe." 
"Don't kid yourself," said Peter. 
"Everybody's so sure that the descolada is a designed virus," said Quara, "but 
nobody's considered the alternative-- that a much more primitive, vulnerable 
version of the descolada evolved naturally, and then changed itself to its 
present form. It might be a designed virus, yes, but who did the designing? And 
now we're killing it without attempting conversation." 
Peter grinned at her, then at Ender. "I'm surprised that this weaselly little 
conscience is not your blood offspring," he said. "She's as obsessed with 
finding reasons to feel guilty as you and Val." 
Ender ignored him and attempted to answer Quara. "We are killing it. Because we 
can't wait any longer. The descolada is trying to destroy us, and there's no 
time to dither. If we could, we would." 
"I understand all that," said Quara. "I cooperated, didn't I? It just makes me 
sick to hear you talking as if the pequeninos were somehow brave about 
collaborating in an act of xenocide in order to save their own skin." 
"Us or them, kid," said Peter. "Us or them." 
"You can't possibly understand," said Ender, "how ashamed I am to hear my own 
arguments on his lips." 
Peter laughed. "Andrew pretends not to like me," he said. "But the kid's a 
fraud. He admires me. He worships me. He always has. Just like his pretty little 
angel here." 
Peter poked at young Val. She didn't shy away. She acted instead as if she 
hadn't even felt his finger in the flesh of her upper arm. 
"He worships us both. In his twisted little mind, she's the moral perfection 
that he can never achieve. And I am the power and genius that was always just 
out of poor little Andrew's reach. It was really quite modest of him, don't you 
think? For all these years, he's carried his betters with him inside his mind." 
Young Val reached out and took Quara's hand. "It's the worst thing you'll ever 
do in your life," she said, "helping the people you love to do something that in 
your heart you believe is deeply wrong." 
Quara wept. 
But it was not Quara that worried Ender. He knew that she was strong enough to 
hold the moral contradictions of her own actions, and still remain sane. Her 
ambivalence toward her own actions would probably mellow her, make her less 
certain from moment to moment that her judgment was absolutely correct, and that 
all who disagreed with her were absolutely wrong. If anything, at the end of 
this she would emerge more whole and compassionate and, yes, decent than she had 
been before in her hotheaded youth. And perhaps young Val's gentle touch-- along 
with her words naming exactly the pain that Quara was feeling-- would help her 
to heal all the sooner. 
What worried Ender was the way Grego was looking at Peter with such admiration. 
Of all people, Grego should have learned what Peter's words could lead to. Yet 
here he was, worshiping Ender's walking nightmare. I have to get Peter out of 
here, thought Ender, or he'll have even more disciples on Lusitania than Grego 
had-- and he'll use them far more effectively and, in the long run, the effect 
will be more deadly. 
Ender had little hope that Peter would turn out to be like the real Peter, who 
grew to be a strong and worthy hegemon. This Peter, after all, was not a fully 
fleshed-out human being, full of ambiguity and surprise. Rather he had been 
created out of the caricature of attractive evil that lingered in the deepest 
recesses of Ender's unconscious mind. There would be no surprises here. Even as 
they prepared to save Lusitania from the descolada, Ender had brought a new 
danger to them, potentially just as destructive. 
But not as hard to kill. 
Again he stifled the thought, though it had come up a dozen times since he first 
realized that it was Peter sitting at his left hand in the starship. I created 
him. He isn't real, just my nightmare. If I kill him, it wouldn't be murder, 
would it? It would be the moral equivalent of-- what? Waking up? I have imposed 
my nightmare on the world, and if I killed him the world would just be waking up 
to find the nightmare gone, nothing more. 
If it had been Peter alone, Ender might have talked himself into such a murder, 
or at least he thought he might. But it was young Val who stopped him. Fragile, 
beautiful of soul-- if Peter could be killed, so could she. If he should be 
killed, then perhaps she ought to be as well-- she had as little right to exist; 
she was as unnatural, as narrow and distorted in her creation. But he could 
never do that. She must be protected, not harmed. And if the one was real enough 
to remain alive, so must the other be. If harming young Val would be murder, so 
would harming Peter. They were spawned in the same creation. 
My children, thought Ender bitterly. My darling little offspring, who leaped 
fully-formed from my head like Athena from the mind of Zeus. Only what I have 
here isn't Athena. More like Diana and Hades. The virgin huntress and the master 
of hell. 
"We'd better go," said Peter. "Before Andrew talks himself into killing me." 
Ender smiled wanly. That was the worst thing-- that Peter and young Val seemed 
to have come into existence knowing more about his own mind than be knew 
himself. In time, he hoped, that intimate knowledge of him would fade. But in 
the meantime, it added to the humiliation, the way that Peter taunted him about 
thoughts that no one else would have guessed. And young Val-- he knew from the 
way she looked at him sometimes that she also knew. He had no secrets anymore. 
"I'll go home with you," Val said to Quara. 
"No," Quara answered. "I've done what I've done. I'll be there to see Glass 
through to the end of his test." 
"We wouldn't want to miss our chance to suffer openly," said Peter. 
"Shut up, Peter," said Ender. 
Peter grinned. "Oh, come on. You know that Quara's just milking this for all 
it's worth. It's just her way of making herself the star of the show-- everybody 
being careful and tender with her when they should be cheering for what Ela 
accomplished. Scene-stealing is so low, Quara-- right up your alley." 
Quara might have answered, if Peter's words had not been so outrageous and if 
they had not contained a germ of truth that confused her. Instead it was young 
Val who fixed Peter with a cold glare and said, "Shut up, Peter." 
The same words Ender had said, only when young Val said them, they worked. He 
grinned at her, and winked-- a conspiratorial wink, as if to say, I'll let you 
play your little game, Val, but don't think I don't know that you're sucking up 
to everybody by being so sweet. But he said no more as they left Grego in his 
cell. 
Mayor Kovano joined them outside. "A great day in the history of humanity," he 
said. "And by sheerest accident, I get to be in all the pictures." The others 
laughed-- especially Peter, who had struck up a quick and easy friendship with 
Kovano. 
"It's no accident," said Peter. "A lot of people in your position would have 
panicked and wrecked everything. It took an open mind and a lot of courage to 
let things move the way they have." 
Ender almost laughed aloud at Peter's obvious flattery. But flattery is never so 
obvious to the recipient. Oh, Kovano punched Peter in the arm and denied 
everything, but Ender could see that he loved hearing it, and that Peter had 
already earned more real influence with Kovano than Ender had. Don't these 
people see how Peter is cynically winning them all over? 
The only one who saw Peter with anything like Ender's fear and loathing was the 
Bishop-- but in his case it was theological prejudice, not wisdom, that kept him 
from being sucked in. Within hours of their return from Outside, the Bishop had 
called upon Miro, urging him to accept baptism. "God has performed a great 
miracle in your healing," he said, "but the way in which it was done-- trading 
one body for another, instead of directly healing the old one-- leaves us in the 
dangerous position that your spirit inhabits a body that has never been 
baptized. And since baptism is performed on the flesh, I fear that you may be 
unsanctified." Miro wasn't very interested in the Bishop's ideas about 
miracles-- he didn't see God as having much to do with his healing-- but the 
sheer restoration of his strength and his speech and his freedom made him so 
ebullient that he probably would have agreed to anything. The baptism would take 
place early next week, at the first services to be held in the new chapel. 
But the Bishop's eagerness to baptize Miro was not echoed in his attitude toward 
Peter and young Val. "It's absurd to think of these monstrous things as people," 
he said. "They can't possibly have souls. Peter is an echo of someone who 
already lived and died, with his own sins and repentances, his life's course 
already measured and his place in heaven or hell already assigned. And as for 
this-- girl, this mockery of feminine grace-- she cannot be who she claims to 
be, for that place is already occupied by a living woman. There can be no 
baptism for the deceptions of Satan. By creating them, Andrew Wiggin has built 
his own Tower of Babel, trying to reach into heaven to take the place of God. He 
cannot be forgiven until he takes them back to hell and leaves them there." 
Did Bishop Peregrino imagine for one moment that that was not exactly what he 
longed to do? But Jane was adamant about it, when Ender offered the idea. "That 
would be foolish," she said. "Why do you think they would go, for one thing? And 
for another, what makes you think you wouldn't simply create two more? Haven't 
you ever heard the story of the sorcerer's apprentice? Taking them back there 
would be like cutting the brooms in half again-- all you'd end up with is more 
brooms. Leave bad enough alone." 
So here they were, walking to the lab together-- Peter, with Mayor Kovano 
completely in his pocket. Young Val, who had won over Quara no less completely, 
though her purpose was altruistic instead of exploitative. And Ender, their 
creator, furious and humiliated and afraid. 
I made them-- therefore I'm responsible for everything they do. And in the long 
run, they will both do terrible harm. Peter, because harm is his nature-- at 
least the way I conceived him in the patterns of my mind. And young Val, despite 
her innate goodness, because her very existence is a deep injury to my sister 
Valentine. 
"Don't let Peter goad you so," whispered Jane in his ear. 
"People think he belongs to me," Ender subvocalized. "They figure that he must 
be harmless because I'm harmless. But I have no control over him." 
"I think they know that." 
"I've got to get him away from here." 
"I'm working on that," said Jane. 
"Maybe I should pack them up and take them off to some deserted planet 
somewhere. Do you know Shakespeare's play The Tempest?" 
"Caliban and Ariel, is that what they are?" 
"Exile, since I can't kill them." 
"I'm working on it," said Jane. "After all, they're part of you, aren't they? 
Part of the pattern of your mind? What if I can use them in your place, to allow 
me to go Outside? Then we could have three starships, and not just one." 
"Two," said Ender. "I'm never going Outside again." 
"Not even for a microsecond? If I take you out and then right back in again? 
There was no need to linger there." 
"It wasn't the lingering that did the harm," said Ender. "Peter and young Val 
were there instantly. If I go Outside again, I'll create them again." 
"Fine," she said. "Two starships, then. One with Peter, one with young Val. Let 
me figure it out, if I can. We can't just make that one voyage and then abandon 
faster-than-light flight forever." 
"Yes we can," said Ender. "We got the recolada. Miro got himself a healthy body. 
That's enough-- we'll work everything else out ourselves." 
"Wrong," said Jane. "We still have to transport pequeninos and hive queens off 
this planet before the fleet comes. We still have to get the transformational 
virus to Path, to set those people free." 
"I won't go Outside again." 
"Even if I can't use Peter and young Val to carry my aiua? You'd let the 
pequeninos and the hive queen be destroyed because you're afraid of your own 
unconscious mind?" 
"You don't understand how dangerous Peter is." 
"Perhaps not. But I do understand how dangerous the Little Doctor is. And if you 
weren't so wrapped up in your own misery, Ender, you'd know that even if we end 
up with five hundred little Peters and Vals running around, we've got to use 
this starship to carry pequeninos and the hive queen to other worlds." 
He knew she was right. He had known it all along. That didn't mean that he was 
prepared to admit it. 
"Just work on trying to move yourself into Peter and young Val," he 
subvocalized. "Though God help us if Peter is able to create things when he goes 
Outside." 
"I doubt he can," said Jane. "He's not as smart as he thinks he is." 
"Yes he is," said Ender. "And if you doubt it, you're not as smart as you think 
you are." 



Ela was not the only one who prepared for Glass's final test by going to visit 
Planter. His mute tree was still only a sapling, hardly a balance to Rooter's 
and Human's sturdy trunks. But it was around that sapling that the surviving 
pequeninos had gathered. And, like Ela, they had gathered to pray. It was a 
strange and silent kind of prayer service. The pequenino priests offered no 
pomp, no ceremony. They simply knelt with the others, and they murmured in their 
several languages. Some prayed in Brothers' Language, some in tree language. Ela 
supposed that what she was hearing from the wives gathered there was their own 
regular language, though it might as easily be the holy language they used to 
speak to the mothertree. And there were also human languages coming from 
pequenino lips-- Stark and Portuguese alike, and there might even have been some 
ancient Church Latin from one of the pequeninos priests. It was a virtual Babel, 
and yet she felt great unity. They prayed at the martyr's tomb-- all that was 
left of himself-- for the life of the brother who was following after him. If 
Glass died utterly today, he would only echo Planter's sacrifice. And if he 
passed into the third life, it would be a life owed to Planter's courage and 
example. 
Because it was Ela who had brought back the recolada from Outside, they honored 
her with a brief time alone at the very trunk of Planter's tree. She wrapped her 
hand around the slender wooden pole, wishing there were more of his life in it. 
Was Planter's aiua lost now, wandering in the wherelessness of Outside? Or had 
God in fact taken it as his very soul and brought it into heaven, where Planter 
now communed with the saints? 
Planter, pray for us. Intercede for us. As my venerated grandparents carried my 
prayer to the Father, go now to Christ for us and plead with him to have mercy 
on all your brothers and sisters. Let the recolada carry Glass into the third 
life, so that we can, in good conscience, spread the recolada through the world 
to replace the murderous descolada. Then the lion can lie down with the lamb 
indeed, and there can be peace in this place. 
Not for the first time, though, Ela had her doubts. She was certain that their 
course was the right one-- she had none of Quara's qualms about destroying the 
descolada throughout Lusitania. But what she wasn't sure of was whether she 
should have based the recolada on the oldest samples of the descolada they had 
collected. If in fact the descolada had caused recent pequenino belligerence, 
their hunger to spread to new places, then she could consider herself as 
restoring the pequeninos to their previous "natural" condition. But then, the 
previous condition was just as much a product of the descolada's gaialogical 
balancing act-- it only seemed more natural because it was the condition the 
pequeninos were in when humans arrived. So she could just as easily see herself 
as causing a behavioral modification of an entire species, conveniently removing 
much of their aggressiveness so that there would be less likelihood of conflict 
with humans in the future. I am making good Christians of them now, whether they 
like it or not. And the fact that Human and Rooter both approve of this doesn't 
remove the onus from me, if this should turn out ultimately to the pequeninos' 
harm. 
O God, forgive me for playing God in the lives of these children of yours. When 
Planter's aiua comes before you to plead for us, grant the prayer he carries on 
our behalf-- but only if it is your will to have his species altered so. Help us 
do good, but stop us if we would unwittingly cause harm. In the name of the 
Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost. Amen. 
She took a tear from her cheek onto her finger, and pressed it against the 
smooth bark of Planter's trunk. You aren't there to feel this, Planter, not 
inside the tree. But you feel it all the same, I do believe that. God would not 
let such a noble soul as yours be lost in darkness. 
It was time to go. Gentle brothers' hands touched her, pulled at her, drew her 
onward to the lab where Glass was waiting in isolation for his passage into the 
third life. 



When Ender had visited with Planter, he had been surrounded with medical 
equipment, lying on a bed. It was very different now inside the isolation 
chamber. Glass was in perfect health, and though he was wired up to all the 
monitoring devices, he was not bed-bound. Playful and happy, he could scarcely 
contain his eagerness to proceed. 
And now that Ela and the other pequeninos had come, it could begin. 
The only wall maintaining his isolation now was the disruptor field; outside it, 
the pequeninos who had gathered to watch his passage could see all that 
transpired. They were the only ones who watched in the open, however. Perhaps 
out of a sense of delicacy for pequenino feelings, or perhaps so they could have 
a wall between them and the brutality of this pequenino ritual, the humans had 
all gathered inside the lab, where only a window and the monitors let them see 
what would actually happen to Glass. 
Glass waited until the sterile-suited brothers were in place beside him, wooden 
knives in hand, before he tore up capim and chewed it. It was the anesthetic 
that would make this bearable for him. But it was also the first time that a 
brother bound for the third life had chewed native grass that contained no 
descolada virus within it. If Ela's new virus was right, then the capim here 
would work as the descolada-ruled capim had always worked. 
"If I pass into the third life," said Glass, "the honor belongs to God and to 
his servant Planter, not to me." 
It was fitting that Glass had chosen to use his last words of brother-speech to 
praise Planter. But his graciousness did not change the fact that thinking of 
Planter's sacrifice caused many among the humans to weep; hard as it was to 
interpret pequenino emotions, Ender had no doubt that the chattering sounds from 
the pequeninos gathered outside were also weeping, or some other emotion 
appropriate to Planter's memory. But Glass was wrong to think that there was no 
honor for him in this. Everyone knew that failure was still possible, that 
despite all the cause for hope they had, there was no certainty that Ela's 
recolada would have the power to take a brother into the third life. 
The sterile-suited brothers raised their knives and set to work. Not me, this 
time, thought Ender. Thank God I don't have to wield a knife to cause a 
brother's death. 
Yet he didn't avert his gaze, as so many others in the lab were doing. The blood 
and gore were not new to him, and even if that made it no less pleasant, at 
least he knew that he could bear it. And what Glass could bear to do, Ender 
could bear to witness. That was what a speaker for the dead was supposed to do, 
wasn't it? Witness. He watched as much as he could see of the ritual, as they 
opened up Glass's living body and planted his organs in the earth, so the tree 
could start to grow while Glass's mind was still alert and alive. Through it 
all, Glass made no sound or movement that suggested pain. Either his courage was 
beyond reckoning, or the recolada had done its work in the capim grass as well, 
so that it maintained its anesthetic properties. 
At last it was done, and the brothers who had taken him into the third life 
returned to the sterile chamber, where, once their suits were cleansed of the 
recolada and viricide bacteria, they shed them and returned naked into the lab. 
They were very solemn, but Ender thought he could see the excitement and 
exultation that they concealed. All had gone well. They had felt Glass's body 
respond to them. Within hours, perhaps minutes, the first leaves of the young 
tree should arise. And they were sure in their hearts that it would happen. 
Ender also noticed that one of them was a priest. He wondered what the Bishop 
would say, if he knew. Old Peregrino had proved himself to be quite adaptable to 
assimilating an alien species into the Catholic faith, and adapting ritual and 
doctrine to fit their peculiar needs. But that didn't change the fact that 
Peregrino was an old man who didn't enjoy the thought of priests taking part in 
rituals that, despite their clear resemblance to the crucifixion, were still not 
of the recognized sacraments. Well, these brothers knew what they were doing. 
Whether they had told the Bishop of one of his priests' participation or not, 
Ender wouldn't mention it; nor would any of the other humans present, if indeed 
any of them noticed. 
Yes, the tree was growing, and with great vigor, the leaves visibly rising as 
they watched. But it would still be many hours, days perhaps, before they knew 
if it was a fathertree, with Glass still alive and conscious within it. A time 
of waiting, in which Glass's tree must grow in perfect isolation. 
If only I could find a place, thought Ender, in which I could also be isolated, 
in which I could work out the strange things that have happened to me, without 
interference. 
But he was not a pequenino, and whatever unease he suffered from was not a virus 
that could be killed, or driven from his life. His disease was at the root of 
his identity, and he didn't know if he could ever be rid of it without 
destroying himself in the process. Perhaps, he thought, Peter and Val represent 
the total of who I am; perhaps if they were gone, there'd be nothing left. What 
part of my soul, what action in my life is there that can't be explained as one 
or the other of them, acting out his or her will within me? 
Am I the sum of my siblings? Or the difference between them? What is the 
peculiar arithmetic of my soul? 



Valentine tried not to be obsessed with this young girl that Ender had brought 
back with him from Outside. Of course she knew it was her younger self as he 
remembered her, and she even thought it was rather sweet of him to carry inside 
his heart such a powerful memory of her at that age. She alone, of all the 
people on Lusitania, knew why it was at that age that she lingered in his 
unconscious. He had been in Battle School till then, cut off completely from his 
family. Though he could not have known it, she knew that their parents had 
pretty much forgotten him. Not forgotten that he existed, of course, but 
forgotten him as a presence in their lives. He simply wasn't there, wasn't their 
responsibility anymore. Having given him away to the state, they were absolved. 
He would have been more a part of their lives if he had died; as it was, they 
didn't have even a grave to visit. Valentine didn't blame them for this-- it 
proved that they were resilient and adaptable. But she wasn't able to mimic 
them. Ender was always with her, in her heart. And when, after being inwardly 
battered as he was forced to meet all the challenges they threw at him in Battle 
School, Ender now resolved to give up on the whole enterprise-- when he, in 
effect, went on strike-- the officer charged with turning him into a pliant tool 
came to her. Brought her to Ender. Gave them time together-- the same man who 
had torn them apart and left such deep wounds in their hearts. She healed her 
brother then-- enough that he could go back and save humanity by destroying the 
buggers. 
Of course he holds me in his memory at that age, more powerfully than any of our 
countless experiences together since. Of course when his unconscious mind brings 
forth its most intimate baggage, it is the girl I was then who lingers most 
deeply in his heart. 
She knew all this, she understood all this, she believed all this. Yet still it 
rankled, still it hurt that this almost mindlessly perfect creature was what he 
really thought of her all along. That the Valentine that Ender truly loved was a 
creature of impossible purity. It was for the sake of this imaginary Valentine 
that he was so close a companion to me all the years before I married Jakt. 
Unless it was because I married Jakt that he returned to this childish vision of 
me. 
Nonsense. There was nothing to be gained by trying to imagine what this young 
girl meant. Regardless of the manner of her creation, she was here now, and must 
be dealt with. 
Poor Ender-- he seemed to understand nothing. He actually thought at first that 
he should keep young Val with him. "Isn't she my daughter, after a fashion?" he 
had asked. 
"After no fashion is she your daughter," she had answered. "If anything, she's 
mine. And it is certainly not proper for you to take her into your home, alone. 
Especially since Peter is there, and he isn't the most trustworthy co-guardian 
who ever lived." Ender still didn't fully agree-- he would rather have got rid 
of Peter than Val-- but he complied, and since then Val had lived in Valentine's 
house. Valentine's intention had been to become the girl's friend and mentor, 
but in the event she simply couldn't do it. She wasn't comfortable enough in 
Val's company. She kept finding reasons to leave home when Val was there; she 
kept feeling inordinately grateful when Ender came to let her tag along with him 
and Peter. 
What finally happened was that, as so often before, Plikt silently stepped in 
and solved the problem. Plikt became Val's primary companion and guardian in 
Valentine's house. When Val wasn't with Ender, she was with Plikt. And this 
morning Plikt had suggested setting up a house of her own-- for her and Val. 
Perhaps I was too hasty in agreeing, thought Valentine. But it's probably as 
hard on Val to share a house with me as for me to share a house with her. 
Now, though, watching as Plikt and Val entered the new chapel on their knees and 
crawled forward-- as all the other humans who entered had also crawled-- to kiss 
Bishop Peregrino's ring before the altar, Valentine realized that she had done 
nothing for "Val's own good," whatever she might have told herself. Val was 
completely self-contained, unflappable, calm. Why should Valentine imagine that 
she could make young Val either more or less happy, more or less comfortable? I 
am irrelevant to this girlchild's life. But she is not irrelevant to mine. She 
is at once an affirmation and a denial of the most important relationship of my 
childhood, and of much of my adulthood as well. I wish that she had crumbled 
into nothingness Outside, like Miro's old crippled body did. I wish I had never 
had to face myself like this. 
And it was herself she was facing. Ela had run that test immediately. Young Val 
and Valentine were genetically identical. 
"But it makes no sense," Valentine protested. "Ender could hardly have memorized 
my genetic code. There couldn't possibly have been a pattern of that code in the 
starship with him." 
"Am I supposed to explain it?" asked Ela. 
Ender had suggested a possibility-- that young Val's genetic code was fluid 
until she and Valentine actually met, and then the philotes of Val's body had 
formed themselves into the pattern they found in Valentine's. 
Valentine kept her own opinion to herself, but she doubted that Ender's guess 
was right. Young Val had had Valentine's genes from the first moment, because 
any person who so perfectly fit Ender's vision of Valentine could not have any 
other genes; the natural law that Jane herself was helping to maintain within 
the starship would have required it. Or perhaps there was some force that shaped 
and gave order even to a place of such utter chaos. It hardly mattered, except 
that however annoyingly perfect and uncomplaining and unlike me this new 
pseudo-Val might be, Ender's vision of her had been true enough that genetically 
they were the same. His vision couldn't be much off the mark. Perhaps I really 
was that perfect then, and only got my rough edges during the years since then. 
Perhaps I really was that beautiful. Perhaps I really was so young. 
They knelt before the Bishop. Plikt kissed his ring, though she owed no part of 
the penance of Lusitania. 
When it came time for young Val to kiss the ring, however, the Bishop pulled 
away his hand and turned away. A priest came forward and told them to go to 
their seats. 
"How can I?" said young Val. "I haven't given my penance yet." 
"You have no penance," said the priest. "The Bishop told me before you came; you 
weren't here when the sin was committed, so you have no part in the penance." 
Young Val looked at him very sadly and said, "I was created by someone other 
than God. That's why the Bishop won't receive me. I'll never have communion 
while he lives." 
The priest looked very sad-- it was impossible not to feel sorry for young Val, 
for her simplicity and sweetness made her seem fragile, and the person who hurt 
her therefore had to feel clumsy for having damaged such a tender thing. "Until 
the Pope can decide," he said. "All this is very hard." 
"I know," whispered young Val. Then she came and sat down between Plikt and 
Valentine. 
Our elbows touch, thought Valentine. A daughter who is perfectly myself, as if I 
had cloned her thirteen years ago. 
But I didn't want another daughter, and I certainly didn't want a duplicate of 
me. She knows that. She feels it. And so she suffers something that I never 
suffered-- she feels unwanted and unloved by those who are most like her. 
How does Ender feel about her? Does he also wish that she would go away? Or does 
he yearn to be her brother, as he was my young brother so many years ago? When I 
was that age, Ender had not yet committed xenocide. But then, he had not yet 
spoken for the dead, either. The Hive Queen, The Hegemon, The Life of Human-- 
all that was beyond him then. 
He was just a child, confused, despairing, afraid. How could Ender yearn for 
that time again? 
Miro soon came in, crawled to the altar, and kissed the ring. Though the Bishop 
had absolved him of any responsibility, he bore the penance with all others. 
Valentine noticed, of course, the many whispers as he moved forward. Everyone in 
Lusitania who had known him before his brain damage recognized the miracle that 
had been performed-- a perfect restoration of the Miro who had lived so brightly 
among them all before. 
I didn't know you then, Miro, thought Valentine. Did you always have that 
distant, brooding air? Healed your body may be, but you're still the man who 
lived in pain for this time. Has it made you cold or more compassionate? 
He came and sat beside her, in the chair that would have been Jakt's, except 
that Jakt was still in space. With the descolada soon to be destroyed, someone 
had to bring to Lusitania's surface the thousands of frozen microbes and plant 
and animal species that had to be introduced in order to establish a 
self-regulating gaialogy and keep the planetary systems in order. It was a job 
that had been done on many other worlds, but it was being made trickier by the 
need not to compete too intensely with the local species that the pequeninos 
depended on. Jakt was up there, laboring for them all; it was a good reason to 
be gone, but Valentine still missed him-- needed him badly, in fact, what with 
Ender's new creations causing her such turmoil. Miro was no substitute for her 
husband, especially because his own new body was such a sharp reminder of what 
had been done Outside. 
If I went out there, what would I create? I doubt that I'd bring back a person, 
because I fear there is no one soul at the root of my psyche. Not even my own, I 
fear. What else has my passionate study of history been, except a search for 
humanity? Others find humanity by looking in their own hearts. Only lost souls 
need to search for it outside themselves. 
"The line's almost done," whispered Miro. 
So the service would begin soon. 
"Ready to have your sins purged?" whispered Valentine. 
"As the Bishop explained, he'll purge only the sins of this new body. I still 
have to confess and do penance for the sins I had left over from the old one. 
Not many carnal sins were possible, of course, but there's plenty of envy, 
spite, malice, and self-pity. What I'm trying to decide is whether I also have a 
suicide to confess. When my old body crumbled into nothing, it was answering the 
wish of my heart." 
"You should never have got your voice back," said Valentine. "You babble now 
just to hear yourself talk so prettily." 
He smiled and patted her arm. 
The Bishop began the service with prayer, giving thanks to God for all that had 
been accomplished in recent months. Conspicuous by omission was the creation of 
Lusitania's two newest citizens, though Miro's healing was definitely laid at 
God's door. He called Miro forward and baptized him almost at once, and then, 
because this was not a mass, the Bishop proceeded immediately to his homily. 
"God's mercy has an infinite reach," said the Bishop. "We can only hope he will 
choose to reach farther than we deserve, to forgive us for our terrible sins as 
individuals and as a people. We can only hope that, like Nineveh, which turned 
away destruction through repentance, we can convince our Lord to spare us from 
the fleet that he has permitted to come against us to punish us." 
Miro whispered, softly, so that only she could hear, "Didn't he send the fleet 
before the burning of the forest?" 
"Maybe the Lord counts only the arrival time, not the departure," Valentine 
suggested. At once, though, she regretted her flippancy. What was happening here 
today was a solemn thing; even if she wasn't a deep believer in Catholic 
doctrine, she knew that it was a holy thing when a community accepted 
responsibility for the evil it committed and did true penance for it. 
The Bishop spoke of those who had died in holiness-- Os Venerados, who first 
saved humanity from the descolada plague; Father Estevao, whose body was buried 
under the floor of the chapel and who suffered martyrdom in the cause of 
defending truth against heresy; Planter, who died to prove that his people's 
soul was from God, and not from a virus; and the pequeninos who had died as 
innocent victims of slaughter. "All of these may be saints someday, for this is 
a time like the early days of Christianity, when great deeds and great holiness 
were much more needed, and therefore much more often achieved. This chapel is a 
shrine to all those who have loved their God with all their heart, might, mind 
and strength, and who have loved their neighbor as themself. Let all who enter 
here do it with a broken heart and a contrite spirit, so that holiness may also 
touch them." 
The homily wasn't long, because there were many more identical services 
scheduled for that day-- the people were coming to the chapel in shifts, since 
it was far too small to accommodate the whole human population of Lusitania all 
at once. Soon enough they were done, and Valentine got up to leave. She would 
have followed close behind Plikt and Val, except that Miro caught at her arm. 
"Jane just told me," he said. "I thought you'd want to know." 
"What?" 
"She just tested the starship, without Ender in it." 
"How could she do that?" asked Valentine. 
"Peter," he said. "She took him Outside and back again. He can contain her aiua, 
if that's how this process is actually working." 
She gave voice to her immediate fear. "Did he--" 
"Create anything? No." Miro grinned-- but with a hint of the twisted wryness 
that Valentine had thought was a product of his affliction. "He claims it's 
because his mind is much clearer and healthier than Andrew's." 
"Maybe so," said Valentine. 
"I say it's because none of the philotes out there were willing to be part of 
his pattern. Too twisted." 
Valentine laughed a little. 
The Bishop came up to them then. Since they were among the last to leave, they 
were alone at the front of the chapel. 
"Thank you for accepting a new baptism," said the Bishop. 
Miro bowed his head. "Not many men have a chance to be purified so far along in 
their sins," he said. 
"And Valentine, I'm sorry I couldn't receive your-- namesake." 
"Don't worry, Bishop Peregrino. I understand. I may even agree with you." 
The Bishop shook his head. "It would be better if they could just--" 
"Leave?" offered Miro. "You get your wish. Peter will soon be gone-- Jane can 
pilot a ship with him aboard. No doubt the same thing will be possible with 
young Val." 
"No," said Valentine. "She can't go. She's too--" 
"Young?" asked Miro. He seemed amused. "They were both born knowing everything 
that Ender knows. You can hardly call the girl a child, despite her body." 
"If they had been born," said the Bishop, "They wouldn't have to leave." 
"They're not leaving because of your wish," said Miro. "They're leaving because 
Peter's going to deliver Ela's new virus to Path, and young Val's ship is going 
to go off in search of planets where pequeninos and hive queens can be 
established." 
"You can't send her on such a mission," said Valentine. 
"I won't send her," said Miro. "I'll take her. Or rather, she'll take me. I want 
to go. Whatever risks there are, I'll take them. She'll be safe, Valentine." 
Valentine still shook her head, but she knew already that in the end she would 
be defeated. Young Val herself would insist on going, however young she might 
seem, because if she didn't go, only one starship could travel; and if Peter was 
the one doing the traveling, there was no telling whether the ship would be used 
for any good purpose. In the long run, Valentine herself would bow to the 
necessity. Whatever danger young Val might be exposed to, it was no worse than 
the risks already taken by others. Like Planter. Like Father Estevao. Like 
Glass. 



The pequeninos gathered at Planter's tree. It would have been Glass's tree, 
since he was the first to pass into the third life with the recolada, but almost 
his first words, once they were able to talk with him, were an adamant rejection 
of the idea of introducing the viricide and recolada into the world beside his 
tree. This occasion belonged to Planter, he declared, and the brothers and wives 
ultimately agreed with him. 
So it was that Ender leaned against his friend Human, whom he had planted in 
order to help him into the third life so many years before. It would have been a 
moment of complete joy to Ender, the liberation of the pequeninos from the 
descolada-- except that he had Peter with him through it all. 
"Weakness celebrates weakness," said Peter. "Planter failed, and here they are 
honoring him, while Glass succeeded, and there he stands, alone out there in the 
experimental field. And the stupidest thing is that it can't possibly mean 
anything to Planter, since his aiua isn't even here." 
"It may not mean anything to Planter," said Ender-- a point he wasn't altogether 
sure of, anyway-- "but it means something to the people here." 
"Yes," he said. "It means they're weak." 
"Jane says she took you Outside." 
"An easy trip," said Peter. "Next time, though, Lusitania won't be my 
destination. " 
"She says you plan to take Ela's virus to Path." 
"My first stop," Peter said. "But I won't be coming back here. Count on that, 
old boy." 
"We need the ship." 
"You've got that sweet little slip of a girl," said Peter, "and the bugger bitch 
can pop out starships for you by the dozen, if only you could spawn enough 
creatures like me and Valzinha to pilot them." 
"I'll be glad to see the last of you." 
"Aren't you curious what I intend to do?" 
"No," said Ender. 
But it was a lie, and of course Peter knew it. "I intend to do what you have 
neither the brains nor the stomach to do. I intend to stop the fleet." 
"How? Magically appear on the flagship?" 
"Well, if worse came to worst, dear lad, I could always deliver an M.D. Device 
to the fleet before they even knew I was there. But that wouldn't accomplish 
much, would it? To stop the fleet, I need to stop Congress. And to stop 
Congress, I need to get control." 
Ender knew at once what this meant. "So you think you can be Hegemon again? God 
help humanity if you succeed." 
"Why shouldn't I?" said Peter. "I did it once before, and I didn't do so badly. 
You should know-- you wrote the book yourself." 
"That was the real Peter," said Ender. "Not you, the twisted version conjured up 
out of my hatred and fear." 
Did Peter have soul enough to resent these harsh words? Ender thought, for a 
moment at least, that Peter paused, that his face showed a moment of-- what, 
hurt? Or simply rage? 
"I'm the real Peter now," he answered, after that momentary pause. "And you'd 
better hope that I have all the skill I had before. After all, you managed to 
give Valette the same genes as Valentine. Maybe I'm all that Peter ever was." 
"Maybe pigs have wings." 
Peter laughed. "They would, if you went Outside and believed hard enough." 
"Go, then," said Ender. 
"Yes, I know you'll be glad to get rid of me." 
"And sic you on the rest of humanity? Let that be punishment enough, for their 
having sent the fleet." Ender gripped Peter by the arm, pulled him close. "Don't 
think that this time you can maneuver me into helplessness. I'm not a little boy 
anymore, and if you get out of hand, I'll destroy you." 
"You can't," said Peter. "You could more easily kill yourself." 
The ceremony began. This time there was no pomp, no ring to kiss, no homily. Ela 
and her assistants simply brought several hundred sugar cubes impregnated with 
the viricide bacterium, and as many vials of solution containing the recolada. 
They were passed among the congregation, and each of the pequeninos took the 
sugar cube, dissolved and swallowed it, and then drank off the contents of the 
vial. 
"This is my body which is given for you," intoned Peter. "This do in remembrance 
of me." 
"Have you no respect for anything?" asked Ender. 
"This is my blood, which I shed for you. Drink in remembrance of me." Peter 
smiled. "This is a communion even I can take, unbaptized as I am." 
"I can promise you this," said Ender. "They haven't invented the baptism yet 
that can purify you." 
"I'll bet you've been saving up all your life, just to say that to me." Peter 
turned to him, so Ender could see the ear in which the jewel had been implanted, 
linking him to Jane. In case Ender didn't notice what he was pointing out, Peter 
touched the jewel rather ostentatiously. "Just remember, I have the source of 
all wisdom here. She'll show you what I'm doing, if you ever care. If you don't 
forget me the moment I'm gone." 
"I won't forget you," said Ender. 
"You could come along," said Peter. 
"And risk making more like you Outside?" 
"I could use the company." 
"I promise you, Peter, you'd soon get as sick of yourself as I am sick of you." 
"Never," said Peter. "I'm not filled with self-loathing the way you are, you 
poor guilt-obsessed tool of better, stronger men. And if you won't make more 
companions for me, why, I'll find my own along the way." 
"I have no doubt of it," said Ender. 
The sugar cubes and vials came to them; they ate, drank. 
"The taste of freedom," said Peter. "Delicious." 
"Is it?" said Ender. "We're killing a species that we never understood." 
"I know what you mean," said Peter. "It's a lot more fun to destroy an opponent 
when he's able to understand how thoroughly you defeated him." 
Then, at last, Peter walked away. 
Ender stayed through the end of the ceremony, and spoke to many there: Human and 
Rooter, of course, and Valentine, Ela, Ouanda, and Miro. 
He had another visit to make, however. A visit he had made several times before, 
always to be rebuffed, sent away without a word. This time, though, Novinha came 
out to speak with him. And instead of being filled with rage and grief, she 
seemed quite calm. 
"I'm much more at peace," she said. "And I know, for what it's worth, that my 
rage at you was unrighteous." 
Ender was glad to hear the sentiment, but surprised at the terms she used. When 
had Novinha ever spoken of righteousness? 
"I've come to see that perhaps my boy was fulfilling the purposes of God," she 
said. "That you couldn't have stopped him, because God wanted him to go to the 
pequeninos to set in motion the miracles that have come since then." She wept. 
"Miro came to me. Healed," she said. "Oh, God is merciful after all. And I'll 
have Quim again in heaven, when I die." 
She's been converted, thought Ender. After all these years of despising the 
church, of taking part in Catholicism only because there was no other way to be 
a citizen of Lusitania Colony, these weeks with the Children of the Mind of 
Christ have converted her. I'm glad of it, he thought. She's speaking to me 
again. 
"Andrew," she said, "I want us to be together again." 
He reached out to embrace her, wanting to weep with relief and joy, but she 
recoiled from his touch. 
"You don't understand," she said. "I won't go home with you. This is my home 
now." 
She was right-- he hadn't understood. But now he did. She hadn't just been 
converted to Catholicism. She had been converted to this order of permanent 
sacrifice, where only husbands and wives could join, and only together, to take 
vows of permanent abstinence in the midst of their marriage. "Novinha," he said, 
"I haven't the faith or the strength to be one of the Children of the Mind of 
Christ." 
"When you do," she said, "I'll be waiting for you here." 
"Is this the only hope I have of being with you?" he whispered. "To forswear 
loving your body as the only way to have your companionship?" 
"Andrew," she whispered, "I long for you. But my sin for so many years was 
adultery that my only hope of joy now is to deny the flesh and live in the 
spirit. I'll do it alone if I must. But with you-- oh, Andrew, I miss you." 
And I miss you, he thought. "Like breath itself I miss you," he whispered. "But 
don't ask this of me. Live with me as my wife until the last of our youth is 
spent, and then when desire is slack we can come back here together. I could be 
happy then." 
"Don't you see?" she said. "I've made a covenant. I've made a promise." 
"You made one to me, too," he said. 
"Should I break a vow to God, so I can keep my vow with you?" 
"God would understand." 
"How easily those who never hear his voice declare what he would and would not 
want." 
"Do you hear his voice these days?" 
"I hear his song in my heart, the way the Psalmist did. The Lord is my shepherd. 
I shall not want." 
"The twenty-third. While the only song I hear is the twenty-second." 
She smiled wanly. "'Why hast thou forsaken me?'" she quoted. 
"And the part about the bulls of Bashan," said Ender. "I've always felt like I 
was surrounded by bulls." 
She laughed. "Come to me when you can," she said. "I'll be here, when you're 
ready." 
She almost left him then. 
"Wait." 
She waited. 
"I brought you the viricide and the recolada." 
"Ela's triumph," she said. "It was beyond me, you know. I cost you nothing, by 
abandoning my work. My time was past, and she had far surpassed me." Novinha 
took the sugar cube, let it melt for a moment, swallowed it. 
Then she held the vial up against the last light of evening. "With the red sky, 
it looks like it's all afire inside." She drank it-- sipped it, really, so that 
the flavor would linger. Even though, as Ender knew, the taste was bitter, and 
lingered unpleasantly in the mouth long afterward. 
"Can I visit you?" 
"Once a month," she said. Her answer was so quick that he knew she had already 
considered the question and reached a decision that she had no intention of 
altering. 
"Then once a month I'll visit you," he said. 
"Until you're ready to join me," she said. 
"Until you're ready to return to me," he answered. 
But he knew that she would never bend. Novinha was not a person who could easily 
change her mind. She had set the bounds of his future. 
He should have been resentful, angry. He should have blustered about getting his 
freedom from a marriage to a woman who refused him. But he couldn't think what 
he might want his freedom for. Nothing is in my hands now, he realized. No part 
of the future depends on me. My work, such as it is, is done, and now my only 
influence on the future is what my children do-- such as they are: the monster 
Peter, the impossibly perfect child Val. 
And Miro, Grego, Quara, Ela, Olhado-- aren't they my children, too? Can't I also 
claim to have helped create them, even if they came from Libo's love and 
Novinha's body, years before I even arrived in this place? 
It was full dark when he found young Val, though he couldn't understand why he 
was even looking for her. She was in Olhado's house, with Plikt; but while Plikt 
leaned against a shadowed wall, her face inscrutable, young Val was among 
Olhado's children, playing with them. 
Of course she's playing with them, thought Ender. She's still a child herself, 
however much experience she might have had thrust upon her out of my memories. 
But as he stood in the doorway, watching, he realized that she wasn't playing 
equally with all the children. It was Nimbo who really had her attention. The 
boy who had been burned, in more ways than one, the night of the mob. The game 
the children played was simple enough, but it kept them from talking to each 
other. Still, there was eloquent conversation between Nimbo and young Val. Her 
smile toward him was warm, not in the manner of a woman encouraging a lover, but 
rather as a sister gives her brother the silent message of love, of confidence, 
of trust. 
She's healing him, thought Ender. Just as Valentine, so many years ago, healed 
me. Not with words. Just with her company. 
Could I have created her with even that ability intact? Was there that much 
truth and power in my dream of her? Then maybe Peter also has everything within 
him that my real brother had-- all that was dangerous and terrible, but also 
that which created a new order. 
Try as he might, Ender couldn't get himself to believe that story. Young Val 
might have healing in her eyes, but Peter had none of that in him. His was the 
face that, years before, Ender had seen looking back at him from a mirror in the 
Fantasy Game, in a terrible room where he died again and again before he could 
finally embrace the element of Peter within himself and go on. 
I embraced Peter and destroyed a whole people. I took him into myself and 
committed xenocide. I thought, in all these years since then, that I had purged 
him. That he was gone. But he'll never leave me. 
The idea of withdrawing from the world and entering into the order of the 
Children of the Mind of Christ-- there was much to attract him in that. Perhaps 
there, Novinha and he together could purge themselves of the demons that had 
dwelt inside them all these years. Novinha has never been so much at peace, 
thought Ender, as she is tonight. 
Young Val noticed him, came to him as he stood in the doorway. 
"Why are you here?" she said. 
"Looking for you," he said. 
"Plikt and I are spending the night with Olhado's family," she said. She glanced 
at Nimbo and smiled. The boy grinned foolishly. 
"Jane says that you're going with the starship," Ender said softly. 
"If Peter can hold Jane within himself, so can I," she answered. "Miro is going 
with me. To find habitable worlds." 
"Only if you want to," said Ender. 
"Don't be foolish," she said. "Since when have you done only what you want to 
do? I'll do what must be done, that only I can do." 
He nodded. 
"Is that all you came for?" she asked. 
He nodded again. "I guess," he said. 
"Or did you come because you wish that you could be the child you were when you 
last saw a girl with this face?" 
The words stung-- far worse than when Peter guessed what was in his heart. Her 
compassion was far more painful than his contempt. 
She must have seen the expression of pain on his face, and misunderstood it. He 
was relieved that she was capable of misunderstanding. I do have some privacy 
left. 
"Are you ashamed of me?" she asked. 
"Embarrassed," he said. "To have my unconscious mind made so public. But not 
ashamed. Not of you." He glanced toward Nimbo, then back to her. "Stay here and 
finish what you started." 
She smiled slightly. "He's a good boy who thought that he was doing something 
fine." 
"Yes," he said. "But it got away from him." 
"He didn't know what he was doing," she said. "When you don't understand the 
consequences of your acts, how can you be blamed for them?" 
He knew that she was talking as much about him, Ender the Xenocide, as about 
Nimbo. "You don't take the blame," he answered. "But you still take 
responsibility. For healing the wounds you caused." 
"Yes," she said. "The wounds you caused. But not all the wounds in the world." 
"Oh?" he asked. "And why not? Because you plan to heal them all yourself?" 
She laughed-- a light, girlish laugh. "You haven't changed a bit, Andrew," she 
said. "Not in all these years." 
He smiled at her, hugged her lightly, and sent her back into the light of the 
room. He himself, though, turned back out into the darkness and headed home. 
There was light enough for him to find his way, yet he stumbled and got lost 
several times. 
"You're crying," said Jane in his ear. 
"This is such a happy day," he said. 
"It is, you know. You're just about the only person wasting any pity on you 
tonight." 
"Fine, then," said Ender. "If I'm the only one, then at least there's one." 
"You've got me," she said. "And our relationship has been chaste all along." 
"I've really had enough of chastity in my life," he answered. "I wasn't hoping 
for more." 
"Everyone is chaste in the end. Everyone ends up out of the reach of all the 
deadly sins." 
"But I'm not dead," he said. "Not yet. Or am I?" 
"Does this feel like heaven?" she asked. 
He laughed, and not nicely. 
"Well, then, you can't be dead." 
"You forget," he said. "This could easily be hell." 
"Is it?" she asked him. 
He thought about all that had been accomplished. Ela's viruses. Miro's healing. 
Young Val's kindness to Nimbo. The smile of peace on Novinha's face. The 
pequeninos' rejoicing as their liberty began its passage through their world. 
Already, he knew, the viricide was cutting an ever-widening swath through the 
prairie of capim surrounding the colony; by now it must already have passed into 
other forests, the descolada, helpless now, giving way as the mute and passive 
recolada took its place. All these changes couldn't possibly take place in hell. 

"I guess I'm still alive," he said. 
"And so am I," she said. "That's something, too. Peter and Val, they're not the 
only people to spring from your mind." 
"No, they're not," he said. 
"We're both still alive, even if we have hard times coming." 
He remembered what lay in store for her, the mental crippling that was only 
weeks away, and he was ashamed of himself for having mourned his own losses. 
"Better to have loved and lost," he murmured, "than never to have loved at all." 

"It may be a clich?," said Jane, "but that doesn't mean it can't be true." 
Table of Contents



Chapter 18 -- The God of Path
<I couldn't taste the changes in the descolada virus until it was gone.> 
<It was adapting to you?> 
<It was beginning to taste like myself. It had included most of my genetic 
molecules into its own structure> 
<Perhaps it was preparing to change you, as it changed us.> 
<But when it captured your ancestors, it paired them with the trees they lived 
in. Whom would we have been paired with?> 
<What other forms of life are there on Lusitania, except the ones that are 
already paired?> 
<Perhaps the descolada meant to combine us with an existing pair. Or replace one 
pair-member with us.> 
<Or perhaps it meant to pair you with the humans.> 
<It's dead now. It will never happen, whatever it planned.> 
<What sort of life would you have led? Mating with human males?> 
<This is disgusting.> 
<Or giving live births, perhaps, in the human manner?> 
<Stop this foulness.> 
<I was merely speculating.> 
<The descolada is gone. You're free of it.> 
<But never free of what we should have been. I believe that we were sentient 
before the descolado came. I believe our history is older than the spacecraft 
that brought it here. I believe that somewhere in our genes is locked the secret 
of pequenino life when we were tree-dwellers, rather than the larval stage in 
the life of sentient trees.> 
<If you had no third life, Human, you would be dead now.> 
<Dead now, but while I lived I could have been, not a mere brother, but a 
father. While I lived I could have traveled anywhere, without worrying about 
returning to my forest if I ever hoped to mate. Never would I have stood day 
after day rooted to the same spot, living my life vicariously through the tales 
the brothers bring to me.> 
<It's not enough for you to be free of the descolada, then? You must be free of 
all its consequences or you won't be content?> 
<I'm always content. I am what I am, no matter how I got that way.> 
<But still not free.> 
<Males and females both, we still have to lose our lives in order to pass on our 
genes.> 
<Poor fool. Do you think that I, the hive queen, am free? Do you think that 
human parents, once they bear young, are ever truly free again? If life to you 
means independence, a completely unfettered freedom to do as you like, then none 
of the sentient creatures is alive. None of us is ever fully free.> 
<Put down roots, my friend, and then tell me how unfree you were when you were 
yet unrooted.> 
  
  
  
Wang-mu and Master Han waited together on the riverbank some hundred meters from 
their house, a pleasant walk through the garden. Jane had told them that someone 
would be coming to see them, someone from Lusitania. They both knew this meant 
that faster-than-light travel had been achieved, but beyond that they could only 
assume that their visitor must have come to an orbit around Path, shuttled down, 
and was now making his way stealthily toward them. 
Instead, a ridiculously small metal structure appeared on the riverbank in front 
of them. The door opened. A man emerged. A young man-- largeboned, Caucasian, 
but pleasant-looking anyway. He held a single glass tube in his hand. 
He smiled. 
Wang-mu had never seen such a smile. He looked right through her as if he owned 
her soul. As if he knew her, knew her better than she knew herself. 
"Wang-mu," he said, gently. "Royal Mother of the West. And Fei-tzu, the great 
teacher of the Path." 
He bowed. They bowed to him in return. 
"My business here is brief," he said. He held the vial out to Master Han. "Here 
is the virus. As soon as I've gone-- because I have no desire for genetic 
alteration myself, thank you-- drink this down. I imagine it tastes like pus or 
something equally disgusting, but drink it anyway. Then make contact with as 
many people as possible, in your house and the town nearby. You'll have about 
six hours before you start feeling sick. With any luck, at the end of the second 
day you'll have not a single symptom left. Of anything." He grinned. "No more 
little air-dances for you, Master Han, eh?" 
"No more servility for any of us," said Han Fei-tzu. "We're ready to release our 
messages at once." 
"Don't spring this on anybody until you've already spread the infection for a 
few hours." 
"Of course," said Master Han. "Your wisdom teaches me to be careful, though my 
heart tells me to hurry and proclaim the glorious revolution that this merciful 
plague will bring to us." 
"Yes, very nice," said the man. Then he turned to Wang-mu. "But you don't need 
the virus, do you?" 
"No, sir," said Wang-mu. 
"Jane says you're as bright a human being as she's ever seen." 
"Jane is too generous," said Wang-mu. 
"No, she showed me the data." He looked her up and down. She didn't like the way 
his eyes took possession of her whole body in that single long glance. "You 
don't need to be here for the plague. In fact, you'd be better off leaving 
before it happens." 
"Leaving?" 
"What is there for you here?" asked the man. "I don't care how revolutionary it 
gets here, you'll still be a servant and the child of low-class parents. In a 
place like this, you could spend your whole life overcoming it and you'd still 
be nothing but a servant with a surprisingly good mind. Come with me and you'll 
be part of changing history. Making history." 
"Come with you and do what?" 
"Overthrow Congress, of course. Cut them off at the knees and send them all 
crawling back home. Make all the colony worlds equal members of the polity, 
clean out the corruption, expose all the vile secrets, and call home the 
Lusitania Fleet before it can commit an atrocity. Establish the rights of all 
ramen races. Peace and freedom." 
"And you intend to do all this?" 
"Not alone," he said. 
She was relieved. 
"I'll have you." 
"To do what?" 
"To write. To speak. To do whatever I need you to do." 
"But I'm uneducated, sir. Master Han was only beginning to teach me." 
"Who are you?" demanded Master Han. "How can you expect a modest girl like this 
to pick up and go with a stranger?" 
"A modest girl? Who gives her body to the foreman in order to get a chance to be 
close to a godspoken girl who might just hire her to be a secret maid? No, 
Master Han, she may be putting on the attitudes of a modest girl, but that's 
because she's a chameleon. Changing hides whenever she thinks it'll get her 
something." 
"I'm not a liar, sir," she said. 
"No, I'm sure you sincerely become whatever it is you're pretending to be. So 
now I'm saying, Pretend to be a revolutionary with me. You hate the bastards who 
did all this to your world. To Qing-jao." 
"How do you know so much about me?" 
He tapped his ear. For the first time she noticed the jewel there. "Jane keeps 
me informed about the people I need to know." 
"Jane will die soon," said Wang-mu. 
"Oh, she may get semi-stupid for a while," said the man, "but die she will not. 
You helped save her. And in the meantime, I'll have you." 
"I can't," she said. "I'm afraid." 
"All right then," he said. "I offered." 
He turned back to the door of his tiny craft. 
"Wait," she said. 
He faced her again. 
"Can't you at least tell me who you are?" 
"Peter Wiggin is my name," he said. "Though I imagine I'll use a false one for a 
while." 
"Peter Wiggin," she whispered. "That's the name of the--" 
"My name. I'll explain it to you later, if I feel like it. Let's just say that 
Andrew Wiggin sent me. Sent me off rather forcefully. I'm a man with a mission, 
and he figured I could only accomplish it on one of the worlds where Congress's 
power structures are most heavily concentrated. I was Hegemon once, Wang-mu, and 
I intend to have the job back, whatever the title might turn out to be when I 
get it. I'm going to break a lot of eggs and cause an amazing amount of trouble 
and turn this whole Hundred Worlds thing arse over teakettle, and I'm inviting 
you to help me. But I really don't give a damn whether you do or not, because 
even though it'd be nice to have your brains and your company, I'll do the job 
one way or another. So are you coming or what?" 
She turned to Master Han in an agony of indecision. 
"I had been hoping to teach you," said Master Han. "But if this man is going to 
work toward what he says he will, then with him you'll have a better chance to 
change the course of human history than you'd ever have here, where the virus 
will do our main work for us." 
Wang-mu whispered to him. "Leaving you will be like losing a father." 
"And if you go, I will have lost my second and last daughter." 
"Don't break my heart, you two," said Peter. "I've got a faster-than-light 
starship here. Leaving Path with me isn't a lifetime thing, you know? If things 
don't work out I can always bring her back in a day or two. Fair enough?" 
"You want to go, I know it," said Master Han. 
"Don't you also know that I want to stay as well?" 
"I know that, too," said Master Han. "But you will go." 
"Yes," she said. "I will." 
"May the gods watch over you, daughter Wang-mu," said Master Han. 
"And may every direction be the east of sunrise to you, Father Han." 
Then she stepped forward. The young man named Peter took her hand and led her 
into the starship. The door closed behind them. A moment later, the starship 
disappeared. 
Master Han waited there ten minutes, meditating until he could compose his 
feelings. Then he opened the vial, drank its contents, and walked briskly back 
to the house. Old Mu-pao greeted him just inside the door. "Master Han," she 
said. "I didn't know where you had gone. And Wang-mu is missing, too." 
"She'll be gone for a while," he said. Then he walked very close to the old 
servant, so that his breath would be in her face. "You have been more faithful 
to my house than we have ever deserved." 
A look of fear came upon her face. "Master Han, you're not dismissing me, are 
you?" 
"No," he said. "I thought that I was thanking you." 
He left Mu-pao and ranged through the house. Qing-jao was not in her room. That 
was no surprise. She spent most of her time entertaining visitors. That would 
suit his purpose well. And indeed, that was where he found her, in the morning 
room, with three very distinguished old godspoken men from a town two hundred 
kilometers away. 
Qing-jao introduced them graciously, and then adopted the role of submissive 
daughter in her father's presence. He bowed to each man, but then found occasion 
to reach out his hand and touch each one of them. Jane had explained that the 
virus was highly communicable. Mere physical closeness was usually enough; 
touching made it more sure. 
And when they were greeted, he turned to his daughter. "Qing-jao," he said, 
"will you have a gift from me?" 
She bowed and answered graciously, "Whatever my father has brought me, I will 
gratefully receive, though I know I am not worthy of his notice." 
He reached out his arms and drew her in to him. She was stiff and awkward in his 
embrace-- he had not done such an impulsive thing before dignitaries since she 
was a very little girl. But he held her all the same, tightly, for he knew that 
she would never forgive him for what came from this embrace, and therefore it 
would be the last time he held his Gloriously Bright within his arms. 
Qing-jao knew what her father's embrace meant. She had watched her father 
walking in the garden with Wang-mu. She had seen the walnut-shaped starship 
appear on the riverbank. She had seen him take the vial from the round-eyed 
stranger. She saw him drink. Then she came here, to this room, to receive 
visitors on her father's behalf. I am dutiful, my honored father, even when you 
prepare to betray me. 
And even now, knowing that his embrace was his cruelest effort to cut her off 
from the voice of the gods, knowing that he had so little respect for her that 
he thought he could deceive her, she nevertheless received whatever he 
determined to give her. Was he not her father? His virus from the world of 
Lusitania might or might not steal the voice of the gods from her; she could not 
guess what the gods would permit their enemies to do. But certainly if she 
rejected her father and disobeyed him, the gods would punish her. Better to 
remain worthy of the gods by showing proper respect and obedience to her father, 
than to disobey him in the name of the gods and thereby make herself unworthy of 
their gifts. 
So she received his embrace, and breathed deeply of his breath. 
When he had spoken briefly to his guests, he left. They took his visit with them 
as a signal honor; so faithfully had Qing-jao concealed her father's mad 
rebellion against the gods that Han Fei-tzu was still regarded as the greatest 
man of Path. She spoke to them softly, and smiled graciously, and saw them on 
their way. She gave them no hint that they would carry away with them a weapon. 
Why should she? Human weapons would be of no use against the power of the gods, 
unless the gods willed it. And if the gods wished to stop speaking to the people 
of Path, then this might well be the disguise they had chosen for their act. Let 
it seem to the unbeliever that Father's Lusitanian virus cut us off from the 
gods; I will know, as will all other faithful men and women, that the gods speak 
to whomever they wish, and nothing made by human hands could stop them if they 
so desired. All their acts were vanity. If Congress believed that they had 
caused the gods to speak on Path, let them believe it. If Father and the 
Lusitanians believe that they are causing the gods to fall silent, let them 
believe it. I know that if I am only worthy of it, the gods will speak to me. 
A few hours later, Qing-jao fell deathly ill. The fever struck her like a blow 
from a strong man's hand; she collapsed, and barely noticed as servants carried 
her to her bed. The doctors came, though she could have told them there was 
nothing they could do, and that by coming they would only expose themselves to 
infection. But she said nothing, because her body was struggling too fiercely 
against the disease. Or rather, her body was struggling to reject her own 
tissues and organs, until at last the transformation of her genes was complete. 
Even then, it took time for her body to purge itself of the old antibodies. She 
slept and slept. 
It was bright afternoon when she awoke. "Time," she croaked, and the computer in 
her room spoke the hour and day. The fever had taken two days from her life. She 
was on fire with thirst. She got to her feet and staggered to her bathroom, 
turned on the water, filled the cup and drank and drank until she was satisfied. 
It made her giddy, to stand upright. Her mouth tasted foul. Where were the 
servants who should have given her food and drink during her disease? 
They must be sick as well. And Father-- he would have fallen ill before me. Who 
will bring him water? 
She found him sleeping, cold with last night's sweat, trembling. She woke him 
with a cup of water, which he drank eagerly, his eyes looking upward into hers. 
Questioning? Or, perhaps, pleading for forgiveness. Do your penance to the gods, 
Father; you owe no apologies to a mere daughter. 
Qing-jao also found the servants, one by one, some of them so loyal that they 
had not taken to their beds with their sickness, but rather had fallen where 
their duties required them to be. All were alive. All were recovering, and soon 
would be up again. Only after all were accounted for and tended to did Qing-jao 
go to the kitchen and find something to eat. She could not hold down the first 
food she took. Only a thin soup, heated to lukewarm, stayed with her. She 
carried more of the soup to the others. They also ate. 
Soon all were up again, and strong. Qing-jao took servants with her and carried 
water and soup to all the neighboring houses, rich and poor alike. All were 
grateful to receive what they brought, and many uttered prayers on their behalf. 
You would not be so grateful, thought Qing-jao, if you knew that the disease you 
suffered came from my father's house, by my father's will. But she said nothing. 

In all this time, the gods did not demand any purification of her. 
At last, she thought. At last I am pleasing them. At last I have done, 
perfectly, all that righteousness required. 
When she came home, she wanted to sleep at once. But the servants who had 
remained in the house were gathered around the holo in the kitchen, watching 
news reports. Qing-jao almost never watched the holo news, getting all her 
information from the computer; but the servants looked so serious, so worried, 
that she entered the kitchen and stood in their circle around the holovision. 
The news was of the plague sweeping the world of Path. Quarantine had been 
ineffective, or else always came too late. The woman reading the report had 
already recovered from the disease, and she was telling that the plague had 
killed almost no one, though it disrupted services for many. The virus had been 
isolated, but it died too quickly to be studied seriously. "It seems that a 
bacterium is following the virus, killing it almost as soon as each person 
recovers from the plague. The gods have truly favored us, to send us the cure 
along with the plague." 
Fools, thought Qing-jao. If the gods wanted you cured, they wouldn't have sent 
the plague in the first place. 
At once she realized that she was the fool. Of course the gods could send both 
the disease and the cure. If a disease came, and the cure followed, then the 
gods had sent them. How could she have called such a thing foolish? It was as if 
she had insulted the gods themselves. 
She flinched inwardly, waiting for the onslaught of the gods' rage. She had gone 
so many hours without purification that she knew it would be a heavy burden when 
it came. Would she have to trace a whole room again? 
But she felt nothing. No desire to trace woodgrain lines. No need to wash. 
She looked at her hands. There was dirt on them, and yet she didn't care. She 
could wash them or not, as she desired. 
For a moment she felt immense relief. Could it be that Father and Wangmu and the 
Jane-thing were right all along? Had a genetic change, caused by this plague, 
freed her at last from a hideous crime committed by Congress centuries ago? 
Almost as if the news reader had heard Qing-jao's thoughts, she began reading a 
report about a document that was turning up on computers all over the world. The 
document said that this plague was a gift from the gods, freeing the people of 
Path from a genetic alteration performed on them by Congress. Until now, genetic 
enhancements were almost always linked to an OCD-like condition whose victims 
were commonly referred to as godspoken. But as the plague ran its course, people 
would find that the genetic enhancements were now spread to all the people of 
Path, while the godspoken, who had previously borne the most terrible of 
burdens, had now been released by the gods from the necessity of constant 
purification. 
"This document says that the whole world is now purified. The gods have accepted 
us." The news reader's voice trembled as she spoke. "It is not known where this 
document came from. Computer analysis has linked it with no known author's 
style. The fact that it turned up simultaneously on millions of computers 
suggests that it came from a source with unspeakable powers." She hesitated, and 
now her trembling was plainly visible. "If this unworthy reader of news may ask 
a question, hoping that the wise will hear it and answer her with wisdom, could 
it not be possible that the gods themselves have sent us this message, so that 
we will understand their great gift to the people of Path?" 
Qing-jao listened for a while longer, as fury grew within her. It was Jane, 
obviously, who had written and spread this document. How dare she pretend to 
know what the gods were doing! She had gone too far. This document must be 
refuted. Jane must stand revealed, and also the whole conspiracy of the people 
of Lusitania. 
The servants were looking at her. She met their gaze, looking for a moment at 
each of them around the circle. 
"What do you want to ask me?" she said. 
"O Mistress," said Mu-pao, "forgive our curiosity, but this news report has 
declared something that we can only believe if you tell us that it is true." 
"What do I know?" answered Qing-jao. "I am only the foolish daughter of a great 
man." 
"But you are one of the godspoken, Mistress," said Mu-pao. 
You are very daring, thought Qing-jao, to speak of such things unbidden. 
"In all this night, since you came among us with food and drink, and as you led 
so many of us out among the people, tending the sick, you have never once 
excused yourself for purification. We have never seen you go so long." 
"Did it not occur to you," said Qing-jao, "that perhaps we were so well 
fulfilling the will of the gods that I had no need of purification during that 
time?" 
Mu-pao looked abashed. "No, we did not think of that." 
"Rest now," said Qing-jao. "None of us is strong yet. I must go and speak to my 
father." 
She left them to gossip and speculate among themselves. Father was in his room, 
seated before the computer. Jane's face was in the display. Father turned to her 
as soon as she entered the room. His face was radiant. Triumphant. 
"Did you see the message that Jane and I prepared?" he said. 
"You!" cried Qing-jao. "My father, a teller of lies?" 
To say such a thing to her father was unthinkable. But still she felt no need to 
purify herself. It frightened her, that she could speak with such disrespect and 
yet the gods did not rebuke her. 
"Lies?" said Father. "Why do you think that they are lies, my daughter? How do 
you know that the gods did not cause this virus to come to us? How do you know 
that it is not their will to give these genetic enhancements to all of Path?" 
His words maddened her; or perhaps she felt a new freedom; or perhaps she was 
testing the gods by speaking; very disrespectfully that they would have to 
rebuke her. "Do you think I am a fool?" shouted Qing-jao. "Do you think that I 
don't know this is your strategy to keep the world of Path from erupting in 
revolution and slaughter? Do you think I don't know that all you care about is 
keeping people from dying?" 
"And is there something wrong with that?" asked Father. 
"It's a lie!" she answered. 
"Or it's the disguise the gods have prepared to conceal their actions," said 
Father. "You had no trouble accepting Congress's stories as true. Why can't you 
accept mine?" 
"Because I know about the virus, Father. I saw you take it from that stranger's 
hand. I saw Wang-mu step into his vehicle. I saw it disappear. I know that none 
of these things are of the gods. She did them-- that devil that lives in the 
computers!" 
"How do you know," said Father, "that she is not one of the gods?" 
This was unbearable. "She was made," cried Qing-jao. "That's how I know! She's 
only a computer program, made by human beings, living in machines that human 
beings made. The gods are not made by any hand. The gods have always lived and 
will always live." 
For the first time, Jane spoke. "Then you are a god, Qing-jao, and so am I, and 
so is every other person-- human or raman-- in the universe. No god made your 
soul, your inmost aiua. You are as old as any god, and as young, and you will 
live as long." 
Qing-jao screamed. She had never made such a sound before, that she remembered. 
It tore at her throat. 
"My daughter," said Father, coming toward her, his arms outstretched to embrace 
her. 
She could not bear his embrace. She could not endure it because it would mean 
his complete victory. It would mean that she had been defeated by the enemies of 
the gods; it would mean that Jane had overmastered her. It would mean that 
Wang-mu had been a truer daughter to Han Fei-tzu than Qing-jao had been. It 
would mean that all Qing-jao's worship for all these years had meant nothing. It 
would mean that it was evil of her to set in motion the destruction of Jane. It 
would mean that Jane was noble and good for having helped transform the people 
of Path. It would mean that Mother was not waiting for her when at last she came 
to the Infinite West. 
Why don't you speak to me, O Gods! she cried out silently. Why don't you assure 
me that I have not served you in vain all these years? Why have you deserted me 
now, and given the triumph to your enemies? 
And then the answer came to her, as simply and clearly as if her mother had 
whispered the words in her ear: This is a test, Qing-jao. The gods are watching 
what you do. 
A test. Of course. The gods were testing all their servants on Path, to see 
which ones were deceived and which endured in perfect obedience. 
If I am being tested, then there must be some correct thing for me to do. 
I must do what I have always done, only this time I must not wait for the gods 
to instruct me. They have wearied of telling me every day and every hour when I 
needed to be purified. It is time for me to understand my own impurity without 
their instructions. I must purify myself, with utter perfection; then I will 
have passed the test, and the gods will receive me once again. 
She dropped to her knees. She found a woodgrain line, and began to trace it. 
There was no answering gift of release, no sense of rightness; but that did not 
trouble her, because she understood that this was part of the test. If the gods 
answered her immediately, the way they used to, then how would it be a test of 
her dedication? Where before she had undergone her purification under their 
constant guidance, now she must purify herself alone. And how would she know if 
she had done it properly? The gods would come to her again. 
The gods would speak to her again. Or perhaps they would carry her away, take 
her to the palace of the Royal Mother, where the noble Han Jiang-qing awaited 
her. There she would also meet Li Qing-jao, her ancestor-of-the-heart. There her 
ancestors would all greet her, and they would say, The gods determined to try 
all the godspoken of Path. Few indeed have passed this test; but you, Qing-jao, 
you have brought great honor to us all. Because your faithfulness never wavered. 
You performed your purifications as no other son or daughter has ever performed 
them. The ancestors of other men and women are all envious of us. For your sake 
the gods now favor us above them all. 
"What are you doing?" asked Father. "Why are you tracing the woodgrain lines?" 
She did not answer. She refused to be distracted. 
"The need for that has been taken away. I know it has-- I feel no need for 
purification." 
Ah, Father! If only you could understand! But even though you will fail this 
test, I will pass it-- and thus I will bring honor even to you, who have 
forsaken all honorable things. 
"Qing-jao," he said. "I know what you're doing. Like those parents who force 
their mediocre children to wash and wash. You're calling the gods." 
Give it that name if you wish, Father. Your words are nothing to me now. I will 
not listen to you again until we both are dead, and you say to me, My daughter, 
you were better and wiser than I; all my honor here in the house of the Royal 
Mother comes from your purity and selfless devotion to the service of the gods. 
You are truly a noble daughter. I have no joy except because of you. 



The world of Path accomplished its transformation peacefully. Here and there, a 
murder occurred; here and there, one of the godspoken who had been tyrannical 
was mobbed and cast out of his house. But by and large, the story given by the 
document was believed, and the former godspoken were treated with great honor 
because of their righteous sacrifice during the years when they were burdened 
with the rites of purification. 
Still, the old order quickly passed away. The schools were opened equally to all 
children. Teachers soon reported that students were achieving remarkable things; 
the stupidest child now was surpassing all averages from former times. And 
despite Congress's outraged denials of any genetic alteration, scientists on 
Path at last turned their attention to the genes of their own people. Studying 
the records of what their genetic molecules had been, and how they were now, the 
women and men of Path confirmed all that the document had said. 
What happened then, as the Hundred Worlds and all the colonies learned of 
Congress's crimes against Path-- Qing-jao never knew of it. That was all a 
matter for a world that she had left behind. For she spent all her days now in 
the service of the gods, cleansing herself, purifying herself. 
The story spread that Han Fei-tzu's mad daughter, alone of all the godspoken, 
persisted in her rituals. At first she was ridiculed for it-- for many of the 
godspoken had, out of curiosity, attempted to perform their purifications again, 
and had discovered the rituals to be empty and meaningless now. But she heard 
little of the ridicule, and cared nothing for it. Her mind was devoted solely to 
the service of the gods-- what did it matter if the people who had failed the 
test despised her for continuing to attempt to succeed? 
As the years passed, many began to remember the old days as a graceful time, 
when the gods spoke to men and women, and many were bowed down in their service. 
Some of these began to think of Qing-jao, not as a madwoman, but as the only 
faithful woman left among those who had heard the voice of the gods. The word 
began to spread among the pious: "In the house of Han Fei-tzu there dwells the 
last of the godspoken." 
They began to come then, at first a few, then more and more of them. Visitors, 
who wanted to speak with the only woman who still labored in her purification. 
At first she would speak to some of them; when she had finished tracing a board, 
she would go out into the garden and speak to them. But their words confused 
her. They spoke of her labor as being the purification of the whole planet. They 
said that she was calling the gods for the sake of all the people of Path. The 
more they talked, the harder it was for her to concentrate on what they said. 
She was soon eager to return to the house, to begin tracing another line. Didn't 
these people understand that they were wrong to praise her now? "I have 
accomplished nothing," she would tell them. "The gods are still silent. I have 
work to do." And then she would return to her tracing. 
Her father died as a very old man, with much honor for his many deeds, though no 
one ever knew his role in the coming of the Plague of the Gods, as it was now 
called. Only Qing-jao understood. And as she burned a fortune in real money-- no 
false funeral money would do for her father-- she whispered to him so that no 
one else could hear, "Now you know, Father. Now you understand your errors, and 
how you angered the gods. But don't be afraid. I will continue the purification 
until all your mistakes are rectified. Then the gods will receive you with 
honor." 
She herself became old, and the Journey to the House of Han Qing-jao was now the 
most famous pilgrimage of Path. Indeed, there were many who heard of her on 
other worlds, and came to Path just to see her. For it was well-known on many 
worlds that true holiness could be found in only one place, and in only one 
person, the old woman whose back was now permanently bent, whose eyes could now 
see nothing but the lines in the floors of her father's house. 
Holy disciples, men and women, now tended the house where servants once had 
cared for her. They polished the floors. They prepared her simple food, and laid 
it where she could find it at the doors of the rooms; she would eat and drink 
only when a room was finished. When a man or woman somewhere in the world 
achieved some great honor, they would come to the House of Han Qing-jao, kneel 
down, and trace a woodgrain line; thus all honors were treated as if they were 
mere decorations on the honor of the Holy Han Qing-jao. 
At last, only a few weeks after she completed her hundredth year, Han Qing-jao 
was found curled up on the floor of her father's room. Some said that it was the 
exact spot where her father always sat when he performed his labors; it was hard 
to be sure, since all the furniture of the house had been removed long before. 
The holy woman was not dead when they found her. She lay still for several days, 
murmuring, muttering, inching her hands across her own body as if she were 
tracing lines in her flesh. Her disciples took turns, ten at a time, listening 
to her, trying to understand her muttering, setting down the words as best they 
understood them. They were written in the book called The God Whispers of Han 
Qing-jao. 
Most important of all her words were these, at the very end. "Mother," she 
whispered. "Father. Did I do it right?" And then, said her disciples, she smiled 
and died. 
She had not been dead for a month before the decision was made in every temple 
and shrine in every city and town and village of Path. At last there was a 
person of such surpassing holiness that Path could choose her as the protector 
and guardian of the world. No other world had such a god, and they admitted it 
freely. 
Path is blessed above all other worlds, they said. For the God of Path is 
Gloriously Bright. 
Table of Contents
